■'tiy^
■ ' - - ' \.o..^<^r^.
p
f
o
k
/da- aU^^M\tlnr(L^.
'm>i I ' I'^^T
r {
Digitized by tine Internet Arciiive
in 2011 witii funding from
Tiie Institute of Museum and Library Services through an Indiana State Library LSTA Grant
http://www.archive.org/details/femaleprosewriteOOinhart
FEMALE PROSE WRITERS.
^^^4^ /^'^^^-- '
/
■XA-A > -■ ■V/.V.'^T'W '
THE
FEMALE PPtOSE WRITERS
OF
AMEKICA.
WITH PORTRAITS, BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICES, AND
SPECIMENS OF THEIR WRITINGS.
BY JOHN S. HART, LL.D.
i^^to €Mm, gcMst^ anij €nl;irgft
PHILADELPHIA:
PUBLISHED BY E. H. BUTLER & CO.
1855.
Entered according to the Act of Congress, in the year 1851, by
E. II. BUTLER k CO.,
in the Clerli's office of the District Court of the United States, in and for the Eastern
District of Pennsylvania.
PREFACE.
The unwonted favour extended to " Read's Female Poets of
America," led to the belief that a work on the Female Prose
"Writers, constructed on a similar plan, would be not unacceptable
to the public.
In the preparation of the biographies, much difficulty has been
experienced. Few things are more intangible and elusive, than
the biography of persons still living, and yet, in the case of those who
have pleased us by their writings, few things are more interesting.
It seems to be an instinctive desire of the human heart, on becom-
ing acquainted with any work of genius, to know something of its
author. Nor is this mere idle curiosity. It is a part of that
homage, which every mind rightly constituted, spontaneously offers
to Avhatever is great or good. This feeling of personal interest in
an author who has moved us, is greatly increased where, as in the
case of most female writers, the subjects of which they write, are
chiefly of an emotional nature, carrying with them on every page
the unmistakeable impress of personal sympathy, if not experience.
Women, far more than men, write from the heart. Their own
likes and dislikes, their feelings, opinions, tastes, and sympathies are
so mixed up with those of their subject, that the interest of the
VT P R E F xV C E .
reader is often enlisted quite as much for the writer, as for the
hero, of a tale.
Knowing, therefore, how general is this desire to become ac-
quainted with the personal history of authors, I have taken special
pains, in preparing a work on the Female Prose Writers of the
country, to make the biographical sketches as full and minute as
circumstances would justify, or the writers themselves would allow.
The work contains two charming pieces of autobiography, now
appearing for the first time, from two long-established favourites
with the public, Miss Leslie and Mrs. Gilman. In almost all cases
the information has been obtained directly by correspondence with
the authors, or their friends. Where this has failed, recourse has
been had to the best printed authorities. The work, it is believed,
Avill be found to contain an unusual amount of authentic informa-
tion, and on subjects where authentic information is equally desir-
able and difficult to obtain.
The task of making selections has not been easy. I have studied,
as far as possible, to select passages characteristic of the diff"erent
styles of each writer, and at the same time to present the reader
with an agreeable variety.
Those who have not been led professionally, or otherwise, to exa-
mine the subject particularly, will probably be surprised at the
evidences of the rapid growth of literature, among American women,
during the present generation. When Hannah Adams first published
her " View of all Religions," so rare was the example of a woman
who could write a book, that she was looked upon as one of the
wonders of the Western world. Learned men of Europe sought her
acquaintance, and entered into correspondence with her. Yet now,
less than twenty years since the death of Hannah Adams, a pon-
derous volume of nearly five hundred pages is hardly sufiicient to
enrol the names of those of our female writers, who have already
adorned the annals of literature by their prose writings, to say
PREFACE. vii
nothing of the numerous and not less distinguished sisterhood, Avho
have limited themselves to poetry.
A -word in regard to the portraits. These have been made, wher-
ever it was practicable from original paintings or drawings.
NOTE TO THE REVISED EDITION.
In preparing this work for a new edition the biographies, in the
case of authors still living, have been carefully revised and
brought up to the present time, and a considerable number of new
names has been introduced, increasing materially the size of the
work.
September, 1854.
CONTENTS.
CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK: page
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 17
MAGNETISM AMONG THE SHAKERS ........ 19
THE S.ABBATH IN NEW ENGLAND . . . . . . . . . 2t
ELIZA LESLIE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ........ .26
AUTOBIOGRAPHY ........... 27
MKS. DEKRINGTON'a RECEPTION DAT ........ 32
CAROLINE GILMAN:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 49
AUTOBIOGRAPHY .......... 49
SARAH HALL:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ... ...... 58
ON FASHION ........... eO
MARIA J. McINTOSH:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 63
TWO PORTRAITS ....... . . 69
LYDIA H. SIGOXJRNEY:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 76
THE LOST CHILDREN .......... 84
I HAVE SEEN AN END OF ALL PERFECTION ........ 90
SARAH J. HALE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 93
FROM '•woman's RECORD" ......... 95
THE MODE ........... 96
EMMA C. WILLARD :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . . . . . ' . . . , . 100
HOW TO TEACH .......... 103
WHAT TO TEACH ........... 103
CARE OF HEALTH .......... 104
ON THE FORCE THAT MOVES THE BLOOD ........ 106
ALMIRA HART LINCOLN PHELPS :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 107
EDUCATION . . . . . . . . . . . . 108
ENERGY OP MIND . ........ 108
EFFECTS OF EXCITEMENTS . . ....... 109
IHE CHILD AND NATURE . . . . ' . . . . . 110
2 (9)
X CONTENTS.
LOUISA C. TUTHILL : pass
BIOGEAPHIOAL NOTICE .......... 114
DOMESTIC ARCniTECTURE IX THE UNITED STATES ...... 114
CAEOLIWE M. KIRKLAND:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 116
THE MYSTERY OF VISITINQ ....... • 117
LYDIA M. CHILD:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ...... ... 127
OLE BUL .......... 129
THE UMBRELLA GIRL .......... 133
EMMA C. EMBURY:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 139
TWO FACES UNDER ONE HOOD ......... 140
MARY S. B. SHINDLER :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . . . . . . . . . . 153
A DAY IN NEW YORK .......... 158
CAROLINE LEE HEWTZ :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . . . ... 162
AUNT PATTY'S SCRAP BAG .......... 165
HANNAH ADAMS:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 1"2
THE GNOSTICS ........... 173
ELIZABETH F. ELLET:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 177
MARY SLOCUMB ........... 178
E OAKES SMITH :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 1S9
THE MYSTERY OF THE MOUNTAIN ......... 190
THE ANGEL AND THE MAIDEN ......... 194
LOUISA S. McCORD:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 198
THE EIGHT TO LABOUR ......... 199
ANN S. STEPHENS :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 204
THE QUILTING PARTY .......... 205
EMMA D. E. N. SOUTHWORTH :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 211
THE NEGLECTED CHILDREN IN THE ATTIC ....... 216
THERESE LOUISE ALBERTINE ROBINSON (Talvj):
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ....... . . 224
SLAVIC SUPERSTITIONS ......... 225
FRANCES S. OSGOOD :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 229
THE MAGIC LUTE .......... 230
ELIZABETH C. KINNEY:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 237
OLD MAIDS ........... 238
THE SONNET ........... 240
HARRIET FARLEY :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ..... .... 244
ABBY'S tear IN LOWELL ..... .... 246
MARY H. EASTMAN:
biographical notice ......... 255
bhah-co-pee; the orator of the sioux . . .... 256
CONTENTS. xi
S. MARGARET FULLER: page
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 2(i6
A SHORT ESSAY OX CRITICS ........ 2G8
CATHERINE E. BEECHER :
BIOGRAPHIC-U, NOTICE . ..... ... 276
HABIT .... ........ 277
HARRIET BEECHER STOWE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . ......... 280
THE TEA ROSE ... ........ 2S8
SARA H. BROWNE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . ........ 290
A SALUTATION TO FREDRIKA BREMER ........ 299
MARIA J. B. BROWNE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . . ........ 302
LOOKING UP IN THE 'WORLD ......... 30-1
ELIZABETH BOGART :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 316
ARTHUR MOWBRAY .......... 318
EECOLLECIIONS OP CHILDHOOD ......... 321
JANE ELIZABETH LARCOMBE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ..... i . . . 322
THOUGHTS BY THE WAYSIDE ......... 322
EMILY C. JUDSON:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 325
LUCY DUTTON ........... 826
MY FIRST GRIEP .......... 332
SARA J. LIPPINCOTT:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ....... . . 334
A DREAM OF DEATH .......... 336
EXTRACT FROM A LETTER .......... 339
ANNE C. LYNCH:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 343
FREDRIKA BREMER .... ..... .346
MARY E. HEWITT :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 334
A LEGEND OF IRELAND ... ...... 355
ALICE B. NEAL :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 363
THE CHILD LOVE ............ 365
CLARA MOORE:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 377
THE YOUNG MINISTER'S CHOICE . . . . " . . . . . 378
ANN E. PORTER:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 387
COUSIN HELEN'S BABY . . . . ■ . . . . , . 388
E. W. BARNES:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 393
THE YOUNG RECTOR .......... 395
ANNE T. WILBUR:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICB .......... 402
ALICE VERNON ... .... . . 4fl3
ELIZA L. SPROAT :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 409
THE ENCHANTED LUTE ......... 409
CONTENTS.
SUSAN FENIMORE COOPER : pace
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......•••• 4^3
SPIDERS ........-•■■ 413
HUMMING-BIRDS ........ • 415
WEEDS ............ 418
ELIZABETH WETHERELL :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 421
LITTLE ELLEN AND THE SHOPMAN ......... 424
AMY LOTHROP :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 432
THE STORY OF THE PINE CONE . . . . ... 433
SPEINQ WEATHER ..... .... 435
CAROLINE ORNE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ....... . . 430
DR. PLUMLET ......... . 4oS)
CAROLINE MAY:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 441
HANDEL ........... 441
LUCRETIA AND MARGARET DAVIDSON ........ 442
JULIA C. R. DORR :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 447
HILLSIDE COTTAGE ........... 448
MARY ELIZABETH MORAGNE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 453
THE HUGUENOT TOWN .......... 455
MARY ELIZABETH LEE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 458
EXTRACT FROM A LETTER .......... 460
MARY J. WINDLE :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ......... 4C3
ALICE HEATH'S INTERVIEW WITH CROMWELL ....... 464
FANNY FERN :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 470
THE AGED MINISTER VOTED A DISMISSION . . . . . . . .476
THE FASHIONABLE PREACHER ......... 477
FATHER TAYLOR, THE SAILOR'S PRK\CHER ....... 478
THE baby's COMPLAINT ......... 481
" MILK FOR babes" .......... 482
UNCLE JOLLY ........... 483
TH.ANKSGIVING STORY .......... 4S7
ALICE CAREY :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 489
MRS. HILL AND MRS. TROOST ......... 491
FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 498
MRS. MTJDLAW'S RECIPE FOR POTATO PUDDING ....... 502
ESTELLE ANNA LEWIS:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE ... ...... 507
IMAGINATION ........... 509
ART ............ 510
CAROLINE CHESEBRO' :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . . . . . . . . . .512
THE PAUPER CHILD AND THE DEAD WOMAN ....... S14
ELIZA FARRAR:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE . . . . . . . . . .517
EEOIHERS AND SISTERS . . ... . . . . . 518
CONTENTS. xiii
HANNAH F. LEE : page
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 5'21
BEGI.N'NIXG UFE .......... 522
LIVI.VO BETOXD THE MEAMS '......... 5'23
CAROLINE THOMAS :
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 525
TRIALS ............ 52S
ELLEN LOUISE CHANDLER:
BIOGRAPHICAL NOTICE .......... 6.32
'• I CANNOT ILIKE HIM DKVD"' . ........ 535
PORTRAITS
EXECUTED IN THE FIRST STYLE OF ART.
FANNY FORRESTEU
MISS SEDGWICK
5LKS. KIRKLAND .
MRS. [lENTZ
MRS. ELLET
MRS. STEPHENS
MARGARET FULLER
MRS. NEAL
PAINTER.
. ROTIIERMEL
INGUAM
. MARTIN
IIENTZ .
. READ .
CROOME .
. IIICKS
FURNESS
Frontispiece
177
204
2C6
363
(15)
e^-<P-<i^^_
CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK.
Miss Sedgwick holds about the same position among our female prose
writers that Cooper holds among American novelists. She was the first
of her class whose writings became generally known, and the eminence
universally conceded to her on account of priority, has been almost as
generally granted on other grounds. Amid the throng of new competitors
for public favour, who have entered the arena within the last few years,
there is not one, probably, whose admirers would care to disturb the well-
earned laurels of the author of '' Redwood" and " Hope Leslie."
Miss Sedgwick is a native, and has been much of her life, a resident of
Stockbridge, Massachusetts. Her father was the Hon. Theodore Sedgwick,
of Stockbridge, who served his country with distinguished reputation in
various stations, and particularly in the Congress of the United States,
as Speaker of the House of Representatives, and afterwards as Senator,
and who, at the time of his death, was one of the Judges of the Supreme
Court of his own State. Her brothers, Henry and Theodore, have both
been distinguished as lawyers and as political writers. On the mother's
side, she is connected with the Dwight family, of whom her grandfather,
Joseph Dwight, was a Brigadier-General in the Massachusetts Provincial
forces, and actively engaged in the old French war of 1756.
Judge Sedgwick died in 1813, before his daughter had given any public
demonstration of her abilities as a writer. Her talents seem to have been
from the first justly appreciated by her brothers, whose judicious encou-
ragement is very gracefully acknowledged in the preface to the new edition
of her works, commenced by Mr. Putnam, in 1849.
Miss Sedgwick's first publication was " The New England Tale." The
author informs us in the preface, that the story was commenced as a
religious tract, and that it gradually grew in her hands, beyond the proper
limits of such a work. Finding this to be the case, she abandoned all
design of publication, but finished the tale for her own amusement. Once
3 (17)
13 CATHERINE M. SEDGAVICK.
finished, however, the opinions and solicitations of her friends prevailed
over her own earnest wishes, and the volume was given to the world in
1822. The original intention of this book led the author to give special
prominence to topics of a questionable character for a professed novel, and
the unfavourable portraiture which she gives, both here and elsewhere, of
New England Puritanism, has naturally brought upon her some censure.
The limited plan of the story did not give opportunity for the display of
that extent and variety of power which appear in some of her later pro-
ductions. Still it contains passages of stirring eloquence, as well as of
deep tenderness, that will compare favourably with anything she has
written. Perhaps the chief value of " The New England Tale" was its
effect upon the author herself. Its publication broke the ice of diffidence
and indifference, and launched her, under a strong wind, upon the broad
sea of letters.
"Redwood" accordingly followed in 1824. It was received at once
with a degree of favour that caused the author's name to be associated,
and on equal terms, with that of Cooper, who was then at the height of his
popularity ; and, indeed, in a French translation of the book, which then
appeared. Cooper is given on the title-page as the author. " Redwood"
was also translated into the Italian, besides being reprinted in England.
The reputation of the author was confirmed and extended by the
appearance, in 1827, of ''Hope Leslie." the most decided favourite of all
her novels. She has written other things since, that in the opinion of
some of the critics are superior to either '' Redwood" or " Hope Leslie."
But, these later writings have had to jostle their way among a crowd of
competitors, both domestic and foreign. Her earlier works stood alone, and
" Hope Leslie," especially, became firmly associated in the public mind
with the rising glories of a native literature. It was not only read with
lively satisfaction, but familiarly quoted and applauded as a source of
national pride.
Her subsequent novels followed at about uniform intervals ; " Clarence,
a Tale of our Own Times," in 1830 ; " Le Bossu," one of the Tales of
the "Grlauber Spa," in 1832; and "The Linwoods, or Sixty Years Since
in America," in 1835.
In 1836, she commenced writing in quite a new vein, giving a series of
illustrations of common life, called " The Poor Rich Man, and the Rich
Poor Man." These were followed, in 1837, by "Live and Let Live,"
and afterwards by " Means and Ends," a " Love Token for Children,"
and " Stories for Young Persons."
In 1839, Miss Sedgwick went to Europe, and while there, wrote
" Letters from Abroad to Kindred at Home." These were collected
after her return, and published in two volumes.
She has written also a " Life of Lucretia M. Davidson," and has con-
tributed numerous articles to the Annuals and the Magazines. Some of
CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK. 19
hqr recent publications have been prepared expressly for cliildren and
young persons. " The Boy of Mount Rhigi," published in 1848, is one
of a series of tales projected for the purpose of diffusing sentiments of
goodness among the young. The titles of some of her other small vo-
lumes are " Facts and Fancies," " Beatitudes and Pleasant Sundays,"
"Morals of Manners," "Wilton Harvey," "Home," "Louisa and her
Cousins," " Lessons without Books," &c.
The quality of mind which is most apparent in Miss Sedgwick's writ-
ings is that of strength. The reader feels at every step that he has to do
with a vigorous and active intellect. Another quality, resulting from this
possession of power, is the entire absence of affectation of every kind.
There is no straining for effect, no mere verbal prettinesses. The discourse
proceeds with the utmost simplicity and directness, as though the author
were more intent upon what she is saying than how she says it. And
yet, the mountain springs of her own Housatonick do not send up a
more limpid stream, than is the apparently spontaneous flow of her pure
English. As a novelist, Miss Sedgwick has for the most part wisely cho-
sen American subjects. The local traditions, scenery, manners, and
costume, being thus entirely familiar, she has had greater freedom in the
exercise of the creative faculty, on which, after all, real eminence in the
art mainly depends. Her characters are conceived with distinctness, and
are minutely individual and consistent, while her plot always shows a mind
fertile in resources and a happy adaptation of means to ends.
MAGNETISM AMONG THE SHAKERS.
One of the brethren from a Shaker settlement in our neio;hbour-
hood, called on us the other day. I was staying with a friend, in
whose atmosphere there is a. moral power, analogous to some
chemical test, which elicits from every form of humanity whatever
of sweet and genial is in it. Our visiter was an old acquaintance,
and an old member of his order, having joined it more than forty
years ago with his wife and two children. I have known marked
individuals among these people, and yet it surprises me when I see
an original stamp of character, surviving the extinguishing mono-
tony of life, or rather suspended animation among them. What
God has impressed man cannot efface. To a child's eye, each leaf
of a tree is like the other ; to a philosopher's each has its distinc-
tive mark. Our friend W.'s individuality might have struck a
careless observer. He has nothing of the angular, crusty, silent
20 CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK.
asjDect of most of his yea and nay brethren, who have a perfect
conviction that they have dived to the bottom of the well and found
the pearl truth, while all the rest of the world look upon them as
at the bottom of a well indeed ; but without the peaid, and with
only so much light as may come in through the little aperture that
communicates with the outward world. Neither are quite right ;
the Shaker has no monopoly of truth or holiness, but we believe he
has enough of both to light a dusky path to heaven.
Friend Wilcox is a man of no pretension whatever ; but content
in conscious mediocrity. We were at dinner when he came in ; but
friend Wilcox is too childlike or too simple, to be disturbed by any
observances of conventional politeness. He declined an invitation
to dine, saying he had eaten and was not hungry, and seated him-
self in the corner, after depositing some apples on the table, of
rare size and beauty. "I have brought some notions, too," he
said, "for you, B ," and he took from his ample pocket his
handkerchief, in Avhich he had tied up a parcel of sugar plums and
peppermints. B accepted them most affably, and without any
apparent recoiling, shifted them from the old man's handkerchief
to an empty plate beside her. " Half of them," he said, " remem-
ber, B , are for . You both played and sung to rac last
summer — I don't forget it. She is a likely woman, and makes the
music sound almost as good as when I was young !"
This was enthusiasm in the old Shaker ; but to us it sounded
strangely, who knew that she who had so kindly condescended to
call back brother Wilcox's youth, had held crowds entranced by her
genius. Brother Wilcox is a genial old man, and fifty years of
abstinence from the world's pleasures has not made him forget or
contemn them. He resembles the jolly friars in conventual life,
who never resist, and are therefore allowed to go without bits or
reins, and in a very easy harness. There is no galling in restraint
where there is no desire for freedom. It is the "immortal long-
ings" that make the friction in life. After dinner, B , at brother
Wilcox's request, sate down to the piano, and played for him the
various tunes that were the favourites in rustic inland life forty
years ago. First the Highland reel, then "Money Musk."
CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK. 21
"I remember who I danced that Avith," he said, " Sophy Drury.
The ball Avas held in the school room at Feeding fields. She is
tight built, and cheeks as red as a rose (past and present were con-
founded in brother "Wilcox's imagination). I went home with Sophy
— it was as light as day, and near upon day — them was pleasant
times !" concluded the old man, but without one sigh of regret, and
with a gleam of light from his twinkling gray eye.
" There have been no such pleasant times since, brother Wilcox,
has there?" asked B , with assumed or real sympathy.
" I can't say that, it has been all along pleasant. I have had
what others call crosses, but I don't look at them that way — what's
the use?"
The old man's philosophy struck me. There was no record of a
cross in his round jolly face. "Were you married," I asked,
" when you joined the Shakers ?"
" Oh, yes ; I married at twenty — it's never too soon nor too late
to do right, you know, and it was right for me to marry according
to the light I had then. May be you think it was a cross to part
from my wife — all men don't take it so — but I own I should ; I liked
Eunice. She is a peaceable woman, and we lived in unity, but it
was rather hard times, and we felt a call to join the brethren, and
so we walked out of the world together, and took our two children
with us. In the society she was the first woman handy in all cases."
" And she is still with you ?"
" No. Our girl took a notion and went ofi", and got married, and
my wife went after her — that's natural for mothers, you know. I
went after Eunice, and tried to persuade her to come back, and she
felt so ; but it's hard rooting out mother-love ; it's planted deep,
and spreads wide ; so I left her to nature, and troubled myself no
more about it, for what was the use ? My son, too, took a liking
to a young English girl that was one of our sisters — may be you
have seen her ?" We had all seen her and admired her fresh
English beauty, and deplored her fate. " Well, she was a picture,
and speaking after the manner of men, as good as she was hand-
some. They went ofi" together ; I could not much blame them,
22 CATHERINE M. SEDGAVICK.
and I took no steps after them — for what "vvas the use ? But come,
strike up again ; play ' Haste to the wedding.' "
B obeyed, and our old friend sang or chanted a low accom-
paniment ; in which the dancing tune and the Shaker nasal chant
were ludicrously mingled. B played all his favourite airs, and
then said, ''You do love dancing, brother Wilcox?"
"Yes, to be sure — 'praise him in the cymbals and dances !' "
" Oh, but I mean such dances as we have here. Would not you
like, brother AYilcox, to come over and see us dance ?"
"Why, may fee I should." ' ...
" And would not you like to dance with one of our pretty young
ladies, brother Wilcox?"
"May be I should;" the old man's face lit up joyously — but ho
smiled and shook his head, " they would not let me, they would
not let me." Perhaps the old Shaker's imagination wandered
for a moment from the very straight path of the brotherhood, but
it was but a moment. His face reverted to its placid passiveness,
and he said, "I am perfectly content. I have enough to eat and
drink — everything good after its kind, too — good clothes to wear,
a warm bed to sleep in, and just as much work as I like, and no
more." "All this, and heaven too," — of Avhich the old man felt
perfectly sure — was quite enough to fill the measure of a Shaker's
desires.
"Now," said he, "you think so much of your dances, I wish
you could see one of our young sisters dance, when we go up to
Mount Holy. She has the whirling gift ; she will spin round like
a top, on one foot, for half an hour, all the while seeing visions, and
receiving revelations."
This whirling is a recent gift of the Shakers. The few "world's
folk" who have been permitted to see its exhibition, compare its
subjects to the whirling Dervishes.
" Have you any other new inspiration ?" I asked.
" Gifts, you mean ? Oh, yes ; we have visionists. It's a wonder-
ful mystery to me. I never was much for looking into mysteries —
they rather scare me !" Naturally enough, poor childlike old man !
"What, brother Wilcox," I asked, "do you mean by a visiouist ?"
CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK. 23
"I can't exactly explain," he replied. "They see things that
the natural eye can't see, and hear, and touch, and taste, with
inward senses. As for me, I never had any kind of gifts, but a
contented mind, and submission to those in authority, and I don't
see at all into this new mystery. It makes me of a tremble when
I think of it. I'll tell you how it acts. Last summer I was among
our brethren in York State, and when I was coming away, I went
down into the garden to take leave of a young brother there. He
asked me if I would carry something for him to Vesta. Vesta is
a young sister, famous for her spiritual gifts, whirling, &c." I
could have added, for I had seen Vesta — for other less questionable
gifts in the world's estimation — a light graceful figure, graceful
even in the Shaker straight jacket, and a face like a young Sibyl's.
" Well," continued brother Wilcox, " he put his hand in his pocket,
as if to take out something, and then stretching it to me, he said,
' I want you to give this white pear to Vesta.' I felt to take some-
thing,, though I saw nothing, and a sort of trickling heat ran
through me ; and even now, when I think of it, I have the same
feeling, fainter, but the same. When I got home, I asked Vesta if
she knew that young brother. 'Yea,' she said. I put my hand in
my pocket and took it out again, to all earthly seeming as empty
as it went in, and stretched it out to her. ' Oh, a white pear !' she
said. As I hope for salvation, every word that I tell you is true,"
concluded the old man.
It was evident he believed every word of it to be true. The
incredulous may imagine that there was some clandestine inter-
course between the "young brother" and "young sister," and that
simple old brother Wilcox was merely made the medium of a fact
or sentiment, symbolized by the white pear. However that may
be, it is certain that animal magnetism has penetrated into the cold
and dark recesses of the Shakers.
24 CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK.
THE SABBATH IN NEW ENGLAND.
The observance of the Sabbath began with the Puritans, as it
still does with a great portion of their descendants, on Saturday-
night. At the going down of the sun on Saturday, all temporal
affairs were suspended ; and so zealously did our fathers maintain
the letter, as well as the spirit of the law, that, according to a
A'ulgar tradition in Connecticut, no beer was brewed in the latter
part of the week, lest it should presume to ivorlc on Sunday.
It must be confessed, that the tendency of the age is to laxity ;
and so rapidly is the wholesome strictness of primitive times
abating, that, should some antiquary, fifty years hence, in explor-
ing his garret rubbish, chance to cast his eye on our humble
pages, he may be surprised to learn, that, even now, the Sabbath
is observed, in the interior of New England, with an almost
Judaical severity.
On Saturday afternoon an uncommon bustle is apparent. The
great class of procrastinators are hurrying to and fro to complete
the lagging business of the week. The good mothers, like Burns's
matron, are plying their needles, making " auld claes look amaist
as weel's the new;" while the domestics, or help (we prefer the
national descriptive term), are wielding, with might and main,
their brooms and mops, to make all tidy for the Sabbath.
As the day declines, the hum of labour dies away, and, after the
sun is set, perfect stillness reigns in every well-ordered house-
hold, and not a foot-fall is heard in the village street. It cannot
be denied, that even the most scriptural, missing the excitement
of their ordinary occupations, anticipate their usual bed-time. The
obvious inference from this fact is skilfully avoided by certain
ingenious reasoners, who allege, that the constitution was origi-
nally so organized as to require an extra quantity of sleep on
every seventh night. We recommend it to the curious to inquire,
how this peculiarity was adjusted, when the first day of the week
was changed from Saturday to Sunday.
CATHERINE M. SEDGWICK. 25
The Sabbath morning is as peaceful as the first hallowed day.
Not a human sound is heard without the dwellings, and, but for
the lowing of the herds, the crowing of the cocks, and the gossipping
of the birds, animal life would seem to be extinct, till, at the bid-
ding of the church-going bell, the old and young issue from their
habitations, and, with solemn demeanour, bend their measured steps
to the meeting-house ; — the families of the minister, the squire, the
doctor, the merchant, the modest gentry of the village, and the
mechanic and labourer, all arrayed in their best, all meeting on
even ground, and all with that consciousness of independence and
equality, which breaks down the pride of the rich, and rescues the
poor from servility, envy, and discontent. If a morning salutation
is reciprocated, it is in a suppressed voice ; and if, perchance,
nature, in some reckless urchin, burst forth in laughter — "My
dear, you forget it's Sunday," is the ever ready reproof.
Though every face wears a solemn aspect, yet we once chanced
to see even a deacon's muscles relaxed by the wit of a neighbour,
and heard him allege, in a half-deprecating, half-laughing voice,
" The squire is so droll, that a body must laugh, though it be
Sabbath-day."
Towards the close of the day (or to borrow a phrase descriptive
of his feelings, who first used it), "when the Sabbath begins to
abate," the children cluster about the windows. Their eyes wan-
der from their catechism to the western sky, and, though it seems
to them as if the sun would never disappear, his broad disk does
slowly sink behind the mountain ; and, while his last ray still
lingers on the eastern summits, merry voices break forth, and the
ground resounds with bounding footsteps. The village belle arrays
herself for her twilight walk ; the boys gather on " the green ;" the
lads and girls throng to the "singing-school;" while some coy
maiden lingers at home, awaiting her expected suitor; and all
enter upon the pleasures of the evening with as keen a relish as
if the day had been a preparatory penance.
ELIZA LESLIE.
TTe havo room but for a brief preface to the charming autobiography
of Miss Leslie, furnished to our pages by her friend Mrs. Neal, for whom
it vras recently written. All that is of interest in the personal history
of this gifted lady, she has herself supplied. It only remains for us to
point out the characteristics of her style, and the great popularity of her
writings, to which she so modestly alludes.
Her tales are perfect daguerreotypes of real life ; their actors think, act,
and speak for themselves ; with a keen eye for the ludicrous, the failings
of human nature are never j^ortrayed but to warn the young and
the thoughtless. Her writings are distinguished for vivacity and
ease of expression, strong common sense, and right principle. In
her juvenile tales the children are neither " good little girls, or bad little
boys" — but real little boys and girls, who act and speak with all the
genuineness and naivetd of childhood. No writer of iiction in our coun-
try has ever had a wider, or more interested circle of readers; and this is
clearly proved by the increased circulation of all those publications in
which her name has appeared as a regular contributor.
It will be noticed that the autobiography is dated from the United
States Hotel, of this city, where Miss Leslie then resided — a charm
to its social circle, and sought out by distinguished travellei-s of many
nations, as well as those of our own land. Her conversation is quite
equal to her writings, a circumstance by no means common with authors;
her remarkable memory furnishing an inexhaustible store of anecdote,
mingled with sprightly and original opinions. Her early life will be
learned from the following sketch.
(26)
ELIZA LESLIE. 27
LETTER TO MRS. ALICE B. NEAL.
My Dear Friend :
I was born in Philadelphia, at the corner of Market and Second
streets, on the 15th of November, 1787, and was baptized in Christ
Church by Bishop White.
Both my parents were natives of Cecil county, Maryland, also
the birth-place of my grandfathers and grandmothers on each side.
My great-grandfather, Robert Leslie, was a Scotchman. He came
to settle in America about the year 1745 or '46, and bought a farm
on North-East River, nearly opposite to the insulated hill called
Maiden's Mountain. I have been at the place. My maternal
great-grandfather was a Swede named Jansen. So I have no
English blood in me.
My father was a man of considerable natural genius, and much
self-taught knowledge ; particularly in Natural Philosophy and in
mechanics. He was also a good draughtsman, and a ready writer
on scientific subjects; and in his familiar letters, and in his con-
versation, there was evidence of a most entertaining vein of hu-
mour, with extraordinary powers of description. He had an ex-
cellent ear for music ; and, without any regular instruction, he
played well on the flute and violin. I remember, at this day, many
fine Scottish airs that I have never seen in print, and which my
father had learned in his boyhood from his Scottish grandsire, who
was a good singer. My mother was a handsome woman, of excel-
lent sense, very amusing, and a first-rate housewife.
Soon after their marriage, my parents removed from Elkton to
Philadelphia, where my father commenced business as a watch-
maker. He had great success. Philadelphia was then the seat
of the Federal Government ; and he soon obtained the custom of
the principal people in the place, including that of Washington,
Franklin, and Jefierson, the two last becoming his warm personal
friends. There is a free-masonry in men of genius which makes
them find out each other immediately. It was by Mr. Jefi"erson's
recommendation that my father, was elected a member of the Ameri-
can Philosophical Society. To Dr. Franklin he suggested an
28 ELIZA LESLIE.
improvement in lightning rods, — gilding the points to prevent their
rusting, — that was immediately, and afterwards universally adopted.
Among my father's familiar visiters were Robert Patterson, long
Professor of Mathematics at the University of Pennsylvania, and
afterwards President of the Mint ; Charles Wilson Peale, who
painted the men of the revolution, and founded the noble museum
called by his name ; John Vaughan, and INIatthew Carey.
When I was about five years old, my father went to England
with the intention of engaging in the exportation of clocks and
watches to Philadelphia, having recently taken into partnership
Isaac Price, of this city. We arrived in London in June, 1793,
after an old-fashioned voyage of six weeks. We lived in England
about six years and a half, when the death of my father's partner
in Philadelphia, obliged us to return home. An extraordinary
circumstance compelled our ship to go into Lisbon, and detained
us there from November till March ; and we did not finish our
voyage and arrive in Philadelphia till May, The winter we spent
in our Lisbon lodgings was very uncomfortable, but very amusing.
After we came home, my father's health, which had long been
precarious, declined rapidly ; but he lived till 1803. My mother
and her five children (of whom I was the eldest) were left in cir-
cumstances which rendered it necessary that she and myself should
make immediate exertions for the support of those who were yet
too young to assist themselves, as they did afterwards. Our diffi-
culties we kept uncomplainingly to ourselves. We asked no assist-
ance of our friends, we incurred no debts, and we lived on cheer-
fully, and with such moderate enjoyments as our means afi'orded ;
believing in the proverb, that " All work and no play make Jack a
dull boy."
. My two brothers were then, and still are, sources of happiness
to the family. But they both left home at the age of sixteen.
Charles, Avith an extraordinary genius for painting, went to London
to cultivate it. He rapidly rose to the front rank of his profession,
and maintains a high place among the great artists of Europe. He
married in England, and still lives there.
My youngest brother, Thomas Jefierson Leslie, having passed
ELIZALESLIE. 29
through the usual course of military education, in the West Point
Academy, was commissioned in the Engineers, and, with the rank
of Major, is still attached to the army. My sister, Anna Leslie,
resides in New York. She has several times visited London, where
she was instructed in painting by her brother Charles, and has been
very successful in copying pictures. My youngest sister, Patty,
became the wife of Henry C. Carey, and never in married life was
happiness more perfect than theirs.
To return now to myself. Fortunate in being gifted with an
extraordinary memory, I was never in childhood much troubled
with long lessons to learn, or long exercises to write. My father
thought I could acquire suflScient knowledge for a child by simply
reading " in book," without making any great effort to learn things
by heart. And as this is not the plan usually pursued at schools,
■I got neai-ly all my education at home. I had a French master,
and a music master (both coming to give lessons at the house) ;
my father himself taught me to write, and overlooked my drawing ;
and my mother was fully competent to instruct me in every sort
of useful sewing. I went three months to school, merely to learn
ornamental needle-work. All this was in London. We had a
governess in the house for the younger children.
My chief delight was in reading and drawing. My first attempts
at the latter were on my slate, and I was very happy when my father
brought me one day a box of colours and a drawing-book, and showed
me how to use them.
There was no restriction on my reading, except to prevent me
from "reading my eyes out." And indeed they have never been
very strong. At that time there were very few books written pur-
posely for children. I believe I obtained all that were then to be
found. But this catalogue being soon exhausted, and my appetite
for reading being continually on the increase, I was fain to supply
it with works that were considered beyond the capacity of early
youth — a capacity which is too generally underrated. Children are
often kept on bread and milk long after they are able to eat meat
and potatoes. I could read at four years old, and before twelve!
was familiar, among a multitude of other books, with Goldsmith's
•30 ELIZA LESLIE.
admirable Letters on England, and his histories of Rome and
Greece (Robinson Crusoe and the Arabian Nights, of course), and
I had gone through the six octavo volumes of the first edition of
Cook's Voyages. I talked much of Tupia and Omiah, and Otoo
and Terreoboo — Captain Cook I almost adored. Among our
visiters in London, was a naval officer "who had sailed with Cook
on his last voyage, and had seen him killed at Owhyhee — I am
sorry the name of that island has been changed to the unspellable
and unpronounceable Hawaii. I was delighted when ray father
took me to the British Museum, to see the numerous curiosities
brought from the South Sea by the great circumnavigator.
The "Elegant Extracts" made me acquainted with the best
passages in the works of all the British writers who had flourished
before the present century. From this book I first, learned the
beauties of Shakspeare. My chief novels were Miss Burney's,
Mrs. Radcliflfe's, and the Children of the Abbey.
Like most authors, I made my first attempts in ve7'se. They
were always songs, adapted to the popular airs of that time, the
close of the last century. The subjects were chiefly soldiers,
sailors, hunters, and nuns. I scribbled two or three in the pas-
toral line, but my father once pointing out to me a 7'eal shepherd,
in a field somewhere in Kent, I made no farther attempt at
Damons and Strephons, playing on lutes and wreathing their
brows with roses. My songs were, of course, foolish enough ; but
in justice to myself I will say, that having a good ear, I was never
guilty of a false quantity in any of my poetry — my lines never had
a syllable too much or too little, and my rhymes always did rhyme.
At thirteen or fourteen, I began to despise my own poetry, and
destroyed all I had. I then, for many years, abandoned the dream
of my childhood, the hope of one day seeing my name in print.
It was not till 1827 that I first ventured "to put out a book,"
and a most unparnassian one it was — " Seventy-five receipts for
pastry, cakes, and sweetmeats." Truth was, I had a tolerable
collection of receipts, taken by myself while a pupil of Mrs. Good-
fellow's cooking school, in Philadelphia. I had so many applica-
tions from my friends for copies of these directions, that my brother
ELIZALESLIE. 31
.suggested niy getting rid of the inconvenience by giving them to
the public in print. An offer was immediately made to me by
Munroe & Francis, of Boston, to publish them on fair terms.
The little volume had much success, and has gone through many
editions. Mr. Francis being urgent that I should try my hand at
a work of imagination, I wrote a series of juvenile stories, which I
called the Mirror. It was well received, and was followed by
several other story-books for youth — " The Young Americans,"
" Stories for Emma," "Stories for Adelaide," "Atlantic Tales,"
"Stories for Helen," "Birth-day Stories." Also, I compiled a
little book called "The Wonderful Traveller," being an abridg-
ment (with essential alterations) of Munchausen, Gulliver, and
Sindbad. In 1831 Munroe and Francis published my "American
Girls' Book," of which an edition is still printed every year. Many
juvenile tales, written by me, are to be found in the annuals called
the Pearl and the Violet.
I had but recently summoned courage to write fictions for grown
people, when my story of Mrs. Washington Potts obtained a prize
from Mr. Godey, of the Lady's Book. Subsequently I was allotted
three other prizes successively, from different periodicals. I then
withdrew from this sort of competition.
For several years I wrote an article every month for the Lady's
Book, and for a short time I was a contributor to Graham's Maga-
ziae ; and occasionally, I sent, by invitation, a contribution to the
weekly papers. I was also editor of the Gift, an annual published
by Carey & Hart ; and of the Violet, a juvenile souvenir.
My only attempt at anything in the form of a novel, was " Ame-
lia, or a Young Lady's Vicissitudes," first printed in the Lady's
Book, and then in a small volume by itself. Could I begin anew
my literary career, I would always write novels instead of short
stories.
Three volumes of my tales were published by Carey & Lea,
under the title of Pencil Sketches.. Of these, there will soon be a
new edition. In 1838 Lea & Blanchard printed a volume con-
taining " Althea Vernon, or the Embroidered Handkerchief," and
"Henrietta Harrison, or the Blue Cotton Umbrella." Several
32 ELIZA LESLIE.
books of my fugitive stories have been published in pamphlet form,
— the titles being "Kitty's Relations," "Leonilla Lynmore,"
"The Maid of Canal Street" (the Blaicl is a refined and accom-
plished young lady), and " The Dennings' and their Beaux." All
my stories are of familiar life, and I have endeavoured to render
their illustrations of character and manners, as entertaining and
instructive as I could ; trying always "to point a moral," as well
as to " adorn a tale."
The works from which I have, as yet, derived the greatest pecu-
niary advantage, are my three books on domestic economy. The
"Domestic Cookery Book," published in 1837, is now in the forty-
first edition, no edition having been less than a thousand copies ;
and the sale increases every year. " The House Book" came out
in 1840, and the "Lady's Receipt Book" in 1846. All have been
successful, and profitable.
My two last stories are " Jernigan's Pa," published in the Satur-
day Gazette, and " The Baymounts," in the Saturday Evening Post.
' I am now engaged on a life of John Fitch, for which I have been
several years collecting information, from authentic sources. I
hope soon to finish a work (undertaken by particular desire) for the
benefit of young ladies, and to which I purpose giving the plain,
simple title of " The Behaviour Book."* ...
U. S. Uotel, Phila., Aug. 1, 1851.
Eliza Leslie.
MRS. DERRINGTON'S RECEPTION DAY.
Major Fayland had departed on his return home, and Sophia's
tears had flowed fast and long on taking leave of her father. Mrs.
Derrington reminded her, by way of consolation, that to-morrow
was "reception day," and that she would then most probably see
many of the ladies, who, having heard of Miss Fayland's arrival,
had already left cards for her.
" And what, dear aunt, is exactly meant by a reception day ?"
inquired Sophia.
* The "Behaviour Book" has since been published.
ELIZA LESLIE. 33
" It is a convenient way of getting through our morning visit-
ers," replied Mrs. Derrington. "We send round cards at the
beginning of the season to notify our friends that we are at home
on a certain morning, once a week. My day is Thursday. I sit
in the drawing-room during several hours in a handsome demi-
toilette. Full dress is not admissible, of course, at morning recep-
tions. Any of my friends that wish to see me, take this opportunity ;
understanding that I receive calls at no other time. They are
served with chocolate and other refreshments, brought in and
handed to them soon after their arrival. They talk awhile, and
then depart. There are some coming in, and some going out all
the time, and no one staying long. The guests are chiefly ladies ;
few gentlemen of this city having leisure for morning visits. Still
every gentleman manages to honour a lady's reception day with at
least one call during the season. I suppose you had no such things
as morning receptions at the fort ?"
"No, indeed," replied Sophia; "our mornings were always
fully occupied in attending to household affairs, and doing the sew-
ing of the family. Afternoon was the time for walking or reading.
But in the evening we all visited our neighbours, very much
according to the fashion of Spanish tertulias."
Next morning, when dressed for the reception, and seated in the
drawing-room to wait for the first arrivals, Mrs. Derrington said to
Sophia — " We shall now hear all about Mrs. Cotterell's great party
which came off last night. I have some curiosity to know what it
was like, being her first since she came to live in this part of the
town."
"Do you visit her?" asked Sophia.
" Oh, no — not yet — and probably I never may. I am waiting
to see if the Cotterells succeed in getting into society."
"What society, dear aunt?" inquired Sophia.
" I see, Sophy, that I shall be much amused with your simpli-
city," replied Mrs. Derrington ; " or rather with your extreme
newness. In using the word society, we allude only to one class,
and that of course is the very best."
" By that I understand a select circle of intellectual, refined,
34 ELIZA LESLIE.
agreeable, and every way excellent people," said Sophia; "men on
"whose integrity, and women on whose propriety there is not the
slightest blemish, and who are admired for their talents, loved for
their goodness, and esteemed for the truth and honour of their
whole conduct."
"Stop — stop," interrupted Mrs. Derrington, "you are going
quite too far. Can you suppose all this is required to get people
into society, or to keep them there ? The upper circles would be
very small if nothing short of perfection could be admitted."
""What then, dear aunt, are the requisites?" asked Sophia.
" Is genius one ?"
"Genius? Oh, no, indeed. It is not that sort of thing that
brings people into society. It is mostly considered rather a draw-
back. Mrs. Goldsworth actually shuns people of genius. Indeed,
most of my friends rather avoid them. I have no acquaintance
whatever with any man or woman of genius."
"I am sorry to hear it," said Sophia. "I had hoped while in
N'ew York to meet many of those gifted persons whose fame has
spread throughout our country, whom I already know by reputa-
tion, and whom I have long been desirous of seeing or hearing."
"Oh, I suppose you mean lions," said Mrs. Derrington. "I
can assure you that I patronize none of them ; neither do any of
my friends."
"I thought the lions were the patronizers," said Sophia, "and
that their position gave them the exclusive power of selecting their
associates, and deciding on whom to confer the honour of their
acquaintance."
" Sophy — Sophy, you really make me laugh !" exclaimed her
aunt. "What strange notions you have picked up, with your gar-
rison education. Do not you know that people of genius seldom
live in any sort of style, or keep carriages, or give balls ? And
they never make fortunes ; unless they are foreign musicians or
dancers, and I am not sure that the singing and dancing people are
classed as geniuses. They are regarded as something much better."
"Is society composed entirely of people of fortune?"
ELIZA LESLIE. . Ji5
" Oh, no ; there are persons in the first circle who are not half
so rich as many in the second, or even in the third, or fourth."
" Then, if society is not distinguished for pre-eminence in talent
or wealth, the distinction must depend upon the transcendent good'
ness, and perfect respectability of those that belong to it."
" Why, not exactly. I confess that some of the persons in soci-
ety have done very bad things ; which after the first few days it is
best to hush up, for the honour of our class. But then in certain
respects society is most exemplary. We always subscribe to public
charities. Charity is very fashionable, and so is church."
"And now," continued Sophia, " to return to the lady who gave
the party last night. Is not she a good and respectable woman ?"
" I never heard anything against her goodness, or her respect-
ability."
" She must surely be a woman of education."
" Oh, yes ; I went to school with her myself. But at all schools
there is somewhat of a mixture. To give you Mrs. Cotterell's his-
tory— her father kept a large store in Broadway, and afterwards
he got into the wholesale line, and went into Pearl street. Now,
my father was a shipping merchant, and owned vessels, and my
dear late husband was his junior partner. Mr. Cotterell made his
money in some sort of manufacturing business, across the river.
He died two years ago, and is said to have left his family very rich.
Her daughter being now grown, Mrs. Cotterell has bought a house
up here, in the best part of the town, and has come out quite in
style, and been tolerably called on. Some went to see her out of
curiosity ; and some because they have an insatiable desire for en-
larging their circle ; some because they have a passion for new
people ; and some because they like to go to houses where every-
thing is profuse and costly, as is generally the case \\\ih. pai'venus."
"And some, I hope," said Sophia, "because they really like
Mrs. Cotterell for herself."
" She certainly is visited by a few very genteel people," con-
tinued Mrs. Derrington, " and that has encouraged her to attempt
a party last night. But the Goldsworths, the Highburys, the
Featherstones, and myself, are waiting to hear if she is well taken
'36 ELIZA LESLIE.
up; and, above all, if the Pelham Prideauxs liave called on her.
And besides, it may be well for us not to begin till she has gradu-
ally gotten rid of the people "with whom she associated in her hus-
band's time." ■ ' ,
"Surely," said Sophia, "she cannot be expected to throw off
her old friends V
" Then she need not expect to gain new ones up here. We can-
not mix with people from the unfashionable districts. Mrs. Cotte-
rell may do as she pleases — but she must be select in her circle,
if she wants the countenance of the Pelham Prideauxs."
"And who, dear aunt, are the Pelham Prideauxs?" inquired
Sophia.
" Is it possible you never heard of them ?" ejaculated Mrs. Der-
rington. " To know Mrs. Pelham Prideaux, to be seen at her
house, or to have her seen at yours, is suflBcient. It gives the stamp
of high fashion at once."
"And for what reason?" persisted Sophia.
; "Because she is Mrs. Pelham Prideaux," was the reply.
"What is her husband?" said Sophia.
" lie is a gentleman who has always lived upon the fortune left
him by his father, who inherited property from his father, and he
from his. None of the Prideauxs have done anything for a hun-
dred years. The great-grandfather was from England, and came
over a gentleman."
"Surprising!" said Sophia, mischievously. "And whom have
they to inherit all this glory ?"
"An only daughter," replied Mrs. Derrington, "Maria Matilda
Pelham Prideaux."
At this moment a carriage stopped at the door, and presently
Mrs. Middleby was announced ; and immediately after, two young
ladies came in who were presented to Sophia as Miss Telford and
Miss Ellen Telford. The conversation soon turned on Mrs. Cotte-
rell's party. Mrs. Middleby had been there — the Miss Telfords
had not, and were therefore anxious to " hear all about it."
" Really," said Mrs. Middleby, " it was just like all other par-
ties ; and like all others, it went "ff tolerably well. The company
ELIZA LESLIE. 37
■was such as one meets everywhere. The rooms were decorated in
the usual style. Some of the people looked better than others, and
some worse than others. The dressing was just as it always is at
parties. The hostess and her daughter behaved as people generally
do in their own houses ; the company as guests usually behave in
other people's houses. There was some conversation and some
music. The supper was like all other suppers, and everybody Avent
away about the usual hour."
Mrs. Derrington was dubious about taking up the Cotterells.
" I kneAV we should not get much information out of Mrs. Mid-
dleby," said Miss Telford to Sophia, after the lady had departed.
" She always deals in generals, whatever may be the topic of con-
versation."
" Because her capacity of observation is so shallow that it cannot
take in particulars," said Ellen Telford. " But here comes Mrs.
Honey wood — we will stay to hear what she says."
Mrs. Honey wood was introduced, and on being applied to for her
account of Mrs. Cotterell's party, she pronounced it every way
charming; and told of some delightful people that were there.
"Among them," said Mrs. Honeywood, "was the dashing widow,
Mrs. Crandon, as elegant and as much admired as ever. She was
certainly the belle of the room, and looked even more captivating
than usual, with her blooming cheeks, and her magnificent dark
eyes, and her rich and graceful ringlets, and her fine tall figure set
off by her superb dress, giving her the air of a duchess, or a count-
ess at least."
" What was her dress ?" inquired Sophia.
" Oh, a beautiful glossy cherry-coloured velvet, trimmed with a
profusion of rich black lace. On her head was an exquisite dress-
hat of white satin and blond, with a splendid ostrich plume. She
was surrounded by beaux all the evening. The gentlemen almost
neglected the young ladies to crowd round the enchanting widow,
particularly when she played on the harp and sung. They would
scarcely allow her to quit the instrument ; and, indeed, her music
was truly divine. There was quite a scramble as to who should
have the honour of leading Mrs. Crandon to the supper-table."
38^ ELIZA LESLIE.
After some further encomiums on the widow Crandon, and on
everything connected with the party, Mrs. Honeywood took her
leave, first offering seats in her carriage to the Miss Telfords,
which oflFer they accepted.
Mrs. Derrington rather thought she would take up the Cotterells.
The next of the guests who had been at Mrs. Cotterell's party
was Miss Rodwell ; and she also gave an account of it.
" Mrs. Cotterell and her daughter are rather presentable, and
they are visited to a certain degree," said Miss Rodwell; "and
I understand that Mrs. Pelham Prideaux does think of calling on
them. I knew that I should meet many of my friends, or of course,
I could not have risked being there myself. But, under any cir-
cumstances, the company was too large to be select. A party can-
not be perfectly cornnie il faut, if it numbers more than fifty.
Mrs. De Manchester says, that to have the very cream and flower
of New York society, you must not go beyond thirty. And, though
an Englishwoman, I think, in this respect, she is right."
" The Vanbombels, to be completely select, invite none but their
own relations," observed Mrs. Deri-ington.
"And for the same reason," rejoined Miss Kodwell, "the
Jenkses invite none of their relations at all. But who do you
think I saw last evening ? Poor Crandon, absolutely ! I w^onder
where Mrs. Cotterell found her ? She must have been invited out
of compassion ; it certainly could not have been for the purpose of
ornamenting the rooms. Most likely Mrs. Cotterell did not know
that poor Crandon is so entirely |?asse, nobody minds cutting her
in the least. There she was rigged out in that old dingy red velvet
that everybody was long ago tired of seeing. It is now quite too
narrow for the fashion, and looks faded and threadbare. She had
taken off the white satin trimming that graced it in its high and
palmy days, and decorated it scantily with some coarse brownish,
blackish lace. And then her head, with its forlorn ringlets, stream-
ing down with the curl all out, and a queer yellowish-white hat,
and a meagre old feather to match ! Such an object ! I wish you
could have seen her ! But, poor thing, I could not help pitying
her, for she looked forlorn, and sat neglected, and was left to her-
ELIZA LESLIE. 30
self nearly all the time ; except when the Cotterells talked to her
from a sense of duty. She jilayed something on the harp, but
nobody seemed to listen. I know that /was talking and laughing
all the time, and so was every one else. People that are ill-dressed
should never play on harps. It shows them too plainly."
"And they should never go to parties either,". said Mrs. Der-
rington. " Poor Mrs. Crandon, has she no friend to tell her so ?
But I never heard before that she had fallen off in her costume.
The report may be true that her husband's executors have defrauded
her of a considerable portion of her property. However, I have
lost sight of her for some years."
"And then," said Miss Rodwell, "it was not to be expected
that Crandon could sustain herself permanently in society, con-
sidering how she first got into it."
"I own," resumed Mrs. Derrington, "I was rather surprised
when I first saw Mrs. Crandon among us. It was, I believe, at
Mrs. Hautonberg's famous thousand dollar party, the winter that
it was fashionable to report the cost of those things ; so that, before
the end of the season, parties had mounted up to twice that sum.
How did she happen to get there, for it was certainly the cause of
her having a run all that season ? I never exactly understood the
circumstances."
" Oh, I can tell you all about it," replied Miss Rodwell ; " for I
was in the secret. Mr. Crandon was a jobber, and had realized a
great deal of money, and they lived in a fine house, and made a
show, but nobody in society ever thought of noticing them. After
a while he took her to Europe, and they spent several months in
Paris, and Mrs. Crandon (who, to do her justice, was then a very
handsome woman) fitted herself out with a variety of elegant
French dresses, made by an exquisite artiste, and with millinery
equally recherche. When she came home, the fame of all these
beautiful things spread beyond the limits of her own circle, and we
were all dying to see them (particularly the evening costumes), and
to borrow them as patterns for our own mantuamakers and milli-
ners. But while she continued meandering about among her own
set, we had no chance of seeing much more than the divine bonnet
40 ELIZA LESLIE.
and pelisse she wore in Broadway, and they only whetted our appe-
tite for the rest. So at one of Mrs. Hautonberg's soirees, a coterie
of U3 got together and settled the plan. Mrs. Hautonberg at first
made some difficulty, but finally came into it, and agreed to com-
mence operations by calling on Mrs. Crandon next day, and after-
wards sending- her a note for her great thousand dollar party,
which was then in agitation. So she called, and Mr. Hautonberg
was prevailed on to leave his card for Mr. Crandon. They came
to the party, thinking themselves highly honoured, and we all made
a point of being introduced to the lady, and of showing her all
possible civility, and of being delighted with her harp-playing.
You may be sure, we took especial note of all the minutiDe of her
dress, which I must say far excelled in taste and elegance every
other in the room. And no wonder, Avhen it was fresh from France.
Well, to be brief, she was visited and invited, and well treated, and
her beautiful things were borrowed for patterns ; and by the time
she had shown them all round at different parties, imitations of
them were to be seen everywhere throughout our circle. The
cherry-coloured velvet and the white hat and feathers were among
them. She gave a grand party herself, and as it was at the close
of the season, we all honoured her with our presence. Poor woman,
she really thought all this was to last. Next winter we let her
gently down ; some dropping her entirely, and a few compas-
sionately dragging on with her a while longer. Indeed, I still meet
her at two or three houses."
" I am very sure she' was never seen at Mrs. Pelham Prideaux,"
observed Mrs. Derrington, " even in the winter of her glory. Her
French costumes would have been no inducement to Mrs. Prideaux,
whose station has placed her far above dress."
"Mrs. Prideaux is rather too exclusive," said Miss Rodwell,
somewhat piqued.
"What an enviable station !" remarked Sophia, "to be above
dress."
"Well," continued Mrs. Derrington, to Miss Rodwell, "what
did you think of Mrs. Cotterell's party arrangements ? How were
the decorations, the supper, and all things thereunto belonging ?"
ELIZA LESLIE. 41
" Oh ! just such as "we always see in the best houses. All in
scrupulous accordance with the usual routine. Yet somehow it
seemed to me there was a sort of 2^M'venu air throughout."
" What were the deficiencies ?" asked Mrs, Derrington.
" Oh ! no particular deficiencies, except a want of that inde-
scribable something which can only be found in the mansions of
people of birth."
Sophia could not forbear asking what in republican America could
be meant by people of birth. To this Miss Rodwell vouchsafed
no reply, but looking at her watch, said it was time to call for Mrs.
De Manchester, whom she had promised to accompany to Stewart's.
She then departed, leaving Mrs. Derrington impressed with a
determination 7iot to take up the Cotterells.
The stopping of a carriage was folloAved by the entrance of Mrs.
and Miss Brockendale. The mother was a lady with an ever-varying
countenance, and a restless eye. She was expensively dressed, but
with her hair disordered, her bonnet crushed, her collar crooked,
her gown rumpled, one end of her shawl trailing on the ground,
and the other end scarcely reaching to her elbow. Her daughter's
very handsome habiliments were arranged with the most scrupulous
nicety ; and the young lady had a steadfast eye, and a resolute and
determined expression of face. All her features were regular, but
the tout ensemble was not agreeable.
After some very desultory conversation, Mrs. Derrington recur-
red to the subject that was uppermost in her mind, Mrs. Cotterell's
party ; and on finding that the Brockendale ladies had been there,
she again inquired about it ; observing that much as she had heard
of it in the course of the morning, she had still obtained no satis-
factory account. " How did it really go off"?" said she, addressing
Miss Brockendale ; but the mother eagerly answered, and the
daughter finding herself anticipated, closed her lips firmly, and
drew back her head.
" Oh ! delightfully," exclaimed Mrs. Brockendale. " Everything
was so elegant, and in such good taste, and on such a liberal
scale."
"How were the rooms decorated?" asked Mrs. Derrington.
6
42 ELIZA LESLIE.
" Oh ! superbly, with flowers wreathed around the columns."
"Mrs. Cotterell's rooms have no pillars," said Miss Brockendale,
speaking very audibly and distinctly, and addressing herself to
Sophia, near whom she was seated.
"Well, then," continued Mrs. Brockendale, "there were wreaths
festooned along the walls. You cannot say there were no walls."
" There wei'e no wreaths except those that ornamented the lamps
and chandeliers," said Miss Brockendale, always addressing Sophia.
" Oh ! yes, the flowers were all about the lights. That was what
made them look so pretty. One thing I am certain of, the rooms
were as light as doy. There must have been five hundred candles."
" There was not one," said Miss Brockendale to Sophia. " The
rooms were lighted entirely with gas."
" Well, it might have been a sort of gas. I declare my head is
always so filled with things of importance, that I have no memory
for trifles. This I knoAv, that the furniture was all crimson velvet
trimmed with gold-colour."
" It was blue satin damask trimmed with a rich dark brown,"
said her daughter to Miss Fayland.
" Well, the crimson might have had a bluish cast. I have cer-
tainly seen crimson velvet somewhere. The truth is, almost as
soon as we entered, I saw my friend Mr. Weston, the member of
Congress (either from Greenbay or Oeorgetown, I forget which),
and so we got to talking about Texas and things ; and that may be
the reason I did not particularly notice the rooms. I almost got
into a quarrel with this same Congress-man about the President,
who, in spite of all I could say, Mr. Weston persisted in declaring
has never threatened to go to war with Germany."
"Neither he has," said Miss Brockendale, this time directing
her looks to her mother.
" Then he has set himself against railroads, or injured the crops,
or invited over five hundred thousand millions of Irish."
" He has done none of these things."
" He has done something, I am very sure. Or, if he has not,
some other President has. I never can remember how the Presi-
ELIZA LESLIE. 43
dents go, and perhaps I am apt to mix them up, my head being
always full of more important objects."
''I hear there was a very elegant supper," said Mrs. Derring-
ton.
" I believe there was. But all supper-time I was talking about
the tariff, and the theatre, and the army and navy, and I did not
notice' the things on the table. I rather think there was ice-cream,
and I am almost positive there was jelly."
" Had you fine music ?" inquired Mrs. Derrington.
" It seems to me that I heard music. But I was talking then
to Mr. Van Valkenburgh, who has travelled over half the world ;
mostly pedestrian, poor fellow !"
"He is not a poor fellow," explained her daughter to Sophia.
" He is a rich bachelor, and a great botanist, and entomologist ;
and when he rambles on foot, it is always from his own choice."
"Augustina," said her mother, "do not you recollect we met
Mr, Van Valkenburgh somewhere in Europe, when we were travel-
ling with the Tirealls ?"
"I never was in Europe," said Augustina to Sophia, "When
mamma went over, she took my sister Isabella, but left me a little
girl at boarding-school."
" So you ivere a little girl at boarding-school ; I remember all
about it," continued Mrs. Brockendale, "and I did take Isabella,
because she was grown up. She is married now, poor thing, to a
man that never crossed the Atlantic, and never will, and so her
going to Europe was of no manner of use. What a strange girl
she was. When we were at Venice she loould make me go every-
where in a boat — even to church,"
"You could not well go in anything else," remarked Augustina,
"And then at Venice, she highly offended the showman by ring-
ing the great bell of St, Mark's."
" She could not get at it."
" Then it must have been at St, Peter's, or St. Paul's, or else
Notre Dame. Any how, she rung a bell."
"My sister has told me," said Augustina, turning to Sophia,
" that coming out of a village church in England, she took a fancy
;44 ELIZA LESLIE.
to pull tlie bell-rope, as it hung invitingly dovna just witliin the
entrance ; and she greatly scandalized the beadle by doing so, still
she pacified him with a shilling."
"But now about Mr. Van Yalkenburgh," proceeded Mrs. Brock-
endale, " this I am certain of, that we met him on the Alps, and
we were joined up there by old General Offenham and his son, who
was much taken with Isabella. It might have been a match, for
the young man will be a half-millionaire one of these days ; but he
has fits, and rolls down mountains. So that rather discouraged us,
and we thought that nobody would ever marry him. Yet, after-
wards, at Paris, or Portsmouth, or some of those places, the widow
Sweeting snapped up young Offenham, for her third husband. So
Isabella might as well have taken him."
"My sister," said Augustina, turning to Sophia, "is happily
married to a man of sense, as well as of large fortune, and high
respectability."
"Mr. Van Valkenburgh," pursued Mrs. Brockendole, "was
telling how delightful he found the literary society of England. I
wish I had been in it, when I was there. He became acquainted
with them all. He even knew Shakspeare."
" His plays, of course," said Sophia.
" Oh ! no, the man himself. Shakspeare called on him at the
hotel, and left his card for Mr. Van Valkenburgh."
"Excuse me," said Sophia, "Shakspeare has been dead consi-
derably more than two hundred years."
"Ah! my dear young lady," observed Mrs. Brockendale, "you
know we must not believe all we hear."
"Mamma, we had best go home," said her daughter, who had
sat for some moments looking as if too angry to speak, leaving to
Sophia the explanation concerning Shakspeare.
Mrs. Brockendale rose to depart. " If it was not Shakspeare
that called on him, it must have been Dr. Johnson," said she.
"Any how, it was some great author."
They then took their leave. Miss Brockendale expressing a desire
to be intimately acquainted with Miss Fayland.
"Poor Mrs. Brockendale," said Sophia, "her head reminds me
ELIZA LESLIE. 45
of a lumber room, where all sorts of things are stowed aAvay in
confusion. My father thinks that a defective memory is generally
the result of careless or inattentive observation. But perhaps this
lady was never gifted with the capacity of seeing or hearing things
understandingly . ' '
" I do not wonder that the daughter has no patience with the
mother," said Mrs. Derrington. " However, they are persons of
birth, and live handsomely, and are visited. We cannot expect
everybody in society to be alike. Unfortunately, Mr. Brocken-
dale, who was a most excellent man, and doated on his queer wife,
and tried hard to improve her, died ten years ago, and since losing
his guidance, she has talked more like a fool than ever. And
worse than all, every article of her dress seems to be continually
getting into disorder. As soon as her things are put right, they
somehow get wrong again."
The next visiters were two rather insipid ladies, and soon after
came in a remarkably handsome young man, dressed in the most
perfect taste, but without the slightest approach to what is called
dandyism. He had the air distingue which foreigners say is so
rarely to be found among the citizens of America. He was intro-
duced to Sophia as Mr. Percival Grafton, and she thought he looked
exactly like a young nobleman, or rather as a young nobleman ought
to look ; and she was still more delighted with his conversation.
After some very pleasant interchange of ideas with Miss Fayland,
he inquired of Mrs. Derrington if she had yet become acquainted
with Mrs. Cotterell and her charming daughter.
"Not yet," was the reply.
" Then let me advise you by all means not to delay what I am
sure will afford much pleasure to yourself and Miss Fayland. The
Cotterells are delightful people ; polished, intelligent, natural, and
having Vair comme ilfaut, as if it had been born with them. Miss
Cotterell is one of the loveliest girls I have ever seen ; and does
infinite honour to the system on which her mother has educated
her."
"Does she dress well?" inquired Mrs. Derrington.
"Charmingly," replied Grafton, "and she could not do other-
46 ELIZA LESLIE.
wise, her good taste is so apparent in everytliing. She dresses
■well, talks well, moves well, and plays and sings delightfully. I
heard her speaking French to Madame St. Ange, with the utmost
fluency and elegance. She is really a most enchanting girl."
"You seem to be quite smitten!" remarked Miss Waterly, one
of the insipid young ladies.
"Not to admire such a woman as Amelia Cotterell w^ould evince
the most pitiable insensibility to the united attractions of beauty,
grace, and talent. But in the usual acceptation of the phrase, I am
yet heart-whole. Hoav long I may remain so is another question."
Mr. Grafton then turned the conversation to another subject, and
he soon after took his leave.
"Do you know, Mrs. Derrington," said Miss Milkby, the other
insipid young lady, "it's all over town already, that Percival
Grafton is dying in love with Amelia Cotterell. So you must not
believe exactly all he says about her and her mother."
"He really seems delirious," said Miss Waterly.
Mrs. Derrington became again dubious about taking up the Cot-
terells. But her doubts grew fainter as she reflected that Percival
Grafton was a young gentleman of acknowledged taste in all that
was refined and elegant; being himself a person of birth, and "to
the manner born" of the best society. Even his grandfather was an
eminent lawyer, and Percival himself had been inducted into that
high profession.
While Mrs. Derrington sat, "pondering in her mind," Sophia
was endeavouring to entertain the Misses Waterly and Milkby,
when her aunt suddenly started from her reverie, and, her face
beaming with ecstatic joy, advanced in eager emprcssement to
receive a lady, whom the servant, throwing wide the door, an-
nounced as Mrs. Pelham Prideaux. When Mrs. Derrington had a
little recovered the first excitement of this supreme felicity, and
placed her high and mighty guest in the easiest fauteuil, and seen
her well served with refreshments, she recollected to introduce her
niece. Miss Sophia Fayland. The two other misses had long been
within the pale of Mrs. Prideaux's notice, and they timidly hoped
she was well.
ELIZA LESLIE. 47
This arbitress of fasliion, this dictatress to society, was a woman
of no particular face, no particular figure, no particular dress, and
no particular conversation. But she was well aware of her position,
and made use of it accordingly.
Mrs. Derrington, whose whole morning had been one long thought
of the Cotterells (whenever she had a new thought she always pur-
sued it a V outrance), said something about the party of last night.
"Were you there?" asked Mrs. Prideaux.
" Oh ! no. Mrs. Cotterell has come among us so lately, I know
not exactly in what circle she will be."
"You might have gone," said Mrs. Prideaux, "I intend calling
on her."
"Do you, indeed?" exclaimed Mrs. Derrington, with glad sur-
prise. And Sophia's face brightened also ; for she longed to know
the Cotterells, and she saw that all doubt was now over.
Miss Waterly and Miss Milkby now acknowledged that they had
both been at the party, and that they had liked it.
" When do you make this call, my dear Mrs. Prideaux ?" asked
Mrs. Derrington.
"I have not exactly determined on the day," was the reply.
" I hope Sophia and I may have the pleasure of meeting you
there," said Mrs. Derrington. "When you have fixed on the
exact time, will you let us know?"
" Certainly, I can have no objection," answered Mrs. Prideaux,
graciously, " provided I know it myself.
" How kind you always are ! It will be so delightful for us to
be at Mrs. Cotterell's together. Will it not, Sophy'?"
" On consideration, I cannot make this call before next week,"
said Mrs. Prideaux.
" Oh ! never mind. Consult your own convenience. We will
wait for you."
"Where does Mrs. Cotterell live?" inquired the great lady.
Miss Waterly and Miss Milkby now both spoke together, and
designated the place. Mrs. Prideaux condescendingly thanked
them for the information.
" Then," said she to Mrs. Derrington, " as I must pass your
48 ELIZALESLIE. -
door in going there, I may as 'W'ell call for you in my carriage,
whenever I do go."
Mrs. Derrlngton was too happy at this unexpected glory ; and
Miss Waterly and Miss Milkby too envious. All these young
ladies could do was to accompany Mrs. Prideaux when she departed,
and be seen leaving the door at the same time with her. She hon-
oured them with a bow as they lingered on the door-step, when her
no-particular-sort-of-carriage drove away. Unluckily, there chanced
to be no spectators but a small party of German emigrants, and
two schoolboys. Perhaps some of the neighbours might have been
at their windows.
The following Monday and Tuesday, Mrs. Derrington and Miss
Fayland stayed at home all the morning ready-dressed, waiting in
vain for Mrs. Prideaux to call for them in her carriage.
" Surely," said Sophia, " she will apprise us in time ?"
"She may probably not think of doing so," replied Mrs.
Derrington.
At last on Wednesday the joyful moment arrived when the vehi-
cle of IMrs. Pelham Prideaux, with that lady in it, drew up to the
door of Mrs. Derrington, who ran down stairs, followed by her
niece ; and in a very short time they arrived at the mansion of the
Cotterells.
CAROLINE GILMAN.
Or our living authoresses, no one lias been so long before the public,
and at the same time retained her place so entirely in its affecti«ns, as
Mrs. Caroline Gilman.
Her first publications, which were poems, commenced as early as 1810.
Among these, " Jephthah's Rash Vow," and '' Jairus' Daughter," attracted
particular attention. Her importance as a prose writer begins with the
" Southern Rose Bud," a weekly juvenile paper, which she began in 1832,
and continued for seven years. This miscellany contains a large amount
of valuable literature, and is especially rich in contributions from Mrs.
Gilman's own pen. Her other publications have been as follows : "• Re-
collections of a New England Housekeeper," " Recollections of a Southern
Matron" (both running through a large number of editions), " Ruth Ray-
mond; or Love's Progress," '' Poetry of Travelling," " Tales and Ballads,"
"Letters of Eliza Wilkinson" (written during the invasion of Charles-
ton by the British), " Verses of a Lifetime," " The Oracles from the
Poets," "The Sibyl," and several juvenile books now collected under the
general title of " Mrs. Gilman's Gift."
The following graceful piece of autobiography will serve the double
purpose of a specimen of her style, and a narrative of her life.
MY AUTOBIOGRAPHY.
I AM asked for some "particulars of my literary and domestic
life." It seems to me, and I suppose at first thought, it seems to
all, a vain and awkward egotism to sit down and inform the world
•who you are. But if I, like the Petrarchs, and Byrons, and
Jlemanses, gi-eater or less, have opened my heart to the public for
7 (49)
50 CAROLINE OILMAN.
a series of years, "with all tlie pulses of love and hatred and sor-
row so transparently unveiled, that the throbs may be almost
counted, why should I or they feel embarrassed in responding to
this request? Is there not some inconsistency in this shyness
about autobiography ?
I find myself, then, at nearly sixty years of age, somewhat of a
patriarch in the line of American female authors — a kind of Past
Master in the order.
The only interesting point connected with my birth, which took
place October 8th, 1794, in Boston, Mass., is that I first saw the
light where the Mariners' Church now stands, in the North Square.
My father, Samuel Howard, was a shipwright, and to my fancy it
seems fitting, that seamen should assemble on the former homestead
of one who spent his manhood in planning and perfecting the noble
fabrics which bear them over the waves. All the record I have of
him is, that on every State thanksgiving day he spread a liberal
table for the poor, and for this I honour his memory.
My mother descended from the family of the Brecks, a branch
of which is located in Philadelphia as well as in Boston, and which,
by those who love to look into such matters, is traced, as far as I
have heard, to 1703 in America.
The families of 1794 in the North Square, have changed their
abode. Our pastor, the good Dr. Lathrop, minister of the " Old
North," then resided at the head of the Square — the Mays,
Reveres, and others, being his neighbours.
It appears to me, that I remember my baptism on a cold Novem-
ber morning, in the aisle of the old North, and how my minister
bent over me with one of the last bush-wigs of that century, and
touched his finger to my befrilled little forehead: but being only
five weeks old, and not a very precocious babe, I suppose I must
have learned it from oral tradition.
I presume, also, I am under the same hallucination, when I see
myself, at two years of age, sitting on a little elevated triangular
seat, in the corner of the pew, with red morocco shoes, clasped with
silver buckles, turning the movable balusters, which modern archi-
tects have so unkindly taken away from children in churches.
CAROLINE OILMAN. 51
My father died before I was three years old, and was bm-Ied at
Copp's Hill. A few years since, I made a pilgrimage to that most
ancient and interesting cemetery, but its grass-covered vaults
revealed to me nothing of him.
My mother, who was an enthusiastic lover of nature, retired into
the country with her six children, and placing her boys at an aca-
demy at Woburn, resided with her girls in turn at Concord, Ded-
ham, Watertown, and Cambridge, changing her residence, almost
annually, until I was nearly ten years old, when she passed away,
and I followed her to her resting-place, in the burial-ground at
North Andrews.
Either childhood is not the thoughtless period for which it is
famed, or my susceptibility to suffering was peculiar. I remember
much physical pain. I recollect, and I think Bunyan, the author
of Pilgrim's Progress, describes the same, a deep horror at dark-
ness, a suffocation, a despair, a sense of injury when left alone at
night, that has since made me tender to this mysterious trial of
youth. I recollect also my indignation after a chastisement for
breaking some china, and in consequence I have always been careful
never to express anger at children or servants for a similar
misfortune.
In contrast to this, come the memories of chasing butterflies,
launching chips for boats on sunny rills, dressing dolls, embroider-
ing the glowing sampler, and the soft maternal mesmerism of my
mother's hand, when, with my head reclined on her knee, she
smoothed my hair, and sang the fine old song
" In the downhill of life."
As Wordsworth says in his almost garrulous enthusiasm,
" Fair seed-time had my soul, and I grew up
Fostered alike hj beauty and by fear ;
Much favoured in my birth-place."
I say birth-place, for true life is not stamped on the spot where
our eyes first open, but our mind-birth comes from the varied asso-
ciations of childhood, and therefore may I trace to the wild influ-
ences of nature, particularly to those of sweet Auburn, now the
Cambridge Cemetery, the formation of whatever I may possess of
52 CAROLINE OILMAN.
the poetical temperament. Residing just at its entrance, I passed
long summer mornings making thrones and couches of moss, and
listening to the robins and Wackbirds.
The love of the beautiful then was quite undeveloped in social
life ; the dead reposed by roadside burial-grounds, the broken stone
walls of which scarcely sheltered the sod which covered them.
Now all is changed in those haunts of my childhood, and perchance
costly monuments in Mount Auburn have risen on the sites of my
moss-covered thrones.
Our residence was nearly opposite Governor Gerry's, and we
were frequent visiters there. One evening I saw a small book on
the recessed window-seat of their parlour. It was Gesner's Death
of Abel ; I opened it, spelt out its contents, and soon tears began
to flow. Eager to finish it, and ashamed of emotions so novel, I
screened my little self so as to allow the light to fall only on the
book, and, while forgotten by the group, I also forgetting the music
and mirth that surrounded me, I shed, at eight years, the first pre-
luding tears over fictitious sorrow.
It was formerly the custom for countrypeople in Massachusetts
to visit Boston in throngs on election day, and see the Governor
sit in his chair on the Common. This pleasure was promised me,
and a neighbouring farmer was good enough to offer to take me to
my uncle Phillips's. Therefore, soon after sunrise, I was dressed
in my best frock, and red shoes, and with a large peony called a
'lection iwscy, in one hand, and a quarter of a dollar in the other,
I sprang with a merry heart into the chaise, my imagination teeming
Avith soldiers, and sights, and sugar-plums, and a vague thought of
something like a huge giant sitting in a big chair, overtojiping
everybody.
I was an incessant talker when travelling, therefore the time
seemed short when I was landed, as I supposed, at my uncle Phillips's
door, and the farmer drove away. But what was my distress at
finding myself among strangers ! Entirely ignorant of my uncle's
direction, I knew not what to say. In vain a cluster of kind ladies
tried to soothe and amuse me with promises of playmates and toys;
a sense of utter loneliness and intrusion kept me in tears. At
CAROLINE OILMAN. 53
sunset, the good farmer returned for me, and I burst into a new
agony of grief. I have never forgotten that long, long day with
the kind and hospitable, but tcrong FJiillipses. If this statement
should chance to be read and remembered by them, at this far
interval, I beg them to receive the thanks which the timid child
neglected to give to her stranger-friends.
I had seen scarcely any children's books except the Primer, and
at the age of ten, no poetry adapted to my age ; therefore, without
presumption, I may claim some originality for an attempt at an
acrostic on an infant, by the name of Howard, beginning —
How sweet is tlie half opened rose !
Oh, liow sweet is the violet to view!
Who i-eceives more pleasure from them,
Here it seems I broke down in the acrostic department, and
went on —
Than the one who thinks them like you ?
Yes, yes, you're a sweet little rose,
That will bloom like one awhile ;
And then you will be like one still,
For I hope you will die without guile.
The Davidsons, at the same age, would, I suppose, have smiled
at this poor rhyming, but in vindication of my ten-year-old-ship I
must remark, that they were surrounded by the educational light
of the present era, while I was in the dark age of 1805.
My education was exceedingly irregular, a perpetual passing
from school to school, from my earliest memory. I drew a very
little, and worked the "Babes in the Woods" on white satin, in floss
silk ; my teacher and my grandmother being the only persons who
recognised in the remarkable individuals that issued from my hands
a likeness to those innocent sufferers.
I taught myself the English guitar at the age of fifteen from
hearing a schoolmate take lessons, and ambitiously made a tune,
which I doubt if posterity will care to hear. By depriving myself
of some luxuries, I purchased an instrument, over which my whole
soul was poured in joy and sorrow for many years. A dear friend,
who shared my desk at school, was kind enough to work out all my
54 CAROLINE OILMAN.
sums for me (there were no black-boards then), while I wrote a
novel in a series of letters, under the euphonious name of Eugenia
Fitz Allen. The consequence is that, so far as arithmetic is con-
cerned, I have been subject to perpetual mortifications ever since,
and shudder to this day when any one asks me how much is seven
times nine.
I never could remember the multiplication table, and, to heap
coals of fire on its head in revenge, set it to rhyme. I wrote my
school themes in rhyme, and instead of following " Beauty soon
decays," and " Cherish no ill designs," in B and C, I surprised my
teacher with —
" Beauties in vain tlieir pretty eyes may roll,
Charms strike the sight, but merit wins the soul."
My teacher, who at that period was more ambitious for me than
I was for myself, initiated me into Latin, a great step for that
period.
The desire to gratify a friend induced me to study "VYatts's Logic.
I did commit it to memory conscientiously, but on what an unge-
nial soil it fell ! I think, to this day, that science is the dry est of
intellectual chips, and for sorry quibblings, and self-evident propo-
sitions, syllogisms are only equalled by legal instruments, for which,
by the way, I have lately seen a call for reform. Spirits of Locke,
and Brown, and Whewell, forgive me !
About this period I walked four miles a week to Boston to join
a private class in French.
The religious feeling was always poAverful within me. I remem-
ber, in girlhood, a passionate joy in lonely prayer, and a delicious
elevation, when with upraised look, I trod my chamber floor, recit-
ing or singing Watts's Sacred Lyrics. At sixteen I joined the
Communion at the Episcopal Church in Cambridge.
At the age of eighteen I made another sacrifice in dress to pur-
chase a Bible with a margin suiEciently large to enable me to insert
a commentary. To this object I devoted several months of study,
transferring to its pages my deliberate convictions.
I am glad to class myself with the few who first established the
CAROLINE OILMAN. 55
Sabbath School and Benevolent Society at Watertown, and to say
that I have endeavoured, under all circumstances, wherever my lot
has fallen, to carry on the work of social love.
>i; * * *
At the age of sixteen I wrote " Jephthah's Rash Vow." I was
gratified by the request of an introduction from Miss Hannah
Adams, the erudite, the simple-minded, and gentle-mannered author
of the History of Religions. After her warm expressions of praise
for my verses, I said to her,
" Oh, Miss Adams, how strange to hear a lady, who knows so
much, admire me !"
"My dear," replied she, with her little lisp, "my writings are
merely compilations, Jephthah is your owni."
This incident is a specimen of her habitual humility.
To show the change from that period, I will remark, that when
I learned that my verses had been surreptitiously printed in a news-
paper, I wept bitterly, and was as alarmed as if I had been detected
in man's apparel.
The next effusion of mine was "Jairus's Daughter," which I
inserted, by request, in the North American Review, then a
miscellany.
A few years later I passed four winters at Savannah, and
remember still vividly, the love and sympathy of that genial
community.
In 1819 I married Samuel Gilman, and came to Charleston,
S. C, where he was ordained pastor of the Unitarian Church
In 1832, I commenced editing the "Rose Bud," a hebdomadal,
the first juvenile newspaper, if I mistake not, in the Union. Mrs.
Child had led the way in her monthly miscellany, to my apprehen-
sion the most perfect work that has ever appeared for youth. The
" Rose Bud" gradually unfolded through seven volumes, taking the
title of the " Southern Rose," and being the vehicle of some rich
literature and valuable criticism.
Prom this periodical I have reprinted, at various times, the
following volumes :
"Recollections of a New England Housekeeper;" "Recollections
56 CAROLINE GILMAN.
of a Southern Matron;" " Kutli Raymond, or Love's Progress;"
"Poetry of Travelling in the United States;" "Tales and Bal-
lads;" "Verses of a Lifetime;" "Letters of Eliza Wilkinson,
during the invasion of Charleston;" also, several volumes for
youth, noTV collected in one, and recently republished, as "Mrs.
Gilman's Gift Book." The "Poetry of Travelling," "Tales and
Ballads," and "Eliza Wilkinson," are out of print. The " Oracles
from the Poets," and "The Sibyl," which occupied me two years,
are of later date.
On the publication of the " Recollections of a New England
Housekeeper," I received thanks and congratulations from every
quarter, and I attribute its popularity to the fact that it was the
first attempt, in that particular mode, to enter into the recesses of
American homes and hearths, the first unveiling of what I may call
the altar of the Lares in our cuisine.
I feel proud to say that a chapter in that work was among the
first heralds of the temperance movement, a cause to which I shall
cheerfully give my later as well as earlier powers.
My ambition has never been to write a novel; in the "Matron"
and "Clarissa Packard" it will be seen that the story is a mere
hinge for facts.
After the publication of the "Poetry of Travelling," I opened
to a notice in a review, and was greeted with, " This affectation will
never do." It has amused me since to notice how "this afiecta-
tion" has spread, until we have now the "Poetry of Teaching,"
and the "Poetry of Science."
My only pride is in my books for children. I have never thought
myself a poet, only a versifier ; but I know that I have learned the
way to youthful hearts, and I think I have originated several styles
of writing for them.
While dwelling on the above sketch, I have discovered the difii-
culty of autobiography, in the impossibility of referring to one's
faults. Perchance were I to detail the personal mistakes and defi-
ciencies of this long era, I might lose the sympathy which may
have followed me thus far.
I have purposely confined myself to my earlier recollections,
CAROLINE OILMAN. 57
believing that my writings will be the best exponents of my views
and experience. It would be wrong, however, for me not to allude,
in passing, to one subject which has had a potent influence on my
life, I refer to mesmerism or magnetic psychology. This seemingly
mysterious agency, has given me relief when other human aid was
hopeless, and I believe it is destined, when calmly investigated, to
be, under Providence, a great remedial agent for mankind.
My Heavenly Father has called me to varied trials of joy and
sorrow. I trust they have all drawn me nearer to him. I have
resided in Charleston thirty-one years, and shall probably make my
final resting-place in the beautiful cemetery adjoining my husband's
church — the church of my faith and my love.
SARAH HALL.
Mrs. Sarah Hall was born at Philadelphia, on the 30th of October,
1761. She was the daughter of the Rev. John Ewing, D. D., who was,
for many years, Provost of the University of Pennsylvania, and Pastor
of the First Presbyterian Church at Philadelphia.
At the close of the revolutionary war, in the year 1782, she was mar-
ried to Mr. John Hall, the son of a wealthy planter in Maryland, to which
State they removed. Here she spent about eight years, upon a beautiful
farm on the shoi'es of the Susquehanna.
After their residence in Maryland, they settled in Philadelphia, where
Mr. Hail filled successively the offices of Secretai'y of the Land Office, and
Marshal of the United States, for the district of Pennsylvania.
Endowed by nature with an ardent and lively imagination, she early
imbibed a keen relish for the beauties of polite literature, and devoted
much time to such pursuits. When the Port Folio was established by Mr.
Dennie in 1800, she was one of the literary circle with which he associated,
and to whose pens that work was indebted for its celebrity. Elegant litera-
tui'e was at that time more successfully cultivated in Philadelphia than in
any other part of the Union. To write for the Port Folio was considered
no small honour; and to be among the favoured correspondents of Mr.
Dennie was a distinction of some value, where the competitors were so
numerous, and so highly gifted ; for among the writers for that work
were a number of gentlemen, who have since filled the most exalted
stations in the Federal government, both in the cabinet and on the
bench, and who have, in various ways, reaped the highest rewards of
patriotism and genius. Some of the most sprightly essays and pointed
criticisms which appeared in this paper, at the time of its greatest popu-
larity, were from the pen of Mrs. Hall.
When the Port Folio came under the direction of her son, the late
(58)
SARAH HALL. 59
John E. Hall, who was its editor for more than ten years, she con-
tinually aided him in his labours; and her contributions may readily be
distinguished, as well by their vivacity as the classic purity of their
diction. She survived but a few months that son, her eldest, whom she
had encouraged and assisted in his various literary labours for about
twenty years.
She studied the Scriptures with diligence, and with prayer — with all
the humility of Christian zeal, and with all the scholar's thirst for acqui-
sition. By such means, and with the aid of the best libraries of Phila-
delphia, Mrs. Hall became as eminent for scholarship in this department
of learning, as she was for wit, vivacity, and genius. Her " Conversa-
tions on the Bible," a practical and useful book, which is now extensively
known, affords ample testimony that her memory is entitled to this praise.
This work is written with that ease and simplicity which belongs to true
genius ; and contains a fund of information which could only have been
collected by diligent research and mature thought. While engaged in
this undertaking, she began the study of the Hebrew language, to enable
herself to make the necessary critical researches, and is supposed to have
made a considerable proficiency in the attainment of that dialect. When
it is stated that she commenced the authorship of this work after she had
passed the age of fifty, she being then the mother of eleven children,
and that during her whole life she was eminently distinguished for her
industry, economy, and exact attention to all the duties belonging to her
station, as the head of a numerous family, it will be seen that she was no
ordinary woman.
In a letter to a literary lady in Scotland, written in 1821, Mrs. Hall
makes the following remarks, which will be read with interest, as show-
ing the change that has taken place in the last thirty years : —
" Your flattering inquiry about my ' literary career' may be answered
in a word — literature has no career in America. It is like wine, which,
we are told, must cross the ocean to make it good. We are a business-
doing, money-making people. And as for us poor females, the blessed
tree of liberty has produced such an exuberant crop of bad servants, that
we have no eye nor ear for anything but work. We are the most devoted
wives, and mothers, and housekeepers, but every moment given to a book
is stolen. The first edition of the ' Conversations' astonished me by its
rapid sale ; for I declare to you, truly, that I promised myself nothing.
Should the second do tolerably, I may perhaps be tempted to accede to
the intimations of good-natured people, by continuing the history to the
end of the Acts of the Apostles. Yet I found so much difficulty in the
performance of the first part, having never written one hour without the
interruption of company, or business, that I sent off my last sheet as
peevishly as Johnson sent the Finis of his Dictionary to Miller, almost
60 . SARAH HALL.
vowing that I would never again touch a pen. In fact it is, as your friend
says, ' She that would be a notable housewife, must be that thing only.' "
Mrs. Hall died at Philadelphia, on the 8th of April, 1830, aged 69. A
small volume containing selections from her miscellaneous writings, was
published in Philadelphia, in 1833. This volume contains also an inter-
esting sketch of her life, from which the present notice has been compiled.
ON FASHION.*
Most of you writers have leaped into tlie censor's tlirone without
leave or license ; where you were no sooner seated, than, with the
impudence one might expect from such conduct, you have railed,
with all the severity of satire and indecency of invective, against
our folly, frivolity, forwardness, fondness of dress, and so forth.
You can't conceive what a latitude is assumed by the witlings of
the day, from the encouragement of such pens as yours. Those
well dressed young gentlemen who will lay awake whole nights in
carving the fashion of a new doublet, and who will criticise Cooper
without knowing whether Shakspeare wrote dramas or epic poems,
these wiseacres, I say, saunter along Chestnut street, when the sun
shines, and amuse themselves with sneers against our sex : and in
nothing are we so much the object of their ridicule as in our devotion
to fashion, on whose shrine, according to these modern peripatetics,
■we sacrifice our time, our understanding, and our health. "We have
freedom of the press, and freedom of religion, and why should we
not enjoy a freedom of fashions ?
What do these sapient gentlemen wish ? Would they have a
dress for females established by an act of the Assembly, as doctors
of medicine have been created in Maryland ? " Which dress afore-
said of the aforegoing figure, colour, materials, fashion, cut, make,
&c., &c., all the good spinsters of Pennsylvania shall wear on all
highdays and holydays, under pain, &c., &c." Horrible idea! —
What ! tie us down to the dull routine of the same looks, the same
bonnets, the same cloaks ? — take from us that charming diversity,
that delightful variety, which blooms in endless succession from
* Addressed to the editor of the Port Folio.
SARAH HALL. 61
"Week to "week, with the changes of the season — make us tedious to
ourselves, and as unalterable and unattractable as an old family
picture — or, what is equally out of the way and insipid, an old
bachelor ?
But some of you talk of simplicity of nature ; of the gewgaw
display of artificial charms ; of deforming nature's works by the
cumbrous and fantastical embellishments of art, and so forth.
Now, sir, if you will pin the argument to this point, I shall have
you in my power. Pray, is nature simple, barren, tedious, dull,
uniform, and unadorned, as you old bachelors would have us to be,
so that we might resemble your comfortless selves ? Look at the
trees — are they all of the same colour ? Are they not so infinitely
diversified in their shades and figures, that, to an observing eye,
no two are alike ? Observe the flowers of the garden : do they
exhibit the same sombre or pale hue ? Do they present that dull
simplicity which you recommend to us, whom your gravest philoso-
phers alloAV to be the handsomest beings in creation ? Do you
prefer the dull uniformity of a trench of upright celery to the
variegated bed of tulips ? What would you say of a project to
reform nature by robbing the rose of its blushing red, the lily of
its silver lustre, the tulip of its gorgeous streaks, the violet of its
regal purple, and allowing the vale to be no longer embroidered
with their various beauties ? or, of blotting from the clouds their
golden streaks and dazzling silver, and banishing the gay rainbow
from the heavens, because they are not of a uniform colour, but
for ever present more varieties and combinations of beauties than
our imagination can paint ? And shall not we, who, at least, pre-
tended to have the use of reason, imitate nature ? Nature has
given for our use the varied dyes of the mineral and vegetable
world, which enables us almost to vie with her own splendid gild-
ing. Nature made us to be various, changeable, inconstant, many-
coloured, whimsical, fickle, and fond of show, if you please, and we
follow nature with the greatest fidelity when, like her, we use her
beauties to delight the eye, gratify the taste, and employ the mind
in the harmonious vai'ieties of colour and figure to which fashion
resorts, and to which we devote so much time and thought.
62 SARAH HALL.
Attend to these hints, and if you properly digest them, I have
no doubt so sensible a head as you possess must nod assent to my
doctrine, that to study fashion and be in the fashion is the most
delightful and harmless employment upon earth, and the most con-
formable to our nature. But if you should be so perverse as to
think erroneously on this subject, I advise you to keep your obser-
vations to yom-selves, or to have your heads well "wigged the next
time you come amongst us.
MAEIA J. McINTOSH.
The Clan Mcintosh is noted in the earliest Scottish history, as the leader
in that powerful confederation known as the " Clan Chattan." This family
sided with the House of Stuart in its last bold struggle for power, and the
whole Highland force fought under its chief, Brigadier-General Mcintosh.
With the defeat of the Royal family came the fall of their faithful adhe-
rents and the confiscation of their property, and with one hundred and
thirty Highlanders John Moore Mcintosh accompanied Oglethorpe's party,
and settled on the Altamaha, in the district now called Georgia.
The refugees carried with them their love for the fatherland, even to
the names of its hills. They styled their frontier settlement New Inver-
ness (since changed to Darien), and the county received, and still bears,
the family title of Mcintosh.
Colonel William Mcintosh, the son of the first settler of the new colony,
fought as an officer in the French and Indian wars, and died leaving a son.
Major Lachlan Mcintosh, who was the father of Miss 3Iaria J. Mcintosh,
the subject of the present sketch.
By profession Major Mcintosh was a lawyer, but with the readiness
that warlike times engender, at the first summons of danger he stepped
from the legal arena to the higher joust of arms, and fought, with the
enthusiastic bravery of a Georgian, through all our revolutionary war.
After the establishment of peace, he married a lady of the name
of Maxwell, and settled in the practice of his original profession at
Sunbury, Liberty county, in Georgia, where our author was born,
and where she has spent the greater portion of her life. This place
is a small village, beautifully situated at the head of a bay or long
arm of the sea. The house of Major Mcintosh, a stately old mansion,
commanded a full view of the water, and was, for years, a general
gathering place for the gentry of the State. The remembrance of the
(63J
64 MARIA J. Mcintosh.
gonerous hospitality, the faithful adherents, the graceful society, and the
luxuriant beauty of nature, that displayed itself in and around the family
mansion, is still vivid in the mind of our author, and shows itself in the
fervour and enthusiasm of her language whenever she writes of the land
of her childhood.
But the day-dreams of youth were doomed to a sad awakening. Miss
Mcintosh, in 1835, after the death of both her parents, left her native
place, to reside in New York, with her brother, James M. Mcintosh, of
the U. S. Navy. With the change of residence came a change in the
investment of her property. The whole of her ample fortune was vested
in New York securities just previous to the commercial crisis of 1837, and
the lady awoke from her life-dream of prosperity, in a strange city, totally
bankrupt.
By an almost universal dispensation of Providence, which ordains means
of defence and support to the frailest formations of animal life, with the
new station was granted a power of protection, of pleasure, and mainte-
nance, unknown to the old. New feelings and powers came into life.
Thoughts that before were scarcely formed, emotions that had never
shaped themselves into expression, and ideas of the high and holy in life
that had been hitherto unshapen dreams, suddenly attained a new growth.
Hundreds of seeds that hung to the tree when all was sunshine, were
shaken to the earth by the blast, watered by the storm, and sprung to a
vigorous life, — until, at length, the very subject of misfortune blessed the
evil that had been changed to a good.
Two years after the loss of her property. Miss Mcintosh had completed
her first work. It was a small volume, bearing the marks of a feeling,
religious mind, and written in a pleasant, easy style, suitable for children,
and bore the name of " Blind Alice." Few understand how sensitive is
the anxiety of an author for his first work ; how he watches and criticises
his dearest feelings when they are about to be made public property, and
issued to the world. But how much greater must be this sensitive dread
when the author is a woman, and a woman whose whole life and support
are cast upon that one venture ? Miss Mcintosh had all these feelings to
struggle with in their fullest strength, and, in addition, the delays and
difiiculty of obtaining the publication of a work by a new writer.
For two years the manuscript of this little volume lay alternately on
the table of the author and the desk of the publishers. At last, in Janu-
ary, 1811, it was issued anonymously. Its success was complete; and
with renewed energy the author resumed her pen, and finished and pub-
lished in the summer of the same year " Jessie Graham," a work of similar
size and character. " Florence Arnott," " Grace and Clara," and " Ellen
Leslie," all of the same class and style, appeared successively, and at short
intervals, the last being published in 1843.
These works are generally known as ''Aunt Kitty's Tales." They
MARIA J. McINTOSH. 63
were received with constantly increasing favour, as the series proceeded,
and, after its completion, were republished in England with equal suc-
cess. They are simple tales of American life, told in graceful and easy
language, and conveying a moral of beauty and truthfulness that wins
love at once for the fictitious character and the earnest writer. And
many a girl, as she read of the charities of Harriet Armand, of Florence
Arnott, and O'Donnel's cabin, and the nameless Aunt Kitty, who wove a
moral with every pleasure, a lesson with every pain, and yet so secretly
that the moral could never be discerned until the tale was finished, has
laid down the book and wondered involuntarily who Aunt Kitty was.
In the year 1844, she published " Conquest and Self-Conquest." This
work is a fiction of a more ambitious character than any of the pre-
ceding. The hero of the tale is a midshipman. One portion of the plot is
laid in the city of "Washington, another at sea. It is then changed to
New Orleans, and again to the piratical island of Barrataria, on the
Mexican coast. Frederick Stanley, the hero of the story, is made to feel
that constant self-restraint will win self-command, and that self command
will rule his own happiness and the minds of others.
In the same year appeared another work, entitled "Woman an
Enigma." It is an attempt to delineate, not moral principles that are
well defined — not religious duties, that are more easily depicted, — but the
ideal, impalpable, varied substance of woman's love. This seems to be a
natural ground for a woman to walk upon, when she has passed the days
of girlhood, and arrived at such a distance from the scenes of passion as
to look back with a calm eye on the rush of early thoughts.
The first scene in the book opens in a convent in France, where young
Louise waits upon a dying friend, and the friend leaves her ward as an
affianced bride to her brother the Marquis de Montrevel.
The vow is duly made between the noble courtier and the trusting girl.
Louise is then taken to Paris by her parents and introduced to fashionable
life, with its gayeties and seductions, while the Marquis is absent on his
estate. The new world of pleasure has no efi'ect on the novice, save so far
as it stimulates her to excel, that she may the more be worthy of her hus-
band's love. She mingles in the dance to acquire grace, in the soiree to
learn the styles of fashionable life, and all for the sole purpose of being
the better fitted to be the companion and wife of the high-born noble.
But the absent lover hears of the brilliant life of his so lately timid girl,
and, ignorant of the mighty power that impels her to the exertion, scorns
the supposed fickleness that will give to the many that regard which he
had hoped to have won exclusively for himself.
Then follows the portion of the work which most perfectly pictures the
author's ideas of womanly love. The earnest toil of the poor girl for the
pittance of a smile that is rewarded by jealousy with a sneer; the pas-
9
66 MARIA J. McINTOSH.
sionate pride of the wounded woman; the stern sorrow of the man; and
the final separation, are all true to the instincts of that master feeling.
In 1845 appeared " Praise and Principle/' a fiction of the same size as
the others just named.
The hero of the story, Frank Derwent, is an American boj', and is intro-
duced to the reader while at school. Having opposed the only relative from
whom he could hope for assistance, he is thrown wholly on his own re-
sources, yet by the practice of great self-denial, by energy and a steadfast
adherence to truth and principle, he attains a high position as a lawyer, and
wins the hand of a fair client. The foil to this character is Charles Ellersby,
a school companion of Frank, and a competitor in the world for the praise
that Frank discards for the love of the dearer right. Frank wins an hon-
ourable name and a happy home, while Charles receives, as a bitter punish-
ment, that curse of manhood, a fashionable wife, — and in a year is ruined.
The whole work illustrates the character of the author, and her constant
endeavour to write not so much for the entertaining powers of the tale,
which is for a day, but for the inner life of the story, that is for all time.
" The Cousins, a Tale for Children," appeared in the latter part of the
same year. This is a small volume, originally written for the series of
Aunt Kitty's Tales, and is the last work she has published anonymously.
In 1847 was published " Two Lives, or To Seem and To Be," and with
it the name of the author, who had hei'etofore been unknown. The suc-
cess that it won may be estimated by the fact that it reached a seventh
edition in less than four years from its publication.
In 1848 appeared " Charms and Counter Charms," a work of greater
size and power, and on the most complex plan of any yet written by our
author, and received with so great favour that it is already in its sixth
edition.
Miss Mcintosh here treats of a subject that woman seldom attempts,
and the bearing of the tale is mainly on this one point; namely, the neces-
sity of the marriage rite not only for the morality of the world, but for
the morality, happiness, fidelity, and religion of any individual couple.
Eustou Hastings, the hero of the story, a man somewhat on the
Byronic order, whom having seen you turn to watch, scarcely knowing
why, wins and marries a young girl, Evelyn Beresford. But before the
marriage, and after the engagement, he declares to the lady of his choice
his so-called liberal views on the subject of religion.
Not long after, Evelyn asks his views in regard to marriage. The man
of the world replies —
" I answer you with confidence, because I know such is your affinity
with purity and truth that you will discover them though they appear in
forms which conventionalism condemns ; and I tell you, without disguise,
that I think marriage unnecessary to secure fidelity where there is love,
and insufficient where there is not."
The revelation of these foreign views does not, however, alienate the
MARIA J. McINTOSH. 67
woman's heart, and Evelyn is soon bound to her husband by the same
holy tie that he considers a conventional form.
But Evelyn loves with an engrossing passion. With a strength of feel-
ing that demands a constant return, and forgetting the hundred busy
things that are calling a man's attention, she desires the whole time and
the whole regard of her husband. This selfish, exclusive love, that
engrosses the object when it submits, and is thrown into tears when it
does not, produces the natural consequence on a man to whom perfect
liberty is an accustomed right. He seeks for the regard from other per-
sons, that he cannot receive from his wife without a corresponding degree
of personal restraint. This course produces another result on Evelyn.
She feels wounded and becomes reproachful. Instead of winning him by
her charms, she calls him to her society by her rights, until at last
Hastings leaves secretly for Europe, and is supposed to have fled with
another lady.
The blow falls fearfully heavy on one who had centred all her hopes on
the dearly loved husband. Everything is forgotten but her mighty love,
and she follows him abroad. A valet accompanying leads her to Rome,
and she meets her husband. He is struck by her devotion and the wrongs
he has inflicted. He provides her a house and every attention, and they
reside together happy in the love which is at last acknowledged above
every consideration. But it is on this express agreement, that Evelyn is
not to be known as his wife, and that they are free to part whenever either
of them may choose.
Hastings has the liberty that he so dearly prizes, and Evelyn the lover
that she regards more than all the world besides.
It is in this curious relation that the power of the writer is shown. The
most ultra case is taken upon which to build the argument for the holiness
of the marriage vow. A couple are duly married, and the marriage is
made public to all the world. They live together for a time as man and
wife. They are then separated, and again come together, not on the
strength of the marriage rite, but only on their mutual love.
But does this new connexion produce the happiness to Evelyn that she
desired? On the contrary, there is a sense of wrong in every pleasure.
She looks at her own servants with shame; and between her and every
flower she touches, every kiss she receives, there seems springing up a
consciousness of guilt.
At length Hastings is taken ill, and lies unconscious and near to death.
Evelyn watches by his side with tearful fidelity, and in agony unutterable
attends him through the dark valley, and at length sees him recovering
with feelings of joy and childlike happiness
But during the course of this weary illness she is made to see the right
w?.y, even amid the darkness by which she had been surrounded ; and,
when Euston has entirely recovered his health, the young wife (though
e,8 MARIA J. Mc IN TOSH.
not bearing the name) flees from the land of beauty and the arms of her
lover, in an agony of grief, leaving behind her a letter explaining her
change of views and the cause of ber departure.
At last, in the heart of the sensualist, the crust of worldliness is broken
up, and Euston Hastings, roused from the guilty selfishness of his life,
leaves Rome to seek the wife who has become his all in the world. He
finds her in Paris, and they are again united, not by any wavering passion,
but by holy love and marriage, which gains a higher beauty from the
bright faith and exquisite description of its able defender.
This work, though a high-wrought tale of fiction, is really an exposition
of a theory, and the reader frequently finds himself laying aside the book
to think. Is that theory really so ? and finds that, after the work is read,
there is within the fabric of the tale, an inner temple of right and wrong;
where are engraven principles that are pervading his memory equally, if
not more constantly than the plot of the fiction.
" Woman in America; Her Work, and Her Reward," the next succeed-
ing work in the order of publication, was issued in 1850.
In this work, the author, apparently tired of teaching only through the
medium of fiction, addresses herself to reasoning and argument. We read
here the ideas of a religious woman, well acquainted with all grades of
American society, in an earnest tone denouncing the servility of her sex
to the rules of fashion and opinion, modelled not by the good and virtuous,
but by the dissolute societies of Europe, and forms and customs made not
after the model of a naturally honest, or even commonly virtuous ideal,
but copied after the ever-changing, never true, leader of some dissolute or
fastidious circle — it may be, of Pai-is, it may be of Saratoga. The only
rule that seems never to have changed among this class of people until it
is embodied in their social confession of faith, is " Money makes the man."
Mahogany doors are closed to the gentleman-labourer, that are flung wide
open to him when he becomes a millionaire. White arms are outstretched
to the banker, that are folded in scorn to his approach when a bankrupt.
" Evenings at Donaldson Manor," was published as a Christmas Guest,
for the year 1850. It was a collection of tales that had appeared at dif-
ferent times in periodicals.
" The Lofty and the Lowly" is a work depicting the peculiar social
characteristics of the North and South. It has had a large sale both in
this country and in England.
It will be obvious to every one familiar with Miss Mcintosh's writings,
that she is a delineator entirely of mental life. The physical in man, in
animals, and nature, is never used, except so far as is necessary to bring
forward the mind and its virtues, desires, and principles. She has appa-
rently excluded from her attention everything that did not absolutely
belong to the moral life.
MARIA J. Mc IN TOSH, fi9
Evelyn and Euston live for a summer on the Tiber, but not the faintest
tinge of the golden light, or the lowest breath of Roman air enters within
their villa.
Hubert Falconer builds a frontier cottage, but he never listens to the
sighing pines, or treads the forest aisles.
Mind, with its wayward creeds, can alone be seen in the Imperial City.
Feelings right and wrong, and promises faithfully performed are more to
Hubert than earth, air, and water, and the glorious gifts of Nature.
Miss Mcintosh still further restricts herself in the characters of her
story, and selects only the common ones of practical life, as though anx-
ious for the principle alone, and the fiction that would draw the reader off
from the moral is discarded. In her quiet pages there never occurs the
extreme either of character or passion. It is only the system of con-
science— the rule of right — the law of God that is portrayed, and the
more marked characters, or the more easily delineated beauties and feel-
ings of life and nature are left with a rigid indifference to those whose
design is to please more than to instruct.
Yet the reader, when the book is closed, and he has gone to his daily
labour, or mingles in social life, finds lingering in his brain, and warming
in his heart, a true principle of honour and love that is constantly con-
trasting itself with the hollow forms by which he is surrounded, and if he
f\iils to bear himself up to that high ideal of principle which he feels to
be true, he still walks a little nearer to bis conscience and his God, and
long after the volume is returned to the shelf and forgotten, a kindly
benediction is given to the noble influence it incited.
And thus will it be with the author that lives in the hearts and not in
the fancy of her readers. And long after she is returned to the great
library of the unforgotten dead, a blessing wide as her language, and fer-
vent as devotion, will descend on the delineator of those lofty principles
that showed the nobleness of simplicity, and the holiness of truth.
The extract which follows is from " Woman in America."
TWO PORTRAITS.
Permit us, in illustration of our subject, to place before you a
sketch of an American woman of fashion as she is and as she might
be — as she must be to accomplish the task we would appoint her.
Examine with a careful eye "the counterfeit presentment" of these
two widely differing characters, and choose the model on which you
will form yourselves. And first, by a few strokes of this magic
wand — the pen — we will conjure -within the charmed circle of your
vision, the woman of fashion as she is.
70 MARIA J. McINTOSII.
Flirtilla, — for so noted a cliaracter must not want a name, — may
well be pronounced a favourite of nature and of fortune. To the
first she owed a pleasmg person and a mind which offered no unapt
soil for cultivation ; by favour of the last, she was born the heiress
to wealth and to those advantages which w^ealth unquestionably
confers. Her childhood was carefully sequestered from all vulgar
influences, and she was early taught, that to be a little lady was
her highest possible attainment. At six years old she astonished
the elite assembled in her father's halls, and even dazzled the larger
assemblages of Saratoga by her grace in dancing and by the ease
with which she conversed in French, which, as it was the language
of her nursery attendants, had been a second mother-tongue to her.
At the fashionable boarding-school, at which her education was,
in common parlance, completed, she distanced all competitors for
the prizes in modern languages, dancing, and music; and acquired
so much acquaintance with geography and history as would secure
her from mistaking Prussia for Persia, or imagining that Lord
Wellington had conquered Julius Caesar — in other words, so much
knowledge of them as would guard her from betraying her igno-
rance. To these acquirements she added a slight smattering
of various natural sciences. All these accomplishments had nearly
been lost to the world, by her forming an attachment for one of
fine qualities, personal and mental, who was entirely destitute of
fortune. From the fatal mistake of yielding to such an attachment
she was preserved by a judicious mother, who placed before her in
vivid contrast the commanding position in which she would be
placed as the wife of Mr. A — , with his houses and lands, his bank
stock and magnificent equipage ; and the mediocre station she would
occupy as Mrs. B — , a station to which one of her aspiring mind
could not readily succumb, even though she found herself there in
company with one of the most interesting and agreeable of men.
Relinquishing with a sigh the gratification of the last sentiment
that bound her to nature and to rational life, she magnanimously
sacrificed her inclinations to her sense of duty, and became Mrs.
A — . From this time her course has been undisturbed by one
faltering feeling, one wavering thought. She has visited London
MARIA J. Mcintosh. 71
and Paris, only that she might assure herself that her house pos-
sessed all which was considered essential to a genteel establishment
m the first, and that her toilette was the most recherche that could
be obtained in the last. She laughs at the very idea of wearing
anything made in America, and is exceedingly merry over the por-
traitures of Yankee character and Yankee life occasionally to be
met in the pages of foreign tourists, or to be seen personated in
foreign theatres. She complains much of the promiscuous charac-
ter of American society, dances in no set but her own, and, in
order to secure her exclusiveness from contact with the common
herd, moves about from one point of fashionable life to another,
attended by the same satellites, to whom she is the great centre of
attraction. Her manners, like her dresses, are imported from
Paris. She talks and laughs very loudly at all public places, lec-
tures, concerts, and the like ; and has sometimes, even in the house
of God, expressed audibly her assent with or dissent from the
preacher, that she may prove herself entirely free from that shock-
ingly American mauvaise honte, which she supposes to be all that
keeps other women silent. Any gentleman desiring admission to
her circle must produce authentic credentials that he has been
abroad, must wear his mustaches after the latest Parisian cut, must
interlard his bad English with worse French, and must be familiar
with the names and histories of the latest ballet-dancers and opera-
singers who have created a fever of excitement abroad. To foreign-
ers she is particularly gracious, and nothing throws her into such a
fervour of activity as the arrival in the country of an English Lord,
a German Baron, or a French or Italian Count. To draw such a
character within her circle she thinks no effort too great, no sacri-
fice of feelino; too humiliating.
It may be objected that all our descriptions of the fashionable
woman as she is, relates to externals ; that of the essential charac-
ter, the inner life, we have, in truth, said nothing. But what can
we do ? So far as we have yet been able to discover, this class is
destitute of any inner life. Those who compose it live for the
world and in the world. Home is with them only the place in
which they receive visits. We acknowledge that few in our country
72 MxVRIA J. McINTOSH.
have yet attained to so perfect a development of fashionable cha-
racter as Ave have here described; but to some it is ah-eady an
attainment ; to many — vre fear to most, young women of what are
called the higher classes in our large cities — it is an aim.
Nobler spirits there are, indeed, among us, of every age and every
class, and from these we must choose our example of a woman of
fashion as she should be. On her, too, we will bestow a name —
a name associated with all gentle and benignant influences — the
name of her who in her shaded retreats received of old the ruler of
earth's proudest empire, that she might "breathe off with the holy
air" of her pure affection, "that dust o' the heart" caught from
contact with coarser spirits. So have we dreamed of Egeria, and
Egeria shall be the name of our heroine. Heroine indeed, for heroic
must be her life. With eyes uplifted to a protecting Heaven, she
must walk the narrow path of right, — a precipice on either hand, —
never submitting, in her lowliness of soul, to the encroachments of
the selfish, and eager, and clamorous crowd, — never bowing her
own native nobility to the dictation of those whom the world styles
great. "Resisting the proud, but giving grace unto the humble,"
if we may without irreverence appropriate to a mortal, words
descriptive of Him whose unapproachable and glorious holiness we
are exhorted to imitate.
In society, Egeria is more desirous to please than to shine. Her
associates are selected mainly for their personal qualities, and if
she is peculiarly attentive and deferential to any class, it is to
those unfortunates whom poverty, the accidents of birth, or the
false arrangements of society, have divorced from a sphere for
which their refinement of taste and manner and their intellectual
cultivation had fitted them. Admission to her society is sought as
a distinction, because it is known that it must be purchased by
something more than a graceful address, a well-curled mustache,
or the reputation of a travelled man. At her entertainments, you
wdl often meet some whom you will meet nowhere else ; some promis-
ing young artist, yet unknown to fame, — some who, once standing
in the sunshine of fortune, were well known to many whose vision
is too imperfect for the recognition of features over which adversity
MARIAJ. McINTOSn. 73
has thrown its shadow. The influence of Egeria is felt through the
■whole circle of her acquaintance; — she encourages the young to
high aims and persevering efforts, — she brightens the fading light
of the aged, but above all is she a blessing and a glory within her
own home. Her husband cannot look on her — to borrow Longfel-
low's beautiful thought — without "reading in the serene expression
of her face, the Divine beatitude, 'Blessed are the pure in heart.' "
Her children revere her as the earthly type of perfect love. They
learn, even more from her example than her precept, that they are
to live not to themselves, but to their fellow-creatures, and to God
in them. She has so cultivated their taste for all which is beautiful
and noble, that they cannot but desire to conform themselves to
such models. She has taught them to love their country and
devote themselves to its advancement — not because it excels all
others, but because it is that to which God in his providence united
them, and whose advancement and true interest they are bound to
seek by all just and Christian methods. In a word, she has never
forgotten that they are immortal and responsible beings, and this
thought has reappeared in every impression she has stamped upon
their minds.
But it is her conduct towards those in a social position inferior
to her own, which individualizes most strongly the character of
Egeria. Remembering that there are none who may not, under
our free institutions, attain to positions of influence and responsi-
bility, she endeavours, in all her intercourse with them, to awaken
their self-respect and desire for improvement, and she is ever ready
to aid them in the attainment of that desire, and thus to fit them
for the performance of those duties that may devolve on them.
"Are you not afraid that Bridget will leave you, if, by your
lessons, you fit her for some higher position?" asked a lady, on
finding her teaching embroidery to a servant who had shown much
aptitude for it.
" If Bridget can advance her interest by leaving me, she shall
have my cheerful consent to go. God forbid that I should stand
in the way of good to any fellow-creature — above all, to one whom,
10
74 MARIA J. Mcintosh.
by placing her under my temporary protection, he has made it
especially my duty to serve," Tvas her reply.
In the general ignorance and vice of the population daily pour-
ing into our country from foreign lands, Egeria finds new reason
for activity, in the moral and intellectual advancement of all who
are brought within her sphere of influence.
Egeria has been accused of being ambitious for her children.
*'I am ambitious for them," she replies; "ambitious that they
should occupy stations that may be as a vantage-ground from which
to act for the public good."
Notwithstanding this ambition, she has, to the astonishment of
many in her own circle, consented that one of her sons should
devote himself to mechanical pursuits. She was at first pitied for
this, as a mortification to which she must certainly have been com-
pelled, by her husband's singular notions, to submit.
"You mistake," said Egeria, to one who delicately expressed
this pity to her ; " my son's choice of a trade had my hearty con-
currence. I was prepared for it by the whole bias of his mind
fi'om childhood. He will excel in the career he has chosen, I have
no doubt ; for he has abilities equal to either of his brothers, and
he loves the object to which he has devoted them. As a lawyer or
physician he would, probably, have but added one to the number
of mediocre practitioners who lounge through life with no higher
aim than their own maintenance."
"But then," it was objected, "he would not have sacrificed his
position in society."
Egeria is human, and the sudden flush of indignation must have
crimsoned the mother's brow at this ; and somcAvhat of scorn, we
doubt not, was in the smile that curled her lip as she replied, "My
son can afford to lose the acquaintance of those who cannot appre-
ciate the true nobility and independence of spirit which have made
him choose a position offering, as he believes, the highest means of
development for his own peculiar powers, and the greatest probabi-
lity, therefore, of his becoming useful to others."
Our sketches are finished — imperfect sketches we acknowledge
them. It would have been a labour of love to have rendered the
MARIA J. Mcintosh. 75
last complete — to have folloAved the steps of Egeria — the Christian,
gentlewoman — through at least one day of her life ; to have shown
her embellishing her social circle by her graces of manner and
charms of conversation, and to have accompanied her from the
saloons which she thus adorned, to more humble abodes. In these
abodes she was ever a welcome as well as an honoured guest, for
she bore thither a respectful consideration for their inmates, which
is a rarer and more coveted gift to the poor than any wealth can
purchase. Having done this, we would have liked to glance at her
in the tranquil evening of a life well spent, and to contrast her
then with Flirtilla — old beyond the power of rouge, false teeth, and
false hair, to disguise — still running through a round of pleasures
that have ceased to charm, — regretting the past, dissatisfied with the
present, and dreading the future, — alternately courting and abusing
the world, which has grown weary of her.
LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY.
Justice has hardly been done to Mrs. Sigourncy as a prose writer.
She has been so long, and is so familiarly, quoted as a i)oet, that the
public has in a measure forgotten that her indefatigable pen has sent forth
almost a volume of pro.se yearly for more than a quarter of a century —
that her prose works already issued number, in fact, twenty-five volumes,
averaging more than two hundred jDages each, and some of them having
gone through not less than twenty editions. She has indeed produced no
one work of a thrilling or startling character, wherewith to electrify the
public mind. Her writings have been more like the dew than the light-
ning. Yet the dew, it is well to remember, is not only one of the most
beneficent, but one of the most powerful of nature's agents — far more
potential in grand results than its brilliant rival. When account shall be
made of the various agencies, moral and intellectual, that have moulded
the American mind and heart during the first half of the nineteenth cen-
tury, few names will be honoured with a larger credit than that of Lydia
H. Sigourney.
The maiden name of this most excellent woman was Lydia Howard
Huntley. She was born in Norwich, Connecticut, September 1st, 1791,
of Ezekiel and Sophia Huntley. Being an only child, she was nurtured
with special care and tenderness. But, besides the ordinary parental
influences, there was in her early history one circumstance of a peculiar
character, which, according to the testimony of those who have known her
best, contributed largely and most happily to the moulding of her mind
and heart. I refer to the remarkable intimacy that existed between the
gifted and brilliant young girl and an aged lady that lived for many years
in the same house. Madam Jerusha Lathrop, the lady referred to, was
the relict of Dr. Daniel Lathrop, and daughter of Joseph Talcot, one of
the Provincial Governors of Connecticut.
Madam Lathrop is reported to have been gifted by nature with strong
(V6)
LYDIA. H. SIGOURNEY. 77
powers of niiod, and a dignity of person and manners that commanded
universal respect. Her character had been matured by intercourse with
men of powerful intellect, and by participation in great and trying scenes.
The parents of Mrs. Sigourney resided under the roof of Madam Lathrop,
who had been bereft of her husband and children, and though the house-
holds were separate, the latter manifested from the first a tender solicitude for
their infant daughter. As the mind of the child began to unfold itself, and
to give promise of future richness and depth, the attachment became mutual,
and in a few years an enduring confidence, an almost inseparable companion-
ship, was established between the little maiden of six and the venerable
woman of eighty.
The following glimpse into the chamber of Madam Lathrop is from
one entirely conversant with the subject. For its substantial correctness
as to fact, we are permitted to quote the authority of Mrs. Sigourney her-
self. It is quoted, not only as a beautiful episode in human life, but also
as afi"ording a key to some of the most charming peculiarities of Mrs.
Sigourney's writings.
" Methinks we stand upon that ancient threshold ; we enter those low-
browed, but ample rooms ; we mark the wood-fire gleaming upon crimson
moreen curtains, gilded clock, ebony-framed mirror, and polished wainscot;
but what most engages our attention, is the venerable occupant and her
youthful companion. There sits the lady in her large arm-chair, and the
young friend beside her, with face upturned, and loving eyes fixed on that
beaming countenance. We can imagine that we hear, in alternate notes,
the quick, gushing voice of childhood, and the tremulous tones of age, as
question and reply are freely interchanged. And now we are startled, as
the tremulous voice unexpectedly recovers strength and fulness, and
breaks forth into some wild or pathetic melody — the ballad or patriotic
stanza of former days. The young auditor listens with rapt delight, and
now, as the scene changes, with light breath and glowing aspect, she sits
attentive to the minute and lively details of some domestic tale of truth,
or striking episode of our national history — treasuring up the diamond-
dust, to be fused hereafter, by her genius, into pellucid gems. As night
closes round, and the light from the two stately candlesticks glimmers
through the room, the lady takes the cushioned seat in the corner, and
the young inmate spreads out upon the table some well-kept, ancient
book, often perused, yet never found wearisome ; and beguiles, with inces-
sant reading, all too mature for her years, the long and lonely knitting
hours of her aged friend."
This glimpse into the parlour of Madam Lathrop is no fancy
sketch. The evening was usually closed by the singing of devotional
hymns, and the repetition, from memory, of favourite psalms, or choice
specimens of serious verse. The readings were mostly of devotional works.
Young's Night Thoughts stood highest upon the list, and had several
g8 LYDIA H. SIGOUllNEY,
times been read aloud, from beginning to end, by the young student, at
an age in which most children can scarcely read, intelligibly, the simplest
verse. Other tomes, and some heavy and sombrous, were also made fami-
liar to her young mind, by repeated perusal ; but as the upper shelves of
the lady's library contained some volumes of a lighter character, the curi-
osity of childhood would render it pardonable, if now and then those shelves
were furtively explored, or some old play or romance withdrawn, to be
read by stealth in the solitary chamber.
The chamber, to the young student, is a sacred precinct. There, not
only is the evening problem and the morning recitation faithfully pre-
pared for the school, and the borrowed book pored over in delightful
secrecy, with no intrusive eye to note the smiles and tears and unconscious
gesticulation, that respond to the moving incidents of the tale — but there,
too, in silent and solitary hours, the light-footed muse slips in, and makes
her earliest visits, leaving behind those first faintly dotted notes of music,
which are for a long time bashfully kept concealed from every eye.
Madam Lathrop watched with entire complacency the dawning genius
of her young favourite. The simple, poetic eifusion occasionally brought
from that solitary chamber and timidly submitted to her inspection, was
sure to be received with encouraging praise, and to kindle in the face of
her aged friend that glow of approbation which was the highest reward
that the imagination of the young aspirant had then conceived.
The death of her venerable benefactress, which took place when she
was fourteen years of age, was the first deep sorrow which her young
heart had known. It was a disruption of very tender ties — the breaking
up of a peculiar intimacy between youth and age, and she could not be
easily solaced for the bereavement. Nor has her mind ever lost the
influence of this early association. It has kept with her through life, and
runs like a fine vein through all her writings. The memory, the image,
the teachings of this sainted friend, seem to accompany her like an invisible
presence, and wherever the scene may be, she turns aside to commune
with her spirit, or to cast a fresh flower upon her grave.
Mrs. Sigourney has been remarkable through life for the steadfastness
of her friendships. Besides the venerable companion already commemo-
rated, she became early in life very tenderly attached to one of her own
age, whose history has become identified with her own. This was Anna
Maria Hyde ; a young lady whose sterling worth and fine mental powers
were graced and rendei-ed winning by uncommon vivacity and sweetness
of disposition, unafi"ected modesty, and varied acquirements. The friend-
ship of these two young persons for each other was intimate and endearing.
They were companions in long rural walks, they sat side by side at their
studies, visited at each other's dwellings, read together, wrought the same
needle-work pattern, or, with paint and pencil, shaded the same flower.
The neighbours regarded them as inseparable; the names of Hyde and
LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY. 79
Huntley were wreathed together, and one was seldom mentioned without
the other. Youthful friendships are, however, so common, and usually so
transient, that this would scarcely demand notice, but for the strength of
its foundation. It appeared to be based upon a mutual, strong desire to
do good to others j a fixed purpose to employ the talents which God had
given them, for the benefit of the world upon which they had entered. In
pursuance of this object, they not only addressed themselves to the assi-
duous cultivation of their mental powers, but they engaged with alacrity
in domestic affairs and household duties ; and they found time, also, to
make garments for the poor, to instruct indigent children, to visit the old
and infirm, read with them, and administer to their temporal comfort, and
to watch with the sick and dying.
Among the plans for future usefulness which these young friends
revolved, none seemed so feasible, or so congenial to their tastes, as that
of devoting themselves to the office of instruction. This, therefore, they
adopted as their province, their chosen sphere of action, and they reso-
lutely kept this object in view, through the course of their education.
The books they read, the studies they pursued, the accomplishments they
sought, all had a reference to this main design. After qualifying them-
selves to teach those English sciences which were considered necessary to
the education of young females, together with the elements of the Latin
tongue, they went to Hartford and spent the winter of 1810-11 princi-
pally in attention to the ornamental branches, which were then in vogue.
Returning from thence, they entered at once, at the age of nineteen, upon
their grand pursuit. A class of young ladies in their native town gathered
joyfully around them, and into this circle they cast not only the aflluence
of their well stored minds, and the cheering inspiration of youthful zeal,
but all the strength of their best and holiest principles. Animated,
blooming, happy, linked afiectionately arm in arm, they daily came in
among their pupils, diffusing love and cheerfulness, as well as knowledge,
and commanding the most gi-ateful attention and respect.
The cordial affection between these interesting young teachers was itself
a most important lesson to their pupils. One of the privileged few, wri-
ting after a lapse of forty years, thus testifies to the lasting impression it
produced upon their young hearts. " Pleasant it is to review those dove-
like days — to recall the lineaments of that diligent, earnest, mind-expand-
ing group; and to note again the dissimilarity so beautifully harmonious,
between those whom we delighted to call our sweet sister-teachers — the two
inseparables, inimitahlcs. It was a matter of admiration to the pupils,
that such oneness of sentiment, opinion, and affection, should co-exist with
such a diversity in feature, voice, eyes, expression, manner, and movement,
as the two friends exhibited. ''
After a pleasing association of two years, the young teachers parted,
each to pursue the same line of occupation in a different sphere. But
80 LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY.
another separation, fatal and afflictive, soon took place. The interesting
and accomplished Miss Hyde was taken away in the midst of usefulness
and promise — mowed down like a rose-tree in bloom, March 26th, 1816,
at the age of twenty-four. Of this beloved companion of her youth, Mrs.
Sigourney wrote an interesting memoir, soon after her decease ; and she
again recurs to her with gushing tenderness, in the piece entitled "Home
of an early friend," written nearly thirty years after the scene of bereave-
ment. In flowing verse, and prose almost as harmonious as music, she
has twined a lasting memorial of the worth of the departed, and of that
tender friendship which was a marked incident in her own young life.
Before the death of her friend, she had transferred her residence to
Hartford, and again entered, with fresh enthusiasm, upon the task of
instruction. In this path she was happy and successful; it was regarded
as a privilege to be received into her circle, and many of her pupils became
life-long friends, strewing her subsequent pathway with flowers.
In Hartford, she was at once received as a welcome and cherished
inmate of the family of Madam Wadsworth, relict of Col. Jeremiah "Wads-
worth, whose mother was a Talcot, and nearly connected with the revered
Madam Lathrop. The mansion-house in which Madam "Wadsworth and
the aged sisters of her husband dwelt, stood upon the spot now occupied
by the Wadsworth Athenjeum. It was a spacious structure; unadorned,
but deeply interesting in its historic associations. To the young guest it
seemed a consecrated roof, whose every room was peopled with images of
the past ; nor was her ear ever inattentive to those descriptive sketches of
the heroic age of our country, with which its venerable inhabitants enli-
vened the evening hours. The poem, ''On the Removal of an Ancient
Mansion," is a graphic delineation of the impressions made on her mind
by her acquaintance with the threshold and hearth-stone of this fine old
house, and her communion with its excellent inmates.
Another member of the same family, Daniel Wadsworth, Esq., had
always manifested a lively interest in her mental cultivation. He had
known her in childhood, under the roof of Madam Lathrop, and had there
seen some of her early effusions, both in prose and verse. At his earnest
solicitation, she made a collection of her fugitive pieces, and under his
patronage, and with his influence and liberality cast around her as a shield,
she first ventured to appear before the public as an author. Mr. Wads-
worth's regard for her sufl"cred no diminution till his death, which took
place in 1848. Few authors have found a friend so kind and so true.
Of her aff'ection for him and his amiable wife, her writings contain many
proofs. Her Monody on the death of Mr. W^adsworth has the following
noble stanza: —
"Oh, friend! thou didst o'ermaster well
The pride of wealth, and multiply
LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY. §1
Good deeds not done for the good word of men,
But for Heaven's judging ken,
And clear, omniscient Eye ;
And surely where ' the just made perfect' dwell.
Earth's voice of highest eulogy
Is like the bubble of the far-off sea, —
A sigh upon the grave
Scarce moving the frail flowers that o'er its surface wave."
We have thus far glanced at the principal scenes and circumstances,
which appear to have had an influence in forming the character of Mrs.
Sigourney, and preparing her genius for flight. As Miss Huntley, she
gave no works to the press except those to which allusion has been made,
viz: "Moral Pieces in Prose and Verse," and a memoir of her friend,
Miss Hyde. The " Sketch of Connecticut, forty years since," was, how-
ever, one of her earliest productions, though not published until 1824. It
is honourable to her sensibilities, that so large a portion of these works was
prompted by the grateful feelings of the heart. Her later emanations are
enriched with deeper trains of thought, and melodies of higher and more
varied power, but these are the genuine outpourings of affection — the first
fruits of mind, bathed in the dew of life's morning, and laid upon the
altar of gratitude.
The marriage of Miss Huntley with Charles Sigourney, Esq., merchant
of Hartford, took place at Norwich, June 16th, 1819.
Mrs. Sigourney's domestic life has been varied with frequent excur-
sions and tours, which have rendered her familiar with the scenery and
society of most parts of her own country, and in 1840, she went to Europe,
and remained there nearly a year,, visiting England, Scotland, and France.
''Pleasant Memories of Pleasant Lands," published in 1843, and "Scenes
in my Native Land," published in 1845, afi'ord suflicient evidence that tra-
velling has had a conspicuous agency in giving richness and variety to her
productions.
A personal stranger to Mrs. Sigourney, acquainted only with her
varied literary pursuits and numerous writings, might be disposed to think
that they occupied her whole time, and that she had accomplished little
else in life. Such an assumption would be entirely at variance with the
truth. The popular, but now somewhat stale notion, that female writers
are, of course, negligent in personal costume, domestic thrift, and all those
social offices which are woman's appropriate and beautiful sphere of action,
can never prop its baseless and falling fabric with her example. She has
sacrificed no womanly or household duty, no office of friendship or bene-
volence for the society of the muses. That she is able to perform so much
in so many varied departments of literature and social obligation, is owing
to her diligence. She acquired in early life that lesson — simple, homely,
but invaluable — to make the most of passing time. Hours are seeds of
gold; she has not sown them on the wind, but planted them in good
ground, and the harvest is consequently a hundred fold.
11
82 LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY.
Authentic report informs us that no one better fills the arduous station
of a New England housekeeper, in all its various and complicated depart-
ments. Nor are the calls of benevolence unheeded. Like that distin-
guished philanthropist, from whom she derives her intermediate name, she
is said to go about doing good. Much of her time is devoted to the practi-
cal, silent, unambitious duties of charity. Nor must we omit the crowning
praise of all — the report of her humble, unceasing, unpretending, untiring
devotion.
We may not conclude this brief review of the life of Mrs. Sigourney.
without allusion to a recent aiBictive stroke of Providence, which has over-
shadowed her path with a dark cloud, and almost bowed her spirit to the
earth with its weight. She was the mother of two children ; the young-
est, an only son, hud just arrived at the verge of manhood, when he was
selected by the Destroying Angel as his own, and veiled from her sight.*
A sorrow like this, she had never before known. Such a bereave-
ment cannot take place and not leave desolation behind. Around this
early-smitten one, the fond hopes of a mother's heart had clustered ; all
those hopes are extinguished; innumerable, tender sympathies are cut
away ; the glowing expectations, nurtured for many years, are destroyed,
and the cold urn left in their place. But the Divine Hand knows how to
remove branches from the tree without blighting it; and though crushed
and wounded, the faith of the Christian sustains the bereaved parent. Her
reply to a friend who sympathized in her affliction, will show both the
depth of her sorrow, and the source of her consolation — "God's time and
will are beautiful, and through bursts of blinding tears I give him
thanks."
The amount of Mi's. Sigourney's literary labours may be estimated
from the following list of her publications, which is believed to be nearly
complete. The works are all prose, and all 12mo., unless otherwise
expressly stated: "Moral Pieces in Prose and Verse," 267 pages, 1815;
"Biography and Writings of A. M. Hyde," 241 pp., 1816; "Traits of
the Aborigines," a poem, 284 pp., 1822; "Sketch of Connecticut, forty
years since," 280 pp., 1824; "Poems," 228 pp., 1827; "Biography of
Females," 112 pp., small size, 1829; "Biography of Pious Persons","
338 pp., 1832, two editions the first year, now out of print, as are all the
preceding volumes; "Evening Readings in History," 128 pp., 1833; "Let-
ters to Young Ladies," 295 pp., 1833, twenty editions; "Memoirs of
Phebe Hammond," 30 pp., 1833; "How to be Happy," 126 pp., 1833,
two editions the first year, and several in London; "Sketches," 216
pp., 1834; "Poetry for Children," 102 pp., small size, 1834; "Select
Poems," 338 pp., 1834, eleven editions; "Tales and Essays for Children,"
128 pp., 1834; "Zinzendorff and other Poems," 300 pp., 1834; "His-
tory of Marcus Aurelius," 122 pp., 1835 ; " Olive Buds," 136 pp., 1836 ;
* Andrew M. Sigourney died in Hartford, June, 1850, aged nineteen years.
LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY. 83
"Girls' Readiug Book," prose and poetry, 243 pp., 1838, between
twenty and thirty editions; "Boys' Reading Book," prose and poetry,
247 pp., 1839, many editions; "Letters to Mothers," 296 pp., 1838,
eight editions; "Pocahontas and other Poems," 283 pp., 1841, reprinted
in London ; " Poems," 255 pp., small size, 1842 ; " Pleasant Memories of
Pleasant Lands," 368 pp., prose and poetry, 1842 ; " Child's Book," prose
and poetry, 150 pp., small size, 1844; " Scenes in my Native Land," prose
and poetry, 319 pp., 1844; "Poems for the Sea," 152 pp., 1845; "Voice
of Flowers," prose and poetry, 123 pp., small size, 1845, eight editions in
five years; "The Lovely Sisters," 100 pp., small size, 1845; "Myrtis and
other Etchings," 292 pp., 1846; "Weeping Willow," poetry, 128 pp.,
small size, 1846, six editions in four years ; " Water Drops," prose and
poetry, 275 pp., 1847 ; " Illustrated Poems," 408 pp., 8vo., 1848 ; "Whis-
per to a Bride," prose and poetry, 80 pp., small size, 1849 ; " Letters to
my Pupils," 320 pp., 1851 ; " Olive Leaves," 308 pp., 1851 ; " Examples
of Life and Death," 348 pp., 1851 ; " The Faded Hope," 264 pp., 1852 ;
" Memoir of Mrs. Harriet Newell Cook," 252 pp., 1852 ; another about to
go to press, &c.
Besides these volumes, forty in number, she has produced several pamph-
lets, and almost innumerable contributions to current jjeriodical literature.
She has moreover maintained a very extensive literary correspondence,
amounting in some years to an exchange of sixteen or seventeen hundred
letters.
Perhaps no one, who has written so much as Mrs. Sigourney, has writ-
ten so little to cause self-regret in the review. The secret of this lies in
that paramount sense of duty which is the obvious spring of her writings,
as of all her conduct. If it has not led her to the highest regions of fancy,
it has saved her from all those disgraceful falls that too often mark the
track of genius. Along the calm, sequestered vale of duty and usefulness,
her writings, like a gentle river fresh from its mountain springs, have
gladdened many a quiet home, have stimulated into fertility many a gene-
rous heart. Some of her small volumes, like the " Whisper to a Bride,"
are unpretending in character as they are diminutive in appearance, but
they contain a wealth of beauty and goodness that few would believe that
have not examined them. Of her larger volumes, none are more widely
known than the " Letters to Young Ladies," and " Letters to Mothers."
" Letters to my Pupils," just published, will probably be equally popular,
as they are equally beautiful. The scraps of autobiography, so gracefully
mixed up with her reminiscences of others, will add a special charm to
this volume for the thousands who have felt the genial influence of her
teachings and writings.
The first of the extracts which follow is from " Myrtis and other
Etchings."
84 LYDIA II. SIGOURNET.
THE LOST CHILDKEN.
" I ask the moon, so sadly fair,
The night's cold breath through shadows drawn,
'AVhere are they who were mine? and where?'
A void but answers, 'All are gone.' " Miss H. F. GoriD.
There was sickness in the dwelling of the emigrant. Stretched
upon his humble bed, he depended on that nursing care "which a
wife, scarcely less enfeebled than himself, was able to bestow. A
child, in its third summer, had been recently laid to its last rest
beneath a turf mound under their window. Its image was in the
heart of the mother, as she tenderly ministered to her husband.
" Wife, I am afraid I think too much about poor little Thomas.
He was so well and rosy when we left our old home, scarcely a
year since. Sometimes I feel, if we had but continued there, our
darling would not have died."
The tear which had long trembled, and been repressed by the
varieties of conjugal solicitude, burst forth at these words. It
freely overflowed the brimming eyes, and relieved the suffocating
emotions which had striven for the mastery.
" Do not reproach yourself, dear husband. His time had come.
He is happier there than here. Let us be thankful for those that
are spared."
" It seems to me that the little girls are growing pale. I am
afraid you confine them too closely to this narrow house, and to the
sight of sickness. The weather is growing settled. You had
better send them out to change the air, and run about at their will.
Mary, lay the baby on the bed by me, and ask mother to let little
sister and you go out for a ramble."
The mother assented, and the children, who were four and six
years old, departed, full of delight. A clearing had been made in
front of their habitation, and, by ascending a knoll in its vicinity,
another dwelling might be seen environed with the dark spruce and
hemlock. In the rear of these houses was a wide expanse of ground,
interspersed with thickets, rocky acclivities, and patches of forest
LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY. 85
trees, while far away, one or two lakelets peered up, witJi their blue
eyes deeply fringed. The spirits of the children, as they entered
this unenclosed region, were like those of the birds that surrounded
them. They playfully pursued each other with merry laughter,
and such a joyous sense of liberty, as makes the blood course light-
somely through the veins.
" Little Jane, let us go farther than ever we have before. We
will see what lies beyond those high hills, for it is but just past
noon, and we can get back long before supper-time."
" Oh ! yes, let us follow that bright blue-bird, and see what he
is flying after. But don't go in among those briers that tear the
clothes so, for mother has no time to mend them."
" Sister, sweet sister, here are some snowdrops in this green
hollow, exactly like those in my old, dear garden, so far away.
How pure they are, and cool, just like the baby's face, when the
wind blows on it ! Father and mother will like us to bring them
some."
Filling their little aprons wath the spoil, and still searching for
something new or beautiful, they j)rolonged their ramble, uncon-
scious of the flight of time, or the extent of space they were tra-
versing. At length, admonished by the chilliness, which often
marks the declining hours of the early days of spring, they turned
their course homeward. But the returning clue was lost, and they
walked rapidly, only to plunge more inextricably in the mazes of
the wilderness.
" Sister Mary, are these pretty snow-drops good to eat ? I am
so hungry, and my feet ache, and will not go !"
" Let me lift you over this brook, little Jane ; and hold tighter
by my hand, and walk as bravely as you can, that we may get home,
and help mother set the table."
" We won't go so far next time, will we ? What is the reason
that I cannot see any better ?"
"Is not that the roof of our house, dear Jane, and the thin
smoke curling up among the trees ? Many times before, have I
thought so, and found it only a rock or a mist."
As evening drew its veil, the hapless wanderers, bewildered,
81 LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY.
hurried to and fro, calling for their parents, or shouting for help,
until their strength was exhausted. Torn bj brambles, and their
poor feet bleeding from the rocks which strewed their path, they
sunk down, moaning bitterly. The fears that overpower the heart
of a timid child, who, for the first time finds night approaching,
without shelter or protection, wrought on the youngest to insup-
portable anguish. The elder, filled with the sacred warmth of
sisterly affection, after the first paroxysms of grief, seemed to forget
herself, and sitting upon the damp ground, and folding the little
one in her arms, rocked her with a gentle movement, soothing and
hushing her like a nursling.
" Don't cry ! oh ! don't cry so, dearest ; say your prayers, and
fear will fly away."
" How can I kneel down here in the dark woods, or say my
prayers, when mother is not by to hear me ? I think I see a
large wolf, with sharp ears, and a mouth wide open, and hear noises
as of many fierce lions growling."
" Dear little Jane, do say, ' Our Father, who art in Heaven.'
Be a good girl, and, when we have rested here a while, perhaps He
may be pleased to send some one to find us, and to fetch us home."
Harrowing was the anxiety in the lowly hut of the emigrant
when day drew towards its close, and the children came not. A
boy, their whole assistant in the toils of agriculture, at his return
from labour, was sent in search of them, but in vain. As evening
drew on, the inmates of the neighbouring house, and those of a
small hamlet, at considerable distance, were alarmed, and associated
in the pursuit. The agony of the invalid parents, through that
night, was uncontrollable ; starting at every footstep, shaping out
of every breeze the accents of the lost ones returning, or their cries
of misery. While the morning was yet gray, the father, no longer
to be restrained, and armed with supernatural strength, went forth,
amid the ravings of his fever, to take part in the pursuit. AVith
fiery cheeks, his throbbing head bound with a handkerchief, he was
seen in the most dangerous and inaccessible spots — caverns — ravines
— beetling cliffs — leading the way to every point of peril, in the
phrensy of grief and disease.
LYDIA H. SIGOURNEY. 87
The second night drew on, with one of those sudden storras of
sleet and snow, which sometimes chill the hopes of the young
spring. Then was a sadder sight — a woman with attenuated form,
flying she knew not whither, and continually exclaiming, "My
children ! my children !" It was fearful to see a creature so
deadly pale, with the darkness of midnight about her. She heeded
no advice to take care of herself, nor persuasion to return to her
home.
"They call me! Let me go! I will lay them in their bed myself.
How cold their feet are ! What ! is Jane singing her nightly hymn
without me ? No ! no ! She cries ! Some evil serpent has stung
her!" and, shrieking wildly, the poor mother disappeared, like a
hunted deer, in the depths of the forest.
Oh ! might she but have wrapped them in her arms, as they
shivered in their dismal recess, under the roots of a tree, uptorn
by some wintry tempest ! Yet how could she imagine the spot
where they lay, or believe that those little wearied limbs had borne
them, through bog and bramble, more than six miles from the
parental door ? In the niche which we have mentioned, a faint
moaning sound mio;ht till be heard.
" Sister, do not tell me that we shall never see the baby any
more. I see it now, and Thomas, too ! dear Thomas ! Why do
they say he died and was buried ? He is close by me, just above
my head. There are many more babies with him — a host. They
glide by me as if they had wings. They look warm and happy. I
should be glad to be with them, and join their beautiful plays. But
0, how cold I am ! Cover me close, Mary. Take my head into
your bosom."
" Pray do not go to sleep quite yet, dear Jane. I want to hear
your voice, and talk with you. It is so very sad to be waking here
alone. If I could but see your face when you are asleep, it would
be a comfort. But it is so dark, so dark I"
Rousing herself with difficulty, she unties her apron, and sprea 's
it over the head of the child, to protect it from the driving snow ;
she pillows the cold cheek on her breast, and grasps more firmly
the benumbed hand by which she had so faithfully led her, through
83 LYDIA ir. SIGOURNET.
all tlieiv terrible pilgrimage. There they are ! — The one moves
not. The other keeps vigil, feebly giving utterance, at intervals,
to a low suffocating spasm from a throat dried with hunger. Onco
more she leans upon her elbow, to look on the face of the little one,
for whom as a mother she has cared. With love strong as death,
she comforts herself that her sister slumbers calmly, because the
stroke of the destroyer has silenced her sobbings.
Ah ! why come ye not hither, torches that gleam through the
wilderness, and men who shout to each other ? why come ye not
this way ? See ! they plunge into morasses, they cut their path
through tangled thickets, they ford waters, they ascend mountains,
they explore forests — but the lost are not found !
The third and fourth nights come and depart. Still the woods
are filled with eager searchers. Sympathy has gathered them from
remote settlements. Every log-cabin sends forth what it can spare
for this work of pity and of sorrow. They cross each other's track.
Incessantly they interrogate and reply, but in vain. The lost are
not found !
In her mournful dwelling, the mother sat motionless. Her infant
was upon her lap. The strong duty to succor its helplessness, grap-
pled with the might of grief, and prevailed. Her eyes were riveted
upon its brow. No sound passed her white lips. Pitying women,
from distant habitations, gathered around and wept for her. They
even essayed some words of consolation. But she answered nothing.
She looked not toward them. She had no ear for human voices.
In her soul was the perpetual cry of the lost. Nothing overpowered
it, but the wail of her living babe. She ministered to its necessities,
and that Heaven-inspired impulse saved her. She had no longer any
hope for those Avho had wandered away. Horrid images were in
her fancy — the ravening beast — black pits of stagnant watei' — birds
of fierce beak — venomous, coiling snakes. She bowed herself down
to them, and travailed as in the birth-hour, fearfully, and in silence.
Eut the hapless babe on her bosom, touched an electric chord, and
saved her from despair. Maternal love, with its pillar of cloud and
of flame, guided her through the desert, that she perished not.
Sunday came, and the search was unabated. It seemed only
LYDIA 11. SIGOURNEY. 89
marked by a deeper tinge of melancholy. The most serious felt it
fitting to go forth at that sacred season to seek the lost, though not,
like their Master, girded with the power to save. Parents remem-
bered that it might have been their own little ones who had thus
strayed from the fold, and with their gratitude, took a portion of the
mourner's spirit into their hearts. Even the sad hope of gathering
the dead for the sepulchre, the sole hope that now sustained their
toil, began to fade into doubt. As- they climbed over huge trees,
which the winds of winter had prostrated, or forced their way
among rending brambles, sharp rocks, and close-woven branches,
they marvelled how such fragile forms could have endured hard-
ships by which the vigour of manhood was impeded and perplexed.
The echo of a gun rang suddenly through the forest. It was
repeated. Hill to hill bore the thrilling message. It was the con-
certed signal that their anxieties were ended. The hurrying seekers
followed its sound. From a commanding cliff, a white flag was seen
to float. It was the herald that the lost was found.
There they were — near the base of a wooded hillock, half cradled
among the roots of an uptorn chestnut. There they lay, cheek to
cheek, hand clasped in hand. The blasts had mingled in one
mesh their dishevelled locks, for they had left home with their poor
heads uncovered. The youngest had passed away in sleep. There
Avas no contortion on her brow, though her features were sunk and
sharpened by famine.
The elder had borne a deeper and longer anguish. Her eyes
were open, as though she had watched till death came ; watched over
that little one, for whom, through those days and nights of terror,
she had cared and sorrowed like a mother. Strong and rugged
men shed tears when they saw she had wrapped her in her own
scanty apron, and striven with her embracing arms to preserve the
warmth of vitality, even after the cherished spirit had fled away.
The glazed eyeballs were strained, as if, to the last, they had been
gazing for her father's roof, or the wreath of smoke that should
guide her there.
Sweet sisterly love ! so patient in all adversity, so faithful unto
the end, found it not a Father's house, where it might enter with
12
90 LYDIA 11. SIGOURNEY.
the little one, and be sundered no more ? Found it not a fold
whence no lamb can "vvander and be lost ? a mansion where there
is no death, neither sorrow nor crying? Forgot it not all its
sufferings for joy at that dear Redeemer's welcome, which, in its
cradle, it had been taught to lisp — " Suffer little children to come
unto me, and forbid them not, for of such is the kingdom of
Heaven."
"I HAVE SEEN AN END OF ALL PERFECTION."
I HAVE seen a man in the glory of his days, and in the pride of
his strength. He was built like the strong oak, that strikes its root
deep in the earth — like the tall cedar, that lifts its head above the
trees of the forest. He feared no danger — he felt no sickness — he
wondered why any should groan or sigh at pain. His mind ■\\ras
vigorous like his body ; he was perplexed at no intricacy, he was
daunted at no obstacle. Into hidden things he searched, and what
was crooked he made plain. He went forth boldly upon the face
of the mighty deep. He surveyed the nations of the earth. He
measured the distances of the stars, and called them by their names.
He gloried in the extent of his knowledge, in the vigour of his
understanding, and strove to search even into what the Almighty
had concealed. And Avhen I looked upon him, I said with the poet,
" what a piece of work is man ! how noble in reason ! how infinite
in faculties ! in form and moving, how express and admirable ! in
action how like an angel ! in apprehension how like a god !"
I returned — but his look was no more lofty, nor his step proud.
His broken frame was like some ruined tower. His hairs were
white and scattered, and his eye gazed vacantly upon the passers
by. The vigour of his intellect was wasted, and of all that he had
gained by study, nothing remained. He feared when there was no
dang-er, and where was no sorrow he wept. His decaying memory
had become treacherous. It showed him only broken images of
the glory that had dej)arted. His house Avas to him like a strange
LYDIA II. SIGOURNEY. 91
land, and his friends were counted as enemies. lie thought him-
self strong and healthful, while his feet tottered on the verge of the
grave. He said of his son, "he is my brother;" of his daughter,
"I know her not." He even inquired what was his own name.
And as I gazed mournfully upon him, one who supported his feeble
frame, and ministered to his many wants, said to me, " Let thine
heart receive instruction, for thou hast seen an end of all perfec-
tion !"
I have seen a beautiful female, treading the first stages of youth,
and entering joyfully into the pleasures of life. The glance of her
eye was variable and sweet, and on her cheek trembled something
like the first blush of the morning. Her lips moved, and there was
melody, and when she floated in the dance, her light form, like the
aspen, seemed to move with every breeze.
I returned — she Avas not in the dance. I sought her among her
gay companions, but I found her not. Her eye sparkled not there
— the music of her voice was silent. She rejoiced on earth no
more. I saw a train — sable and slow-paced. Sadly they bore
towards an open grave what once was animated and beautiful. As
they drew near, they paused, and a voice broke the solemn silence :
"Man that is born of a woman, is of few days and full of misery.
He Cometh up, and is cut down like a flower, he fleeth as it were a
shadow, and never continueth in one stay." Then they let down
into the deep, dark pit, that maiden whose lips but a few days since
were like the half-blown rosebud. I shuddered at the sound of
clods falling upon the hollow coflBn. Then I heard a voice saying,
"Earth to earth, ashes to ashes, dust to dust." They covered her
with the damp soil, and the uprooted turf of the valley, and turned
again to their own homes. But one mourner lingered to cast him-
self upon the tomb. And as he wept he said, " There is no beauty,
nor grace, nor loveliness, but what vanisheth like the morning dew.
I have seen an end of all perfection !"
I saw an infant, with a ruddy brow, and a form like polished
ivory. Its motions were graceful, and its merry laughter made
other hearts glad. Sometimes it wept, — and again it rejoiced, —
when none knew why. But whether its cheek dimpled with smiles,
92 LYDIA n. SIGOUKXEY.
ov its blue eyes slione more brilliant through tears, it was beautiful.
It was beautiful because it was innocent. And care-worn and sin-
ful men admired, when they beheld it. It was like the first blos-
som which some cherished plant has put forth, whose cup sparkles
with a dew-drop, and whose head reclines upon the parent stem.
Again I looked. It had become a child. The lamp of reason
had beamed into its mind. It was simple, and single-hearted, and
a follower of the truth. It loved every little bird that sang in the
trees, and every fresh blossom. Its heart danced with joy as it
looked around on this good and pleasant world. It stood like a
lamb before its teachers — it bowed its ear to instruction — it walked
in the way of knowledge. It was not proud, nor stubborn, nor
envious, and it had never heard of the vices and vanities of the
world. And when I looked upon it, I remembered our Saviour's
words, " Except ye become as little children, ye cannot enter into
the kingdom of Heaven."
I saw a man, whom the world calls honourable. Many waited
for his smile. They pointed to the fields that were his, and talked
of the silver and gold which he had gathered. They praised the
stateliness of his domes, and extolled the honour of his family. But
the secret language of his heart was, " By my wisdom have I gotten
all this." So he returned no thanks to God, neither did he fear or
serve him. As I passed along, I heard the complaints of the
labourers, who had reaped his fields — and the cries of the poor,
whose covering he had taken away. The sound of feasting and
revelry was in his mansion, and the unfed beggar came tottering
from his door. But he considered not that the cries of the oppressed
were continually entering into the ears of the Most High. And
when I knew that this man was the docile child whom I had loved,
the beautiful infant on whom I had gazed with delight, I said in
my bitterness, " JVoiv, Jiave I seen an end of all perfection !" And
I laid my mouth in the dust.
SARAH J. HALE.
Mrs. Hale, so widely known by her cflforts to promote the intellectual
condition of her sex, is a native of Newport, New Hampshire. Her
maiden name was Sarah Josepha Buell. Her husband, David Hale, waa
a lawyer. By his death, she was left the sole protector of five children,
the eldest then but seven years old. It was in the hope of gaining for
them the means of support and education, that she engaged in authorship
as a profession. Her first attempt was a small volume of poems, printed
for her benefit by the Freemasons, of which fraternity her husband had
been a member. This was followed by '' Northwood," a novel in two
volumes, published in 1827.
Early in the following year, Mrs. Hale was invited from her native
State to Boston, to take charge of the editorial department of " The
Ladies' Magazine," the first American periodical devoted exclusively to
her sex. She removed to Boston, accordingly, in 1828, and continued to
edit the magazine until 1837, when it was united with the " Lady's Book"
of Philadelphia. The literary department of the " Lady's Book" was then
placed in her charge, and has so remained ever since. She continued,
however, for several years to reside in Boston, to superintend the educa-
tion of her sons, then students at Harvard. In 1841, she removed to
Philadelphia, where she still lives.
While living in Boston, Mrs. Hale originated the noble idea of the
" Seaman's Aid Society," over which she was called to preside, and of
which she continued to be the president until her removal to Philadelphia.
This institution, or rather Mrs. Hale as its animating spirit, first suggested
the plan of a " Home for Sailors," and showed its practicability by esta-
blishing one in Boston, which became completely successful. The many
establishments of this kind, now existing in various ports, all took their
origin in that of the Boston " Seaman's Aid Society," and in the ideas and
reasonings of their first seven annual reports, all of which were from the
(93)
• ♦
94 SARAH J. HALE.
pen of Mrs. Hale. Nothing that she has ever written, probably, has been
niore productive of good than this series of annual reports ; and though
they may be, from their official character, such as to add nothing to her
literary laurels, they certainly form an important addition to her general
claims to honour as one of the wise and good of the land.
Besides '' Northwood," which was republished in London under the
title of " A New England Tale," her published works are : " Sketches of
American Character;" " Traits of American Life;" " Flora's Interpreter,"
of which more than forty thousand copies have been sold, besides English
reprints ; " The Ladies' Wreath," a selection from the female poets of
England and America;" "The Good Housekeeper, the way to live well,
and to be well while we live," a manual of cookery, of which large and very
numerous editions have been printed; "Grosvenor, a Tragedy;" "Alice
Ray, a Romance in Rhyme ;" " Harry Guy, the Widow's Son, a Romance
of the Sea" (the last two written for charitable purposes, and the proceeds
given away accordingly); " Three Hours, or the Vigil of Love, and other
Poems," in 1848; "A Complete Dictionary of Poetical Quotations," a
work of nearly six hundred pages, large octavo, printed in double columns,
and containing selections, on subjects alphabetically arranged, from the
poets of England and America ; " The Judge, a Drama of American
Life," published, in numbers, in the Lady's Book, and about to be given
to the world in book form. Mrs. Hale has also edited several annuals —
"The Opal," "The Crocus," &c., and prepared quite a number of books
for the young. A large number of essays, tales, and poems lie scattered
among the periodicals of the day, sufficient to fill several volumes. These
she proposes to collect and publish, in book form, after concluding her
editorial career.
By far the most important and honourable monument of her labour is
the volume now passing through the press, entitled " Woman's Record."
This is a general biographical dictionary of distinguished women of all
nations and ages, filling about nine hundred pages, of the largest
octavo size, closely printed in double columns. Mrs. Hale has been
engaged for several years upon this undertaking, the labour of which was
enough to appal any but a woman of heroic spirit. It needs no prophetic
vision to predict that this great work will be an enduring " Record," not
only of woman in general, but of the high aims, the indefatigable industry,
the varied reading, and just discrimination of its ever to be honoured
author.
The first extract from the writings of Mrs. Hale is taken from the work
last named, and is in some measure a continuation of the present bio-
graphical notice.
SARAH J. HALE. 95
FROM ''WOMAN'S RECORD."
A FEW words respecting the influences which have, probably,
caused me to become the Chronicler of my own sex, may not be
considered egotistical. I was mainly educated by my mother, and
strictly taught to make the Bible the guide of my life. The books
to which I had access were few, very few, in comparison with the
number given children now-a-days ; but they were such as required
to be studied — and I did study them. Next to the Bible and The
Pilgrim's Progress, my earliest reading was Milton, Addison, Pope,
Johnson, Cowper, Burns, and a portion of Shakspeare. I did not
obtain all his works till I was nearly fifteen. The first regular
novel I read was " The Mysteries of Udolpho," when I was quite
a child. I name it on account of the influence it exercised over
my mind. I had remarked that of all the books I saw, few were
written by Americans, and none by women. Here was a work, the
most fascinating I had ever read, always excepting " The Pilgrim's
Progress," written by a woman ! How happy it made me ! The
wish to promote the reputation of my own sex, and do something
for my own country, were among the earliest mental emotions I can
recollect. These feelings have had a salutary influence by direct-
ing my thoughts to a definite object ; my literary pursuits have had
an aim beyond self-seeking of any kind. The mental influence of
woman over her own sex, which was so important in my case, has
been strongly operative in inclining me to undertake this my latest
work, "Woman's Record." I have sought to make it an assistant
in home education ; hoping the examples shown and characters por-
trayed, might have an inspiration and a power in advancing the
moral progress of society. Yet I cannot close without adverting
to the ready and kind aid I have always met with from those men
with whom I have been most nearly connected. To my brother*
I owe what knowledge I possess of the Latin, of the higher
branches of mathematics, and of mental philosophy. He often
lamented that I could not, like himself, have the privilege of a
* The late Judge Buell, of Glen's Falls, New York.
OQ SARAH J. HALE.
college education. To my husband I vras yet more deeply indebted.
He was a number of years my senior, and far more my superior in
learning. We commenced, soon after our marriage, a system of
study and reading Avhich we pursued while he lived. The hours
allowed were from eight o'clock in the evening till ten ; two hours
in the twenty-four : how I enjoyed those hours ! In all our mental
pursuits, it seemed the aim of my husband to enlighten my reason,
strengthen my judgment, and give me confidence in my own powers
of mind, which he estimated much higher than I. Eut this appro-
bation Avhich he bestowed on my talents has been of great encou-
ragement to me in attempting the duties that have since become my
portion. And if there is any just praise due to the works I have
prepared, the sweetest thought is — that his name bears the celebrity.
THE MODE.
What a variety of changes there has been in the costumes of
men and Avomen since the fig-leaf garments were in vogue ! And
these millions of changes have, each and all, had their admirers,
and every fashion has been, in its day, called heautiful. It is evi-
dent, therefore, that the reigning fashion, whatever it be, com-
prehends the essence of the agreeable, and that to continue one
particular mode or costume, beautiful for successive ages, it would
only be necessary to keep it fashionable. Some nations have taken
advantage of this principle in the philosophy of dress, and have, by
that means, retained a particular mode for centuries; and there is
no doubt the belles of these unfading fashions were, and are, quite
as ardently admired, as though they had changed the form of their
apparel at every revolution of the moon.
In some important particulars these fixed planets of fashion cer-
tainly have the advantage over -those who are continua,lly displaying
a new phasis. They present fewer data for observation, and con-
sequently, the alterations which time will bring to the fairest
Dcrson are less perceptible, or, as they always seem the same, less
SARAH J. HALE. 97
noted. There are few trials more critical to a waning beauty, than
the appearing in a new and brilliant fashion. If it becomes her,
the whisper instantly runs round the circle, " how young she looks !"
— a most invidious way of hinting she is as old as the hills ; — if it
does not become her, which is usually the case, then you will hear
the remark, " what an odious dress!" — meaning, the wearer looks
as ugly as the Fates.
The contrast between a new fashion and an old familiar face
instantly strikes the beholder, and makes him run over all the
changes in appearance he has seen the individual assume; and
then, there is danger that the antiquated fashions may be revived —
and how provoking it is to be questioned whether one remembers
when long waists and hoops, and ruffled-cufFs were worn ! — A refer-
ence to the parish-registei*, or the family-record, would not disclose
the age more effectually.
Nor are the youthful exempted from their share in the evils of
change. It draws the attention of the beholder to the dress, rather
than the wearers ; and it reminds bachelors, palpably and alarm-
ingly, of the expense of supporting a wife who must thus appear in
a new costume every change of the mode.
Now, as it is fashion which makes the j^leasing in dress, were one
particular form retained ever so long, it would always please, and
thus the unnecessary expense of time and money be avoided ; and
the charges of fickleness and frivolousness entirely repelled. We
have facts to support this opinion.
Is not the Spanish costume quite as becoming as our own mode ?
and that costume has been unchanged, or nearly so, for centuries ;
while the French and English, from whom we borrow our fashions,
(poor souls that we are, to be thus destitute of invention and taste !)
have ransacked nature, and exhausted art, for comparisons and
terms by which to express the new inventions they have displayed
in dress.
We are aware that a certain class of political economists affect
to believe that luxury is beneficial to a nation — but it is not so.
The same reasoning which would make extravagance in dress com-
mendable, because it employed manufacturers and artists, would
13
98 SARAH J. HALE.
also make intemperance a virtue in those "who could afford to be
drunk, because the preparation of the alcohol employs labourers,
and the consumption would encourage trade. All these views of
the expediency of tolerating evil are a part of that Machiavellian
system of selfishness which has been imposed on the world for wis-
dom, but which has proved its origin by the corrupting crimes and
miseries men have endured in consequence of yielding themselves
dupes or slaves of fashion and vice.
We do hope, indeed believe, that a more just appreciation of the
true interests and real happiness of mankind w^ill yet prevail. The
improvements, now so rapidly progressing, in the intellectual and
civil condition of nations must, we think, be followed by a corres-
ponding improvement in the tastes and pursuits of those who are
the elite of society. Etiquette and the fashions cannot be the en-
grossing objects of pursuit, if people become reasonable. The excel-
lencies of mind and heart will be of more consequence to a lady
than the colour of a riband or the shape of a bonnet. We would
not have ladies despise or neglect dress. They should be always
fit to be seen ; personal neatness is indispensable to agreeableness
■ — almost to virtue. A proper portion of time and attention must
scruj)ulously be given to external appearance, but not the whole of
our days and energies. Is it worthy of Christians, pretending to
revere the precepts of Him who commanded them not to " take
thought what they should put on," to spend their best years in stu-
dying the form of their apparel ? Trifles should not thus engross
us, and they need not, if our citizens would only shake off this
tyranny of fashion, imposed by the tailors of Paris and London, and
establish a national costume, which would, wherever an American
appeared, announce him as a republican, and the countryman of
Washington. The men would probably do this, if our ladies would
first show that they have sufficient sense and taste to invent and
arrange their own costume (without the inspiration of foreign mil-
liners) in accordance with those national principles of comfort, pro-
priety, economy, and becomingness, which are the only true found-
ation of the elegant in apparel.
It is not necessary to elegance of appearance, nor to the pros-
SARAH J. HALE. 99
perity of trade, that changes in fashion shouhl so frequently occur.
Take, for instance, the article of shoes. What good consequence
results from a change in the fashion of shoes ?
If we have a becoming and convenient mode, why not retain it
for centuries, and save all the discussions about square-toed, round
or peaked — and all the other ad infinitum changes in cut and trim-
mings ? And if the hours thus saved were devoted to readinij or
exercise, would not the mind and health be more improved than if
we were employed in deciding the rival claims of the old and new
fashion of shoes to admiration ?
Such portions of time may seem very trifling, but the aggregate
of wasted hours, drivelled away thus by minutes, makes a large
part of the life allotted us.
We by no means advocate an idle and stupid state of society.
Excitement is necessary ; emulation is necessary ; and we must be
active if we would be happy. But there are objects more worthy
to call forth the energies of rational beings than the tie of a cravat,
or the trimming of a bonnet. And when the moral and intel-
lectual beauty of character is more cultivated and displayed, we
hope that the "foreign aid of ornament" will be found less neces-
sary; and when all our ladies are possessed of "inw^ard greatness,
unaffected wisdom, and sanctity of manners," they will not find a
continual flutter of fashion adds anything to the respect and affec-
tion their virtues and simple graces will inspire.
EMMA C. WILLARD.
Mrs. Willard is more known as a woman of action than as an author.
She has devoted the greater part of a long and most useful life to the
cause of female education, in which her eiforts, both as a theorist and a
practical teacher, have been crowned with signal success. Her prominence
as a writer, however, does not by any means correspond to that assigned to
her by common consent as an educator. Still, she has found time in the
midst of other duties of a most urgent character, to make several valuable
contributions to the cause of letters.
Mrs. Willard is the daughter of the late Samuel Hart, of Berlin, Con-
necticut, where she was born in February, 1787. Her father was
descended on the maternal side, from Thomas Hooker, minister, and on
the paternal side, from Stephen Hart, deacon of the original church in
Hartford, Connecticut. Minister Hooker and deacon Hart were among
that large company of emigrants who came over in 1630, and settled the
town of Cambridge, Massachusetts. Five years after its settlement in
1635, a fresh colony swarmed from the parent hive at Cambridge, including
the "minister" and the ''deacon" just named, and settled the town of
Hartford.
The love of teaching appears to have been a ruling passion in Miss Hart's
mind, and was developed in her early years. At the age of sixteen she
took charge of a district school in her native town. The following year
she opened a select school, and in the summer of the next year was placed
at the head of the Berlin Academy. During this period, being engaged at
home throughout the summer and winter in the capacity of instructress,
she managed in the spring and autumn to attend one or other of the two
boarding schools at Hartford.
During the spring of 1807, Miss Hart received invitations to take charge
of academies in three different states, and accepted that from Westfield,
Massachusetts. She remained there but a few weeks, when, upon a second
(100)
EMMA C. WILL All D. • Id
and more pressing invitation, she went to Middleburj, in Vermont. Here
she assumed the charge of a female academy, which she retained for two
years. The school was liberally patronized, and general satisfaction re-
warded the efforts of its preceptress. In 1809, she resigned her academy,
and was united in marriage with Dr. John Willard.
In 1814, Mrs. Willard was induced to establish a boarding school at
Middlebury, when she formed the determination to effect an important
change in female education, by the institution of a class of schools of a
higher character than had been established in the country before. She
applied herself assiduously to increase her own personal abilities as a
teacher, by the diligent study of branches with which she had before been
unacquainted. She introduced new studies into her school, and invented
new methods of teaching. She also prepared " An Address to the Public,"
in which she proposed " A Plan for Improving Female Education."
A copy of this plan was sent to Governor De Witt Clinton, who imme-
diately wrote to Mrs. AVillard, expressing a most cordial desire that she
would remove her institution to the state of New York. He also recom-
mended the subject of her " Plan" in his message to the legislature. The
result was the passage of an act to incorporate the proposed institute at
Waterford ; and another to give to female academies a share of the literary
fund ; being, it is believed, the first law ever passed by any legislature with
the direct object of improving female education.
During the spring of 1819, Mrs. Willard accordingly removed to Water-
ford, and opened her school. The higher mathematics were introduced,
and the course of study was made suflBciently complete to qualify the pupils
for any station in life.
In the spring of 1821, difficulties attending the securing of a proper
building for the school in Waterford, Mrs. Willard again determined upon
a removal. The public-spirited citizens of Troy offered liberal induce-
ments; and in May, 1821, the Troy Female Seminary was opened under
flattering auspices ; and abundant success crowned her indefatigable exer-
tions. Since that period, the institute has been well known to the public,
and the name of Mrs. Willard, for more than a quarter of a century, has
been identified with her favourite academy. Dr. Willard died in 1825;
Mrs. Willard continued her school till her health was impaired, and in
1830 she visited France. She resided in Paris for several months, and
from thence went to England and Scotland, returning in the following
year. After her return she published a volume of travels, the avails
of which, amounting to twelve hundred dollars, were devoted to the cause
of female education in Greece. It may be proper to add, that she gave
the avails of one or two other publications to the same object.
In 1838, Mrs. Willard resigned the charge of the Troy Seminary, and
returned to Hartford, where she revised her Manual of American History,
for the use of schools. The merits of this work, of her smaller United
102 EMMA C. WILLARD.
States History, and of her Universal History, have been attested by their
very general use in seminaries of education.
Since 1843, she has completed the revision of her historical works,
revised her Ancient Geography, and, in compliance with invitations, has
written numerous addresses on different occasions, being mostly on educa-
tional subjects.
In the winter of 1846, Mrs. Willard prepared for the press a work which
has given her more fame abroad, and perhaps at home, than any of her
other writings. This work, which was published in the ensuing spring,
both in New York and London, developed the result of a study which had
intensely occupied her at times for fourteen years. Its title is " A Treatise
on the Motive Powers which produce the Circulation of the Blood;" and
its object is nothing less than to introduce and to establish the fact, that
the principal motive power which produces circulation of the blood is not,
as has been heretofore supposed, the heart's action, that being only secon-
dary ; but that the principal motive power is respiration, operating by
animal heat, and producing an effective force at the lungs. Of this work,
the London Critic thus speaks :
''We have here an instance of a woman undertaking to discuss a subject
that has perplexed and baffled the ingenuity of the most distinguished
anatomists and physiologists who have considered it, from Hervey down
to Paxton ; and what is more remarkable, so acquitting herself as to show
that she apprehended, as well as the best of them, the difficulties which
beset the inquiry; perceived as quickly as they did, the errors and incon-
gruities of the theories of previous writers ; and lastly, herself propounded
an hypothesis to account for the circulation of the blood and the heart's
action, eminently entitled to the serious attention and examination of all
who take an interest in physiological science."
In addition to the compends of history which she has written, she has
invented, for the purpose of teaching and impressing chronology on the
mind by the eye, two charts of an entirely original character ; one called
" The American Chronographic," for American History, and the other for
universal history, called the " Temple of Time." In the latter, the course
of time from the creation of the world is thrown into perspective, and the
parts of this subject wrought into unity, and the more distinguished cha-
racters which have appeared in the world are set down, each in his own
time. This, in the chart, is better arranged for the memory, than would
be that of the place of a city on a map of the world.
In 1849, she published " Last Leaves from American Histor}-," contain-
ing an interesting account of our Mexican War, and of California.
The poetical compositions of Mrs. Willai-d are few, and are chiefly com-
prised in a small volume printed in 1830.
The details in the foregoing sketch are taken chiefly from Mrs. Hale's
" Woman's Record."
EMMA C. WILLARD. 103
HOW TO TEACH.
In searcliing for the fandamental principles of the science of
teaching, I find a few axioms as indisputable as the first principles
of mathematics. One of these is this : — He is the best teacher who
makes the best use of his own time and that of his pupils : for Time
is all that is given by God in which to do the work of Improvement.
What is the first rule to guide us in making the best use of Time ?
It is to seek first and most to improve in the best things. He is not
necessarily the best teacher who performs the most labour ; makes
his pupils work the hardest, and bustle the most. A hundred cents
of copper, though they make more clatter and fill more space, have
only a tenth of the value of one eagle of gold.
WHAT TO TEACH.
What is the best of all possible things to be taught ? Moral
Goodness. That respects God and Man : God first, and man second.
To infuse into the mind of a child, therefore, love and fear towards
God — the perfect in wisdom, justice, goodness, and power — the
Creator, Benefactor, and Saviour — the secret Witness and the
Judge — this is of all teaching the very best. But it cannot be ac-
complished merely in set times and by set phrases : it should mingle
in all the teacher's desires and actions. The child imbibes it when
he sees that the instructor feels and acts on it himself. AYhen the
youth is untruthful, when he wounds his companion in body, in
mind, in character, or in property, then show him that his ofience
is against God ; that you are God's ministers to enforce his laws,
and must do your duty. Be thus mindful in all sincerity ; judge
correctly, adopt no subterfuge; pretend not to think that he is bet-
ter than he really is ; deal plainly and truly, though lovingly, with
him : then his moral approbation will go with you, though it should
104 EMMA C. AVILLARD.
be against himself, and even if circumstances require you to punisli
him. The voice of conscience residing in his heart is as the voice
of God ; and if you invariably interpret that voice "with correctness
and truth, the child will submit and obey you naturally and affec-
tionately. But if your government is unjust or capricious — if you
punish one day what you pass over or approve another, the dissatis-
fied child will naturally rebel.
Next to moral goodness is Health and Strength, soundness of body
and of mind. This, like the former, is not what can be taught at
set times and in set phrases ; but it must never be lost sight of. It
must regulate the measure and the kind of exercise required by the
child, both bodily and mental, as well as his diet, air, and accommo-
dations. The recjular routine of school duties consists in teaching
acts for the practice of future life ; or sciences in which the useful
or ornamental arts find their first principles ; and great skill is re-
quired of the teacher in assigning to each pupil an order of studies
suitable to his age, and then selecting such books and modes of
teachins; as shall make a little time so far.
CARE OF HEALTH.
"When I am speaking to Young Girls (the Lord bless and keep
them), I am in my proper element. Why should it be otherwise ?
I have had five thousand under my charge, and spent thirty years
of my life devoted to their service ; and the general reader will ex-
cuse me if I add some further advice to them, which the light of tliis
theory will show to be good. If it is so, othei-s may have its benefit
as well as they ; but it is most natural to me to address myself to
them.
Would you, my dear young ladies, do the will of God on earth by
being useful to your fellow beings ? Take care of health. — Would
you enjoy life ? Take care of health ; for Avithout it existence is, for
every purpose of enjoyment, worse than a blank. No matter how
EMMA C. WILLARD. 105
mucli wealtli, or how many luxuries you can command, there is no
enjoyment without health. To an aching head what is a downy
pillow with silken curtains floating above ? What is the cushioned
landau, and the gardened landscape to her whose disordered lungs
can no longer receive the inspirations of an ordinary atmosphere ?
And what are books, music, and paintings to her whose nervous suf-
ferings give disease to her senses, and agony to her frame ?
Would you smooth for your tender parents the pillow of declining
life ? Take care of health. — And does the " prophetic pencil " some-
times trace the form of one whose name perhaps is now unknown, who
shall hereafter devote to you a manly and generous heart, and mar-
riage sanction the bond ? Would you be a blessing to such a one ?
then now take care of your health ; or, if you hesitate, let imagina-
tion go still further. Fancy yourself feeble, as with untimely age,
clad in vestments of sorrow, and leaving a childless home to walk
forth with him to the churchyard, there to weep over your buried
offspring.
Study, then, to know your frame, that you may, before it is too
late, pursue such a course as will secure to you a sound and vigor-
ous constitution.
OF THE FORCE THAT MOVES THE BLOOD.
When circulation is our life, it behoves us to consider well its
causes, that we may add reason to instinct in its healthful preserva-
tion. That the blood travels through the system by its own volition,
none believe ; but that it is an inert mass, which will only move as it
is moved. What then are the forces which move inert bodies ? Are
there any which may not be resolved into one of these three : — im-
pulse, gravitation, and heat ; of which the latter has the greater
range in point of degree, being in the expansion of a fluid from warm
to warmer, the most gentle of all imaginable forces, while in other
states it is the most powerful of any known to man.
14
106 EMMA C. AVILLARD.
It is, then, to one or more of these forces that we must look for
the motive powers which produce the circulation ; and the human
circulation has peculiar difficulties to encounter. Man does not enjoy
his noble erect position without some countervailing disadvantages.
The long upright column of his blood, spreading at its base, presents
no trifling force to be moved. And this force is to be overcome by
means so gentle, that the mind, the dweller in this house of clay,
shall not be disturbed by its operations. — Again : the parts of the
body are to be used by the mind as instruments, and ten thousand
diiFerent motions are to be performed at its bidding. — What but Al-
mighty Wisdom could have effected these several objects ! And is
it not most reasonable to suppose that this wisdom would assign for
these purposes, not any one of the forces which move matter, but
combine them all ?
Gravitation by itself cannot produce a circulation by any ma-
chinery. Impulse alone could not carry on a circulation without
existing in such an excessive degree that it must disturb the mind
and endanger the body. But heat, the antagonist force of gravita-
tion, by the lessening or increasing of the maximum and minimum dif-
ferences, can operate more or less forcibly as occasion requires, and
at the same time so gently and so quietly, that the mind shall take
no cognisance of its operation as a moving force. It can be so
placed, that by its expansive force it shall lift gravitation when that
obstructs the way ; and by its transmission, leave to it the com'se
when its presence as a force would become hurtful. Why, then, should
we hesitate to conclude that this is the principal force employed,
since we know it exists in the human system ? And if it is the prin-
cipal agent which does actually perform this great work, then if the
quantity afforded be small, so much the more perfect the machine ;
for so much the less Avill it be likely either to endanger the body or
disturb the mind, and so much the more praise is due to the Mighty
Artificer.
ALMIRA HAUT LINCOLN PHELPS.
Mrs. Phelps is the daughter of Samuel Hart, ah-eady mentioned, and
the sister of Mrs. Emma Willard. Like her elder sister, Mrs. Phelps has
been engaged most of her life in the business of education, and in the pre-
paration of scientific and educational text books. These, and her miscel-
laneous writings, entitle her to a place in the present collection.
Mrs. Phelps was born in 1793, at Berlin, Connecticut. She was edu-
cated chiefly by her sister, Emma. At the age of eighteen, she spent a
year at the Seminary of Miss Hinsdale, at Pittsfield, Massachusetts ; and
soon after was married to Simeon Lincoln, the editor of the "Ccnnecticut
Mirror," Hartford.
Mrs. Lincoln was left a widow at the age of thirty. Being thrown by
this event upon her own resources, she commenced preparing herself in the
most thorough manner for what was henceforth to be her chosen office, the
education of the young. For this purpose she studied the Latin and Greek
languages, and the natural sciences, applying herself at the same time to
the cultivation of her talents for drawing and painting, and spent seven
years in the Troy Seminary, engaged alternately in teaching and study.
In 1831, Mrs. Lincoln was married to the Hon. John Phelps, of Ver-
mont, and the next six years of her life were spent in that State. In 1839,
she became Principal of a Female Seminary at Westchester, Pennsylvania.
She subsequently removed to Ellicott's Mills, in Maryland, to establish,
with the aid of her husband, the Patapsco Female Institute. Mr. Phelps
died in 1849.
Mrs. Phelps's first publication was a work known as "Lincoln's Botany."
It appeared in 1829, and had a large circulation. The next work, a
" Dictionary of Chemistry," though mainly a translation from the French,
contained much original matter. After her second marriage, she published
" Botany" and " Chemistry" for beginners, and also a course of lectures
on education. These lectures were afterwards published as a volume iu
(107)
108 ALMIRA HART LINCOLN THE LPS.
Harpers' School Library, under the title of the " Female Student." Some
of her other works have been " Natural Philosophy for Schools," " Geology
for Beginners," a translation of Madame Necker de Saussure's " Progres-
sive Education," "Caroline Westerly, or the Young Traveller," and "Ida
Norman, or Trials and their Uses."
EDUCATION.
The true end of education is to prepare the young for the active
duties of life, and to enable them to fill with propriety those stations
to which, in the providence of God, they may be called. This
includes, also, a preparation for eternity ; for we cannot live well
"without those dispositions of heart which are necessary to fit us for
heaven. To discharge aright the duties of life requires not only
that the intellect shall be enlightened, but that the heart shall be
purified. A mother does not perform her whole duty, even when,
in addition to providing for the wants of her children and improving
their understanding, she sets before them an example of justice and
benevolence, of moderation in her own desires, and a command over
her own passions : this may be all that is required of a heathen
mother ; but the Christian female must go with her little ones to
Jesus of Nazareth, to seek his blessing ; she must strive to elevate
the minds of her offspring by frequent reference to a future state ;
she must teach them to hold the w^orld and its pursuits in subser-
viency to more important interests, and to prize above all things
that peace which, as the world giveth not, neither can it take away.
ENERGY OF MIND.
Can we find no cause why the children of the rich, setting out in
life under the most favourable circumstances, often sink into insig-
nificance, while their more humble competitors, struggling against
obstacles, rise higher and higher, till they become elevated in propor-
tion to their former depression ? Have we never beheld a plant grow
ALMIRA HART LINCOLN PHELPS. 109
weak and sickly from excess of care, while the mountain pine,
neglected and exposed to fierce winds and raging tempests, took
strong root and grew into a lofty tree, delighting the eye by its
strength and beauty ? If we look into our State Legislatures, our
National Congress, and the highest executive and judicial offices in
the country, we do not find these places chiefly occupied by those
who were born to wealth, or early taught the pride of aristocratic
distinctions. jNIost of the distinguished men of our country have
made their own fortunes ; most of them began life knowing that
they could hope for no aid or patronage, but must rely solely upon
the enera;ies of their own minds and the blessing of God.
EFFECT OF EXCITEMENTS.
Strong excitements have an unfavourable effect upon the nerves
of young children. We know this to be the case with ourselves,
but are apt to forget that things which are common to us may be
new and striking to them. My child was, on a certain evening,
carried into a large room brilliantly lighted and filled with company.
He gazed around with an expression of admiration and delight, not
unmixed with perplexity ; the latter, however, soon vanished, and
he laughed and shouted with great glee ; and as he saw that he was
observed, exerted himself still farther to be amusing. He was then
carried into a room where was music and dancing ; this was entirely
new, and he was agitated with a variety of emotions ; fear, wonder,
admiration, and joy seemed to prevail by turns. As the scene
became familiar, he again enjoyed it without any mixture of unplea-
sant feelings.
But the effect of these excitements was apparent when he was
taken to his bed-room ; his face was flushed, as in a fever, his ner-
vous system disturbed, and his sleep was interrupted by screams.
no ALMIRA HART LINCOLN PHELPS.
THE CHILD AND NATURE.
The expression of the emotions of young children, when first
viewing the grand scenery of nature, affords a rich treat to the
penetrating observer. At eight months old, my child, on being
carried to the door during a fall of snow, contemplated the scene
with an appearance of deep attention. He had learned enough of
the use of his eyes to form some conception of the expanse before
him, and to perceive how different it was from the narrow confines
of the apartments of the house. The falling snow, with its brilliant
whiteness and easy downward motion, was strange and beautiful ;
and when he felt it lighting upon his face and hands, he held up his
open mouth, as if he Avould test its nature by a third sense.
A few weeks after this he was taken, on a bright winter's day,
to ride in a sleigh (this scene was in Vermont). The sleighbells,
the horses, the companions of his ride, the trees and shrubs loaded
with their brilliant icy gems, the houses, and the people whom we
passed, all by turns received his attention. If he could have
described what he saw as it appeared to him, and the various emo-
tions caused by these objects, the description would have added a
new page in the philosophy of mind. How often are the beauties
of nature unheeded by man, who, musing on past ills, brooding over
the possible calamities of the future, building castles in the air, or
wrapped up in his own self-love and self-importance, forgets to look
abroad, or looks with a vacant stare ! His outward senses are sealed,
while a fermenting process may be going on in the passions within.
But if, with a clear conscience, a love of nature, and a quick sense
of the beautiful and sublime, we do contemplate the glorious objects
so profusely scattered around us by a bountiful Creator, with the
interesting changes which are constantly varying the aspect of these
objects, still our emotions have become deadened by habit. We do
not admire what is familiar to us, and therefore it is that we must
be ever ignorant of the true native sympathy between our own
hearts and the external world.
LOUISA C. TUTHILL.
Americans have excelled in the preparation of books for the young
One of the most successful writers in this line, and a writer of more than
ordinary success in other departments of prose composition, is Mrs. Louisa
C. Tuthill.
]\Irs. Tuthill is descended, on both sides, from the early colonists of
New Haven, Connecticut, one of her ancestors, on the father's side, being
Theophilus Eaton, the first Grovernor of the colony. Her maiden name
was Louisa Caroline Huggius. She was born, just at the close of the last
century, at New Haven, and educated partly at New Haven and partly at
Litchfield. The schools for young ladies in both of those towns at that
time were celebrated for their excellence, and that in New Haven parti-
cularly comprehended a course of study equal in range, with the exception
of Greek and the higher Mathematics, to the course pursued at the same
time in Yale College. Being the youngest child of a wealthy and retired
merchant, she enjoyed to the fullest extent the opportunities of education
which these seminaries aiforded, as well as that more general, but not less
important element of education, the constant intercourse with people of
refined taste and cultivated minds.
In 1817, she was married to Cornelius Tuthill, Esq., a lawyer, of New-
burgh, New York, who, after his marriage, settled in New Haven. 3Ir.
Tuthill himself, as well as his wife, being of a literary turn, their hospi-
table mansion became the resort for quite an extensive literary circle, some
of whom have since become known to fame. Mr. Tuthill, with two of his
friends, the lamented Henry E. Dwight, youngest son of President Dwight
of Yale College, and Nathaniel Chauncey, Esq., now of Philadelphia, pro-
jected a literary paper, for local distribution, called " The Microscope."
It was published at New Haven, and edited by Mr. Tuthill, with the aid
of the two friends just named. Through the pages of the Microscope,
the poet Percival first became known to the public. Among the con-
(111)
112 LOUISA C. TUTHILL.
tributors were J. C. Brainerd,* Professors Fisher and Fowler, Mrs.
Sigourney, and others.
Mrs. Tuthill wrote rhymes from childhood, and as far back as she can
remember was devoted to books. One of her amusements during girl-
hood was to write, stealthily, essays, plays, tales, and verses, all of which,
however, with the exception of two or three school compositions, were
committed to the flames previous to her marriage. She had imbibed a
strong prejudice against literary women, and firmly resolved never to
become one. Mr. Tuthill took a different view of the matter, and urged
her to a further pursuit of liberal studies and the continued exercise of
her pen. At his solicitation, she wrote regularly for the "Microscope"
during its continuance, which, however, was only for a couple of years.
Mr. Tuthill died in 1825, at the age of twenty-nine, leaving a widow
and four children, one son and three daughters. As a solace under
affliction; Mrs. Tuthill employed her pen in contributing frequently to
literary periodicals, but always anonymously, and with so little regard to
fame of authorship as to keep neither record nor copy of her pieces, though
some of them now occasionally float by as waifs on the tide of current
literature. Several little books, too, were written by her between 1827
and 1839, for the pleasure of mental occupation, and published anony-
mously. Some of these still hold their place in Sunday school libraries.
Mrs. Tuthill's name first came before the public in 1839. It was on
the title-page of a reading book for young ladies, prepared on a new plan.
The plan was to make the selections a series of illustrations of the rules
of rhetoric, the examples selected being taken from the best English and
American authors. The " Young Ladies' Reader," the title of this col-
lection, has been popular, and has gone through many editions.
The ice being once broken, she began to publish more freely, and during
the same year gave to the world the work entitled " The Young Lady's
Home." It is an octavo volume of tales and essays, having in view the
completion of a young lady's education after her leaving school. It shows
at once a fertile imagination and varied reading, sound judgment, and a
familiar acquaintance with social life. It has been frequently reprinted.
Her next publication was an admirable series of small volumes for boys
and girls, which have been, of all her writings, the most widely and the
most favourably known. They are IGmo.'s, of about 150 pages each.
"I will be a Gentleman," 1844, twenty -nine editions; "I will be a Lady,"
1844, twenty-nine editions; ''Onward, right Onward," 1845, fourteen
editions; "Boarding School Girl," 1845, eight editions; "Anything for
Sport," 1846, eight editions; "A Strike for Freedom, or Law and Order,"
1850, three editions in the first year.
In 1852 Mrs. Tuthill commenced a new series, intended for girls and
boys in their teens. " Braggadocio," 1852 ; " Queer Bonnets," 1853 ;
* See Whittier's Life of J. C. Brainerd.
LOUISA C. TUT HILL. 113
"Tip Top," 1854; "Beautiful Bertha," 1854. Those have passed through
several editions, and have been even more popular than the former series.
Had Mrs. Tuthill written nothing but these attractive and useful
volumes, she would have entitled herself to an honourable place in any
work which professed to treat of the prose literature of the country. They
have the graces of style and thought which would commend them to the
favourable consideration of the general reader, with superadded charms
that make them the delight of children. During the composition of these
juvenile works, she continued her occupation of catering for " children of
a larger growth," and gave to the world, in 1846, a work of fiction, entitled
" My Wife," a tale of fiishionable life of the present day, conveying, under
the garb of an agreeable story, wholesome counsels for the young of both
sexes on the all-engrossing subject of marriage.
A love for the fine arts has been with Mrs. Tuthill one of the ruling
passions of her life. At different times, ample means have been within
her reach for the cultivation of this class of studies. Partly for her own
amusement, and partly for the instruction of her children, she paid special
attention to the study of Architecture in its aesthetical character, enjoying,
while thus engaged, the free use of the princely library of Ithiel Town,
the architect. The result of these studies was the publication, in 1848,
of a splendid octavo volume on the " History of Architecture," from which
an extract is given. She edited, during the same year, a very elegant
octavo annual, " The Mirror of Life," in which several of the contributions
were by herself.
"The Nursery Book" appeared in 1849. It is not a collection of
nursery rhymes for children, as the title has led many to suppose, but a
collection of counsels for young mothers respecting the duties of the
nursery. These counsels are conveyed under the fiction of an imaginary
correspondence between a young mother, just beginning to dress her first
baby, and an experienced aunt. There are few topics in the whole history
of the management and the mismanagement of a child, during the first
and most important stages of its existence, that are not discussed, with
alternate reason and ridicule, in this clever volume.
Mrs. Tuthill is at present engaged upon a series of works, of an unam-
bitious but very useful character, grouped together under the general title
of " Success in Life." They are six volumes, ISmo.'s, of about 200 pages
each, and each illustrating the method of success in some particular walk
in life, by numerous biographical examples. The titles of the several
volumes are: "The Merchant," 1849; "The Lawyer," 1850; "The
Mechanic," 1850; "The Artist," 1854; "The Farmer," and "The
Physician," not yet published.
In 1838, Mrs. Tuthill left her much-loved native city, where until this
time she had continually resided, and passed four years in Hartford, Con-
necticut; from thence she removed to Roxbury near Boston. The health
of her family requiring a change of climate, she went, in 1846, to Phila-
delphia. Since 1848 Mrs. Tuthill has resided at Princeton, New Jersey,
15
114 LOUISA C. TUTIIILL.
DOMESTIC ARCHITECTURE IN THE UNITED STATES.
Domestic architecture in this country must be adapted to the
circumstances and condition of the people. As it is an art origi-
nating from necessity, the progress of society must change the
architecture of every country, from age to age. As wealth and
refinement increase, taste and elegance must be consulted, without
destroying convenience and appropriateness. We can no more
adopt the style of architecture than the dress of a foreign people.
We acknowledge the flowing robes of the Persian to be graceful and
becoming ; they suit the habits and climate of the country. The
fur-clad Russian of the north has conformed his dress to his climate,
and made it rich and elegant ; yet, as he approaches his neighbours
of Turkey, his dress becomes somewhat assimilated to theirs.
France is said to give the law of fashion in dress to the civilized
world ; and the absurdities that have resulted from following her
dictates, have produced ridiculous anomalies in other countries.
In adopting the domestic architecture of foreign countries, we
may be equally ridiculous. England, our fatherland, from some
resemblance in habits and institutions, might furnish more suitable
models for imitation than any other country ; yet they would not
be perfectly in accordance Avith our wants. Our architecture must,
therefore, be partly indigenous.
Our associations of convenience, home-comfort, and respectability
are connected with a certain style of building, which has been
evolved by the wants, manners, and customs of the people. Any
great deviations from a style that has been thus fixed, cannot be
perfectly agreeable. We must improve upon this style, so that
domestic architecture may in time be perfectly American.
Man in his hours of relaxation, when he is engaged in the pur-
suit of mere pleasure, is less national than he is under the influence
of any of the more violent feelings that agitate every-day life.
Hence it is that in our country there is danger that our villas
will be anything rather than national. The retired professional
man, the wealthy merchant and mechanic, wish to build in the
country. Instead of consulting home-comfort and pleasurable asso-
LOUISA C. TUTIIILL. 115
elation, they select some Italian villa, Elizabethan house, or Swiss
cottage, as their model. Ten chances to one the Italian villa,
designed for the border of a lake, will be placed near a dusty high-
road ; the Elizabethan house, instead of being surrounded by vene-
rable trees, will raise its high gables on the top of a bare hill ; and
the Swiss cottage, instead of hanging upon the mountain-side, will
be placed upon a level plain, surrounded with a flower-garden,
divided into all manner of fantastic parterres, with box edgings.
Our country, containing as it does, in its wide extent, hills and
mountains, sheltered dells and far-spreading valleys, lake-sides and
river-sides, affords every possible situation for picturesque villas ;
and great care should be taken that appropriate sites be chosen for
appropriate and comfortable buildings ; comfortable, we say, for
after the novelty of the exterior has pleased the eye of the owner
for a few weeks, if his house Avants that half-homely, but wholly
indispensable attribute, comfort, he had better leave it to ornament
his grounds, like an artificial ruin, and build himself another to live
in. Cottages are at present quite " the rage" in many parts of the
United States. Some outr(> enormities are styled Swiss cottages.
The larger and better kind of Swiss cottages are built with roofs
projecting from five to seven feet over the sides ; these projections
are strengthened by strong wooden supports, that the heavy snow
■which falls upon the roofs need not crush them. Utility and
beauty are thus combined ; but there is no beauty in such a cottage
in a sunny vale, where the snow falls seldom or lightly. On the
Green Mountains, or among the "White Hills, it might stand as
gracefully as it does among its native Alps. Walnut and chestnut
trees are always beautiful accompaniments to the Swiss cottage.
The same care should be taken to render the cottage comfortable,
as the villa ; and in this point, unfortunately, there is often a com-
plete failure. There is no absolute need that this should be the
case. A cottage or a farm-house may be picturesque without sacri-
ficing one tittle of its convenience. The great and leading object
should be utility, and where that is absolutely sacrificed in archi-
tecture, whatever may be substituted in its place, it cannot be con-
sidered beautiful.
CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND.
Mrs. Kirkland, formerly Miss Caroline M. Stansbury, was born and
bred in the city of New York. After the death of her father, Mr. Samuel
Stansbury, the family removed to the western part of the State, where
she was married to Mr. William Kirkland, an accomplished scholar, and
at one time Professor in Hamilton College. After her marriage she
resided several years in Geneva, and in 1835 removed to Michigan; lived
two years in Detroit, and six months in the woods — sixty miles west of
Detroit. In 1843 she returned to New York, where she has lived ever
since, with the exception of a visit abroad in 1849, and another in 1850.
Mr. Kirkland died in 1846.
She was first prompted to authorship by the strange things which she
saw and heard while living in the backwoods. These things always pre-
sented themselves to her under a humorous aspect, and suggested an
attempt at description. The descriptions, given at first in private letters
to her friends, proved to be so very amusing that she was tempted to
enlarge the circle of her readers by publication. "A New Home — "Who'll
Follow?" appeared in 1839; "Forest Life," in 1842; and "Western
Clearings," in 1846. These all appeared under the assumed name of
"Mrs. Mary Clavers," and attracted \crj general attention. For racy
wit, keen observation of life and manners, and a certain air of refinement
which never forsakes her, even in the roughest scenes, these sketches of
western life were entirely without a parallel in American literature. Their
success determined in a great measure Mrs. Kirkland's course of life, and
she has since become an author by profession.
An " Essay on the Life and Writings of Spenser," prefixed to an edi-
tion of the first book of the " Fairy Queen," in 1846, formed her next
contribution to the world of letters. The accomplished author appears in
this volume quite as shrewd in her observations, and as much at home,
(116)
ff ^
:^A^ %'#-
Y^
^^^^^ /tl^,^^_
CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND. II7
among the dreamy fantasies of the great idealist, as she had been among
the log cabins of the far west.
In July, 1847, the " Union Magazine" was commenced in New York
under her auspices as sole editor. After a period of eighteen month.s, the
proprietorship of the Magazine changed hands, its place of publication
was transferred to Philadelphia, and its name changed to "tSartam's
Union Magazine." Under the new arrangement, Mrs. Kirkland remained
as associate editor, her duties being limited, however, almost entirely to a
monthly contribution. This arrangement continued until July, 1851.
Her whole connexion with the Magazine runs through a course of four
years, and much of the marked success of that periodical is due to the
character of her articles. Having been myself the resident editor of the
Magazine during the last two and a half years of that time, and conducted
its entire literary correspondence, I suppose I have the means of speaking
with some confidence on this point, and I have no hesitation in saying,
that of all its brilliant array of contributors, there was not one whose arti-
cles gave such entire and uniform satisfaction as those of Mrs. Kirkland.
During her first visit to Europe, she wrote incidents and observations of
. travel, which were published, first in the Magazine, and afterwards in book
form, under the title of " Holidays Abroad ; or, Europe from the West/'
in two volumes, 1849. Excepting these, and one or two stories, her con-
tributions have been in the shape of essays, and they form, in my opinion,
her strongest claim to distinction as a writer.
THE MYSTERY OF VISITING.
There is something wonderfully primitive and simple in the
fundamental idea of visiting. You leave your own place and your
chosen employments, your slipshod ease and privileged plainness,
and sally forth, in special trim, with your mind emptied, as far as
possible, of whatever has been engrossing it, to make a descent upon
the domicile of another, under the idea that your presence will give
him pleasure, and, remotely, yourself. Can anything denote more
amiable simplicity ? or, according to a certain favourite vocabulary,
can anything be more intensely green ? What a confession of the
need of human sympathy ! What honliommie in the conviction
that you will be welcome ! What reckless self-committal in the
whole affair ! Let no one say this is not a good-natured world,
since it still keeps up a reverence for the fossil remains of what
was once the heart of its oyster.
118 CAROLINE M. KIRKL AND.
Not to go back to the creation (some proof of self-denial, in these
(lays of research), what occasioned the first visit, probably ? Was
it the birth of a baby, or a wish to borrow somewhat for the simple
householdry, or a cause of complaint about some rural trespass ; a
desire to share superabundant grapes with a neighbour who
abounded more in pomegranates; a twilight fancy for gossip about
a stray kid, or a wound from "the blind boy's butt-shaft?" Was
the delight of visiting, like the succulence of roast pig, discovered
by chance ; or was it, like the talk which is its essence, an instinct ?
This last Ave particularly doubt, from present manifestations. In-
stincts do not wear out ; they are as fresh as in the days when
visiting began — but where is visiting ?
A curious semblance of the old rite now serves us, a mere
Duessa — a form of snow, impudently pretending to vitality. We
are put off with this congelation, a compound of formality, dissimu-
lation, weariness, and vanity, which it is not easy to subject to any
test without resolving it at once into its unwholesome elements.
Yet why must it be so ? Would it require daring equal to that
which dashed into the enchanted wood of Ismena, or that which
exterminated the Mamelukes, to fall back upon first principles, and
let inclination have something to do with offering and returning
visits ?
A coat of mail is, strangely enough, the first requisite when we
have a round of calls to make; not the "silver arms" of fair Clo-
rinda, but the unlovely, oyster-like coat of Pride, the helmet of
Indifference, the breastplate of Distrust, the barred visor of Self-
Esteem, the shield of "gentle Dulness;" while over all floats the
gaudy, tinsel scarf of Fashion. Whatever else be present or lack-
ing, Pride, defensive, if not offensive, must clothe us all over. The
eyes must be guarded, lest they mete out too much consideration
to those who bear no stamp. The neck must be stiffened, lest it
bend beyond the haughty angle of self-reservation in the acknow-
ledgment of civilities. The mouth is bound to keep its portcullis
ever ready to fall on a word which implies unaffected pleasure or
surprise. Each motion must have its motive ; every civility its
Tvell-weighed return in prospect. Subjects of conversation must
CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND, 119
be any but those wliicli naturally present themselves to the mmd.
If a certain round is not prescribed, we feel that all beyond it is
proscribed. 0, the unutterable weariness of this worse than dumb-
show ! No wonder we groan in spirit when there are visits to be
made !
But some fair, innocent face looks up at us, out of a forest home,
perhaps, or in a wide, unneighboured prairie, — and asks what all
this means ? " Is not a visit always a delightful thing — full of good
feeling — the cheerer of solitude — the lightener of labour — the healer
of differences — the antidote of life's bitterness?" Ah, primitive
child ! it is so, indeed, to you. The thought of a visit makes your
dear little heart beat. If one is oifered, or expected at your
father's, with what cheerful readiness do you lend your aid to the
preparations ! How your winged feet skim along the floor, or sur-
mount the stairs ; your brain full of ingenious devices and substi-
tutes, your slender fingers loaded with plates and glasses, and a
tidy apron depending from your taper waist ! Thoughts of dress
give you but little trouble, for your choice is limited to the pink
ribbon and the blue one ; what the company will wear is of still
less moment, so they only come ! It would be hard to make you
believe that we invite people and then hope they will not come ! If
you omit anybody, it will be the friend who possesses too many acres,
or he who has been sent to the legislature from your district, lest
dignity should interfere with pleasure ; we, on the contrary, think
first of the magnates, even though we know that the gloom of their
grandeur will overshadow the mirth of everybody else, and prove
a wet blanket to the social fire. You will, perhaps, be surprised to
learn that we keep a debtor and creditor account of visits, and talk
of owing a call, or owing an invitation, as your father does of owing
a hundred dollars at the store, for value received. "When we have
made a visit and are about departing, we invite a return, in the
choicest terms of affectionate, or, at least, cordial interest ; but if
our friend is new enough to take us at our word, and pay the debt
too soon, we complain, and say, " Oh dear ! there's another call to
make !"
A hint has already been dropt as to the grudging spirit of the
120 CAROLINE M. K I RKL AND.
thing, liow we give as little as ■vs'e can, and get all possible credit
for it ; and this is the way we do it. Having let the accounts
against us become as numerous as is prudent, we draw up a list of
our creditors, carefully districted as to residences, so as not to
make more cross-journeys than are necessary in going the rounds.
Then we array ourselves with all suitable splendour (this is a main
point, and we often defer a call upon dear friends for weeks, wait-
ing till the arrivals from Paris shall allow us to endue a new bon-
net or mantilla), and, getting into a carriage, card-case in hand,
give our list, corrected more anxiously than a price-current, into
the keeping of the coachman, with directions to drive as fast as
dignity will allow, in order that we may do as much execution as
possible with the stone thus carefully smoothed. Arrived at the
first house (which is always the one farthest off, for economy of
time), we stop — the servant inquires for the lady for whom our
civility is intended, while we take out a card ami hold it prominent
on the carriage door, that not a moment may be lost in case a card
is needed. " Not at home ?" Ah then, with what joleased alacrity
we commit the scrap of pasteboard to John, after having turned
down a corner for each lady, if there are several, in this kind and
propitious house. But if the answer is " At home," all wears a
different aspect. The card slips sadly back again into its silver
citadel; we sigh, and say " Oh dear !", if nothing worse — and then,
alighting with measured step, enter the drawing-room all smiles,
and with polite words ready on our lips. Ten minutes of the
weather — the walking — the opera — family illnesses — on-dlts, and a
little spice of scandal, or at least a shrug and a meaning look or
two — and the duty is done. We enter the carriage again — urge
the coachman to new si^eed, and go through the same ceremonies,
hopes, regrets, and tittle-tattle, till dinner time, and then bless our
stars that we have been able to make twenty calls — " so many peo-
ple were out."
But this is only one side of the question. How is it with ua
when we receive visits ? We enter here upon a deep mystery.
Dear simple child of the woods and fields, did you ever hear of
reeeption-dajs ? If not, let us enlighten you a little.
CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND. 121
The original idea of a reception-day is a charmingly social and
friendly one. It is that the many engagements of city life, and
the distances which must be traversed in order to visit several
friends in one day, make it peculiarly desirable to know when we
are sure to find each at home. It may seem strange that this idea
should have occurred to people who are confessedly glad of the
opportunity to leave a card, because it allows them time to despatch
a greater number of visits at one round ; but so it is. The very
enormity of our practice sometimes leads to spasmodic efforts at
reform. Appointing a reception-day is, therefore, or, rather, we
should say, was intended to make morning-calls something besides
a mere form. To say you will always be at home on such a day,
is to insure to your friends the pleasure of seeing you ; and what
a charming conversational circle might thus be gathered, without
ceremony or restraint !
No wonder the fashion took at once. But what has fashion
made of this plan, so simple, so rational, so in accordance with the
best uses of visiting ? Something as vapid and senseless as a
court drawing-room, or the eternal bowings and compliments of
the Chinese ! You, artless blossom of the prairies, or belle of
some rural city a thousand miles inland, should thank us for put-
ting you on your guard against Utopian constructions of our social
canons. When you come to town with your good father, and find
that the lady of one of his city correspondents sets apart one morn-
ing of every week for the reception of her friends, do not imagine
her to be necessarily a "good soul," who hates to disappoint those
who call on her, and therefore simply otnits going out on that day
lest she should miss them. You will find her enshrined in all that
is grand and costly ; her door guarded by servants, whose formal
ushering will kill within you all hope of unaffected and kindly inter-
course ; her parlours glittering with all she can possibly accumu-
late that is recherche (that is a favourite word of hers), and her own
person arrayed with all the solicitude of splendour that morning
dress allows, and sometimes something more. She will receive you
with practised grace, and beg you to be seated, perhaps seat her-
self by you and inquire after your health. Then a tall, grave ser-
16
122 CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND.
vant will hand you, on a silver salver, a cup of chocolate, or some
other permissible refreshment, while your hostess glides over the
carpet to show to a new guest or group the identical civilities of
which you have just had the benefit. A lady sits at your right
hand, as silent as yourself ; but you must neither hope for an intro-
duction, nor dare to address her without one, since both these things
are forbidden by our code. Another sits at your left, looking wist-
fully at the fire, or at the stand of greenhouse plants, or, still more
likely, at the splendid French clock, but not speaking a word ; for
she, too, has not the happiness of knowing anybody who chances
to sit near her.
Presently she rises ; the hostess hastens towards her, presses her
hand with great affection, and begs to see her often. She falls into
the custody of the footman at the parlour door, is by him committed
to his double at the hall door, and then trips lightly down the steps
to her carriage, to enact the same farce at the next house where
there may be a reception on the same day. You look at the clock,
too, rise — are smiled upon, and begged to come again ; and, passing
through the same tunnel of footmen, reach the door and the street,
with time and opportunity to muse on the mystery of visiting.
NoAV you are not to go away with the idea that those who reduce
visiting to this frigid system, are, of necessity, heartless people.
That would be very unjust. They are often people of very good
hearts indeed ; but they have somehow allowed their notions of
social intercourse to become sophisticated, so that visiting has
ceased with them to be even a symbol of friendly feeling, and they
look upon it as merely a mode of exhibiting wealth, style, and
desirable acquaintances ; an assertion, as it were, of social position.
Then they will tell you of the great " waste of time" incurred by
the old system of receiving morning calls, and how much better it
is to give up one day to it than every day ; though, by the way,
they never did scruple to be " engaged" or " out" when visits were
not desirable. Another thing is — but this, perhaps, they will not
tell you, — that the present is an excellent way of refining one's
circle ; for, as the footman has strict orders not to admit any one,
or even receive a card, on other than the regular days, all those
CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND. 123
who are enough behind the age not to be aware of this, are gradu-
ally dropt, their visits passing for nothing, and remaining unre-
turned. So fades away the momentary dream of sociability with
which some simple-hearted people pleased themselves when they
heard of reception-days.
But morning calls are not the only form of our social intercourse.
We do not forget the claims of "peaceful evening." You have
read Cowper, my dear young friend ?
" Now stir the fire, and close tlie shutters fast,
Let fall the curtains, wheel the sofa round.
And while the bubbling and loud hissing urn
Throws up a steaming column, and the cups
That cheer, but not inebriate," etc., etc.
And you have been at tea-parties, too, where, besides the excel-
lent tea and coffee and cake and warm biscuits and sliced toneue,
there Avas wealth of good-humoured chat, and, if not wit, plenty of
laughter, as the hours wore on towards ten o'clock, when cloaks and
hoods were brought, and the gentlemen asked to be allowed to see
the ladies home, and, after a brisk walk, everybody was in bed at
eleven o'clock, and felt not the worse but the better next morninfr.
Well ! we have evening parties, too ! A little different, however.
The simple people among whom you have been living really
enjoyed these parties. Those who gave them, and those who went
to them, had social pleasure as their object. The little bustle, or,
perhaps, labour of preparation was just enough to mark the occa-
sion pleasantly. People came together in good humour with them-
selves and with each other. There may have been some little
scandal talked over the tea when it was too strong — but, on" the
whole, there was a friendly result, and everybody concerned would
have felt it a loss to be deprived of such meetings. The very bor-
rowings of certain articles, of which no ordinary, moderate house-
hold is expected to have enough for extraordinary occasions, pro-
moted good neighbourhood and sociability, and the deficiencies
sometimes observable, were in some sense an antidote to pride.
Now all this sounds like a sentimental, Utopian, if not shabby
124 CAROLINE M. KIR KL AND.
romance to us, so far have we dej^arted from such primitiveness.
To begin, we all say we hate parties. When wc go to them we groan
and declare them stupid, and when we give them we say still worse
things. When we are about to give, there is a close calculation
either as to the cheapest way, or as to the most recherche, without
regard to expense. Of course these two views apply to different
extent of means, and the former is the more frequent. Where
money is no object, the anxiety is to do something that nobody
else can do ; whether in splendour of decorations or costliness of
supper. If Mrs. A. had a thousand dollars' worth of flowers in her
rooms, Mrs. B. will strain every nerve to have twice or three times
as many, though all the greenhouses within ten miles of the city
must be stripped to obtain them. If Mrs. 0. bought all the game
in market for her supper, Mrs. D.'s anxiety is to send to the prairies
for hers, — and so in other matters. Mrs. E. had the prima domia
to sing at her soiree, and Mrs. F. at once engages the Avhole opera
troupe. This is the principle, and its manifestations are infinite.
But, perhaps, these freaks are characteristic of circles into which
wondering eyes like yours are never likely to penetrate. So we will
say something of the other classes of party-givers, those who feel
themselves under a sort of necessity to invite a great many people
for whom they care nothing, merely because these people have
before invited them. Obligations of this sort are of so exceedingly
complicated a character, that none but a metaphysician could be
expected fully to unravel them. The idea of paying one invitation
by another is the main one, and whether the invited choose to come
or not, is very little to the purpose. The invitation discharges the
debt, and places the party-giver in the position of creditor, necessi-
tating, of course, another party, and so on, in endless series.
It is to be observed in passing, that both debtor and creditor in
this shifting-scale believe themselves " discharging a duty they owe
society." This is another opportunity of getting rid of undesirable
acquaintances, since to leave one to whom we "owe" an invitation
out of a general party, is equivalent to a final dismissal. This
being the case, it is, of course, highly necessary to see that every-
body is asked that ought to be asked, and only those omitted whom
CAROLINE M. KIRKLAND. 125
it is desirable to ignore, and for this purpose, every lady must keep
a "visiting list." It is on these occasions that we take care to
invite our country friends, especially if we have stayed a few weeks
at their houses during the preceding summer.
The next question is as to the entertainment ; and this would be
a still more anxious affair than it is, if its form and extent were not
in good measure prescribed by fashion. There are certainly must-
haves, and may-haves, here as elsewhere ; but the liberty of choice
is not very extensive. If you do not provide the must-haves you
are "mean," of course; but it is only by adding the may-haves
that you can hope to be elegant. The cost may seem formidable,
perhaps ; but it has been made matter of accurate computation,
that one large party, even though it be a handsome one, costs less
in the end than the habit of hospitality for which if is the substi-
tute, so it is not worth while to flinch. "VYe must do our " duty to
society," and this is the cheapest way.
Do you ask me if there are among us no old-fashioned people,
who continue to invite their friends because they love them and
wish to see them, offering only such moderate entertainment as
may serve to promote social feeling ? Yes, indeed ! there are even
some who will ask you to dine, for the mere pleasure of your com-
pany, and with no intention to astonish you or excite your envy !
We boast that it was a lady of our city, who declined giving a large
party to "return invitations," saying she did not wish "to exhaust,
in the prodigality of a night, the hospitality of a year." Ten such
could be found among us, we may hope ; leaven enough, perhaps,
to work out, in time, a change for the better in our social plan.
Conversation is by no means despised, in some circles, even though
it turn on subjects of moral or literary interest, and parlour music,
which aims at no eclat, is to be heard sometimes among people who
could afford to hire opera singers.
It must be confessed that the wholesale method of "doing up"
our social obligations is a convenient one on some accounts. It
prevents jealousy by placing all alike on a footing of perfect indif-
ference. The apportionment of civilities is a very delicate matter.
Keally, in some cases, it is walking among eggs to invite only a
12G • CAROLINE M. KIR KL AND.
few of your friends at a time. If you choose tliem as being
acquainted with each other, somebody will be offended at being
included or excluded. If intellectual sympathy be your touch-
stone, for every one gratified there will be two miffed, and so on
with all other classifications. Attempts have been made to obviate
this difficulty. One lady proposed to consider as congenial all
those who keep carriages, but the circle proved so very dull, that
she was obliged to exert her ingenuity for another common quality
by which to arrange her soirees. Another tried the expedient of
inviting her fashionable friends at one time, her husband's political
friends at another, and the religious friends, whom both were
desirous to propitiate, at another ; but her task was as perplexing
as that of the man who had the fox, the goose, and the bag of oats
to ferry over the river in a boat that would hold but one of them
at a time. So large parties have it ; and in the murky shadow
of this simulacrum of sociability we are likely to freeze for some
time to come ; certainly until all purely mercantile calculation is
banished from our civilities.
It is with visiting as with travelling ; those who would make the
most of either must begin by learning to renounce. We cannot do
everything ; and to enjoy our friends we must curtail our acquaint-
ances. When we would kindle a fire, we do not begin by scatter-
ing the coals in every direction ; so neither should we attempt to
promote social feeling by making formal calls once or twice a year.
If we give offence, so be it ; it shows that there was nothing to lose.
If we find ourselves left out of Avhat is called fashionable society,
let us bless our stars, and devote the time thus saved to something
that Ave really like. What a gain there would be if anything drove
us to living for ourselves and not for other people ; for our friends,
rather than for a world, which, after all our sacrifices, cares not a
pin about us !
LYDIA M. CHILD.
The maiden name of this accomplished writer was Lydia Maria Francis.
She is a native of Massachusetts, and a sister of the Rev. Conjers Francis,
D. D., of Harvard University.
Mrs. Child commenced authorship as early as 1824. Her first produc-
tion was " Hobomok." It was a novel based upon New England colonial
traditions, and was suggested to her mind by an article in the North
American Review, in which that class of subjects was urgently recom-
mended as furnishing excellent materials for American works of fiction.
Probably, the example of Cooper, who was then in the height of his
popularity, and still more, that of Miss Sedgwick, whose " Redwood" was
then fresh from the press, had also some influence upon the new author.
Her work was well received, and was followed in 1825 by " The Rebels,"
a tale of the Revolution, very similar in character to the former. Botb
of these works are now out of print. A new edition of them would bo
very acceptable.
Her next publication, I believe, was " The Frugal Housewife," con-
taining directions for household economy, and numerous receipts. For
this she had some difficulty in finding a publisher, in consequence of the
great variety of cookery books already in the market. But it proved a
very profitable speculation, more than sis thousand copies having been
sold in a single year.
Mrs. Child's versatility of talent, and the entire success with which
she could pass from the regions of fancy and sentiment to those of fact
and duty, still further appeared in her next work, which was on the sub-
ject of education. It was addressed to mothers, and was called "The
Mother's Book." It contains plain, practical directions for that most
important part of education which falls more immediately under the
mother's jurisdiction. It has gone through very numerous editions, both
in this country and in England, and continues to hold its ground, notwith-
(127)
l':8 LYDIA M. CHILD.
standing the number of excellent boobs that have since appeared on the
same subject. It was published in 1831.
The " Girl's Book/' in two volumes, followed in 1832, and met with a
similar success. Its object was not so much the amusement of children,
as their instruction, setting forth the duties of parent and child, but in a
manner to attract youthful readers.
She wrote about the .same time " Lives of Madame de Stael and Madame
Roland," in one volume; ''Lives of Lady Russell and Madame Guyon,"
in one volume ; " Biographies of Good Wives," in one volume ; and the
" History of the Condition of Women in all Ages," in two volumes. All
these were prepared for the " Ladies' Family Library," of which she was
the editor. They are of the nature of compilations, and therefore do not
show much opportunity for the display of originality. But they do show,
what is a remarkable trait in all of Mrs. Child's writings, an earnest love
of truth. The most original work of the series is the " History of the
Condition of Women." They are all very useful and valuable volumes.
In 1833, Mrs. Child published an " Appeal for that Class of Americans
called Africans." It is said to be the first work that appeared in this
country in favour of immediate emancipation. It made a profound impres-
sion at the time.
In the same year, Mrs. Child published " The Coronal." It was a col-
lection of small pieces in prose and verse, most of which had appeared
before in periodicals of various kinds.
One of the most finished and original of Mrs. Child's works, though it
has not been the most popular, appeared in 1835. It was a romance of
Greece in the days of Pericles, entitled " Philothea." Like the '' Prophet
of Ionia," and some of her other classical tales, the " Philothea" shows a
surprising familiarity with the manners, places, and ideas of the ancients.
It seems, indeed, more like a translation of a veritable Grecian legend,
than an original work of the nineteenth century. While all the externals
of scenery, manners, and so forth, are almost faultlessly perfect, perhaps
not inferior in this respect to the "Travels of Anacharsis," the story
itself has all the freedom of the wildest romance. It is, however, romance
of a purely ideal or philosophical cast, such as one would suppose it hardly
possible to have come from the same pen that had produced a marketable
book on cookery, or that was yet to produce such heart-histories as " The
Umbrella Girl," or " The Neighbour-in-law." Indeed, the most remarka-
ble thing in the mental constitution of Mrs. Child, is this harmonious
combination of apparently opposite qualities — a rapt and lofty idealism,
transcending equally the conventional and the real, united with a plain
common sense that can tell in homely phrase the best way to make a soup
or lay a cradle — an extremely sensitive organization, that is carried into the
third heavens at the sound of 01c Bull's violin, and yet does not shrink
from going down Lispenard street to see old Charity Bowery.
LYDIA M. CHILD. 123
Mrs. Child conducted for several years a ''Juvenile Miscellany," for
which she composed many tales for the amusement and instruction of
children. These have since been corrected and re-written, and others
added to them, making three small volumes, called ''Flowers for Child-
ren." One of these volumes is for children from four to six years of
age ; one, for those from eight to nine; and one, for those from eleven to
twelve.
In 1841, Mr. and Mrs. Child went to New York, where they conducted
for some time the " Anti-Slavery Standard." Mrs. Child wrote much for
this paper, not only upon the topic suggested by the title, but on miscel-
laneous subjects.
In the same year, 1841, she commenced a series of Letters to the Boston
Courier, which contain some of the finest things she has ever written.
They were very extensively copied, and were afterwards collected into a
volume, under the title of "Letters from New York." This was followed
by a second series in 1845.
These Lettei's are exceedingly various. They contain tales, speculations,
descriptions of passing events, biographies, and essays, and bring alter-
nately tears and laughter, according to the varying moods of the writer.
In 1846, she published a volume called " Fact and Fiction," consisting
of tales that had previously appeared in the Magazines and Annuals.
These are of a miscellaneous character, somewhat like the " Letters,"
only longer.
OLE BULL.
I HAVE twice heard Ole Bull. I scarcely dare to tell the impres-
sion his music made upon me. But casting aside all fear of ridi-
cule for excessive enthusiasm, I will say that it expressed to me
more of the infinite, than I ever saw, or heard, or dreamed of, in
the realms of Nature, Art, or Imagination.
They tell me his performance is wonderfully skilful ; but I have
not enough of scientific knowledge to judge of the difficulties he
overcomes. I can readily believe of him, what Bettina says of
Beethoven, that "his spirit creates the inconceivable, and his fingers
perform the impossible." He played on four strings at once, and
produced the rich harmony of four instruments. His bow touched
the strings as if in sport, and brought forth light leaps of sound,
with electric rapidity, yet clear in their distinctness. He made his
violin sing with flute-like voice, and accompany itself with a guitar,
17
i:^0 LYDIA M. CHILD.
"which came in ever and anon like big drops of musical rain. All
this I felt as well as heard, without the slightest knowledge of
quartetto or staccato. How he did it, I know as little as I know
how the sun shines, or the spring brings forth its blossoms. I only
know that music came from his soul into mine, and carried it upward
to worship with the angels.
Oh, the exquisite delicacy of those notes ! Now tripping and
fairy-like, as the song of Ariel ; now soft and low, as the breath of
a sleeping babe, yet clear as a jfine-toned bell ; now high, as a lark
soaring upward, till lost among the stars !
Noble families sometimes double their names, to distinguish them-
selves from collateral branches of inferior rank. I have doubled
his, and in memory of the Persian nightingale have named him Ole
Bulbul.
Immediately after a deep, impassioned, plaintive melody, an
adagio of his own composing, which uttered the soft, low breathing
of a mother's prayer, rising to the very agony of supplication, a
voice in the crowd called for Yankee Doodle. It shocked me like
harlequin tumbling on the altar of a temple. I had no idea that
he would comply with what seemed to me the absurd request. But,
smiling, he drew the bow across his violin, and our national tune
rose on the air, transfigured, in a veil of glorious variations. It
was Yankee Doodle in a state of clairvoyance — a wonderful proof
of how the most common and trivial may be exalted by the influx
of the infinite.
When urged to join the throng who are following this star of
the north, I coolly replied, " I never like lions ; moreover, I am
too ignorant of musical science to appreciate his skill." But when
I heard this man, I at once recognised a power that transcends
science, and which mere skill may toil after in vain. I had no
need of knowledge to feel this subtle influence, any more than I
needed to study optics to perceive the beauty of the rainbow. It
overcame me like a miracle. I felt that my soul was, for the first
time, baptized in music ; that my spiritual relations were somehow
changed by it, and that I should henceforth be otherwise than I
had been. I was so oppressed with " the exceeding weight of
LYDIA M. CHILD. 131
glory," that I drew my breath with difficulty. As I came out of
the building, the street sounds hurt me with their harshness. The
sight of ragged boys and importunate coachmen jarred more than
ever on my feelings. I wanted that the angels that had ministered
to my spirit should attune theirs also. It seemed to me as if such
music should bring all the world into the harmonious beauty of
divine order. I passed by my earthly home, and knew it not. My
spirit seemed to be floating through infinite space. The next day
I felt like a person who had been in a trance, seen heaven opened,
and then returned to earth again.
This doubtless appears very excessive in one who has passed the
enthusiasm of youth, with a frame too healthy and substantial to
be conscious of nerves, and with a mind instinctively opposed to
lion-worship. In truth, it seems wonderful to myself; but so it
was. Like a romantic girl of sixteen, I would pick up the broken
string of his violin, and wear it as a relic, with a half superstitious
feeling that some mysterious magic of melody lay hidden therein.
I know not whether others were as powerfully wrought upon as
myself; for my whole being passed into my ear, and the faces
around me were invisible. Eut the exceeding stillness showed that
the spirits of the multitude bowed down before the magician.
While he was playing, the rustling of a leaf might have been heard ;
and when he closed, the tremendous bursts of applause told how the
hearts of thousands leaped up like one.
His personal appearance increases the charm. He looks pure,
natural, and vigorous, as I imagine Adam in Paradise. His
inspired soul dwells in a strong frame, of admirable proportions,
and looks out intensely from his earnest eyes. Whatever may be
his theological opinions, the religious sentiment must be strong in
his nature ; for Teutonic reverence, mingled with impassioned aspi-
ration, shines through his honest northern face, and runs through
all his music. I speak of him as he appears while he and his violin
converse together. When not playing, there is nothing observable
in his appearance, except genuine health, the unconscious calmness
of strength in repose, and the most unaffected simplicity of dress
and manner. But when he takes his violin, and holds it so caress-
132 LYDIA M. CHILD.
ingly to his ear, to catch the faint vibration of its strings, it seems
as if "the angels were whispering to him." As his fingers sweej)
across the strings, the angels pass into his soul, give him their
tones, and look out from his eyes, with the wondrous beauty of
inspiration. His motions sway to the music, like a tree in the
winds ; for soul and body accord. In fact, "his soul is but a harp,
which an infinite breath modulates ; his senses are but strings,
which weave the passing air into rhythm and cadence."
If it be true, as has been said, that a person ignorant of the
rules of music, who gives himself up to its influence, without know-
ing whence it comes, or whither it goes, experiences, more than
the scientific, the passionate joy of the composer himself, in his
moments of inspiration, then was I blest in my ignorance. While
I listened, music was to my soul what the atmosphere is to my
body ; it was the breath of my inward life. I felt, more deeply
than ever, that music is the highest symbol of the infinite and holy.
I heard it moan plaintively over the discords of society, and the
dimmed beauty of humanity. It filled me with inexpressible long-
ing to see man at one with Nature and with God ; and it thrilled
me with joyful prophecy that the hope would pass into glorious
fulfilment.
With renewed force I felt what I have often said, that the secret
of creation lay in music. "A voice to light gave being." Sound
led the stars into their places, and taught chemical afiinities to
waltz into each other's arms.
"By one pervading spirit
Of tones and numbers all things are controlled ;
As sages taught, where faith was found, to merit
Initiation in that mystery old."
Music is the soprano, the feminine pi-inciple, the heart of the
universe. Because it is the voice of Love, — because it is the high-
est type, and aggregate expression of passional attraction, therefore
it is infinite; therefore it pervades all space, and transcends all
being, like a divine infiux. What the tone is to the word, what
expression is to the form, what aflfection is to thought, what the
LYDIA M. CHILD. 133
heart is to the head, what intuition is to argument, what insight is
io policy, what religion is to philosophy, what holiness is to hero-
ism, what moral influence is to power, what woman is to man — is
music to the universe. Flexile, graceful, and free, it pervades all
things, and is limited by none. It is not poetry, but the soul of
poetry ; it is not mathematics, but it is in numbers, like harmonious
proportions in cast iron ; it is not painting, but it shines through
colours, and gives them their tone ; it is not dancing, but it makes
all gracefulness of motion ; it is not architecture, but the stones
take their places in harmony with its voice, and stand in " petrified
music." In the words of Bettina — "Every art is the body of
music, which is the soul of every art ; and so is music, too, the soul
of love, which also answers not for its w^orking ; for it is the contact
of divine with human."
But I must return from this flight among the stars, to Ole Bul-
bul's violin ; and the distance between the two is not so great as it
appears.
Some, who never like to admit that the greatest stands before
them, say that Paganini played the Carnival of Venice better than
his Norwegian rival. I know not. But if ever laughter ran along
the chords of a musical instrument with a wilder joy, if ever tones
quarrelled with more delightful dissonance, if ever violin frolicked
with more capricious grace, than Ole Bulbul's, in that fantastic
whirl of melody, I envy the ears that heard it.
THE UMBRELLA GIRL.
In a city, which shall be nameless, there lived, long ago, a young
girl, the only daughter of a widow. She came from the country,
and was as ignorant of the dangers of a city, as the squirrels of her
native fields. She had glossy black hair, gentle, beaming eyes,
and "lips like wet coral." Of course, she knew that she was beau-
tiful ; for when she was a child, strangers often stopped as she
passed, and exclaimed, "How handsome she is!" And as she
134 LYDIA M. CHILD.
grew older, the young men gazed on lier with admiration. She
was poor, and removed to the city to earn her living by covering
umbrellas. She was just at that susceptible age, when youth is
passing into womanhood ; when the soul begins to be pervaded by
"that restless principle, which impels poor humans to seek perfec-
tion in union."
At the hotel opposite, Lord Henry Stuart, an English nobleman,
had at that time taken lodgings. His visit to this country is doubt-
less Avell remembered by many, for it made a great sensation at the
time. He was a peer of the realm, descended from the royal line,
and was, moreover, a strikingly handsome man, of right princely
carriage. He was subsequently a member of the British Parlia-
ment, and is now dead.
As this distinguished stranger passed to and from his hotel, he
encountered the umbrella-girl, and was impressed by her uncommon
beauty. He easily traced her to the opposite store, where he soon
after went to purchase an umbrella. This was folloAved up by pre-
sents of flowers, chats by the way-side, and invitations to walk or
ride ; all of which were gratefully accepted by the unsuspecting
rustic. He was playing a game for temporary excitement ; she,
with a head full of romance, and a heart melting under the influ-
ence of love, was unconsciously endangering the happiness of her
"whole life.
Lord Henry invited her to visit the public gardens on the fourth
of Jvily. In the simplicity of her heart, she believed all his flatter-
ing professions, and considered herself his bride elect ; she therefore
accepted the invitation with innocent frankness. But she had no
dress fit to appear on such a public occasion, with a gentleman of
high rank, whom she verily supposed to be her destined husband.
While these thoughts revolved in her mind, her eye was unfortu-
nately attracted by a beautiful piece of silk belonging to her
employer. Ah, could she not take it without being seen, and pay
for it secretly, when she had earned money enough ? The tempta-
tion conquered her in a moment of weakness. She concealed the
silk, and conveyed it to her lodgings. It was the first thing she
had ever stolen, and her remorse was painful. She would have
LYDIA M. CHILD. I35
carried it back, but she dreaded discovery. She Avas not sure that
her repentance wouhl be met in a spirit of forgiveness.
On the eventful fourth of July she came out in her new dress.
Lord Henry complimented her upon her elegant appearance ; but
she was not happy. On their way to the gardens, he talked to her
in a manner which she did not comprehend. Perceiving this, he
spoke more explicitly. The guileless young creature stopped,
looked in his face with mournful reproach, and burst into tears.
The nobleman took her hand kindly, and said, "My dear, are you
an innocent girl?" "I am, I am," replied she, with convulsive
sobs. " Oh, what have I ever done, or said, that you should ask
me that?" Her words stirred the deep fountains of his better
nature. "If you are innocent," said he, "God forbid that I
should make you otherwise. But you accepted my invitations and
presents so readily, that I supposed you understood me." "What
could I understand," said she, " except that you intended to make
me your Avife?" Though reared amid the proudest distinctions of
rank, he felt no inclination to smile. He blushed and was silent.
The heartless conventionalities of life stood rebuked in the presence
of affectionate simplicity. He conveyed her to her humble home,
and bade her farewell, with a thankful consciousness that he had
done no irretrievable injury to her future prospects. The remem-
brance of her would soon be to him as the recollection of last year's
butterflies. With her, the wound was deeper. In her solitary
chamber, she wept in bitterness of heart over her ruined air-castles.
And that dress, which she had stolen to make an appearance befit-
ting his bride ! Oh, what if she should be discovered? And would
not the heart of her poor widowed mother break, if she should ever
know that her child was a thief? Alas, her wretched forebodings
were too true. The silk was traced to her ; she was arrested on
her way to the store, and dragged to prison. There she refused
all nourishment, and wept incessantly.
On the fourth day, the keeper called upon Isaac T. Hopper, and
informed him that there was a young girl in prison, who appeared
to be utterly friendless, and determined to die by starvation. The
kind-hearted Friend immediately went to her assistance. He found
136 ' LYDIA M. CHILD,
her lying on the floor of her cell, "with her face buried in her hands,
sobbing as if her heart ayouM break. He ti'ied to comfort her, but
could obtain no answer.
"Leave us alone," said he to the keeper. "Perhaps she -will
speak to me, if there is no one to hear." "VVlien they were alone
together, he put back the hair from her temples, laid his hand
kindly on her beautiful head, and said in soothing tones, " My
child, consider me as thy father. Tell me all thou hast done. If
thou hast taken this silk, let me know all about it. I will do for
thee as I would for a daughter ; and I doubt not that I can help
thee out of this difficulty."
After a long time spent in affectionate entreaty, she leaned her
young head on his friendly shoulder, and sobbed out, "Oh, I wish
I was dead. What will my poor mother say, when she knows of
my disgrace ?"
"Perhaps we can manage that she never shall know it," replied
he ; and alluring her by this hope, he gradually obtained from her
the whole story of her acquaintance with the nobleman. He bade
her be comforted, and take nourishment ; for he would see that the
silk was paid for, and the prosecution withdrawn. He went imme-
diately to her employer, and told him the story. " This is her first
offence," said he ; " the girl is young, and the only child of a poor
widow. Give her a chance to retrieve this one false step, and she
may be restored to society, a useful and honoured woman. I will
see that thou art paid for the silk." The man readily agreed to
withdraw the prosecution, and said he would have dealt otherwise
by the girl, had he known all the circumstances. " Thou shouldst
have inquired into the merits of the case, my friend," replied Isaac.
" By this kind of thoughtlessness, many a young creature is driven
into the downward path, who might easily have been saved."
The kind-hearted man then went to the hotel and inquired for
Henry Stuart. The servant said his lordship had not yet risen.
" Tell him my business is of importance," said Friend Hopper.
The servant soon returned and conducted him to the chamber.
The nobleman appeared surprised that a plain Quaker should thus
intrude upon his luxurious privacy ; but when he heard his errand.
LYDIA M. CHILD. 137
he blushed deeply, and frankly admitted the truth of the girl's
statement. His benevolent visiter took the opportunity to "bear a
testimony," as the Friends say, against the sin and selfishness of
profligacy. He did it in such a kind and fatherly manner, that
the young man's heart was touched. He excused himself, by say-
ing that he \yoii1'-^ not have tampered with the girl, if he had known
her to be virtuous. " I have done many wrong things," said he,
" but, thank God, no betrayal of confiding innocence rests on my
conscience. I have always esteemed it the basest act of which man
is capable." The imprisonment of the poor girl, and the forlorn
situation in which she had been found, distressed him greatly. And
when Isaac represented that the silk had been stolen for Im sake,
that the girl had thereby lost profitable employment, and was
obliged to return to her distant home, to avoid the danger of expo-
sure, he took out a fifty dollar note, and offered it to pay her
expenses. " Nay," said Isaac, "thou art a very rich man; I see
in thy hand a large roll of such notes. She is the daughter of a
poor widow, and thou hast been the means of doing her great
injury. Give me another."
Lord Henry handed him another fifty dollar note, and smiled as
he said, " You understand your business well. But you have acted
nobly, and I reverence you for it. If you ever visit England, come
to see me. I will give you a cordial welcome, and treat you like a
nobleman."
" Farewell, friend," replied Isaac : " Though much to blame in
this aff'air, thou too hast behaved nobly. Mayst thou be blessed in
domestic life, and trifle no more with the feelings of poor gilds ;
not even with those whom others have betrayed and deserted."
Luckily, the girl had sufficient presence of mind to assume a
false name, when arrested ; by which means her true name was
kept out of the newspapers. "I did this," said she, "for my poor
mother's sake." With the money given by Lord Hem-y, the silk
was paid for, and she was sent home to her mother, well provided
with clothing. Her name and place of residence remain to this day
a secret in the breast of her benefactor.
Several years after the incidents I have related, a lady called
18
138 L^DIA M. CHILD.
at Friend Hopper's liouse, and asked to see him. When he entered
the room, he found a handsomely dressed young matron •with a
blooming boy of five or six years old. She rose to meet him and
her voice choked, as she said, " Friend Hopper, do you know me ?"
He replied that he did not. She fixed her tearful eyes earnestly
upon him, and said, " You once helped me, when in great distress."
But the good missionary of humanity had helped too many in
distress, to be able to recollect her without more precise informa-
tion. With a tremulous voice, she bade her son go into the next
room, for a few minutes ; then dropping on her knees, she hid her
face in his lap, and sobbed out, "I am the girl that stole the silk.
Oh, where should I now be, if it had not been for you !"
When her emotion was somewhat calmed, she told him that she
had married a highly respectable man, a Senator of his native
State. Having a call to visit the city, she had again and again
passed Friend Hopper's house, looking wistfully at the windows to
catch a sight of him ; but when she attempted to enter, her courage
failed.
"But I go away to-morrow," said she, "and I could not leave
the cit}^, without once more seeing and thanking him who saved me
from ruin." She recalled her little boy, and said to him, "Look
at that gentleman, and remember him well ; for he was the best
friend your mother ever had." With an earnest invitation that he
would visit her happy home, and a fervent " God bless you," she
bade her benefactor farewell.
EMMA C. EMBURY.
Mes. Embury is a native of New York, and a daughter of an eminent
physician of that city, James K. Manley, M. D. She was married on the
10th of May, 1828, to Mr. Daniel Embury of Brooklyn, where she has
since resided.
Mrs. Embury has written much, both in prose and verse, and with
equal success in both kinds of writing. Her earlier effusions were
published under the signature of '' lanthe." A volume of them was col-
lected under the title of " Guido, and other Poems." Her tales, like her
poems, have all been published originally in magazines and other perio-
dicals. Were these all collected, they would fill many volumes. The
only volumes formed in this way, thus far, have been, '' Blind Grirl, and
other Tales," " Glimpses of Home Life," and " Pictures of Early Life."
In 1845 she edited a very elegant gift book, called " Nature's Gems,
or American Wild Flowers," with numerous coloured plates, and articles,
both in prose and verse, by herself. In 1846, she published another col-
lection of poems, called " Love's Token Flowers." In 1848, " The Wal-
dorf Family" appeared. It is a fairy tale of Brittany, adapted to the
meridian of the United States and the present age of the world, being
partly a translation and partly original.
If Mrs. Embury never rises so high as some of our female writers some-
times do, no one, on the other hand, who has written so much, approaches
her in the ability of writing uniformly well. She seems to have the
faculty of never being dull. There is, too, a certain gentle amenity of
thought and diction that never forsakes her, taking from the edge of what
might otherwise be harsh, and giving a charm to what might be common-
place. If her stories arc not deeply tragical or thrilling, they are always
beautiful, they always please, they always leave the mind instructed and
the heart better.
(139)
140 EMMA C. EMBURY.
TWO FACES UNDER ONE HOOD.
"The land hath bubbles as the water hath,
And these are of them."
"Who is she?"
" Ay, that is precisely the question which everybody asks, and
nobody can answer."
" She is a splendid-looking creature, be she who she may."
"And her manners are as lovely as her person. Come and dine
with me to-morrow ; I sit directly opposite her at table, so you can
have a fair opportunity of gazing at this new star in our dingy
firmament."
"Agreed; I am about changing my lodgings, and if I like the
company at your house, I may take a room there.
The speakers were two gay and fashionable men : one a student
of law, the other a confidential clerk in a large commercial house.
They belonged to that class of youths, so numerous in New York,
who, while in reality labouring most industriously for a livelihood,
yet take infinite pains to seem idle and useless members of
society ; fellows who at their outset in life try hard to repress a
certain respectability of character, which after a while comes up
in spite of them, and makes them very good sort of men in the
end. The lady who attracted so much of their attention at that
moment, had recently arrived in the city ; and, as she wore the
weeds of widowhood, her solitary position seemed sufficiently ex-
plained. But there was an attractiveness in her appearance and
manners which excited a more than usual interest in the stranger's
history. She had that peculiar fascination which gentlemen regard
as the most exquisite refinement of frank simplicity, but which
ladies, better versed in the intricacies of female nature, always
recognise as the perfection of art. None but an impulsive, warm-
hearted woman, can retain her freshness of feeling and ready
responsive sympathy after five-and-twenty ; and such a woman
never obtains sufficient command over her own sensitiveness to
EMMA C. EMBURY. 141
exhibit the perfect adaptability and uniform amiableness of deport-
ment which are characteristics of the skilful fascinator.
Harry Maurice, the young lawyerling, failed not to fulfil his
appointment with his friend ; and at four o'clock on the following
day, he found himself the vis-d-vis of the bewitching Mrs. Howard,
gazing on her loveliness through the somewhat hazy atmosphere
of a steaming dinner-table. If he was struck with her appearance
when he saw her only stepping from a carriage, he was now com-
pletely bewildered by the whole battery of charms which were
directed against him. A well-rounded and graceful figure, whose
symmetry was set off by a close-fitting dress of black bombazine ;
superb arms gleaming through sleeves of the thinnest crape ; a
neck of dazzling whiteness, only half concealed beneath the folds
of a, fichu a la grand' mere ; features not regularly beautiful, some-
what sharp in outline, but full of expression, and enlivened by the
brightest of eyes and pearliest of teeth, wei'e the most obvious of
her attractions.
The ordinary civilities of the table, proffered with profound respect
by Maurice, and accepted with quiet dignity by the lady, opened
the way to conversation. Before the dessert came on, the first
barriers to acquaintance had been removed, and, somewhat to his
own surprise, Harry Maurice found himself perpetrating bad puns
and uttering gay hon-mots in the full hearing, and evidently to the
genuine amusement, of the lovely widow. When dinner was over,
the trio found themselves in the midst of an animated discussion
respecting the relative capacity for sentiment in men and women.
The subject was too interesting to be speedily dropped, and the
party adjourned to a convenient corner of the drawing-room. As
usual, the peculiar character of the topic upon which they had fallen,
led to the unguarded expression of individual opinions, and of
course to the development of much implied experience. Nothing
could have been better calculated to display Mrs. Howard as one
of the most sensitive, as well as sensible of her sex. She had evi-
dently been one of the victims to the false notions of society. A
premature marriage, an uncongenial partner, and all the thousand-
j^2 EMMA C. EMBURY.
and-one ills attendant upon baffled sentiment, had probably entered
largely into the lady's bygone knowledge of life. Not that she
deigned to confide any of her personal experience to her new friends,
but they possessed active imaginations, and it was easy to make
large inferences from small premises.
Midnight sounded ere the young men remembered that some-
thing was due to the ordinary forms of society, and that they had
been virtually " talking love," for seven hours, to a perfect stranger.
The sudden reaction of feeling, the dread lest they had been expos-
ing their peculiar habits of thought to the eye of ridicule, the
frightful suspicion that they must have seemed most particularly
" fresh" to the lady, struck both the gentlemen at the same moment.
They attempted to apologize, but the womanly tact of Mrs. Howard
spared them all the discomfort of such an awkward explanation.
She reproached herself so sweetly for having suffered her impulsive
nature to beguile her with such unwonted confidence, — she thanked
them so gently for their momentary interest in her "melancholy
recollections of blighted feelings," — she so earnestly implored them
to forget her indiscreet communings with persons " whose singular
congeniality of soul had made her forget that they were strangers,"
that she succeeded in restoring them to a comfortable sense of their
own powers of attraction. Instead of thinking they had acted like
men " afflicted tvitli an extraordinary qtiantity of yoiingness," they
came to the conclusion that Mrs. Howard was one of the most dis-
criminating of her sex ; and the tear which swam in her soft eyes
as she gave them her hand in parting, added the one irresistible
charm to their previous bewilderment.
The acquaintance so auspiciously begun was not allowed to
languish, Harry Maurice took lodgings in the same house ; and
thus, without exposing the fair widow to invidious remark, he was
enabled to enjoy her society with less restraint. Unlike most of
his sudden fancies, he found his liking for this lady " to grow by
what it fed on." She looked so very lovely in her simple white
morning dress and pretty French cap, and her manners partook so
agreeably of the simplicity and easy negligence of her breakfast
attire, that she seemed more charming than ever. Indeed, almost
E JIM A C. EMBURY. I43
every one in the house took a fancy to her. She won the hearts
of the ladies by her unbounded fondness for their children, and her
consummate tact in inventing new games for them ; while her entire
unconsciousness of her own attractions, and apparent indifference
to admiration, silenced for a time all incipient jealousy. The
gentlemen could not but be pleased with a pretty woman Avho was
so sweet-tempered and so little exacting ; while her peculiar talent
for putting every one in good humour with themselves, — a talent,
•which in less skilful hands would have been merely an adroit power
of flattery, — sufficiently accounted for her general influence.
There was only one person who seemed proof against Mrs.
Howard's spell. This was an old bank clerk, who for forty yeai's
had occupied the same post, and stood at the same desk, encounter-
ing no other changes than that of a new ledger for an old one, and
hating every innovation in morals and manners with an intensity
singularly at variance with his usual quietude, or rather stagnation
of feeling. For nearly half his life he had occupied the same
apartment, and nothing but a fire or an earthquake would have been
sufiicient to dislodge him. Many of the transient residents in the
house knew him only by the sobriquet of " the Captain ;" and the
half-dictatorial, half-whimsical manner in which, with the usual
privilege of a humourist, he ordered trifling matters about the
house, was probably the origin of the title. When the ladies who
presided at the head of the establishment first opened their house
for the reception of boarders, he had taken up his quarters there,
and they had all grown old together ; so it was not to be wondered
at if he had somewhat the manner of a master.
The Captain had looked with an evil eye upon Mrs. Howard from
the morning after her arrival, when he had detected her French
dressing-maid in the act of peeping into his boots, as they stood
outside of the chamber-door. This instance of curiosity, which he
could only attribute to an unjustifiable anxiety to be acquainted
with the name of the owner of the said boots, was such a flagrant
impropriety, besides being such a gros-s violation of his privilege of
privacy, that he could not forgive it. He made a formal complaint
of the matter to Mrs. Howard, and earnestly advised her to dismiss
144 EMMA C. EMBURY.
SO prying a servant. The lady pleaded her attachment to a faith-
ful attendant, who had left her native France for pure love of her,
and besought him to forgive a first and venial error. The Captain
had no faith in this being a first fault, and as for its veniality, if
she had put out an "I," and called it a venal affair, it would have
better suited his ideas of her. He evidently suspected both the
mistress and the maid ; and a prejudice in his mind was like a
thistle-seed, — it might wing its way on gossamer pinions, but once
planted, it was sure to produce its crop of thorns.
In vain the lady attempted to conciliate him ; in vain she tried
to humour his whims, and pat and fondle his hobbies. He was
proof against all her allurements, and whenever by some new or
peculiar grace she won unequivocal expressions of admiration from
the more susceptible persons around her, a peevish "Fudge!"
would resound most emphatically from the Captain's lips.
" Pray, sir, will you be so good as to inform me what you meant
by the offensive monosyllable you chose to utter this morning, when
I addressed a remark to Mrs. Howard?" said Harry Maurice to
him, upon a certain occasion, when the old gentleman had seemed
more than usually caustic and observing.
The Captain looked slowly up from his newspaper : " I am old
enough, young man, to be allowed to talk to myself, if I please."
"I suppose you meant to imply that I was ^ green,' and stood a
fair chance of being ^ done hroivn,'' '' said Harry, mischievously,
well knowing his horror of all modern slang.
" I am no judge of coZoMrs, "said he, drily, " but I can tell a fool
from a knave when I see them contrasted. . In old times it was the
woman's privilege to play the fool, but the order of things is re-
versed now-a-days." So saying, he drew on his gloves, and walked
out with his usual clock-like regularity.
Three months passed away, and Harry Maurice was " full five
fathoms deep" in love with the beautiful stranger. Yet he knew
no more of her personal history than on the day when they first
met, and the old question of " Who is she?" was often in his mind,
though the respect growing out of a genuine attachment checked it
ere the words rose to his lips. He heard her speak of plantations
EMMA C. EMBURY. 145
at tlie South, and on more than one occasion he had been favoured
with a commission to transact banking business for her. He had
mado several deposits in her name, and had drawn out several small
sums for her use. He knew therefore that she had moneys at com-
mand, but of her family and connexions he was profoundly ignorant.
He was too much in love, however, to hesitate long on this point.
Young, ardent, and possessed of that j^seiido-romance, which, like
French gilding, so much resembles the 7'eal thing that many prefer
it, as being cheaper and more durable, he was particularly pleased
with the apparent disinterestedness of his affection. Too poor to
marry unless he found a bride possessed of fortune, he was now pre-
cisely in the situation where alone he could feel himself on the
same footing with a wealthy wife. He had an established position
in society, his family were among the oldest and most respectable
residents of the State, and the offer of his hand under such circum-
stances to a lone, unfriended stranger, took away all appearance
of cupidity from the suitor, while it constituted a claim upon the
lady's gratitude as well as affection. With all his assumed self-
confidence, Maurice was in reality a very modest fellow, and he
had many a secret misgiving as to her opinion of his merits ; for
he was one of those youths who use puppyism as a cloak for their
diffidence. He wanted to assure himself of her preference before
committing himself by a declaration, and to do this required a
degree of skill in womancraft that far exceeded his powers.
In the mean time the prejudices of the Captain gained greater
strength, and although there was no open war between him and the
fair widow, there was perpetual skirmishing between them. Indeed
it could not well be otherwise, considering the decided contrast be-
tween the two parties. The Captain was prejudiced, dogmatic, and
full of old-fashioned notions. A steady adherent of ruffled shirts,
Avell-starched collars, and shaven chins, he regarded with contempt
the paltry subterfuges of modern fashion. At five-and-twenty he
had formed his habits of thinking and acting, and at sixty he was
only the same man grown older. A certain indolence of temper
prevented him from investigating anything new, and he was therefore
19
146 EMMA C. EMBURY.
content to deny all that did not conform to his early notions. He
hated fashionable slang, despised a new-modelled costume, scorned
modern morality, and ranked the crime of wearing a moustache and
imperial next to the seven deadly sins. His standard of female
perfection was a certain "ladye-love" of his youth, who might have
served as a second Harriet Byron to some new Sir Charles Grau-
dison. After a courtship of ten years (during which time he never
ventured upon a greater familiarity than that of pressing the tip^
of her fingers to his lips on a New Year's day), the lady died, and
the memory of his early attachment, though something like a rose
encased in ice, %yas still the one flower of his life.
Of course, the freedom of modern manners was shocking to him,
and in Mrs. Howa^rd he beheld the impersonation of vanity,
coquetry, and falsehood. Besides, she interfered with his privi-
leges. She made suggestions about certain arrangements at table;
she pointed out improvements in several minor household comforts;
she asked for the liver-wing of the chicken, which had heretofore
been his peculiar perquisite, as carver ; she played the accordeon,
and kept an Eolian harp in the window of her room, which unfor-
tunately adjoined his ; and, to crown all, she did not hesitate to
ask him questions as coolly as if she was totally unconscious of his
privileges of privacy. Pie certainly had a most decided grudge
against the lady, and she, though apparently all gentleness and
meekness, yet had so adroit a -way of saying and doing disagreea-
ble things to the old gentleman, that it was easy to infer a mutual
dislike.
The Captain's benevolence had been excited by seeing Harry
Maurice on the highroad to being victimized, and he actually took
some pains to make the young man see things in their true light.
" Pray, Mr. Maurice, do you spend all your mornings at your
office ?" said he one day.
" Certainly, sir."
" Then you differ from most young lawyers," was the gruff reply.
"Perhaps I have better reasons than many others for my close
application. While completing my studies, I am enabled to earn
EMMA C. EMBURY. 147
a moderate salary by •writing for Mr. , and this is of some
consequence to me."
The old man looked inquiringly, and Maurice ansAyered the
silent question.
" You know enough of our family, sir, to be aware that my
father's income died with him. A few hundred dollars per annum
are all that remains for the support of my mother and an invalid
sister, who reside in Connecticut. Of course, if I would not
encroach upon their small means, I must do something for my
own maintenance."
The Captain's look grew pleasanter as he replied, " I do not
mean to be guilty of any impertinent intrusion into your affairs,
but it seems to me that you share the weakness of your fellows, by
thus working like a slave and spending like a prince."
Maurice laughed. " Perhaps my princely expenditures would
scarcely bear as close a scrutiny as my slavish toil. I really work,
but it often happens that I only seem to spend."
" I understand you, but you are worthy of better things ; you
should have courage to throw off the trammels of fashion, and live
economically, like a man of sense, until fortune favours you."
The young man was silent for a moment, then, as if to change
the subject, asked, " What was your object in inquiring about my
morning walks ?"
" I merely wanted to know if you ever met Mrs. Howard in
Broadway in the morning."
"Never, sir ; but I am so seldom there, that it would be strange
if I should encounter an acquaintance among its throngs."
" I am told she goes out 'every morning at nine o'clock, and does
not return until three."
"I suppose she is fond of walking."
"Humph ! I rather suspect she has some regular business."
" Quite likely," said Maurice, laughing heartily, "perhaps she
is a bank clerk, — occupied from nine to three, you say,— just bank-
ing hours."
The Captain looked sternly in the young man's face, then utter-
ing his emphatic "Fudge!" turned upon his heel, and whistling
148 EMMA C. EMBURY.
"A Frog he "would a -wooing go," sauntered out of the room,
thoroughly disgusted with the -whole race of modern young men.
The old gentleman's methodical habits of business had -won for
him the confidence of every one, and as an almost necessary con-
sequence had involved him in the responsibility of several trustee-
ships. There -were sundry old ladies and orphans -whose pecuniary
aflfairs he had managed for years with the punctuality of a Dutch
clock. Before noon, on the days -VN'hen their interest moneys -were
due, he always had the satisfaction of paying them into the hands
of the owners. It was only for some such purpose that he ever
left his post during business hours ; but the claims of the widow
and the fatherless came before those of the ledger, and he some-
times stole an hour from his daily duties to attend to these private
trusts.
Not long after he had sought to awaken his young friend's suspi-
cions respecting Mrs. Howard, one of these occasions occurred.
At midday he found himself seated in a pleasant drawing-room,
between an old lady and a young one, both of whom regarded him
as the very best of men. He had transacted his business and was
about taking leave, Avhen he was detained to partake of a lunch ;
and, while he was engaged in washing down a biscuit with a glass
of octogenarian Madeira, the young lady was called out of the room.
She was absent about fifteen minutes, and when she returned,
her eyes were full of tears. A pile of gold lay on the table
(the Captain would have thought it ungentlemanlike to offer dirty
paper to ladies), and taking a five-dollar piece from the heap, she
again vanished. This time she did not quite close the door behind
her, and it was evident she was conversing with some claimant upon
her charity. Her compassionate tones were distinctly heard in the
drawing-room, and when she ceased speaking, a remarkably soft.
clear, liquid voice responded to her kindness. There was some-
thing in these sounds which awakened the liveliest interest in the
old gentleman. He started, fidgeted in his chair, and at length,
fairly mastered by his curiosity, he stole on tiptoe to the door. He
saAV only a drooping figure, clad in mourning, and veiled from head
to foot, who, repeating her thanks to her young benefactress,
EMMA C. EMBURY. 149
githerccl up a roll of papers from the hall table, and withdrew
before he could obtain a glimpse of her face.
"What impostor have you been feeing now?" he asked, as the
young lady entered the room, holding in her hand several cheap
French engravings.
"No impostor, my dear sir, but a most interesting woman."
" Oh, I dare say she was very interesting and interested too, no
doubt ; but how do you know she was no swindler?"
"Because she shed tears, real tears."
" Humph ! I suppose she put her handkerchief to her eyes and
snivelled."
" No, indeed, I saw the big drops roll down her cheeks, and I
never can doubt such an evidence of genuine sorrow ; people can't
force tears."
""What story could she tell which was worth five dollars?"
" Her husband, who was an importer of French stationary and
engravings, has recently died insolvent, leaving her burdened with
the support of two children and an infirm mother. His creditors
have seized everything, excepting a few unsaleable prints, by the
sale of which she is now endeavouring to maintain herself inde-
pendently."
" Are the prints worth anything ?"
"Not much."
" Then she is living upon charity quite as much as if she begged
from door to door ; it is only a new method of levying contribu-
tions upon people with more money than brains."
" The truth of her statement is easily ascertained. I have pro-
mised to visit her, and if I find her what she seems, I shall supply
her with employment as a seamstress."
" Will you allow me to accompany you on your visit ?"
" Certainly, my dear sir, upon condition that if you find her
story true, you will pay the penalty of your mistrust in the shape
of a goodly donation."
" Agreed ! I'll pay if she turns out to be an object of charity.
But that voice of hers, — I don't believe there are two such voices in
this great city."
150 EMMA C. EMBURY.
What notion had now got into the crotchety head of the Cap-
tain no one could tell ; but he certainly was in wonderful spirits
that day at dinner. He was in such good humour that he was even
civil to Mrs. Howard, and sent his own bottle of wine to Harry
Maurice. He looked a little confounded when Mrs. Howard,
taking advantage of his " melting mood," challenged him to a
game at backgammon, and it was almost with his old gruffness that
he refused her polite invitation. He waited long enough to see
her deeply engaged in chess with her young admirer, and then
hurried away to fulfil his engagement with the lady who had pro-
mised to let him share her errand of mercy.
He was doomed to be disappointed, hoAvever. They found the
house inhabited by the unfortunate Mrs. Harley : it was a low one-
story rear building, in Street, the entrance to which was
througli a covered alley leading from the street. It Avas a neat,
comfortable dwelling, and the butcher's shop in front of it screened
it entirely from public view. But the person of whom they were
in quest Avas not at home. Her mother and two rosy children,
hoAvever, seemed to corroborate her story, and as the woman seemed
disposed to be rather communicative, the old gentleman fancied he
had noAV got upon a true trail. But an incautious question from
him sealed the Avoman's lips, and he found himself quite astray
again. Finding nothing could be gained, he hurried aAvay, and
entering his OAvn door, found Mrs. HoAvard still deeply engaged in
her game of chess, though she did look up Avith a SAveet smile Avhen
she saAV him.
A feAV days afterwards his young friend informed him that she
had been more successful, haA'ing found Mrs. Harley just preparing
to go out on her daily round of charity-seeking.
When suspicions are once aroused in the mind of a man like the
Captain, it is strange hoAv industriously he puts together the
minutest links in the chain of evidence, and how curiously he
searches for such links, as if the unmasking of a rogue was really
a matter of the highest importance. The Captain began to groAV
more reserved and incommunicative than ever. He uttered oracu-
lar apothegms and dogmatisms until he became positiA-ely disagreea-
EMMA C. EMBURY. 151
bb, and at last, as if to show an utter aberration of mind, lie
dotermined to obtain leave of absence for a week. It was a most
remarkable event in his history, and as such excited much specula-
tion. But the old gentleman's lips were closely buttoned ; he
quietly packed a valise, and set out upon, what he called, a country
excursion.
It was curious to notice how much he was missed in the house.
Some missed his kindliness ; some liis quaint humorousness ; some
his punctuality, by which they set their watches ; and Mrs. Howard
seemed actually to feel the want of that sarcastic tone which made
the sauce piquante of her dainty food. Where he actually went
no one knew, but in four days he returned, looking more bilious
and acting more crotchety than ever ; but with an exhilaration of
spirits that showed the marvellous effect of country air.
The day after his return, two men, wrapped in cloaks and wear-
ing slouched hats, entered the butcher's shop in Street. Giv-
ing a nod in passing to the man at the counter, the two proceeded
up stairs, and took a seat at one of the back windows. The blinds
were carefully drawn down, and they seated themselves as if to
note all that passed in the low, one-story building, which opened
upon a narrow paved alley directly beneath the window.
" Do you know that we shall have a fearful settlement to make
if this turns out to be all humbug ?" said the younger man, as they
took their station.
"Any satisfaction which you are willing to claim, I am ready to
make, in case I am mistaken; but — look there."
As he spoke, a female wearing a large black cloak and thick veil
entered the opposite house. Instantly a shout of joy burst from
the children, and as the old woman rose to drop the blind at the
window, they caught sight of the two merry little ones pulling at
the veil and cloak of the mysterious lady.
"Did you see her face?" asked the old man.
"No, it was turned away from the window."
"Then have patience for a while."
Nearly an hour elapsed, and then the door again opened to admit
the egress of a person, apparently less of stature than the woman
15-2 EMMA C. EMBURY.
who had so recently entered, more drooping in figure, and clad in
rusty and shabby mourning.
" One more kiss, mamma, and don't forget the sugar-plums when
you come back," cried one of the children.
The woman stooped to give the required kiss, lifting her veil as
she did so, and revealing the whole of her countenance. A groan
burst from the lips of one of the watchers, which was answered by
a low chuckle from his companion ; for both the Captain and Harry
Maurice had recognised in the mysterious lady the features of the
bewitching Mrs. Howard.
There is little more to tell. The question of "Who is she?"
now needed no reply. Mrs. HoAvard, Mrs. Harley, and some dozen
other aliases, were the names of an exceedingly genteel adventu-
ress, who is yet vividly remembered by the charitable whom she
victimized a few years since. She had resided in several large
cities, and was drawing a very handsome income from her ingenu-
ity. Her love of pleasure being as great as her taste for money-
making, she devised a plan for living two lives at once, and her
extreme mobility of feature, and exquisite adroitness, enabled her
to carry out her schemes. How far she would have carried the
affair with her young lover it is impossible to say, but the probabi-
lity is that the "love affair" was only an agreeable episode "^;owr
passer le tetns," and that Avhatever might have been the gentle-
man's intentions, the lady Avas guiltless of ulterior views.
The Captain managed the affair his own way. He did not wish
to injure the credit of the house, which he designed to call his home
for the rest of his life, and therefore Mrs. Howard received a quiet
intimation to quit, which she obeyed with her usual unruffled sweet-
ness. Harry Maiirice paid a visit to his mother and sister in the
country, and on his return found it desirable to change his lodgings.
The Captain kept the story to himself for several years, but after
Maurice was married, and settled in his domestic habitudes, he felt
himself privileged to use it as a warning to all gullible young men,
against bewitching widows, and mysterious fellow-boarders.
MARY S. B. SHINDLER.
(late MRS. MART S. B. DANA.)
The Southern muse lias had few harps that have awakened a warmer
echo than that of Mrs. Mary S. B. Dana, now Mrs. Shindler. Born and
nurtured upon Southern soil, her fame has been cherished with peculiar
affection in the region of her birth, while her name has been no unfami-
liar or unwelcome guest in Northern hearts and homes.
Mrs. Shindler was born in Beaufort, South Carolina, February 15, 1810.
Her maiden name was Mary Stanley Bunce Palmer. She was the daugh-
ter of the Rev. Benjamin M. Palmer, D. D., who at the time of her birth
was pastor of the Independent or Congregational church in Beaufort. In
1814 her parents removed to Charleston, her father having been called to
the charge of the Independent church in that city. Her father's congre-
gation consisted principally of planters of the neighbourhood, who spent
their summers in the city, and their winters upon their plantations.
In reference to this period of her life, Mrs. Shindler remarks, " I well
remember the delight with which we children used to anticipate our spring
and Christmas holidays, which we were sure to spend upon some neigh-
bouring plantation, released from all our city trammels, running perfectly
wild, as all city children were expected to do, contracting sudden and vio-
lent intimacies in all the negro houses about Easter and Christmas times,
that we might have a store of eggs for sundry purposes, for which we gave
in exchange the most gaudy cotton handkerchiefs that could be bought in
Charleston. It was during these delightful rural visits that what little
poetry I have in my nature was fostered and developed, and at an early
age I became sensible of a something within me which often brought tears
into my eyes when I could not, for the life of me, express my feelings.
The darkness and loneliness of our vast forests filled me with indescribable
emotions, and above all other sounds, the music of the thousand Eolian
20 (lo3>
154 MARY S. B. SHINDLER.
Larps sighing and wailing through a forest of pines, was most affecting to
my youthful heart."
Besides the advantage of the best Southern society, she had also the
opportunity of most extensive acquaintance with clergymen and others
from various Northern States — the hospitality of her parents being
unbounded.
She was educated by the 3Iisses Ramsay, the daughters of Dr. David
Ramsay, the historian, and grand-daughters, on the maternal side, of Mr.
Laurens, who figured so conspicuously in the early history of our Inde-
pendence. The summer of 1825 her parents spent in Hartford, Conn., and
she was placed for six months at the seminary of the Rev. 3Ir. Emerson,
in the neighbouring town of Wethersfield. In 1826 she was placed at a
young ladies' seminary in Elizabethtown, New Jersey, with the expecta-
tion of remaining eighteen months, in the hope that so long a residence
in the North would invigorate her constitution, which was rather delicate;
but she pined for her Southern home, and at the expiration of six months
was allowed to return to the arms of her parents. She subsequently spent
several months at the seminary of the Rev. Claudius Herrick, in New
Haven.
On the 19th of June, 1835, she became the wife of Mr. Charles E.
Dana, and accompanied him to the city of New York, where they resided
for two or three years. During this time she occasionally wrote little
pieces of poetry, but did not publish them. Before her marriage, how-
ever, she had written considerably for the "Rose-Bud," a juvenile period-
ical published in Charleston by Mrs. Gilman.
The tone of subdued melancholy that pervades her first publications is
explained by the sad story of her afflictions, which can be told in no way
so well as in her own simple and affecting language.
"In the fall of the year 1838," says she, in a letter now before me,
"accompanied by my parents, we removed to the West. I was then the
mother of a beautiful boy, who was born in May, 1837. We spent the
winter in Cincinnati, and, as soon as the river rose in the spring, we all
went to New Orleans. While in that city, a letter was received from
Alabama, acquainting my parents with the fact that my only brother, who
was a physician, and was on a tour of inspection for the purpose of finding a
pleasant location for the practice of his profession, was in Greene county,
sick, and failing rapidly. A favourite sister had died of consumption at
my house in New York, just a week after the birth of our little boy, and
the news of my brother's illness filled us with the saddest apprehensions.
The letter, too, bore rather an old date, having first being mailed to Cin-
cinnati, and forwarded from thence to New Orleans. My afflicted parents
immediately hastened to the spot, but they arrived too late even to take
a last fond look upon their only son. He had been buried several days
MARY S. B. SIIINDLER. 155
when tbey arrived. Almost heart-broken, yet submissive to the dreadful
stroke, they returned to New Orleans, but instead of accompanying us in
our western journey, they decided to return to Charleston.
" In a short time we also embarked in a steamer for St. Louis, where we
remained for a month or six weeks. We then ascended the Mississippi as
far as Blooraington, Iowa ; at which place we landed, and we were so much
pleased with the appearance of the place, that we decided on spending the
summer there. The place had been settled about three year.s, and con-
tained nearly or quite three hundred inhabitants, and had, so far, proved
quite healthy. But the summer of 1839 was a very sickly one. There
was a long-continued drought; the Mississippi river was unusually low,
and the consequence was the prevalence of congestive fevers in all that
region. Indeed, throughout the whole West and South, it was a summer
long to be remembered.
" I was the first to take the fever, and had scarcely recovered, when our
little Charlie, our only child, became alarmingly ill. The only experienced
physician in the village was likewise ill, so that we laboured under a
serious disadvantage. After lingering for a fortnight the dear little fellow
died. Two days before his death, my husband was taken with the same
fever, and also died, after an illness of only four days. Nothing but the
consolations of religion could have supported me under this double bereave-
ment. Left entirely alone, thousands of miles away from every relative I
had on earth, there was no human arm on which I could lean, and I was
to rely on God alone. It was well, perhaps, for me, that I was just so
situated. It has taught me a les.son that I have never forgotten, that our
heavenly Father will never lay upon us a heavier burthen than he will
give us strength to bear. And hei'e I must record my warm and grateful
tribute to the genuine kindness and sympathy of Western hearts. If I
had been among my own kindred, I could not have received more earnest
and affectionate attention.
'' As soon as I could settle my affairs, and find suitable protection, I
started for my distant home, longing to lay my aching head on the bosom
of my own dear mother, and to be encircled in my father's arms.
" I was received in St. Louis with the greatest kindness, and remained
there for a week. Placed under the charge of a kind physician, we took
a steamer for Cincinnati, but found the river so low, it would be next to
impossible to reach there. After sticking fast upon every sand-bar we
encountered for a day or two, the captain all the while assuring us that
we should soon arrive at Cincinnati, we determined to t-ake advantage of
the first boat that pas.sed us, and return to the Mississippi. Nor was it
long before we were enabled to put this design into execution.
" In New Orleans the fever was raging to an alarming degree. My
kind protector had now reached his home, and could accompany me no
156 MARY S. B. SHINDLER.
further, and I could hear of no one who was going in my direction at that
season of the year — the human tide M'as all setting the other way. At
length a friend called to inform me that a schooner was about to sail for
Pensacola. Knowing my intense anxiety to reach home, he had called to
let me know of the opportunity, thinking that from Pensacola I would be
able to reach Charleston without difficulty, though, for his own part, he
strongly advised me not to attempt going in the schooner. But I had
grown desperate, and caught eagerly at the proposal. Accordingly, that
very afternoon, I was conducted to the schooner by my friend, and intro-
duced to the captain, who kindly promised to take good care of me. I
must confess my heart almost failed me when, after crossing the deck on
the tops of barrels, with which the vessel was loaded, I dived into a cabin,
dark, low, and musty, and found that I was the only female on board.
"But the case was a desperate one, and I submitted to necessity, but
bade my friend 'farewell' with a heavy heart. We were towed down the
canal by horses to the entrance of Lake Ponchartrain, where we were
quietly to lie till the next morning. Never shall I forget the suiFcrings
of that dreadful night. The cabin was infested with roaches of an enor-
mous size, and as soon as candles were lighted, they came out of their
hiding-places by hundreds and thou.sands, and literally covered the bed
where I was to sleep. Mosquitos also were swarming around ; but this
was not all. 1 was taken so ill that it seemed as if I could not live till
morning. I shudder even now when I think of it.
"By daylight I called the captain to my side and begged him to get
me back to the city. He said there was a schooner which had just come
in from the lake, and was going up to the city, and offered to put me
aboard of her. I joyfully consented, and he took me in his arms like an
infant, carried me on board of the newly-arrived schooner, and seated me
in a chair on a pile of wet boards, of which her cargo appeared to consist.
After two or three hours of intense suffering, for I was really very sick,
I once more reached my friends in New Orleans, who were overjoyed to
see me, and who fully determined to prevent me, by force, if necessary,
from making any more such travelling experiments. In a few days the
steamer between New Orleans and Pascagoula commenced running, and
finding company, I at length reached home in safety."
To give herself mental occupation, she now began to indulge in literary
pursuits. She had always been very fond of music, and finding very little
piano music that was suitable for Sunday playing, she had for several
years been in the habit of adapting sacred words to any song which par-
ticularly pleased her. To wean her from her sorrows, her parents encou-
raged her to continue the practice, and this was the origin of the first
work she published, "The Southern Harp." At first she had no idea of
publishing these little efi"asions, but having written quite a number of
them, she was advised to print a few for the use of herself and friends.
MARY S. B. S HIND LER. 157
The work, however grew under her hands, till finally, becoming much
interested in the design, she decided to publish, not only the words, but
the music. She visited New York for this purpose in 1840, and the work
appeared early in 1841.
She now used her pen almost incessantly. It is not wonderful that her
thoughts ran principally upon the subject of affliction, nor that the scenes
through which she had passed during her short sojourn at the West, should
have formed the theme of her muse.
In the summer of 1841 she again visited New York for the purpose of
publishing a volume of poems. This appeared under the title of " The
Parted Family, and other Poems." She undertook, also, at the request
of her publishers, to prepare another volume similar in design to the
" Southern Harp," to be published under the title of the " Northern
Harp." Both of these publications succeeded well. They passed through
several large editions, and in a pecuniary way were very profitable, more
than twenty-five thousand copies having been sold.
Her next publication was a prose work, entitled " Charles Morton ; or,
the Young Patriot;" a tale of the American Revolution. This, also, was
very successful. It was issued in the early part of the year 1843.
She nest published two tales for seamen. The title of the first was
"The Young Sailor," and of the other, " Forecastle Tom."
About this time she experienced a change in her religious views, which
attracted considerable attention, and led to her next publication. She
had been bred a Calvinist, but during the year 1844 she began to enter-
tain doubts about the doctrine of the Trinity, and finally, to the grief of
her revered parents, and numerous friends, early in the year 1845, she
avowed herself a Unitarian.
The matter having become one of some notoriety, she felt called upon
to publish a volume of " Letters to Relatives and Friends," stating the
process through which her mind had passed. This, by far the largest of
her prose volumes, appeared in Boston, in the fall of 1845, and was re-
published in London. It went through several editions, and was finally
stereotyped.
In 1847 she wrote several " Southern Sketches," the first of which
appeared in the " Union Magazine" for October of that year.
At this time another severe affliction befell her. This was the sudden
death, within two or three weeks of each other, of both her parents, at
Orangeburg, South Carolina.
On the 18th of May, 1848, she became united in marriage to her pre-
sent husband, the Rev. Robert D. Shindler, a clergyman of the Episcopal
Church. Her views on the subject of the Trinity have also experienced
a change, or rather have reverted to their original condition, and she is
now in communion with the church of her husband.
158, MARY S. B. SniNDLER.
In April, 1850, Mr. and Mrs. Shindler removed to Upper Marlboro',
Maryland, near to his native place, which was Shephardstown, Virginia.
In August, 1851, they removed to Shelbyville, Kentucky, Mr. Shindler
having accepted a Professorship in Shelby College.
A DAY IN NE\y YORK.
Here I am in New York — the great, busy, bustling world of
New York ; and after my year's rustication in a quiet Southern
village, you may be sure that my poor little head is almost turned !
Even now, while I am writing, there is a diabolical hand-organ,
grinding under the window its mechanical music, with a disgusting
little monkey — a caricature upon poor humanity — playing its "fan-
tastic tricks before high heaven !" Do not, I entreat you, suppose
me in a pet, for after all, I acknowledge that hand-organs, and
even monkeys, have their uses, as well as their abuses, and may,
by a serious philosophizing mind, be turned to very good account;
but, just at this moment, I may perhaps be pardoned for wishing
them somewhere else.
Ah ! now comes a band of music — real music ! breathed through
various instruments by the breath of human beings, playing in
accordance, keeping mutual time, obeying the same harmonious
impulses, now delighting the ear and affecting the heart by a soft
and plaintive strain, and now stirring the spirit by a burst of mar-
tial melody ; yes, that is music ; there is mind, there is soul, there
is impulse, there is character in what I now hear, and you must
excuse me while I hasten to the open w^indow, and linger there till
I catch the faintest echo of the rapidly-retreating harmony.
There ! It is gone — like so many of life's pleasures — only to linger
in the memory. Well ! God be praised for that!
Day before yesterday I visited Greenwood, your beautiful ceme-
tery. Oh, I wish I could reveal to you all the secret and varied
workings of the mind within, as I Avandered with a chosen friend —
a kindred spirit — through that beautiful and consecrated ground.
Thoughts too big for utterance — too spiritual and mysterious to be
clothed in words — came crowding thick and fast upon me, till at
length I could contain myself no longer, and the tide of softened
MARY S. B. SIIINDLER. 159
feeling overflowed its barriers ; for tears, not bitter tears, came
trickling down each cheek. To add to the solemn interest of the
occasion, the bell was tolling for a funeral. It was the funeral of
a little Southern boj, who had died while pursuing his studies in
one of the city schools. His young school companions, all in uni-
form, and each Avlth a badge of mourning hanging from the left
elbow, marched solemnly and silently to deposit the mortal remains
of the youthful stranger in his Northern grave ! My busy mind
instantly wandered to Ms home and mine, in the land of the sunny
South ! Had he a father ? Had he a mother ? Had he brothers
and sisters who were yet to learn the mournful tidings that the
dear little fellow who had left them, recently perhaps, in all the
healthful buoyancy of his young existence, had closed his eyes in
a land of strangers, and was sleeping his last sleep so far away
from his Southern home ? Or, Avas he an orphan, whose young
days had been shaded by sorrow ? Then, perhaps, he had gone to
join the sainted dead ! Then, perhaps, he had gone to complete a
family in heaven ! Glorious, delightful, soothing thought ! At
any rate, I knew that his young spirit was in the keeping of an
infinitely-merciful Father, and there, well cared for, I was content
to leave the little Southern boy.
Near the entrance, sat a lady clad in the habiliments of the
deepest mourning. She had been, probably, or Avas going, to the
grave of some loved one, "to weep there," as Jesus did ! She had
been mitigating or increasing the pangs of separation by the views
and feelings she had been indulging at that loved one's grave !
Perhaps her sorrow Avas a sanctified sorrow, and she had meekly
yielded up the chosen one of her heart, at the summons of her
Heavenly Father, resolved to wait patiently for the period of a
blissful reunion. If so, she had experienced the truth of the
Saviour's words — ^'■Blessed are they that mourn, for they shall be
comforted !" But if not, if, in the insanity of grief, she had been
dAvelling on the past, disregarding the injunction of the apostle to
forget the things which are behind, and press forward to those
which are before, how doubly was she to be pitied ! Ah, mourning
heart ! didst thou but know that Avhen Ave A'iew the matter rightly,
160 . MARY S. B. SHINDLER.
the dead are with us, more potently and beneficially than they
were in life, thy sorrow would be turned into a pensive joy, creating
within thee and around thee precious and purifying influences !
I pass by the splendid monuments which attract the attention
of every stranger, to mention one which arrested my footsteps by
its exceeding simplicity and beauty. It was a plain white marble
shaft, upon which was inscribed one single word, and that was
"Mary." I always loved the name, but was never before so
struck with its unpretending beauty. It was the name of the
virgin-m,other of our Lord, it was the name of her whom Jesus
loved, and of the erring one whose pardon he pronounced so gra-
ciously. And here it Avas, to designate the resting-place of a
youthful wife who had but recently departed to her eternal home.
What a world of meaning must that one word convey to the
bereaved husband, when, solitary as he must be now, his lonely
footsteps seek that sacred spot ! Let me tell thee, sorrowing hus-
band, thy Mary is not lost to thee, she has but "gone before;"
and if thou hearest and hcedest well the voice which issues from
that marble tablet, it shall be well with thee ! They never can be
lost to us, whose memories we love !
Here lie thine ashes, dearest Mary !
While thy spirit shines above ;
And this earth so fresh and verdant,
But reminds us of thy love.
Those vrho knew thy heart, sweet Mary!
Knew how pure its throbbings were';
O'er that heart, which throbs no longer,
Memory sheds her purest tear.
Yes, the tender mourning, Mary !
And the blank felt in thy home.
Live as freshly in our bosoms
As the rose-leaves o'er thy tomb. <
Thou wert ever gentle, Mary !
All our comfort and our pride ;
Now that thou art gone to heaven,
Oh! to heaven our spirits guide I
MARY S. B. SHINDLER. 161
Be our guardian angel, Mary!
Be our brilliant polar star !
From earth's storms, and clouds, and darkness,
Lead us to bright realms afar.
And when from earth's loud turmoil, Mary !
To this holy spot we turn,
Let the mem'ry of thy meekness
Teach us, loved one, how to mourn !
I saw, too, the monument ■which has been recently erected over
the grave of Dr. Abeel, the Chinese missionary. I knew and loved
him well, and yet my feelings, when I stood beside his grave, had
not a tinge of sadness ! Indeed, why should they have ? He had
fought the good fight, he had finished his course, he had kept the
faith, and I knew that he was in actual possession of his crown of
glory ! It was, then, a time and a place for joy and for triumph,
and not for mourning and despondency. The Christian hero had
gone to his reward, was that a cause for sadness ?
I have not emptied my heart of half its tide of feeling, but I must
forbear ; time would fail me, and perhaps your patience also, were
I to attempt it. Have you ever noticed, in your Greenwood ram-
bles, a deeply-shaded spot, most appropriately labelled " Twilight
Dell?" 'Tis there I would like to lay my weary head, when the
toils and cares of life are over ! Next to a grave in the far-distant
West, Avhere some of my loved ones sleep, or in my own Southern
home, where my kindred lie, would I prefer one in the beautifully-
shaded Twilight Dell of Greenwood.
21
CAROLINE LEE HENTZ.
Miss Caroline Lee WHiTraa (the maidea name of Mrs. Hentz) was
born in the romantic village of Lancaster, Massachusetts. She is the
daughter of General John Whiting, and the sister of the brave General
Whiting, distinguished alike for his literary attainments, and for his ser-
vices in the army of the United States. She was married in 1825, to
Mr. N. M. Hentz, a French gentleman, of rich and varied talents, who
then conducted a seminary of education at Northampton, in conjunction
with Mr. Bancroft, the historian. In the early days of their married life,
Mr. Hentz was appointed Professor in the College at Chapel Hill, North
Carolina. He accepted the honourable post, and remained there several
years. Thence they removed to Covington, Kentucky, where she wrote
the tragedy of " De Lara, or the Moorish Bride." This play was offered
as a competitor for a prize of five hundred dollars, and was successful. It
was performed at the Arch Street Theatre, Philadelphia, and I believe
elsewhere, with much applause, and for several successive nights. The copy-
right having reverted to Mrs. Hentz, it was subsequently published in
book form.
The family, after living awhile at Covington, removed to Cincinnati,
and thence to Florence, Alabama. At this latter place they had for nine
years a flourishing Female Academy, which in 18-43 they transferred to
Tuscaloosa, and again in 1845 to Tuskegee, and once more, in 1848, to
Columbus, Georgia, where they now reside. The exhausting labours of
their school, much of which fell upon Mrs. Hentz, caused her for several
years almost to suspend the exercise of her pen. It is understood that
she has recently made arrangements which will give her leisure for the
more free exercise of her extraordinary gifts as a writer.
Besides the tragedy already named, Mrs. Hentz has written two others,
''Lamorah, or the Western Wilds," published in a Columbus newspaper,
and " Constance of Wirtemberg," which has not yet seen the light. She
has published many fugitive pieces of poetry, which have been widely
copied.
(162)
.'f' •
CAROLINE LEE HENTZ. 163
Her prose writings have been chiefly in the form of novelettes for the
weekly papers and the monthly magazines. After a wide circulation in
this form, they have been generally reprinted as books, and enjoyed the
eclat of numerous editions. They are " Auut Patty's Scrap Bag,"' 1846;
" The Mob Cap," 18-48 ; "Linda, or the Young Pilot of the Belle Creole,"
1850; " Rena, or the Snowbird," 1851 ; " Marcus Warland, or The Long
Moss Spring," and "Eoline, or Magnolia Vale," in 1852; "Wild Jack,"
and "Helen and Arthur, or Miss Thusa's Spinning Wheel," in 1853;
and "The Planter's Northern Bride," in 1854. The last work, but
recently published, is the longest and most elaborate which has yet issued
from her pen, and critics from various parts of the country have united to
place it in the first rank of American novels.
Every one practically conversant with the art of composition, knows
that those works which, to the uninitiated, seem to have been written
currente calamo — dashed off at full speed — are ordinarily the fruit of slow
and patient labour. Mrs. Hentz appears to be an exception to this rule.
The spontaneousness and freedom so apparent in her style are a true ex-
ponent of her habit of composition. Her happy facility in this respect
reminds us of that most remarkable poetical improvisatrice, Mrs. Osgood.
Mrs. Hentz, if we may credit authentic information, writes iu the midst
of her domestic circle, and subject to constant interruptions, yet with the
greatest rapidity, and with a degree of accuracy that seldom requires, as
it never receives revision.
One long an inmate of the household, writes to me on this subject as
follows : "What has often struck me with wonder in regard to Mrs. Hentz,
is the remarkable ease with which she writes. When a leisure moment
presents itself, she takes up her pen, as others do their knitting, and it
dances swiftly over the paper, as if in vain trying to keep up with the
current of her thoughts. ' Aunt Patty's Scrap Bag' was written while I
was living in the family, and as at evening I sat at her table, I read it
sheet by sheet, ere the ink was dry from her pen, and on every page I
saw, in the record of the afifectionate family of the Worths, and particu-
larly in the tender relations between Mrs. Worth and her daughters, a
faithful transcript of the author's own heart.
" Pardon me if I introduce a few lines which she dashed off hastily for
me, while I stood waiting for the coach, the day I left her at Tuskegee.
Though simple, they are in many respects a comment upon her heart, and
the chief object of her pen. I give them from memory.
"May this ring, when it circles thy finger, remind
Thy heart of the fi'iends thou art leaving behind —
I have breathed on its gold a magical spell —
That, in long after years, of this moment shall tell.
161 CAROLINE LEE IIENTZ.
" Should snares and temptations around thee entwine,
May the gem on thy finger with warning rays shine —
And whisper of one whose spirit would mourn
If thou from the pathway of virtue shouldst turn.
" Like the eaglet, that fixes its gaze on the sun,
Press upward and on till the bright goal is won —
Let the wings of thy soul never pause in their flight.
Till they bear thee to regions of glory and light."
I am indebted to an accomplished lady of Mobile* for the following
additional particulars in relation to Mrs. Hentz.
" Some writer has said, ' Authors should be read — not known.' Mrs.
Hentz forms a bright exception to this remark. She is one of those rare
magnetic women who attracted my entire admiration at our first interview.
The spell she wove around me was like the invisible beauty of music. I
yielded willingly and delightfully to its magic influence.
" Never have I met a more fascinating person. Mind is enthroned on
her noble brow, and beams in the flashing glances of her radiant eyes
She is tall, graceful, and dignified, with that high-bred manner which ever
betokens gentle blood.
''She has infinite tact and talent in conversation, and never speaks
without awakening interest. As I listened to her eloquent language, I
felt she was indeed worthy of the wreath of immortality, which fame has
given in other days, and other lands, to a De Genlis, or to a De Sevigne.
" She possesses great enthusiasm of character — the enthusiasm described
by Madame De Stael, as ' God within us,' — the love of the good, the holy,
the beautiful. She has neither pretension nor pedantry, and, although
admirably accomplished, and a perfect classic and belles lettres scholar,
she has all the sweet simplicity of an elegant woman.
"Like the charming Swedish authoress, Fredrika Bremer, her works
all tend to elevate the tone of moral feeling. There is a refinement, deli-
cacy, and poetic imagery in all her historiettes, touchingl}- delightful. A
* Madame Octavia Walton Le Vert. " This accomplished lady has for many
years dispensed the refined and elegant hospitalities of Mobile, and is the centre of
a circle unsurpassed for its wit, worth, and intelligence. She is the daughter of
the no less celebrated Colonel George Walton, formerly Governor of Florida, who
now is, we believe, the only surviving son of a signer of the Declaration of Inde-
pendence.— (Editor of the Spirit of the Times.)
Though Madame Le Vert has not appeared before the world as an authoress, no
lady in the Southern States has been more admired for her fascinating powers of
conversation, and for those brilliant accomplishments which adorn the social circle.
She converses with ease and elegance in several of the modern languages, and
excels in all the graces of her sex; foreigners of distinction, who visit Mobile,
generally bear letters of inti'oduction to her elegant and hospitable home.
CAROLINE LEE IIENTZ. 165
calm and holy religion is mirrored in every page. The sorrow-strickcu
mourner finds therein the sweet and healing balm of consolation, and the
bitter tears cease to flow when she points to that 'better land' where the
loved and the lost are waiting for us.
" Many of her works are gay and spirituel, full of delicate wit, 'bright
as the flight of a shining arrow.' Often have the smiles long exiled from
the lips, returned at the bidding of her merry muse. Home, especially,
she describes with a truthfulness which is enchanting. She seems to
have dipped the pen in her own soul, and written of its emotions. She
exalts all that is good, noble, or generous in the human heart, and gives
to even the clouds of existence a sunny softness, like the dreamy light of
a Claude Lorraine picture."
AUNT PATTY'S SCRAP BAG.
It was a rainy day, a real, old-fashioned, orthodox rainy day.
It rained the first thing in the morning, it rained harder and harder
at midday. The afternoon was drawing to a close, and still the
rain came down in steady and persevering drops, every drop falling
in a decided and obstinate way, as if conscious, though it might be
ever so unwelcome, no one had a right to oppose its coming. A
rainy day in midsummer is a glorious thing. The grass looks up
so green and grateful under the life-giving moisture ; the flowers
send forth such a delicious aroma ; the tall forest-trees bend down
their branches so gracefully in salutation to the messengers of
heaven. There are beauty, grace, and glory in a midsummer rain,
and the spirit of man becomes gay and buoyant under its influence.
Eut a March rain in New England, when the vane of the weather-
cock points inveterately to the north-east, when the brightness, and
purity, and jyositiveness of winter is gone, and not one promise of
spring breaks cheeringly on the eye, is a dismal concern.
Little Estelle stood looking out at the window, with her nose
pressed against a pane of glass, wishing it would clear up, it was
so pretty to see the sun break out just as he was setting. The
prospect abroad was not very inviting. It was a patch of mud and
a patch of snow, the dirtiest mixture in nature's olio. A little boy
went slumping by, sinking at every step almost to his knees ; then
a carriage slowly and majestically came plashing along, its wheels
166 CAROLINE LEE HENTZ.
buried in mud, tlie horses labouring and straining, and ev Dry now
and then shaking the slime indignantly from their fetlocks, and
probably thinking none but amphibious animals should be abroad
in such weather.
" Oh ! it is such an ugly, ugly day !" said Estelle, " I do wish it
were over."
"You should not find fault with the weather," replied Emma;
"mother says it is wicked, for God sends us what weather seemeth
good to him. For my part, I have had a very happy day reading
and sewing."
"And I too," said Bessy, "but I begin to be tired now, and I
wish I could see some of those beautiful crimson clouds, tinged with
gold, that wait upon sunset."
" Bessy has such a romantic mode of expression," cried Edmund,
laughing and laying down his book ; "I think she will make a poet
one of these days. Even now, I see upon her lips ' a prophetess's
fire.' "
Bessy's blue eyes peeped at her brother through her golden curls,
and something in them seemed to say, " that is not such a ridiculous
prophecy as you imagine."
" This is a dreadful day for a traveller," said Mrs. Worth, with
a sigh, and the children all thought of their father, exposed to the
inclemency of the atmosphere, and they echoed their mother's sigh.
They all looked very sad, till the entrance of another member of
the family turned their thoughts into a new channel. This was no
other than Estelle's kitten, which had been perambulating in the
mire and rain, till she looked the most forlorn object in the world.
Her sides were hollow and dripping, and her tail clung to her back
in a most abject manner. There was a simultaneous exclamation
at her dishevelled appearance, but Miss Kitty walked on as de-
murely as if nothing particular had happened to her, and jumping
on her little mistress's shoulder, curled her wet tail round her ears,
and began to mew and purr, opening and shutting her green eyes
between every purr. Much as Estelle loved her favourite, she was
not at all pleased at her present proximity, and called out ener-
getically for deliverance. All laughed long and heartily at the
CAROLINE LEE HENTZ. 167
muddy streaks on her white neck, and the muddy tracks on her
white apron, and she looked as if she had not made up her mind
whether to laugh or cry, when a fresh burst of laughter produced a
complete reaction, and a sudden shower of tears fell precipitately
on Aunt Patty's lap.
"Take care, Estelle," said Edmund, "Aunt Patty has got on
her thunder and lightning calico. She does not like to have it
rained on."
Aunt Patty had a favourite frock, the ground-woi'k of which was
a deep brown, with zigzag streaks of scarlet darting over it. Es-
telle called it thunder and lightning, and certainly it was a very
appropriate similitude for a child. It always was designated by
that name, and Edmund declared, that whenever Aunt Patty wore
that dress, it was sure to bring a storm. She was now solicited by
many voices to bring out one of her scrap-bags for their amusement.
And she, who never wearied of recalling the bright images of her
youthful fancy, or the impressions of later years, produced a gi-
gantic satchel, and undrawing the strings, Estelle's little hand was
plunged in, and grasping a piece by chance, smiles played like sun-
beams on her tears, when she found it was a relic of old Parson
Broomfield's banian. It consisted of broad shaded stripes, of an
iron-gray colour, a very sober and ministerial-looking calico.
"Ah!" said Aunt Patty — the chords of memory wakened to
music at the sight — " I remember the time when I first saw Par-
son Broomfield wear that banian. I was a little girl then, and my
mother used to send me on errands here and there, in a little car-
riage, made purposely for me on account of my lameness. A boy
used to draw me, in the same way that they do infants, and every-
body stopped and said something to the poor lame girl. I was
going by the parsonage, one warm summer morning, and the par-
son was sitting reading under a large elm tree, that grew directly
in front of his door. He had a bench put all round the trunk, so
that weary travellers could stop and rest under its shade. He was
a blessed man, Parson Broomfield — of such great piety, that some
thought if they could touch the hem of his garment they would
have a passport to heaven. I always think of him when I read
■'igS CAROLINE LEE HENTZ.
that beautiful verse in Job : ' The young men saw him and trem-
bled, the aged arose and stood up.' Well, there he sat, that warm
summer morning, in his new striped banian, turned back from his
neck, and turned carelessly over one knee, to keep it from sweep-
ing on the grass. He had on black satin lasting pantaloons, and
a black velvet waistcoat, that made his shirt collar look as white as
snow. He lifted his eyes, when he heard the wheels of my car-
riage rolling along, and made a sort of motion for me to stop.
' Good morning, little Patty,' said he, ' I hope you are very well
this beautiful morning.' We always thought it an honour to get a
word from his lips, and I felt as if I could walk without a crutch the
whole day. He was very kind to little children, though he looked
so grand and holy in the pulpit, you would think he was an angel
of light, just come down there from the skies."
"Did he preach in that calico frock?" asked Emma, anxious for
the dignity of the ministerial office.
" Oh ! no, child — all in solemn black, except his white linen
bands. He always looked like a saint on Sunday, walking in the
church so slow and stately, yet bowing on the right and left, to the
old, white-headed men, that waited for him as for tlie consolation
of Israel. Oh ! he was a blessed man, and he is in glory now.
Here," added she, taking a piece of spotless linen from a white
folded paper, " is a remnant of the good man's shroud. I saw him
when he was laid out, with his hands folded on his breast, and his
Bible resting above them."
"Don't they have any Bibles in Heaven?" asked little Estelle,
shrinking from contact with the funereal sample.
" No, child ; they will read there without books, and see without
eyes, and know everything without learning. But they put his
Bible on his heart, because he loved it so in life, and it seemed to
be company for him in the dark coffin and lonely grave."
The children looked serious, and Emma's wistful eyes, lifted
towards heaven, seemed to long for that region of glorious intui-
tion, whither the beloved pastor of Aunt Patty's youth was gone.
Then the youngest begged her to tell them something more lively,
CAROLINE LEE HENTZ. 169
as talking about death, and the coffin, and grave, made them
melancholy such a rainy day.
"Here," said Bessy, "is a beautiful pink and white muslin.
The figure is a half open rosebud, with a delicate cluster of leaves.
Who had a dress like this, Aunt Patty?"
" That was the dress your mother wore the first time she saw
your father," answered the chronicler, with a significant smile.
Bessy clasped her hands with delight, and they all gathered close,
to gaze upon an object associated with such an interesting era.
"Didn't she look sweet?" said Bessy, looking admiringly at her
handsome and now blushing mother.
" Yes ! her cheeks were the colour of her dress, and that day
she had a wreath of roses in her hair ; for Emma's father loved
flowers, and made her ornament herself with them to please his
eye. It was about sunset. It had been very sultry, and the roads
were so dusty we could scarcely see after a horse or carriage passed
by. Emma was in the front yard watering some plants, when a
gentleman on horseback rode slowly along, as if he tried to make
as little dust as possible. lie rode by the house at first, then turn-
ing back, he came right up to the gate, and, lifting up his hat,
bowed down to the saddle. He was a tall, dark-complexioned
young man, who sat nobly on his horse, just as if he belonged to
it. Emma, your mother that is, set down her watering-pot, and
made a sort of courtesy, a little frightened at a stranger coming
so close to her, before she knew anything about it. ' May I trou-
ble you for a glass of water ?' said he, with another bow. ' I have
travelled long, and am oppressed with thirst.' Emma courtesied
again, and blushed too, I dare say, and away she went for a glass
of water, which she brought him with her own hands. Your grand-
father had come to the door by this time, and he said he never saw
a man so long drinking a glass of water in his life. As I told you
before, it had been a terribly sultry day, and there were large
thunder pillars leaning down black in the west — a sure sign there
was going to be a heavy shower. Your grandfather came out, and
being an hospitable man, he asked the stranger to stop and rest till
the rain that was coming was over. He didn't wait to be asked
22
170 CAKOLINE LEE HEXTZ.
twice, but jumped from his horse and walked in, making a bow at
the door, and waiting for your mother to walk in first. Well, sure
enough, it did rain in a short time, and thunder, and lighten, and
blow, as if the house would come down ; and the strange gentleman
sat down close by Emma, and tried to keep her from being fright-
ened, for she looked as pale as death ; and when the lightning
flashed bright, she covered up her face with her hands. It kept on
thundering and raining till bed-time, when your grandfather oifered
him a bed, and told him he must stay till morning. Everybody
was taken with him, for he talked like a book, and looked as if he
knew more than all the books in the world. He told his name, and
all about himself — that he was a young lawyer just commencing
business in a town near by (the very town we are now living in) ;
that he had been on a journey, and was on his way home, which
he had expected to reach that night. He seemed to hate to go
away so the next morning, that your grandfather asked him to come
and see him again — and he took him at his word, and came back
the very next week. This time he didn't hide from anybody what
he came for, for he courted your mother in good earnest, and never
left her, or gave her any j)eace, till she had promised to be his wife,
•which I believe she was very willing to be, from the first night she
saw him."
"Nay, Aunt Patty," said Mrs, "Worth, "I must correct you in
some of your items; your imagination is a little too vivid."
Edmund went behind his mother's chair, and putting his hands
playfully over her ears, begged Aunt Patty to go on, and give her
imagination full scope.
"And show us the wedding-dress, and tell us all about it," said
Eessy. " It is pleasanter to hear of mother's wedding, than Par-
son Broomfield's funeral."
" But that's the way, darling — a funeral and a wedding, a birth
and a death, all mixed up, the world over. We must take things
as they come, and be thankful for all. Do you see this white
sprigged satin, and this bit of white lace ? The wedding-dress was
made of the satin, and trimmed round the neck and sleeves with
the lace, and the money it cost would have clothed a poor family
CAROLINE LEE HE NTZ. 171
for a long time. But your grandfather said he had but one (hiugh-
ter, and she should be well fitted out, if it cost him all he had in
the world. And, moreover, he had a son-in-law, whom he would
not exchange for any other man in the universe. When Emma,
your mother that is, was dressed in her bridal finery, with white
blossoms in her hair, which hung in ringlets down her rosy cheeks,
you might search the country round for a prettier and fairer bride
— and your father looked like a prince. Parson Broomfield said
they were the handsomest couple he ever married — and, bless his
soul, they were the last. He was taken sick a week after the wed-
ding, and never lifted his head afterwards. It is a blessed thing
Emma was married when she was, for I wouldn't want to be mar-
ried by any other minister in the world than Parson Broomfield."
"Where's your husband. Aunt Patty ?" said Estelle, suddenly.
Edmund and Bessy laughed outright. Emma only smiled — she
feared Aunt Patty's feelings might be wounded.
" I never had any, child," replied she, after taking a large pinch
of snuflf.
" What's the reason ?" persevered Estelle.
"Hush — Estelle," said her mother, "little girls must not ask
so many questions."
"I'll tell you the reason," cried Aunt Patty, "for I'm never
ashamed to speak the truth. No one ever thought of marrying
me, for I was a lame, helpless, and homely girl, without a cent of
money to make folks think one pretty, whether I was or not. I
never dreamed of having sweethearts, but was thankful for friends,
who were willing to bear with my infirmities, and provide for my
comfort. I don't care if they do call me an old maid. I'm satis-
fied with the place Providence has assigned me, knowing it's a thou-
sand times better than I deserve. The tree that stands alone by
the wayside offers shelter and shade to the weary traveller. It was
not created in vain, though no blossom nor fruit may hang upon
its boughs. It gets its portion of the sunshine and dew, and the
little birds come and nestle in its branches."
HANNAH ADAMS.
Mrs. Gilman, ia her autobiography, page 55 of the present volume,
makes a very pleasant allusion to Hannah Adams, the venerated author
of the " History of Religions," the pioneer, almost, of American female
authorship. The account of her which follows is taken, with very slight
verbal alterations, from "Woman's Record," by Mrs. Hale, and may be
considered as an additional extract from that valuable work.
'' Hannah Adams was born in Medfield, Massachusetts, in 1755. Her
father was a respectable farmer in that place, rather better educated than
persons of his class usually were at that time ; and his daughter, who was
a very delicate child, profited by his fondness for books. So great was
her love for reading and study, that when very young she had committed
to memory neai'ly all of Milton, Pope, Thomson, Young, and several
other poets.
" "When she was about seventeen her father failed in business, and Miss
Adams was obliged to exert herself for her own maintenance. This she
did at first by making lace, a very profitable employment during the revo-
lutionary war, as very little lace was then imported. But after the termi-
nation of the conflict she was obliged to resort to some other means of
support; and having acquired from the students who had boarded with her
father, a competent knowledge of Latin and Greek, she undertook to pre-
pare young men for college; and succeeded so well, that her reputation
was spread throughout the State.
"Her first work, entitled "The View of Religions," which she com-
menced when she was about thirty, is a history of the diS"erent sects in
religion. It caused her so much hard study and close reflection, that she
wis attacked before the close of her labours by a severe fit of illness, and
threatened with derangement. Her next work was a carefully written
" History of New England ;" and her third was on " The Evidences of
the Christian Religion."
{112)
HANNAH ADAMS. 173
" Though all these works showed great candour and liberality of mind
and profound research, and though they were popular, yet they brought
her but little besides fame ; which, however, had extended to Europe, and
she reckoned among her correspondents many of the learned men of all
countries. Among these was the celebrated abbe Gregoire, who was then
struggling for the emancipation of the Jews in France. He sent Miss
Adams several volumes, which she acknowledged were of much use to
her in preparing her own work, a " History of the Jews," now considered
one of the most valuable of her productions. Still, as far as pecuniary
matters went, she was singularly unsuccessful, probably from her want
of knowledge of business, and ignorance in worldly matters; and, to
relieve her from her embarrassments, three wealthy gentlemen of Boston,
with great liberality, settled an annuity upon her, of which she was kept
in entire ignorance till the whole affair was completed.
"The latter part of her life passed in Boston, in the midst of a large
circle of friends, by whom she was warmly cherished and esteemed for
the singular excellence, purity, and simplicity of her character. She
died, November 15th, 1832, at the age of seventy-six, and was buried at
Mount Auburn ; the first one whose body was placed in that cemetery.
Through life, the gentleness of her manners and the sweetness of her
temper were childlike ; she trusted all her cares to the control of her
heavenly Father; and she did not trust in vain."
THE GNOSTICS.
This denomination sprang up in the first century. Several of
the disciples of Simon Magus held the principles of his philosophy,
together with the profession of Christianity, and were distinguished
by the appellation of Gnostics, from their boasting of being able
to restore mankind to the knowledge, yi'waij, of the Supreme Being,
which had been lost in the world. This party was not conspicu-
ous for its numbers or reputation before the time of Adrian. It
derives its origin from the Oriental philosophy. The doctrine of a
soul, distinct from the body, which had pre-existed in an angelic
state, and was, for some offence committed in that state, degraded,
and confined to the body as a punishment, had been the great
doctrine of the eastern sages from time immemorial. Not being
able to conceive how evil in so great an extent, could be subser-
vient to good, they supposed that good and evil have different
origins. So mixed a system as this is, they therefore thought to
174 HANNAH ADAMS.
be unworthy of infinite wisdom and goodness. They looked upon
matter as the source of all evil, and argued in this manner : There
are many evils in this world, and men seem impelled by a natural
instinct, to the practice of those things which reason condemns ;
but the eternal Mind, from which all spirits derive their existence,
must be inaccessible to all kinds of evil, and also of a most perfect
and benevolent nature. Therefore, the origin of those evils, with
which the universe abounds, must be sought somewhere else than
in the Deity. It cannot reside in him who is all perfection ; there-
fore, it must be without him. Now there is nothing without or
beyond the Deity but matter ; therefore matter is the centre and
source of all evil and of all vice. Having taken for granted these
principles, they proceeded further, and affirmed, that matter was
eternal, and derived its present form, not from the will of the
Supreme God, but from the creating power of some inferior intelli-
gence, to whom the world and its inhabitants owed their existence.
As a proof of their assertion, they alleged, that it was incredible
the Supreme Deity, perfectly good, and infinitely removed from
all evil, should either create, or modify matter, which is essentially
malignant and corrupt ; or, bestow upon it in any degree, the
riches of his wisdom and liberality.
In their system it was generally supposed, that all intelligences
had only one source, viz. the divine Mind. And to help out the
doctrine concerning the origin of evil, it was imagined, that though
the divine Being himself was essentially and perfectly good, those
intelligences, or spirits, who were derived from him, and especially
those who were derived from them, were capable of depravation.
It was further imagined, that the depravation of those inferior
intelligent beings from the Supreme, was by a kind of efilux or
emanation, a part of the substanc-e being detached from the rest,
but capable of being absorbed into it again. To those intelligences
derived mediately or immediately from the divine Mind, the author
of this system did not scruple to give the name of gods, thinking
some of them capable of a power of modifying matter.
The oriental sages expected the arrival of an extraordinary
messengei' of the Most High upon earth ; a messenger invested
HANNAH ADAMS. 175
■with a divine authority ; endowed with the most eminent sanctity
and wisdom ; and peculiarly appointed to enlighten with the know-
ledge of the Supreme Being, the darkened minds of miserable
mortals, and to deliver them from the chains of the tyrants and
usurpers of this world. When, therefore, some of these philoso-
phers perceived that Christ and his followers wrought miracles of
the most amazing kind, and also of the most salutary nature to
mankind, they were easily induced to connect their fundamental
doctrines with Christianity, by supposing him the great messenger
expected from above, to deliver men from the power of the malig-
nant genii, or spirits, to whom, according to their doctrine, the
world was subjected, and to free their souls from the dominion of
corrupt matter. But though they considered him as the Supreme
God, sent from the pleroraa, or habitation of the everlasting
Father, they deny his divinity, looking upon him as inferior to the
Father. They rejected his humanity, upon the supposition that
everything concrete and corporeal is in itself essentially and intrin-
sically evil. Hence the greatest part of the Gnostics denied that
Christ was clothed with a real body, or that he suffered really for
the sake of mankind, the pains and sorrows which he is said to
have endured in the sacred history. They maintained, that he
came to mortals with no other view, than to deprive the tyrants of
this world of their influence upon virtuous and heaven-born souls,
and destroying the empire of these wicked spirits, to teach man-
kind how they might separate the divine mind from the impure
body, and render the former worthy of being united to the Father
of spirits.
Their persuasion, that evil resided in matter, rendered them
unfavourable to wedlock ; and led them to hold the doctrine of the
resurrection of the body in great contempt. They considered it
as a mere clog to the immortal soul ; and supposed, that nothing
was meant by it, but either a moral change i.n the minds of men,
which took place before they died ; or that it signified the ascent
of the soul to its proper abode in the superior regions, when it was
disengaged from its earthly encumbrance. The notion, which this
176 HANNAH ADAMS.
denomination entertained, that the malevolent genii presided in
nature, and that from them proceed all diseases and calamities,
■wars, and desolations, induced them to apply themselves to the
study of magic, to weaken the powers, or suspend the influences
of these malignant agents.
As the Gnostics were philosophic and speculative people, and
affected refinement, they did not make much account of puhlic wor-
ship, or of positive institutions of any kind. They are said, not
to have had any order in their churches.
As many of this denomination thought that Christ had not any
real body, and therefore had not any proper flesh and blood, it
seems on this account, when they used to celebrate the Eucharist,
they did not make any use of wine, which represents the blood of
Christ, but of water only.
We have fewer accounts of what they thought or did with
respect to baptism, but it seems that some of them at least disused
it. And it is said, that some abstained from the Eucharist, and
from prayer.
The greatest part of this denomination adopted rules of life,
which were full of austerity, recommending a strict and rigorous
abstinence, and prescribed the most severe bodily mortifications,
from a notion, that they had a happy influence in purifying and
enlarging the mind, and in disposing it for the contemplation of
celestial things. That some of the Gnostics, in consequence of
making no account of the body, might think, that there was neither
good nor evil in anything relating to it ; and therefore suppose
themselves at liberty to indulge in any sensual excesses, is not
impossible; though it is more probable, that everything of this
nature would be greatly exaggerated by the enemies of this
denomination.
/7j'r^^
ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
Elizabeth Fries Lummis was born at Sodus Point, New York, Oc-
tober, 1818. She was married at an early age to William H. Ellet, M. D.,
Professor of Chemistry in Columbia College, in the city of New York.
Dr. Ellet having accepted, soon after, the appointment of Professor in
South Carolina College, Mrs. Ellet resided several years in Columbia. In
the beginning of 1849 Dr. and Mrs. Ellet came to reside in New York city.
Her father was Dr. William Nixon Lummis. He was of a highly respect-
able family, his father and brothers being physicians. He studied medi-
cine in Philadelphia, attending the lectures of Dr. Benjamin Rush, whose
friend he was, and whom in person he strongly resembled.
Her mother was Sarah Maxwell, daughter of John Maxwell, and niece
of Grcneral William Maxwell, who served with distinction until near the
close of the Revolutionary war, when he threw up his commission on
account of some dissatisfaction.
Mrs. Ellet commenced authorship as early as 1833, since which time
she has contributed largely, both in prose and verse, to many of the lead-
ing periodicals, besides the publication of several volumes which have met
with good success.
A volume of poems appeared in 1835. In 1841 she published " Cha-
racters of Schiller," containing an essay on the genius of Schiller, and a
critical analysis of his characters. " Joanna of Sicily" soon followed. It
was a work partly fictitious, partly histoi-ical, intended to exhibit the cha-
racter and life of the queen whose name it bears. " Rambles about the
Country" was a volume intended for children. It describes various scenes
in the United States. " Evenings at Woodlawn" is a collection of Eu-
ropean legends and traditions, translated and modified to suit American
readers. It has had a large sale.
Mrs. Ellet is understood to have written for the North American Review,
the American Quarterly, and the Southern Review, but I am unable to
designate particularly her articles.
Her largest work is " The Women of the American Revolution," in
23 (177)
178 ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
three volumes. It Las gone through seven or eight editions in two years.
In this work she has collected, from private sources, with abundant suc-
cess, all the evidences of special patriotism and nobleness exhibited by her
own sex during the period that " tried men's souls." The facts which
she has thus rescued from their traditionary state, and placed on perma-
nent record, make a truly valuable addition to our revolutionary story.
They are her own noblest and most enduring monument.
Besides these very interesting volumes, Mrs. Ellet has published still
another called the "Domestic History of the Revolution," of a character
similar to the former in its general tone and point of view, but having a
regular and connected narrative, suitable for a text book. Her " Pioneer
Women of the West" is a collection of memoirs from original papers and
information furnished by the friends of the heroines. Her " Watching
Spirits" is an essay on the presence and agency of spirits in the world, as
described in the Holy Scriptures.
MARY SLOCUMB.
It was about ten o'clock on a beautiful spring morning, that a
splendidly-dressed oflScer, accompanied by two aids, and followed
at a short distance by a guard of some twenty troopers, dashed up
to the piazza in front of the ancient-looking mansion. Mrs. Slo-
cumb w^as sitting there, with her child and a near relative, a young
lady, "who afterwards became the wife of Major Williams. A few
house servants were also on the piazza.
The officer raised his cap, and bowing to his horse's neck, ad-
dressed the lady, with the question —
" Have I the pleasure of seeing the mistress of this house and
plantation !"
" It belongs to my husband."
" Is he at home ?"
"He is not."
"Is he a rebel?"
"No, sir. He is in the army of his country, and jGghting
against our invaders ; therefore not a rebel."
It is not a little singular, that although the people of that day
gloried in their rebellion, they always took offence at being called
rebels.
ELIZABETH F. ELLET. 179-
" I fear, madam," said the officer, "we differ in opinion. A
friend to his country will be the friend of the king, our master."
" Slaves only acknowledge a master in this country," replied the
lady.
A deep flush crossed the florid cheeks of Tarleton, for he was the
speaker ; and turning to one of his aids, he ordered him to pitch
the tents and form the encampment in the orchard and field on
their right. To the other aid his orders were to detach a quarter
guard and station piquets on each road. Then bowing very low,
he added : " Madam, the service of his Majesty requires the tem-
porary occupation of your property ; and if it would not be too
great an inconvenience, I will take up my quarters in your house."
The tone admitted no controversy. Mrs. Slocumb answered :
" My family consists of only myself, my sister and child, and a few
negroes. We are your prisoners."
While the men were busied, different ofiicers came up at inter-
vals, making their reports and receiving orders. Among others, a
tory captain, whom Mrs. Slocumb immediately recognised — for
before joining the royal army, he had lived fifteen or twenty miles
below — received orders in her hearing to take his troop and scour
the country for two or three miles round.
In an hour everything was quiet, and the plantation presented
the romantic spectacle of a regular encampment of some ten or
eleven hundred of the choicest cavalry of the British monarch.
Mrs. Slocumb now addressed herself to the duty of preparing
for her uninvited guests. The dinner set before the king's officers
was, in her own words to her friend, " as good a dinner as you have
now before you, and of much the same materials." A description
of what then constituted a good dinner in that region may not
be inappropriate. " The first dish was, of course, the boiled ham,
flanked with the plate of greens. Opposite was the turkey, sup-
ported by the laughing baked sweet potatoes ; a plate of boiled
beef, another of sausages, and a third with a pair of baked fowls,
formed a line across the centre of the table ; half a dozen dishes
of different pickles, stewed fruit, and other condiments, filled up the
interstices of the board." The dessert, too, was abundant and
180 ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
various. Such a dinner, it may -well be supposed, met the parti-
cular approbation of the royal officers, especially as the fashion of
that day introduced stimulating drinks to the table, and the peach
brandy, prepared under Lieutenant Slocumb's own supervision, was
of the most excellent sort. It received the unqualified praise of
the party ; and its merits were freely discussed. A Scotch officer,
praising it by the name of whiskey, protested that he had never
drunk as good out of Scotland. An officer speaking with a slight
brogue, insisted it was not whiskey, and that no Scotch drink ever
equalled it. " To my mind," said he, " it tastes as yonder orchard
smells."
" Allow me, madam," said Colonel Tarleton, " to inquire where
the spirits we are drinking is procured."
"From the orchard >where your tents stand," answered Mrs.
Slocumb.
" Colonel," said the Irish captain, "when we conquer this coun-
try, is it not to be divided out among us ?"
"The officers of this army," replied the colonel, "will undoubt-
edly receive large possessions of the conquered American provinces."
Mrs. Slocumb here interposed. " Allow me to observe and
prophesy," said she, " the only land in these United States which
will ever remain in possession of a British officer, will measure but
six feet by two."
"Excuse me, madam," remarked Tarleton. "For your sake I
regret to say — this beautiful plantation will be the ducal seat of
some of us."
" Don't trouble yourself about me," retorted the spirited lady.
" My husband is not a man who would allow a duke, or even a
king, to have a quiet seat upon his ground."
At this point the conversation was interrupted by rapid volleys
of fire-arms, appearing to proceed from the wood a short distance
to the eastward. One of the aids pronounced it some straggling
scout, running from the picket-guard ; but the experience of Colo-
nel Tarleton could not be easily deceived.
" There are rifles and muskets," said he, " as well as pistols ; and
ELIZABETH F. ELLET. 181
too many to pass unnoticed. Order boots and saddles, and you,
captain, take your troop in the direction of the firing."
The officer rushed out to execute his orders, while the colonel
walked into the piazza, whither he was immediately followed by
the anxious ladies. Mrs. Slocumb's agitation and alarm may be
imagined ; for she guessed but too well the cause of the interrup-
tion. On the first arrival of the officers she had been importuned,
even with harsh threats — not, however, by Tarleton — to tell where
her husband, when absent on duty, was likely to be found ; but
after her repeated and peremptory refusals, had escaped further
molestation on the subject. She feared now that he had returned
unexpectedly, and might fall into the enemy's hands before he was
aware of their presence.
Her sole hope was in a precaution she had adopted soon after
the coming of her unwelcome guests. Having heard Tarleton give
the order to the tory captain as before mentioned, to patrol the
country, she immediately sent for an old negro, and gave him
directions to take a bag of corn to the mill, about four miles distant,
on the road she knew her husband must travel if he returned that
day. " Big George" was instructed to warn his master of the
danger of approaching his home. With the indolence and curiosity
natural to his race, however, the old fellow remained loitering about
the premises, and was at this time lurking under the hedge-row,
admiring the red coats, dashing plumes, and shining helmets of the
British troopers.
The colonel and the ladies continued on the look-out from the
piazza. "May I be allowed, madam," at length said Tarleton,
" without ofience, to inquire if any part of Washington's army is
in this neighbourhood?"
" I presume it is known to you," replied Mrs. Slocumb, " that
the Marquis and Greene are in this State. And you would not of
course," she added, after a slight pause, "be surprised at a call
from Lee, or your old friend Colonel Washington, who, although a
perfect gentleman, it is said shook your hand (pointing to the scar
left by Washington's sabre) very rudely, when you last met."
This spirited answer inspired Tarleton with apprehensions that
182 ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
the skirmish in the "woods was only the prelude to a concerted
attack on his camp. Ilis only reply Avas a loud order to form the
troops on the right ; and springing on his charger, he dashed down
the avenue a few hundred feet, to a breach in the hedge-row, leaped
the fence, and in a moment was at the head of his regiment, which
was already in line.
Meanwhile, Lieutenant Slocumb, with John Howell, a private in
his band, Henry Williams, and the brother of Mrs. Slocumb,
Charles Hooks, a boy of about thirteen years of age, was leading
a hot pursuit of the tory captain who had been sent to reconnoitre
the country, and some of his routed troop. These were first dis-
cerned in the open grounds east and north-east of the plantation,
closely pursued by a body of American mounted militia : while a
running fight was kept up with different weapons, in which four or
five broadswords gleamed conspicuous. The foremost of the pur-
suing party appeared too busy with the tories to see anything else ;
and they entered the avenue at the same moment with the party
pursued. With what horror and consternation did Mrs. Slocumb
recognise her husband, her brother, and two of her neighbours, in
chase of the tory captain and four of his band, already half-way
down the avenue, and unconscious that they were rushing into the
enemy's midst !
About the middle of the avenue one of the tories fell ; and the
course of the brave and imprudent young officers was suddenly
arrested by "Big George," who sprang directly in front of their
horses, crying, "Hold on, massa ! de debbil here! Look yon!"*
A glance to the left showed the young men their danger : they
were within pistol shot of a thousand men drawn up in order of
battle. Wheeling their horses, they discovered a troop already
leaping the fence into the avenue in their rear. Quick as thought
they again wheeled their horses, and dashed down the avenue
directly towards the house, where stood the quarter-guard to
receive them. On reaching the garden fence — a rude structure
formed of a kind of lath, and called a wattled fence — they leaped
that and the next, amid a shower of balls from the guard, cleared
* Yon, for yonder.
ELIZABETH F. ELLET. 183
the canal at one tremendous leap, and scouring across the open
field to the north-west, were in the shelter of the wood before their
pursuers could clear the fences of the enclosure. The whole ground
of this adventure may be seen as the traveller passes over the Wil-
mington railroad, a mile and a half south of Dudley depot.
A platoon had commenced the pursuit ; but the trumpets sounded
the recall before the flying Americans had crossed the canal. The
presence of mind and lofty language of the heroic wife, had con-
vinced the British colonel that the daring men who so fearlessly
dashed into his camp were supported by a formidable force at hand.
Had the truth been known, and the fugitives pursued, nothing could
have prevented the destruction not only of the four who fled, but
of the rest of the company on the east side of the plantation.
Tarleton had ridden back to the front of the house, where he
remained eagerly looking after the fugitives till they disappeared
in the wood. He called for the tory captain, who presently came
forward, questioned him about the attack in the woods, asked the
names of the American ofiicers, and dismissed him to have his
wounds dressed, and see after his men. The last part of the order
was needless ; for nearly one-half of his troop had fallen. The
ground is known to this day as the Dead Men's Field.
Another anecdote, communicated by the same friend of Mrs.
Slocumb, is strikingly illustrative of her resolution and strength
of will. The occurrence took place at a time when the whole
country was roused by the march of the British and loyalists from
the Cape Fear country, to join the royal standard at Wilmington.
The veteran Donald McDonald issued his proclamation at Cross
Creek, in February, 1776, and having assembled his Highlanders,
marched across rivers and through forests, in haste to join Governor
Martin and Sir Henry Clinton, who were already at Cape Fear.
But while he had eluded the pursuit of Moore, the patriots of New-
bern and Wilmington Districts were not idle. It was a time of
noble enterprise, and gloriously did leaders and people come for-
ward to meet the emergency. The gallant Richard Caswell called
his neighbours hastily together ; and they came at his call as rea-
dily as the clans of the Scotch mountains mustered at the signal
ISl ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
of the burning cross. The whole country rose in mass ; scarce a
man able to walk was left in the Neuse region. The united regi-
ments of Colonels Lillington and Caswell encountered McDonald
at Moore's Creek ;* where, on the twenty-seventh, was fought one
of the bloodiest battles of the Revolution. Colonel Slocumb's
recollections of this Lravely-contested field were too vivid to be
dimmed by the lapse of years. He was accustomed to dwell but
lightly on the gallant part borne by himself in that memorable
action ; but he gave abundant praise to his associates ; and well
did they deserve the tribute. "And," he would say — '■'■ my ivife
tvas there !" She was indeed ; but the stoi'y is best told in her own
words :
" The men all left on Sunday morning. More than eighty went
from this house with my husband ; I looked at them well, and I
could see that every man had mischief in him. I know a coward
as soon as I set my eyes upon him. The tories more than once
tried to frighten me, but they always showed coward at the bare
insinuation that our troops were about.
" Well, they got oflF in high spirits ; every man stepping high
and light. And I slept soundly and quietly that night, and worked
hard all the next day ; but I kept thinking where they had got to
— how far ; where and how many of the regulars and tories they
would meet ; and I could not keep myself from the study. I went
to bed at the usual time, but still continued to study. As I lay —
whether waking or sleeping I know not — I had a dream ; yet it was
not all a dream. (She used the words, unconsciously, of the poet
who was not then in being.) I saw distinctly a body wrapped in
my husband's guard-cloak — bloody — dead ; and others dead and
wounded on the ground about him. I saw them plainly and dis-
tinctly. I uttered a cry, and sprang to my feet on the floor ; and
so strong was the impression on my mind, that I rushed in the
direction the vision appeared, and came up against the side of the
house. The fire in the room gave little light, and I gazed in every
direction to catch another glimpse of the scene. I raised the light ;
* Moore's Creek, running from north to south, empties Into the South River,
about twenty miles above Wilmington.
ELIZABETH F. ELLET. 185
everything was still and quiet. My child was sleeping, but my
woman was awakened by my crying out or jumping on the floor.
If ever I felt fear it was at that moment. Seated on the bed, I
reflected a few moments — and said aloud : ' I must go to him.' I
told the woman I could not sleep, and would ride down the road.
She appeared in great alarm ; but I merely told her to lock the
door after me, and look after the child. I went to the stable, sad-
dled my mare — as fleet and easy a nag as ever travelled; and in
one minute we were tearing down the road at full speed. The cool
night seemed after a mile or two's gallop to bring reflection with
it ; and I asked myself where I was going, and for what purpose.
Again and again I was tempted to turn back ; but I was soon ten
miles from home, and my mind became stronger every mile I rode.
I should find my husband dead or dying — was as firmly my pre-
sentiment and conviction as any fact of my life. When day broke,
I was some thirty miles from home. I knew the general route our
little army expected to take, and had followed them without hesita-
tion. About sunrise I came upon a group of women and children,
standing and sitting by the roadside, each one of them showing the
same anxiety of mind I felt. Stopping a few minutes, I inquired
if the battle had been fought. They knew nothing, but were
assembled on the road to catch intelligence. They thought Caswell
had taken the right of the Wilmington road, and gone towards the
north-west (Cape Fear). Again was I skimming over the ground
through a country thinly settled, and very poor and swampy ; but
neither my own spirits nor my beautiful nag's failed in the least.
We followed the well-marked trail of the troops.
" The sun must have been well up, say eight or nine o'clock,
when I heard a sound like thunder, which I knew must be cannon.
It was the first time I ever heard a cannon. I stopped still ; when
presently the cannon thundered again. The battle was then fight-
ing. What a fool ! my husband could not be dead last night, and
the battle only fighting now ! Still, as I am so near, I will go on
and see how they come out. So away we went again, faster than
ever ; and I soon found by the noise of guns that I was near the
fight. Again I stopped. I could hear muskets, I could hear rifles,
24
186 ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
and I could hear shouting. I spoke to my mare and dashed on in
the direction of the firing and the shouts, now louder than ever.
The blind path I had been folloTving brought me into the Wilming-
ton road leading to Moore's Creek Bridge, a few hundred yards
below the bridge. A few yards from the road, under a cluster of
trees were lying perhaps twenty men. They were the wounded.
I knew the spot ; the very trees ; and the position of the men I
knew as if I had seen it a thousand times. I had seen it all night !
I saw all at once ; but in an instant my whole soul was centred in
one spot ; for there, wrapped in his bloody guard-cloak, was my
husband's body ! How I passed the few yards from my saddle to
the place I never knew. I remember uncovering his head and
seeing a face clothed with gore from a dreadful wound across the
temple. I put my hand on the bloody face ; 'twas warm ; and an
unhioiun voice begged for water. A small camp-kettle was lying
near, and a stream of water was close by. I brought it ; poured
some in his mouth ; washed his face ; and behold — it was Frank
Cogdell. He soon revived and could speak. I was washing the
wound in his head. Said he, ' It is not that ; it is that hole in my
leg that is killing me.' A puddle of blood was standing on the
ground about his feet. I took his knife, cut away his trousers and
stocking, and found the blood came from a shot-hole through and
through the fleshy part of his leg. I looked about and could see
nothing that looked as if it would do for dressing wounds but some
heart-leaves. I gathered a handful and bound them tight to the
holes ; and the bleeding stopped. I then went to the others ; and
— Doctor ! I dressed the wounds of many a brave fellow who did
good fighting long after that day ! I had not inquired for my
husband ; but while I was busy Caswell came up. He appeared
very much surprised to see me ; and was with his hat in hand about
to pay some compliment : but I interrupted him by asking — ' Where
is my husband ?'
" ' Where he ought to be, madam ; in pursuit of the enemy.
But pray,' said he, 'how came you here?"
" 'Oh, I thought,' replied I, 'you would need nurses as well as
soldiers. See ! I have already dressed many of these good fellows ;
ELIZABETH F. ELLET. 187
and here is one' — going to Frank and lifting him up witli my arm
under his head so that he could drink some more water — ' would
have died before any of you men could have helped him.'
" 'I believe you,' said Frank. Just then I looked up, and my
husband, as bloody as a butcher, and as muddy as a ditcher,* stood
before me.
"'Why, Mary!' he exclaimed, 'What are you doing there?
Hugging Frank Cogdell, the greatest reprobate in the army?'
" ' I don't care,' I cried. ' Frank is a brave fellow, a good sol-
dier, and a true friend to Congress.'
" ' True, true ! every word of it !' said Caswell. ' You are right,
madam !' with the lowest possible bow.
" I would not tell my husband what brought me there. I was
so happy ; and so were all ! It was a glorious victory ; I came
just at the height of the enjoyment. I knew my husband was sur-
prised, but I could see he was not displeased with me. It was night
again before our excitement had at all subsided. Many prisoners
were brought in, and among them some very obnoxious : but the
worst of the tories were not taken prisoners. They were, for the
most part, left in the woods and swamps wherever they were over-
taken. I begged for some of the poor prisoners, and Caswell
readily told me none should be hurt but such as had been guilty
of murder and house-burning. In the middle of the night I again
mounted my mare and started for home. Caswell and my husband
wanted me to stay till next morning and they would send a party
with me ; but no ! I wanted to see my child, and I told them they
could send no party who could keep up with me. What a happy
ride I had back ! and with what joy did I embrace my child as he
ran to meet me !"
What fiction could be stranger than such truth ! And would not
a plain unvarnished narrative of the sayings and doings of the
actors in Revolutionary times, unknown by name, save in the neigh-
bourhood where they lived, and now almost forgotten even by their
descendants, surpass in thrilling interest any romance ever written !
* It was his company that forded the creek, and penetrating the swamp, made
the furious charge on the British left and rear, which decided the fate of the day.
1«8 ELIZABETH F. ELLET.
In these days of railroads and steam, it can scarcely be credited
that a woman actually rode alone, in the night, through a wild
unsettled country, a distance — going and returning — of a hundred
and twenty-five miles ; and that in less than forty hours, and with-
out any interval of rest ! Yet even this fair equestrian, whose feats
would astonish the modern world, admitted that one of her
acquaintances was a better horsewoman than herself. This was
Miss Esther Wake, the beautiful sister-in-law of Governor Tryon,
after whom Wake County was named. She is said to have ridden
eighty miles — the distance between Raleigh and the Governor's
head-quarters in the neighbourhood of Colonel Slocumb's residence
— to pay a visit ; returning the next day. What would these
women have said to the delicacy of modern refinement, fatigued
with a modern drive in a close carriage, and looking out on woods
and fields from the windows !
E. OAKES SMITH.
About twelve miles from the city of Portland, in Maine, a pretty cot-
tage just on the edge of a thick wood is pointed out by the neighbours
with a feeling of pride, as the birth-place of Mrs. E. Oakes Smith. Her
maiden name was Elizabeth Oakes Prince. One of the earliest of the
settlers of Maine was an ancestor of hers by the name of Prince, and
there is a tract of land in Maine, called " Prince's Point," where her
ancestors settled in 1630, having gone there from Massachusetts. Her
grandfather died in the year 1849, at the age of ninety-seven. He is
described as having been a tall, handsome, patriarchal man, in appearance.
Her mother, too, is described as an imperious, intellectual woman, with
strong characteristics, and exceedingly beautiful. Her name was Blanch-
ard, and she is of Huguenot descent. On the father's side Mrs. Smith is
of a puritan family.
She gave early indications of genius. The only circumstance of her
childhood, however, that seems particularly noticeable, is her habit while
a mere girl, of dramatizing little extempore plays, when as yet she had
never seen or heard of such a thing, and in a family where Shakspeare
was regarded as an abomination, and his readers as no better than
they should be !
She was married at the early age of sixteen to Mr. Seba Smith, so
widely known as the original <' Jack Downing." Mr. Smith at the time
of his marriage was the editor of the leading political journal of Maine.
They are at present living in New York.
Mrs. Smith's poems have never been fully collected. One small volume
has been published, and has run through seven or eight editions. " The Sin-
less Child" has been greatly admired, as also have been her " Sonnets,"
and many other small occasional pieces. Her largest work in verse is a
tragedy, called " The Roman Tribute," which was acted in New York,
but I believe has never been printed. Another play, " Jacob Leisler, or
Old New York," has been well received by the critics, having been acted
several times with entire success.
(189)
190 E. OAKES SMITH.
As a prose writer, Mrs. Smith has been for several years a frequent
contributor to the leading Magazines. Her contributions of this sort,
chiefly stories and sketches, would make several volumes. Her magazine
stories are chiefly of a legendary character, and many of them are con-
nected with the history of her native State. She purposes collecting and
publishing them under the title of " Legends of Maine."
Her largest story, " The Lost Angel," was published in a volume in
1848. She has cho.sen for the scene of this story the romantic valley
of the Ramapo, in the State of New York, and dated it about two centu-
ries back. It is, however, purely an imaginative, not an historical work.
There may be facts embodied in the narrative, of which types are to be
found in the early history of the Dutch colony, as there may be descrip-
tions of scenery corresponding to what actually exists in the Ramapo val-
ley. But the ideas which form the staple of the book, and which give it
all its significance, are no more American, than the ideas of the "Mid-
summer Night's Dream" are English. The work, in other words, is purely
of an imaginative character. It is founded on those dark mysterious
legends — half Christian, half pagan — which prevailed in central Germany
during the middle ages. Out of these wild myths, Mrs. Smith has pro-
duced a fiction, somewhat over-bold in speculation, occasionally careless in
execution, but full of significance, brilliant — almost dazzling — in some of
its conceptions, and everywhere teeming with grace and beauty.
"Woman and her Needs" discusses the vexed question of woman's
rights, and is a text book with those of the progressive party. " Hints
on Dress and Beauty" has been received with much favour. The same
may be remarked of " Shadow Land," in which the author gives her views
of the spiritual element of our nature. " Bertha and Lily," 1854, likewise
developes the author's views on the great moral and social questions of the
age. It is represented by that accomplished critic, Mr. Ripley, as being
far beyond any of Mrs. Smith's previous writings. " Riches without
Wings," "Western Captive," "Moss Cup," and "Dandelion," are the
titles of some of her smaller volumes.
THE MYSTERY OF THE MOUNTAIN.
While Hugo saw these things where he stood high up in the
mountain, his eyes followed the sparks from the furnace, and he
began to wonder that he should hear the sound of the flame at such
a distance. Then he bethought himself and looked around, for,
what he had supposed the sound from the heat of the forge, pro-
ceeded from something close to his feet, at which he marvelled,
seeing nothing. It was a short tinkling sound as if many metallic
substances rang against one another, and crystals clicked their
E. OAKES SMITH. 191
ano-les fretfully, yet all making most clear and beautiful melody.
Observing more closely, Hugo beheld a toad squatted close to his
ear upon a shelf of the rock, whose eyes were brighter than sap-
phires, and every spot upon his mottled sides had become a gem
while he sang : —
In the cavern we lie hidden,
Gem, and crystal, diamond stone,
Buried are we, and forbidden
To lay bare our glittering throne.
Mystic numbers, sacred symbols.
Break the spell that now enthralls us.
Hark the tabor and the timbrels ;
Up, my braves, the music calls us.
Instantly the toad began to move itself up and down, thrusting
out its short loose legs in the strangest fashion, and with great
apparent glee. Its head moved from side to side, keeping time to
the music, and its eyes grew every moment more brilliant. While
Hugo looked on laughing, and he laughed in the loudest manner,
for he was a bluif hearty man, he began to move to and fro, and
wag his head with the toad. Then he saw that another had joined
them in the shape of a serpent, whereat he drew back in terror ;
but the snake came on, erecting his head and glowing in his bur-
nished folds, till he came opposite to the man Hugo, when he began
to move from side to side, and Hugo did the same, with wonderful
ease and pleasure ; the dance growing more and more rapid, and
the snake, no more a snake, but a column of rubies and diamonds
and all precious stones, changing and flashing and tinkling their
sharp points, and rolling and writhing in the ecstasy of light ; just
as a skilful youth tosses many marbles into the air, catching them
before they fall to the ground, and they ring sharply as they click
one against another.
There was a slight crash, and Hugo saw as it were into the
bowels of the mountain. He stooped himself and peered down,
wondering from whence came so great a light. Then he saw that
the earth opened, revealing a great funnel, the sides of which con-
sisted of projections or little shelves upon which rested swarthy
192 E. OAKES SMITH.
creatures, whose eyes were gems, . and lighted the cavern. As
Hugo looked, they each turned themselves heavily and rolled their
eyes upon him ; and as they did so, each lifted a filmy paw, and
showed a jewel which he held beneath, so bright as to dazzle the
eyes and cast a flash like that of the firefly when he lifteth his
wings. Hugo felt his heart burning with desire ; he longed to
reach out his hand and seize the wealth held under those black
claws ; but he was at a loss which to take, for every moment one
more gorgeous than the last met his eyes.
Still peering downward, he beheld upon the floor of the cavern
a huge brown creature studded with crimson, which clung to the
ground as the haliotis clings to the rock ; but seeing the eager
desire of Hugo, he lifted himself and showed what he held con-
cealed ; and the man saw a hurning triangh, ivitJi a word written
in fire, and he knew that that was the word, which spoken gives
dominion over the whole earth.
Hugo roused himself with a great shout, trying to pronounce
the word ; three times did he shout, and three times did the word
escape him ; as when a person would sneeze and the power is lost
just in the act, so was it with him, and he was filled with a great rage.
When he would have tried again, he felt a finger soft and cool laid
in the shape of a cross upon his lips, whereat the oaths which were
gathering there fell backward, and he saw the fair stately form of
his wife looking tendei'ly upon him, but she did not speak. When
Hugo would have spread forth his arms to her, he met only the
night air ; the pale stars were shining reproachfully upon him, and
the summer air lifted his locks from his bare head. He saw the
toad plump itself into a hole, and the tail of the serpent twirl
spirally as he slunk away among the rocks. Hugo thought of his
wife, and for awhile the vision of the mountain lost its power, for
his true human heart yearned with an exceeding love, which made
all things else poor and unworthy.
Next day Hugo placed his daughter upon a white palfrey, while
he mounted a heavy black charger, and they went forth together,
E. OAKES SMITH. I93
following the river as it wound itself out of the glen into the open
plain. Mary forgot her grief, and carolled like a bird, hoping to
make her father smile. She darted ahead at full speed, and then
returned showering roses in her path, and bound the head of her
father's horse with a gay chaplet. Hugo smiled at the fooleries
of the girl, for he bethought himself of her mother, and restrained
his moodiness.
When they came out where the country spread itself into a broad
meadow, with the river rolling onward and the silent forest, and
the high mountains lay against the sky, the girl drew with feelings
of awe to the side of her father, and rode on in silence. Ever and
anon the clear sound of a bugle swelled out, and then died away in
the distance — while the baying of hounds told of courtly sport.
Mary looked on every side, but neither dwelling nor human being
was to be seen, but jangling the bells of her harness she caught the
spirit of life which the bugle implied, and rode gayly onward.
Reaching a lovely glade where the birches trembled lightly over
a stream, Hugo dismounted, and they sat down upon the bank.
The girl feared to disturb the silence of her father, so she nestled
to his side and pulled the violets for lack of something to do. At
length he said :
"Mary, what is the word which the spirit keeps up in the
mountain '? I have tried to speak it, and am not able."
"It is an ill word, dear father, that removes the soul from
God."
"Nevertheless, speak it," said Hugo.
"I dare not' speak a word, that will mix my nature with earth-
spirits, dear father."
"Thou art but a cowardly girl," cried Hugo; "did I not see
wealth such as the greatest monarch might envy, and did I not see
thrones and power within my grasp, save that this palsied tongue
could not seize the word ?"
While her father spoke in this wise, Mary grew pale, and knelt
with her hands folded in silence. At length she spoke :
" It is a fearful word, dear father, which causes the crystal gates
25
194 E. OAKES SMITH.
of Paradise to glide upon their hinges and shut the utterer out for
ever."
Hugo ground his teeth firmly, and said in a voice terrible, it wag
so firm and loud —
" Speak, child — I would know it."
Then Mary prayed, saying, " Oh, my God ! let the knowledge
fade out from my soul, that I may never be guilty of this great
sin."
"Speak," said her father, turning pale with a great rage.
The clear face of the child was turned to that of the dark man,
and a fair smile was on her lips as she answered,
" Grod has heard my prayer, dear father — I know it not."
" Thou liest," answered the fierce man, and he struck the child
with his heavy palm.
Mary threw her arms around the neck of her father, pale and
trembling, whereat a sudden pang of remorse filled him with shame
and grief; but when he saw how still she lay in his arms, he grew
fearful, and raised her up and looked into her face. She lay with-
out breath or motion, and although he sprinkled water in her face
from the brook, and called her passionately back to life, she did
not lift up the fringes of her lids.
THE ANGEL AND THE MAIDEN.
After this scene upon the mountain, the stranger no longer
wore that appearance of extreme sadness, which before had created
a painful interest in his behalf : he no longer seemed weighed by
those deep and mysterious thoughts, that shadovr forth the unseen
world, and leave us without the sympathy which alone makes this
life cheerful; now a fair serenity diifused itself in his mien, and
his face wore a placid and benign candour most lovely to behold
There was a joyful upwardness in his look, and a genial outward-
ness in his eyes, as if they rested lovingly upon God's creatm*es,
and no lon^Zicr were content with selfish introversion.
E. OAKES SMITH. 195
Mary saw tlie change in the youth with untold delight , she
walked by his side and listened to his voice, gathering a higher
aspiration from her noble companionship. Light as a fawn, she
spoi'ted beside the clear brook, and the melody of her song waked
the echoes of the glen to sweeter harmonies.
Mary and the youth were wandering beyond the valley where
the river opened into the plain, talking as they were wont ; they
had gone onward, beguiled by their sweet discourse, and did not
perceive how the great red sun burnished the hills with golden
powder, for the dense trees were about them, and only his sharp
light flecked the leaves and glanced upon the boles of the trees,
now glinting the shoulders of the red-bird, and now flashing the
green mail of the lizard, or turning the wings of the dragon-fly to
rainbows — anon the coquettish squirrel caught the beam in his full
soft eye, and the timid hare showed the tracery of blood in his
pink ears as he darted across their path ; the mosses were like
velvet beneath, and the frail wild flowers, vestal worshippers, meek
beautifiers of the wilderness, lifted themselves in their solitude,
content only with the blessing of the good Father.
Mary drew to the side of the youth, and laid her hand in his,
but he gently removed his own and placed it upon the jewelled hilt
of his sword. Mary's cheek turned to crimson ; she faltered, and,
stung with pride, the tears gushed to her eyes. At this moment,
they heard a low growl above their heads, and splinters of bark
were scattered at their feet ; looking up, they perceived a panther
just in the act to spring, with his terrible eyes fixed upon the vic-
tims below. Instantly the sword of the young man sprang from
its sheath, and the ferocious beast alighted, in his deadly leap, upon
its point.
When Mary recovered from the swoon into which she had fallen,
she found the youth standing over the prostrate animal whose blood
was dripping from his sword and garments, and she shrieked with
terror, supposing that he must have been wounded. With kindly
and respectful courtesy, he lifted her from the ground, and seating
himself by her side, implored her to be tranquil.
196 E. OAKES SMITH.
" I must leave tliee, Mary ; for I feel assured that my pilgrimage
is near its close."
Mary could only weep.
" There is much that I would tell thee, Mary ; but I know not
whether thou art able to bear it," the youth at length said.
" Shall we meet again ?" faltered the child in a low voice. His
face contracted with a sharp pang, and he murmured, " Oh, my
God! deliver thou me."
"Mary, I am in deadly peril; I beseech thee question me not,"
he replied.
Mary looked into his eyes, so full of their clear unearthly light ;
so full of all that makes a human heart a well-spring of ineffable
blessedness, and overcome with the flood of girlish sympathy, she
cast her arms about his neck, and murmured, "Do not leave me."
Poor child ! the youth arose sternly from the ground, and placing
one foot upon the shoulder of the beast he had just slain, turned his
back to the girl, who shrank to the earth, and buried her face in
the masses of curls that clustered about her neck. At length, the
sobs of the child touched even his stern heart, and he turned him-
self around : but oh ! the grief and agony on his face had done in
minutes the work of years — he who a moment before had been fair
and smooth as the boy of eighteen summers, was now rigid, stern,
and marked by those outlines of thought, which come only when the
soul has wrestled with some mighty grief, even like unto that of the
Patriarch of old, when he wrestled all night with the Angel of God.
"Mary," he said, sinking on his knees beside the girl, "I must
tell thee all, and then if thou dost weep, and lament, the judgment
of the Eternal will be completed in me."
Mary lifted her head — "Thou wilt go — shall we not meet
again?"
The youth groaned heavily.
Mary's pure nature taught her that she was giving pain, and
casting her selfishness aside, she said :
"Wilt thou pardon my folly? forget me, unless thou canst also
forget this unmaidenly scene."
The youth buried his face in his hands, and through the fingers
E. OAKES SMITH. 197
Mary saw the tears trickle, but the nature of them was soothing
and holy.
" I shall never forget thee, Mary ; wherever in the mysteries of
God I may be transferred, the holiness of thy affection will cause
this cheerless earth, in which and for which I have suffered so
much, to be none other than the Paradise of God ;" and stooping
downward he touched the tears, which had fallen upon the earth, and
they became a chaplet of lilies with which he bound the head of Mary.
" Dost thou remember the gems I once gave thee, Mary? Then
I had power over only the element of fire, which burns and con-
sumes, or hardens to the rock, but now the water and the life are
mine — behold these lilies — wear them — for thou art worthy."
He turned his steps as if to depart.
" Shall we meet again ?" implored the child.
The youth lifted his head sorrowfully. " Shall we meet again ?"
he repeated ; " for thy sake, for mine, I have questioned too. The
knowledge of the future was once mine, but I resigned it as thou
didst thy dangerous knowledge, and now the eternal world is hid-
den from me ; I tread the valley of darkness more dismayed, than
even a human soul ; now — now, 0 that I could see ! What is
faith to the once prescient Archangel ?" and he cast himself to the
earth, overcome with his terrible thoughts.
" Shall we not meet again ? Oh ! in the long eternal years shall
I not yearn for the look, the tone, for which even now I peril my
redemption ? What is that terrible future ? How shall the soul
exist floating onward for ever and for ever, with a universe of suns
receding from its path, if it bear not with it the known and the
loved ? How will it shiver and shrink from the gray twilight of the
eternal, unless folded in the wings of a love which, though born of
earth, leads onward to God ? Mary, Mary" — his voice ceased, and
he fell prostrate to the earth.
LOUISA S. M'CORD.
Mrs. M'Cord was born in Charleston, South Carolina, Dec. 3, 1810.
She is the daughter of Langdon Cheves, Esq., so well known in our pub-
lic and political history. She was educated in Philadelphia, at the cele-
brated school of Mr. Charles Picot, during her father's residence in that
city; resided a short time in Lancaster, Pennsylvania; and in 1828,
returned to the South, where in May, 1840, she was married to D. J.
M'Cord, Esq., of Columbia, South Carolina; a gentleman of considerable
local distinction — an admirable lawyer, an able public speaker, a good
writer — the editor of the Statutes at large of South Carolina, and a frequent
contributor to the Southern Quarterly Review. Like his accomplished
wife, he delights in political economy, and is one of the best writers of
the country, on the Free Trade side of the question. She is living at pre-
sent at a plantation about thirty miles below Columbia, the site well known
in revolutionary history as Fort Motte, distinguished by the patriotic
sacrifice of her dwelling by the famous lady of that name, who handed to
Marion the bow and arrows with which the blazing torches were conveyed
to the shingles, and the British driven from the fastness. Mrs. M'Cord is
herself a woman capable of this very sort of heroism, noble of person,
warm, impulsive of spirit, and with a lofty and generous nature.
Mrs. M'Cord has not collected her writings, which are comparatively
numerous, and which usually take the shapes of reviews and essays. The
writings by which she is chiefly known are of a sort to show that the advan-
tages of birth and education so liberally granted her, have not been without
fruit. She is one of the few women who have undertaken to write on the
difficult subject of political economy. Her contributions on this subject
to the Southern Quarterly Review are characterized by masculine vigour
and an enlarged acquaintance with the subject. Among them may be
named particularly " Justice and Fraternity," July, 1849 ; '•' The Right
to Labour," Oct., 1849; "Diversity of Races, its Bearing upon Negro
Slavery," April, 1851. She has published also a small volume, called
" Sophisms of Political Economy," translated from the French of Frede-
rick Bastiat.
(19S)
LOUISA S. McCORD. 199
Mrs. M'Cord is also favourably known as a poet. A volume of lier
poetry, entitled "My Dreams," appeared in 1848; and in 1851, she pub-
lished " Caius Gracchus, a Tragedy," by far the most elaborate and im-
portant of her writings. Her miscellaneous poems are mostly of a didactic
character, and therefore do not justly illustrate the higher properties of
her mind, which is marked by the energies of an eager, sanguine tempe-
rament. This characteristic is more fully developed in her tragedy, where
her poetical genius appears to more advantage.
THE EIGHT TO LABOUR.
We are not ultra-reforniists ; — far from it ; — and yet we are of
those who see, in the present condition of the Avorld, the w^aking up
of a new era. We are of those who believe in, — if not the perfect-
ibility of man, — at least Lis great, lasting, and boundless improve-
ment. Thought is roused, mind is awakened, wliicli never again
can sleep. Vainly are we told that preceding ages have shown
equal civilization and similar improvement. Vainly is our attention
directed to the great Nineveh, to Egypt, to Greece, and to Rome.
These certainly do show — these have shown — progression and re-
trogression, rise and fall, as the great pulse of humanity has
throbbed in its breathing of ages ; but never has the world-soul
been roused, as now, by the expansion of thought, circulating to
distant points of our globe, whose very existence was not dreamed
of by tbe wise of ancient days. Never has the great heart of civi-
lization cast, as now, by its every pulsation, its life-blood to the
farthest extremes of a universe, rousing itself from unconscious
infancy to the full action of a reasoning being. Great as were the
efforts of the ancients — great as were the results of those efforts —
they were confined to little corners of a world, which now basks
under the full radiance of extended and extending light. And yet,
even of these efforts, nothing has been lost. The soul of their
civilization, as each sank in its ruins, was breathed into the survivor,
until at last, in the great crash of Roman power, the shattered
remnants of its pride and its knowledge, scattering through Europe,
laid the basis of modern civilization.
Yet not for this, alas ! are we now exempt from the wildest
200 LOUISAS. M'CORD.
follies, the grossest vices. France, in her present struggles, shows
a mingling chaos of all that is best and wisest, of all that is mad-
dest and worst. Among the most rampant of her run-mad fancies
is this wild dream of "fraternity" and socialism, with their Icarias
and Utopian worlds. Would that these were confined to France
alone ! Unfortunately, we see their extravagant madness striding
the Atlantic and stamping its too plainly marked foot-tracks on our
own shores. That terrible fallacy compacted in the words, " The
right to labour," is rapidly working its mischief. " The right of
man to labour, and of land whereon to labour," — what is it, as our
communists interpret it, but the right to rob ? They would not
labour for nothing, nor yet for such compensation as the true value
of their laboui", given where it is wanted and paid for as it is needed,
will produce. They have the right to labour, be it for good or for
ill. They have the right to be paid for that labour, let the capital
they force into their use be theirs or another's. You do not want
my work, — it matters not, — " I have a right to work, and you,
having capital, must pay me for such work, be it to your detriment
or your benefit. I have the right to labour !"
Within this specious formula — "the right to labour" — lie con-
centrated the greater number of those terrible fallacies which now
threaten to overrun and devastate civilized society. The hydra of
communism holds struggling in its deadly folds the Hercules of
truth. That the latter conquers, who can doubt ? Man's nature,
his soul, and instinct, alike lead him to the light. The world is
progressive. The past shows, the present hopes for, and the future
promises this ; But fearful are the doubts, the despondencies, and
the agonies, through which society must pass to attain its highest
tone ! Around each great ti"uth is gathered a crowd of errors —
deceitful reflections of its beauty — giving to the mischievous a pre-
text for ill, and often, with ignis fatuus light, misleading even the
true-hearted and the good.
There are crises in the world's course, when, rousing from tem-
porary lethargy, reason seems more than usually wide awake to
the influence of truth and light. But, in this very waking, is she
also more subject to the misleading influence of error. The craving
LOUISA S. M' CORD. 201
heart — the longing, seeking, hungering for truth — is roused ; and,
in its eager search, how often, alas ! is the will-o'-thc-wisp mistaken
for the star-beam ! Through one of these crises are we now strug-
gling. The world is in labour of a great truth, but its sick fancy-
is cheated with the bewildering dazzle of its own delirious dreams.
One of society's closest guards — a kind of shepherd's dog, as it
were, of the flock — stands political economy. Watching, bai-king,
wrangling at every intruder, suspicious of outward show, nor satis-
fied with skin-deep inspection, it examines, before admitting all
pretenders as true prophets, and strips many a wolf of his sheep's
clothing. The evil-inclined, thus, naturally, hoot and revile it.
The ignorant mistrust it. What do Ave, its advocates, ask in its
defence ? Simply nothing, but that the world should learn to knoAV
it. We wish no law for its imposition — no tax for its protection.
Let truth be but heard : there is in the heart of man an instinct to
know and to seize it. Error is simply negative ; like shadow, it is
only want of light. Heaven's sunbeam on the material world —
reason's effulgence on the thinking soul — alone suffice to work
God's purposes. Man, his humble instrument, cannot make the
light ; he can but strive to remove the obstacles which intercept its
abundant flow.
We ask, then, only to be heard. Let the world know us. Let
the people know us. Let political economy be the science of the
crowd. It is neither incomprehensible nor abstruse. It requires
but that each individual man should think, — think — not imagine,
not dream, not utopianize — but think, study, and understand for
himself. Where the masses are ignorant, what more natural than
that they stumble into wrong ? Mind must act ; and more and
more, as the world advances, does it call for the right of exerting
and developing its power. In earlier ages, learning, information,
thought, being limited to the few, the masses took the word from
these high-priests of reason, whose veiled holy of holies was sacred
from the intrusion of the crowd. But, now, the veil is rent asunder.
Not you, nor we, nor he — nor any chosen one — nor ten, nor twenty
— but man, — now claims the right to think for himself. He claims
it ; he will have it ; he ought to have it. Let but those who are
26
202 LOUISA S. M'CORD.
ahead in the race of knowledge give to those who need ; guide those
who stumble in the dark ; and each, thus putting in his mite of well-
doing in the cause, ward off, as much as possible, the calamities
which necessarily hover round the great and progressive change
through which the world is passing. Great changes are oftenest
wrought out only through great convulsions. It is a man's work,
and man's heart is in it, when the humblest individual, with shoul-
der to the wheel, stands boldly and honestly forth, to raise his hand
in warding off the avalanche of evil.
France, which now stands before the world, in the agonies of her
struggles — great alike in truth and in error — France has experi-
mented, and written for us, in her sufferings, a mighty lesson.
May we but read and learn it ! Revelling in the madness of
newly-gained freedom, her people not knowing the use of what
they had seized, for them it became the synonyme of license.
Rushing from extreme to extreme, they forgot that liberty was but
enfranchisement, and, with "democracy" for their watchword,
exercised a despotism much more fearful than that of the single
tyrant, because its power, like its name, was '■'■legion."
And what is the result ? Credit dead ; industry paralyzed ;
commerce annihilated; her starving people now sinking despondent
under their difficulties — now driven to the madness of revolt,
against they know not whom — asking, they know not what.
France, terrified at her own acts, calls out for succour, and on
every side resound the answers of her best and wisest citizens :
"Step back from your errors; give truth its way" — "laissez
passer ' — ' ' laissez faire. ' '
Amidst the throng of confused theories, each of which burns
into the very vitals of the suffering State, its brand of crime and
folly,
" While lean-looked prophets whisper fearful change,"
political economy alone, with its great and simple truths, seems to
hold forth some hope of a real regeneration. It alone enjoins upon
its disciples to follow, step by step — to sift to the bottom its theo-
ries and their remotest effects — before launching the world upon
untried experiments. It alone gropes patiently its way, grappling
LOUISA S. M' CORD. 203
with doubts and difficulties, making sure and clear its footing,
before calling ujDon society to follow. Its opponents — socialists of
every grade — leaping blindfold to their conclusions, and taking
impulse for inspiration, recklessly drag on their devotees from one
wild dream to another, until
"Contention, like a horse,
Full of high feeding, madly doth break loose,
And bears down all before him."
They do not mean the evil which they do. Yery possibly, their
hearts are of the purest — but their ideas, unfortunately, not of the
clearest. Without examining into the practicability of their own
schemes, they give way to a misty vision of goodness — a kind of
foggy virtue — which, often but the rush-light of their own unregu-
lated fancy — too indolent or too cowardly to probe to its source,
and follow to its end — they imagine an inward light, a transmitted
beam of heaven, and so dream on !
ANN S. STEPHENS,
Mrs. Stephexs, according to a writer in Graham's Magazine,* was
bora about the year 1810, in an interior village of the State of Connec-
ticut. She was married at an early age, and soon after removed with her
husband to Portland, Maine. Subsequently, they changed their resi-
dence to New York, where they have lived ever since.
Mrs. Stephens's literary career commenced in Portland. Among the
first of her friends there, was John Neal, who early appreciated her
genius. She projected, and for some time published, the " Portland Maga-
zine," to which she gave considerable celebrity, chiefly through her own
contributions. On removing to New York, she engaged in writing for a
more extensive circle of readers, and her fame rapidly widened. An event
occurred soon after which gave to her name a special eclat. This was the
winning of a prize of four hundred dollars, for the story of " Mary Der-
went." Whatever she has written since that time has been in great demand
among periodical publishers. Her tales, sketches, and poems, published
in this way, would fill several volumes. Unfortunately, they have never
been collected into any more enduring form than that in which they origi-
nally appeared.
Mrs. Stephens has a remarkable talent for description, seizing always
the strongest points in a picture and bringing them out into bold relief.
In the conception and delineation of character, too, she is clear and com-
prehensive, yet working out her views more by descriptive than dramatic
effect, telling how her characters act, rather than setting them into action.
In regard to plot, her stories are simple, and rather bare of incident, as if
aiming to hurry forward the reader by a strong, torrent-like impulse,
rather than to entangle him in a curious and complicated maze. She has
shown great versatility, apparently vibrating at will between a vein of the
richest humour, as in the story of the " Patch-Work Quilt," and that deep
and startling tragedy on which she more commonly relies.
" Fashion and Famine," the largest of Mrs. Stephens's stories, being a
full sized novel, has made its appearance just as the revised edition of this
work is going to the press, July, 1854. The story is understood to be one
* Charles J. Peterson.
(204)
2^z.^<y
ANN S. STEPHENS. 205
of tlie present time, bringing into strong contrast the varied scenes of
splendour and of squalor, of riotous wealth and of starving poverty, that
mark the state of society in our large cities. It is a fruitful theme, and
one well suited to Mrs. Stephen's genius.
THE QUILTINa PAETY.
A THREE-SEATED sleigli, gorgeous witli yellow paint and gilding,
drawn by two horses and a leader, stopped with a dash by the door-
yard gate. A troop of girls, cloaked and hooded to the chin, were
disengaging themselves from the buffalo-robes and leaping cheerily
out on either side, while the driver stood in front, bending back-
ward in a vigorous effort to hold in his horses, which every instant
gave a leap and a pull upon the lines, which set the bells a-ringing
and the girls a-laughing with a burst of music that went through
the old house like a flash of sunshine. The sleigh dashed up the
lane in quest of a new load, while the cargo it had just left were
busy as so many humming-birds in Julia's dressing-room. Cloaks
were heaped in a pile on the bed, hoods were flung off, and aalf a
dozen bright, smiling faces were peeping at themselves in the glass.
Never was an old-fashioned mirror so beset. Flaxen and jetty
ringlets, braids of chestnut, brown and ashy gold flashed on its
surface — white muslins, rose-coloured crapes, and silks of cerulean
blue floated before it like a troop of sunset clouds — eyes glanced
in and out like stars reflected in a fountain, and soft, red lips trem-
bled over its surface like rosebuds flung upon the same bright
waters.
Again the sleigh dashed up to the gate, and off once more. Then
we all gathered to the out room, sat demurely down by the quilt,
and began to work in earnest. Such frolic and fun and girlish wit
— such peals of silvery laughter as rang through that old house were
enough to make the worm-eaten rafters sound again — such a snip-
ping of thread and breaking of needles — such demand for cotton
and such graceful rolling of spools across the "rising sun"* could
only be witnessed in a New England quilting frolic. The fire
snapped and blazed with a sort of revel cheerfulness ; it danced up
and down over the old mirror that hung in a tarnished frame oppo-
* The name of the pattern which they were quilting.
206 ANN S. STEPHENS.
site, and every time the pretty girl nearest the hearth-rug lifted
the huge tailor's shears, appropriated to her use, the flame flashed
up and played over them till they seemed crusted with jewels. One
young lady, with a very sweet voice, sung " I'd be a Butterfly,"
with tumultuous applause. Miss Narissa exercised her sharp voice
in "I won't be a Nun," and two young ladies, who had no places
at the quilt, read conversation cards by the fire.
Toward night-fall, Miss Elizabeth, who had hovered about the
quilt at intervals all the afternoon, appeared from the middle room
and whispered mysteriously to Narissa, who got up and went out.
After a few minutes the amiable sisters returned, and with smiling
hospitality announced that tea was ready.
The door was flung wide open, and a long table, covered to the
carpet with birds-eye diaper, stood triumphantly in view. We
moved toward the door, our garments mingling together, and some
with linked arms, laughing as they went.
Miss Elizabeth stood at the head of the table, supported by a
huge Britannia teapot and conical-shaped sugar-bowl, which had
officiated at her grandmother's wedding supper. She waved her
hand with a grace peculiarly her own, and we glided to our chairs,
spread out our pocket-handkerchiefs, and waited patiently while
Miss Elizabeth held the Britannia teapot in a state of suspension
and asked each one separately, in the same sweet tone, if she took
sugar and cream. Then there was a travelling of small-sized China
cups down the table. As each cup reached its destination, the
recipient bathed her spoon in the warm contents, timidly moistened
her lips, and waited till her neighbour was served. Then two plates
of warm biscuit started an opposition route on each side the board,
followed by a train of golden butter, dried beef and sago cheese.
About this time Miss Narissa began to make a commotion among
a pile of little glass plates that formed her division of command.
Four square dishes of currant jelly, quince preserves, and clarified
peaches, were speedily yielding up their contents. The little plates
flashed to and fro, up and down, then became stationary, each one
gleaming up from the snow-white cloth like a fragment of ice
whereon a handful of half-formed rubies had been flung. There
ANN S. STEPHENS. 207
■was a hush in the couvcrsation, the tinkling of tea-spoons, -with here
and there a deep breath as some rosy lip was bathed in the luscious
jellies. After a time the China cups began to circulate around the
tea-tray again, conical-shaped loaf cakes became locomotive, from
which each guest extracted a triangular slice with becoming gravity.
Then followed in quick succession a plate heaped up with tiny
heart-shaped cakes, snow-white with frosting and warmly spiced
with carraway seed, dark-coloured ginger-nuts and a stack of jum-
bles, twisted romantically into true lover's knots and dusted with
sugar.
Last of all came the crowning glory of a country tea-table. A
plate was placed at the elbow of each lady, where fragments of
pie, wedge-shaped and nicely fitted together, formed a beautiful and
tempting Mosaic. The ruby tart, golden pumpkin, and yet more
delicate custard, mottled over w^ith nutmeg, seemed blended and
melting together beneath the tall lights, by this time placed at each
end of the table. We had all eaten enough, and it seemed a shame
to break the artistical effect of these pie plates. But there sat Miss
Elizabeth by one huge candlestick entreating us to make ourselves
at home, and there sat Miss Narissa behind the other, protesting
that she should feel quite distressed if we left the table without
tasting everything upon it. Even while the silver tea-spoons were
again in full operation, she regretted in the most pathetic manner
the languor of our appetites, persisted that there was nothing before
us fit to eat, and when we arose from the table, she continued to
expostulate, solemnly affirming that we had not made half a meal,
and bemoaned her fate in not being able to supply us with some-
thing better, all the way back to the quilting-room.
Lights were sparkling, like stars, around the "rising sun," but
we plied our needles unsteadily and with fluttering hands. One
after another of our number dropped off and stole up to the dress-
ing-chamber, while the huge miiTor in its tarnished frame seemed
laughing in the firelight, and enjoying the frolic mightily as one
smiling face after another peeped in, just long enough to leave a
picture and away again.
The evening closed in starlight, clear and frosty. Sleigh-bells
298- ANN S. STEPHENS.
were heard at a distance, and the illuminated snow which lay
beneath the windows was i^eopled with shadows moving over it, as
one group after another passed out, anxious to obtain a view up the
lane.
A knock at the nearest front door put us to flight. Three young
gentlemen entered and found us sitting primly around the quilt,
each with a thimble on and earnestly at work, like so many birds
in a cherry-tree. Again the knocker resounded through the house,
as if the lion's head that formed it were set to howling by the huge
mass of iron belabouring it so unmercifully. Another relay of
guests, heralded in by a gush of frosty wind from the entry, was
productive of some remarkably long stitches and rather eccentric
patterns on the "rising sun," which, probably, may be pointed out
as defects upon its disc to this day. Our fingers became more hope-
lessly tremulous, for some of the gentlemen bent over us as we
worked, and a group gathered before the fire, shutting out the blaze
from the huge mirror, which seemed gloomy and discontented at
the loss of its old playmate, though a manly form slyly arranging
its collar and a masculine hand thrust furtively through a mass of
glossy hair did, now and then, glance over its darkened surface.
The lion's head at the door continued its growls, sleigh-bells
jingled in the lane, smiles, and light and half-whispered compliments
circulated Avithin doors. Every .heart was brim full of pleasurable
excitement, and but one thing was requisite to the general happi-
ness— the appearance of Old Ben, dear old black Ben, the village
fiddler. Again the lion-knocker gave a single growl, a dying
hoarse complaint, as if it were verging from the lion rampant to
the lion couchant. All our guests were assembled except the
doctor ; it must be he or Cousin Kufus, with Old Ben. A half
score of sparkling eyes grew brighter. There was a heavy stamp-
ing of feet in the entry, which could have arisen from no single
person. The door opened, and Cousin Rufus appeared, and beyond
him, still in the dusk, stood the fiddler, with a huge bag of green
baize in his hand, which rose up and down as the old negro deli-
berately stamped the snow, first from one heavy boot, then from
the other, and, regardless of our eager glances, turned away into
ANN S. STEPHENS. 209
the supper-room, where a warm mug of gingered cider waited his
acceptance.
What a time the fiddler took in drinking his cider ! We could
fancy him tasting the warm drink, shaking it about in the mug,
after every deep draught, and marking its gradual diminution, by
the grains of ginger clinging to the inside, with philosophical calm-
ness— all the time chuckling, the old rogue, over the crowd of im-
patient young creatures waiting his pleasure in the next room.
At length. Cousin Rufus flung open the door leading to the long
kitchen, arms were presented, white hands trembling with impa-
tience eagerly clasped over them, and away we went, one and all,
so restless for the dance that two-thirds of us took a marching step
on the instant.
The old kitchen looked glorious by candlelight. Everywhere
the wreathing evergreens flung a chain of tremulous and delicate
shadows on the wall. A huge fire roared and flashed in the chim-
ney, till some of the hemlock boughs on either side grew crisp and
began to shower their leaves into the flames, which crackled the
more loudly as they received them, and darting up sent a stream
of light glowing through the upper branches and wove a perfect
net-work of shadows on the ceiling overhead. The birds gleamed
out beautifully from the deep green, the tall candles glowed in their
leafy chandeliers till the smooth laurel leaves and ground pine took
more than their natural lustre from the warm light, and the whole
room was filled with a rich fruity smell left by the dried apples and
frost grapes just removed from the walls.
Old Ben was mounted in his chair, a huge seat which we had
tangled over with evergreens. He cast his eye down the columns
of dancers with calm self-complacency, took out his fiddle, folded
up the green baize satchel, and began snapping the strings with his
thumb with a sort of sly smile on his sharp features which, with
broken music sent from his old violin, was really too much for
patient endurance.
Miss Narissa Daniels led off with the first stamp of old Ben's
foot, and Elizabeth stood pensively by, evidently reluctant to en-
gage herself before the doctor's arrival ; Julia had Cousin Rufus
27
210 ANN S. STEPHENS.
for a partner, and I, poor -wretch, stood up half pouting with Ebe-
nezer Smith, who distorted his already crooked countenance, ■\vlth
a desperate effort to look interesting, and broke into a disjointed
double shufBe every other moment.
The night -went on merrily. It seemed as if the warm gingered
cider had released the stiffened fingers of our fiddler, for the old-
fashioned tunes rung out from his instrument loud and clear, till
every nook in the farm-house resounded with them. There was
dancing in that long kitchen, let me assure you, reader, hearty,
gleeful dancing, where hearts kept time cheerily to the music, and
eyes kindled up with a healthier fire than wine can give.
I have been in many a proud assembly since that day, where the
great and the beautiful have met to admire and be admired, where
lovely women glided gracefully to and fro in the quadrille with so
little animation that the flowers in their hands scarcely trembled to
the languid motion. But we had another kind of amusement at
Julia Daniels's quilting frolic, and to say truth a better kind — the
grace of warm, unstudied, innocent enjoyment, spiced perhaps with
a little rustic affectation and coquetry.
EMMA D. E. N. SOUTHWORTH.
By ancestry Mrs. Southworth is both French and English, being
descended through her father from Charles, le Comte Nevitte, and through
her mother from Sir Thomas Grenfeldt, a knight of the days of James I.
When the American Revolution broke out, her forefathers were among the
first to fly to arms, and the names of Covington, Wailes, and Nevitt are
not unhonoured in the Revolutionary annals of Maryland and Virginia.
She was the eldest daughter of Captain Charles L. Nevitt, of Alexandria,
Virginia, and of his second wife, Susannah George Wailes, of St. Mary's
county, Maryland. Her father was an importing merchant of Alexandria.
During the naval difficulties with France, his ships and cargoes were seized
by the French, and consequently his afiairs thrown into inextricable em-
barrassment. During the last war with Great Britain he served at the
head of a company of volunteers, and received a wound in the chest, of
which he never fully recovered. About the year 1816, Captain Nevitt
married his second wife, then a girl of fifteen years of age, who was the
only child of a widowed mother, and who could not well be separated from
her. They therefore removed together to Washington city, having leased
conjointly the commodious house on New Jersey Avenue, formerly occu-
pied as a residence by General Washington.
"Here," says Mrs. Southworth, "I was born, on the 26th of December,
1818, in the very chamber once tenanted by General Washington. I was a
child of sorrow from the very first year of my life. Thin and dark, I had no
beauty except a pair of large, wild eyes — but even this was destined to be
tarnished. At twelve months old I was attacked with an inflammation of
the eyes, that ended in total, though happily temporary, blindness ; thus
my first view of life was through a dim, mysterious 'cathedral light,' in
which every object in the world looked larger, vaguer, and more distant
and imposing than it really was. Among the friends around me, the
imposing form and benignant face of my dear grandmother made the
(211)
212 EMMA D. E. N. S 0 U T H "\V 0 R T H.
deepest impression. At three years of age my sight began to clear.
About this time my only own sister was born. She was a very beautiful
child, with fair and rounded form, rosy complexion, soft blue eyes, and
golden hair, that in after years became of a bright chestnut. She was of
a lively, social, loving nature, and, as she grew, won all the hearts around
her — parents, cousins, nurses, servants, and all who had been wearied to
death with two years' attendance on such a wierd little elf as myself — yes
— and who made me /eel it ioo.
" I was wildly, passionately attached to my father — and even his par-
tiality— it was the natural and general partiality — in favour of my younger
sister, his ' dove-eyed darling,' as he called her, did not affect my love for
him. But he was very often from home for months at a time, and all my
life then was divided into two periods, — when he was home, and when he
was gone; and every event dated from one of two epochs — ^joyfully, 'since
father came home' — sadly, ' since father went away.' But at last my
father, who had never recovered from the effects of his wound, got a cold
which fell upon his lungs. His health declined rapidly. And my joys
and sorrows now took these forms — ' Father is able to walk about •/
' Father is sick in bed.'
" My father was a Roman Catholic, my mother an Episcopalian. This
accounts for what occurred about this time. One day my sister and my-
self were dressed and taken into our father's room. We found all the
family assembled, with several neighbours around our father's bed. The
priest was there in his sacred vestments. He had come to administer the
last consolations of the Church to our father, and was now about to christen
my sister and myself by his dying bed. After these rites of baptism were
over, we were taken from the room, but not before our father had laid his
dying hands upon our heads and blessed us. I do not know how long it was
after this, or where we were standing, when some one — I know not who —
came and said, ' Emma, your father is dead.' I remember I felt as if I
had received a sudden stunning blow upon the brow. I reeled back from
the blow an instant, unable to meet it, and then — with an impulse to fl}',
to escape from the calamity — turned and fled — fled with my utmost speed,
until, at some distance from home, I fell upon my face exhausted, insensi-
ble. That is all I remember except the dark pageantry of the funeral
that seemed to me like a hideous dream. I was then about four years old,
my sister one year old. For months and even years after, I ruminated on
life, death, heaven, and hell, with a painful intensity of thought, impos-
sible to describe.
"After my father's death, my gi-andmother and mother were in very
straitened circumstances, and found it extremely difiicult to keep up the
style of living to which they had been accustomed. My grandmother had
some property that brought her in a moderate income ; they had besides
the house leased, and, for that day, very sumptuously furnished. My
EMMA D. E. N. S 0 U T IIW 0 R T II. 1213
grandmother yielded to the advice of her friends, and received a few very
select boarders. But she was a lady of the lofty old school, and never
could learn to present a bill ; so the end of it was, she gave it up in a year.
" At the age of six, I was a little, thin, dark, wild-eyed elf, shy, awkward
and unattractive, and in consequence was very much — let alone. I spent
much time in solitude, reverie, or mischief — took to attics, cellars, and cock-
lofts, consorting with cats and pigeons — or with the old negroes in the kitchen,
listening with open ears and mind to ghost stories, old legends, and tales
of the times when 'Ole mist'ess was rich and saw lots of grand company' —
very happy when I could get my little sister to share my queer pleasures ;
but ' Lotty' was a parlour favourite, and was better pleased with the happy
faces of our young country cousins, some of whom were always with us on
long visits. The brightest lights of those days were the frequent visits we
would make down into St. Mary's county, sometimes sailing down the
majestic Potomac as far as St. Clement's Isle and Bay, where we generally
landed, and sometimes going in the old family carriage through the gi-and
old forest between the District of Columbia and the shores of the Chesa-
peake. We often received visits also from our country kinsfolks — visits
of months' and even of years' duration.
"At this time of my life, rejoicing in the light and liberty and glad-
ness of nature, I should have been very happy also in the love of my
friends and relations, if they had permitted it, but — no matter ! Year
after year, from my eighth to my sixteenth year, I grew more lonely,
retired more into myself, until, notwithstanding a strong, ardent, demon-
strative temperament, I became cold, reserved, and abstracted, even to
absence of mind — even to apparent insensibility.
"Let me pass over in silence the stormy and disastrous days of my
wretched girlhood and womanhood — days that stamped upon my brow of
youth the furrows of fifty years — let me come at once to the time when I
found myself broken in spirit, health, and purse — a widow in fate but not
in fact — with my babes looking up to me for a support I could not give
them. It was in these darkest days of my icoman's life, that my author's
life commenced. I wrote and published ' Retribution,' my first novel,
under the following circumstances.
" In January, 1849, 1 had been appointed teacher of the Fourth District
Primary School. The school was kept in the two largest rooms in my house
— those upon the ground floor. I had eighty pupils. A few months pre-
vious to this I had written a few short tales and sketches for the National
Era. It was while I was organizing my new school that Dr. Bailey
applied to me for another story. I promised one that should go through
two papers. I called up several subjects of a profoundly moral and philo-
sophical nature upon which the very trials and sufferings of my own life
had led me to reflect, and from among them selected that of moral retri-
214 EMMA D. E. N. SOUTH AY OR TH.
hution, as I understood it. I designed to illustrate the idea by a short
tale. I commenced, and, somehow or other, my head and heart were
teeming with thought and emotion, and the idea that had at first but glim-
mered faintly upon my perceptions, blazed into a perfect glory of light —
but which I fear I have not been able to transmit to others with the
brightness with which it shone upon myself — no, it was dimmed by the
dullness of the medium. My story grew into a volume. Every week I
would supply a portion to the paper, until weeks grew into months, and
months into quarters, before it was finished.
" The circumstances under which this, my first novel, was written, and
the success that afterwards attended its publication, is a remarkable
instance of 'sowing in tears and reaping in joy;' for, in addition to that
bitterest sorrow with which I may not make you acquainted — that great
life-sorrow — I had many minor troubles. My small salary was inadequate
to our comfortable support. My school numbered eighty pupils, boys and
girls, and I had the whole charge of them myself. Added to this, my
little boy fell dangerously ill and was confined to his bed in perfect help-
lessness until June. He would suffer no one to move him but myself —
in fact no one else could do so without putting him in pain. Thus my
time was passed between my housekeeping, my school-keeping, my child's
sick-bed, and my literary labours. The time devoted to writing was the
hours that should have been given to sleep or to fresh air. It was too
much for me. It was too much for any human being. My health broke
down. I was attacked with frequent hemorrhage of the lungs. Still I
persevered. I did my best by my house, my school, my sick child, and
my publisher. Yet neither child, nor school, nor publisher received
justice. The child suifered and complained — the patrons of the school
grew dissatisfied, annoying and sometimes insulting me — and as for the
publisher, he would reject whole pages of that manuscript which was
written amid grief, and pain, and toil that he knew nothing of (pages, by
the way, that were restored in the republication).
" This was indeed the very mdee of the ' Battle of Life.' I was forced
to keep up struggling when I only wished for death and for rest.
'' But look you how it terminated. That night of storm and darkness
came to an end, and morning broke on me at last — a bright glad morning,
pioneering a new and happy day of life. First of all, it was in this very
tempest of trouble that my ' life-sorrow' was, as it were, carried away — or
/ was carried away from brooding over it. Next, my child, contrary to my
own opinion and the doctor's, got well. Then my book, written in so much
pain, published besides in a newspaper, and, withal, being the Jlrst work
of an obscure and penniless author, was, contrary to all probabilities,
accepted by the first publishing house in America, was published and
(subsequently) noticed with high favour even by the cautious English
reviews. Friends crowded around me — offers for contributions poured iu
EMMA D. E. N. SOUTH WORTH. 215
upon me. And I, who six months before had been poor, ill, forsaken,
slandered, hilled by sorrow, privation, toil, and friendliness, found myself
born as it were into a new life; found independence, sympathy, friendship,
and honour, and an occupation in which I could delight. All this came
very suddenly, as after a terrible storm, a sun burst."
Mrs. Southworth's novels have been extremely popular, and they have
been poured forth from her teeming brain with a rapidity perfectly amaz-
ing. "Retribution" appeared in book form in 1849, "The Deserted
Wife" in 1850, " Shannondale" and "The Mother^in-Law" in 1851,
"Children of the Isle" and "The Foster Sisters" in 1852, "The Curse
of Clifton," "Old Neighbourhoods and New Settlements," and "Mark
Sutherland," in 1853, "The Lost Heiress" and "Hickory Hall," now in
press, 1854 — eleven large works of fiction in less than five years ! Nearly
all her novels have gone through numerous and large American editions,
and at least four of them have been reproduced in England.
The following estimate of Mrs. Southworth's writings is taken from
"Woman's Record," by Mrs. Hale, written after the appearance of the
first four of the works quoted above.
"Mrs. Southworth is yet young, both as a woman and an author; but
she is a writer of great promise, and we have reason to expect that the
future productions of her pen will surpass those works with which she has
already favoured the reading community — works showing great powers of
the imagination, and strength and depth of feeling, it is true, but also
written in a wild and extravagant manner, and occasionally with a freedom
of expression that almost borders on impiety. This we are constrained to
say, though we feel assured that no one would shrink more reluctantl}^
than the young writer herself from coolly and calmly approaching, with
too familiar a hand, the persons and places held sacred by all the Christian
world. She seems carried, by a fervid imagination, in an enthusiasm for
depicting character as it is actually found (in which she excels) beyond
the limits prescribed by correct taste or good judgment. In other respects
her novels are deeply interesting. They show, in every page, the hand of
a writer of unusual genius and ability. In descriptions of southern life,
and of negro character and mode of expression, she is unequalled. She
writes evidently from a full heart and an overflowing brain, and sends her
works forth to the criticisms of an unimpassioned public without the
advantage which they would receive from a revision, and careful pruning,
at some moment when calmer reflection was in the ascendancy."
216 EMMA D. E. N. SOUTIIWORTH.
THE NEGLECTED CHILDREN IN THE ATTIC.
Hagar was driven in from her rambles by the arising of a furioua
storm. She betook herself to the garret, her place of refuge in
times of trouble. Poor little Rose, repulsed by the gloom and ill-
temper of "uncle," had already hidden herself there; and the
children sat before the fireless hearth — the desolate children in the
desolate scene. It was a large, low, square room, with two deep
dormer windows facing the east, and looking far out upon the bay
— with a dark cuddie under the eaves of the western wall — with a
rude fireplace on the south, and opposite on the north, the door
leading from the room into the narrow passage and down the stairs.
The walls were very dark, and the plastering broken here and
there. Between the two dormer windows, and close to the floor,
was a large crevice in the wall, through which you might look into
the long dark space between the wall and the edge of the roof, a
space corresponding to the cuddie on the opposite side. Strange
sounds were sometimes heard in this place, and through the crevice.
Hagar, that child of shadows, would look with mysterious awe —
for with its boundaries lost in obscurity, to her it seemed a dark
profound sinking through the house down to the centre of the earth,
while her imagination loved to people it with ghosts, gnomes, and
all the subterranean demons she had read of in her favourite book,
the Arabian Nights. "Listen! listen to the spirits," she would
sometimes whisper in wantonness to her little cousin.
" I hear nothing but the rats in the cuddie," would the matter
of fact Rose reply. The floor of the attic was bare, the planks
rude and rough, and worn apart in some places, leaving dark aper-
tures, down which Hagar would look as into an interminable abyss,
the haunt of her favourite gnomes. There was no furniture in tliis
room except an old trunk without a top, that sometimes served
Rosalie for a baby-house, and sometimes reversed, for a seat.
Upon this trunk the children were now seated. The storm still
raged around the old house-top — the shingles were reft oS", whirled
EMMA D. E. N. S 0 U T IIWO RT 11. 217
aloft, and sent clattering, like hail-stones, to the ground ; the wind
howled and shrieked about the walls, and the old windows and
rafters writhed and groaned in the blast, like the wail of lost souls,
and the laugh of exultant fiends. The rain was dashed in floods
against the crazy windows, and the children sprinkled through their
crevices. The water began to stream from the leakages in the
ceiling, and to collect in puddles in the corners of the room. These
puddles enlarging and approaching each other, threatened to over-
flow the floor. The children drew their trunk upon the fireless
hearth. Kose's little chubby arms and legs were red with cold.
"Oh! how the wind's a-blowing. I am almost frozen," wept
Rose. And they were. "Let's go into the parlour," suggested
Rose.
Hagar looked at her with astonishment, that she should propose
to " beard the lion" in his present mood.
"Yes, into the parlour," persisted the child. "I'll bet you any-
thing that uncle will let us stay in the parlour this evening, and
warm ourselves at the fire ; it is so very cold you know."
" Well ! it is nnj house, anyhow, and so, for your sake. Rose, we
will go down."
And hand in hand the shivering children left the attic, passed
down four flights of back stairs, and went to the parlour door, and
Rosalie peeped timidly in. It was the same old parlour, papered
with the Christian martyrs, that I have before described ; and
there sat the tall thin figure of Mr. Withers, dark, solemn, and
lowering ; and opposite sat Sophie, with her soft brown eyes bent
over her knitting. And, oh ! sight of luxury to the half-frozen
child, — there was a glorious, glowing hickory fire, crackling, blaz-
ing, and roaring in the chimney. The children opened the door
and passed in, carefully closing it after them ; they approached the
fire, Hagar with an air of defiance. Rose with a look of depreca-
tion. Sophie looked at the children with remorseful tenderness,
and made room for them, unluckily, between herself and Withers,
thereby attracting his attention. He turned, and knitting his
28
218 EMMA D. E. N. SOUTH WORTH.
broATS until they met across his nose, and fixing his eyes sternly on
the children, he asked, in a rough tone —
" What are you doing here ?"
"Warming ourselves !" exclaimed Hagar, raising her eyes, flash-
ing, to his face.
He frowned darkly on her, and half started from his seat, -while
Rose cowered at her side, and Sophie grew pale.
"Be off with yourselves," he said, in a stern undertone.
Hagar planted her feet firmly on the ground, while Rosalia slunk
away. Sophie arose, and saying, in a low tone, " Take Rose to the
kitchen fire, dear Hagar," prepared to follow them.
" Come back, Sophie !" exclaimed Withers, in an excited tone.
And she sat down with a patient, despairing look, merely motioning
to Hagar, by an imploring gesture, to leave the room.
" Well ! let's go into the kitchen and warm ourselves at Aunt
Gumbo's fire," suggested the ever hopeful Rosalia.
They left the parlour by a back door that led through a sort of
closet into the kitchen. The storm was still raging, but a good fire
was burning on the kitchen hearth, and the tea-kettle was singing
over the blaze, and old Cumbo was standing at a table kneading
dough.
"Are you going to have biscuits for supper, Aunt Cumbo?"
asked Rosalia, in a coaxing tone, as she approached the table.
" Now, what you comin' out here botherin' arter me for, when I
am gettin' supper — go 'long in de house wid you."
The old woman happened to be in a bad humour.
"But, Aunt Cumbo, we are cold — we want to warm ourselves,"
coaxed Rose. " IMayn't we warm ourselves by your fire ?"
"No, no, no! kitchen ain't no place for white children, no how
you can fix it, so go 'long in wid you." And the rough old woman
came bustling up to the fireplace, drove the little girls away, and
"began to set her spider and spider lid to heat.
"No ; this is no place for us," said Hagar, who disdained a con-
troversy with a menial ; and the children left the passage.
EMMA D. E. N. SOUTIIWORTH. 219
Rosalia's teeth were chattering, and slie felt as though the cold
had reached her heart.
" I wish that we were both dead, Hagar," said she, m a whimper-
ing tone.
"I don't," said Hagar, looking half in pity, half in scorn, at the
wailing child. " Nor must you. You must live. You are to marry
the President of the United States, you know."
" Oh, yes !" exclaimed the vain child, suddenly brightening up,
" so I am ! Gumbo, when she ain't cross, says I'm pretty enough
to marry him or his betters ! And then, Hagar ! oh, Hagar ! then
I am going to have a good fire all the time, in every room in the
house ; and I Avill wear tvJioIe shoes and stockings evert/ day, and
always have biscuits for supper. And — never mind, Hagar, you
shall live with me, too ; and when I think of that, oh, Hagar !
When I think of that, I have such a — such a — what do you call it,
that keeps people up, and keeps 'em alive ?"
"Hope."
"Yes! 'never give up.' You know Gusty Wilde says 'never
give up,' and I am agoing to ' never give up.' I am going down
into the cellar, now, to pick up chips. Tarquins has been down
there sawing wood, and I know there must be chips there ; and we
can pick up enough to make us a fire, and we can make a nice fire
and tell stories."
And with the elasticity of childhood she led the way down to
the cellar. It was a large, dark, musty old place, with an area
partitioned off, in which milk, butter, fresh meat, &c., were kept in
summer ; in winter it was usually two feet deep in water ; now,
however, it was nearly dry. It was originally intended for a
kitchen, and was built in the old-fashioned English style, with a
large grate in the fireplace, with ovens each side, having heavy iron
doors. These deep ovens, the bounds of which were out of sight in
the darkness, seemed to Hagar like the entrances to subterranean
caverns, the abode of ghosts. To Rose they were merely brick
closets, that smelt very musty and unpleasant. The brick pavement
of the cellar was decayed away, and green with mould. It was.
220 EMMA D. E. N. S OUT HWORT H.
however, a favourite resort with the children, for there they were
free from persecution. They entered, and Rosalia began to fill her
apron with chips, when Hagar spied an old worn-out flag basket,
and drew it towards them. They both went to work, and soon filled
the little basket, and Rosalia, taking it vip in her chubby arms,
began to toil up stairs with it. Hagar would have taken it from her
— but "No, Hagar," said she, "I am afraid to go into the kitchen
again. I'll carry this, and you go and steal a coal of fire, and bring
the broom, so that we can sweep up the slop."
Hagar went into the kitchen, which she found vacant. Cumbo
had gone to the spring. Taking a coal of fire in the tongs, and
seizing the broom, she fled up stairs into the attic, where little Rose
was already busied in clearing the damp rubbish from the fireplace.
She received the coal from Hagar, and, kneeling down, placed it on
the hearth, collected around it the smallest chips, and blew it. A
little blaze soon flickered on the hearth. She continued to add
more chips as the weak flame would bear it. In the meantime
Hagar had swept up the room. The storm had subsided. The
little fire was burning cheeringly. The children drew the old trunk
before it and sat down, their arms round each other's waist ; their
little toes stretched out to the fire ; their countenances wearing that
satisfied consciousness of having toiled for and won the comforts
they were enjoying. And after all, it was but a little fire in a
dreary old attic. They were not permitted to enjoy this long.
Steps were heard approaching their retreat. The door opened,
and Tar, or as he called himself, Tarquinius Superbus — the coloured
boy of all work — entered. Rose ran to her basket of chips, and
placed herself before it.
"What you-dem do wid dat broom you stole from de kitchen,
you little t'ieves, you ? Nex' time you gim me trouble for come up
here arter you dem's nonsense, I tell Mrs. Widders, an' ef dat don't
do I tell Mr. Widders — you see !"
With that he espied the broom, and in going around to take it,
his eyes fell upon the little fire, and the small basket of chips.
EMMA D. E. N. S 0 U T II WORTH. 221
Poor Rose looked guilty and dismayed, but held desperately on to
her property. Ilagar watched him with a steady eye.
" ^^y good gracious 'live — did any soul ever see de like ? What
will Mr. Widders say ? A-wastin' all de wood ! Here's chips
enough to kindle all de fires in de mornin'."
And with a perspective glance at his morning's work, when the
basket of chips would be very convenient, the rude boy stooped
down to take possession of the prize. Rosalia held tight her
treasure. He jerked it from her, and in doing so, tore her little
tender arms with the rough flags of the old basket. Having lost his
temper in the struggle, the boy then went to the chimney, and taking
the tongs scattered the blazing chips, and raking the damp rubbish
from the corners, extinguished the fire. Then with his prize he
marched out of the room. Rose was sobbing and wiping the blood
from her wounded arm. Hagar was still and silent, but the fire
was kindling in her dark eyes ; her gipsy blood was rising ; at last
she started after him, overtook him half way down the stairs, and
seized the basket ; he pulled it from her hold and fled, she pursuing
him into the kitchen. To end the matter, he went up to the
chimney, turned up the basket, and shook down the chips into the
fire. Her gipsy blood was up ! She ran to him as he was stooping
over his work of wanton cruelty, and giving him a sudden push,
sent him into the fire. The basket was crushed under his hands,
and saved them from being badly burnt. He struggled, recovered
himself, and arose. Just at this moment Cumbo re-entered the
kitchen, and Rosalia, who had followed her cousin, came in.
"What's de matter now?" inquired the old woman.
Hagar was too proud and Rosalia too frightened to speak.
Tar gave an exaggerated account of the whole affair, as he
brusKed the smut and ashes from his sleeves. He dwelt particularly
on the waste with which " de childer had burned up all de light
wood for kindlin'."
Cumbo turned up the whites of her eyes in horror at the depre-
dation.
" It was only a few little chips that we picked up, and they were
"222 EMMA D. E. N. SOUTIIWORTH.
damp; and see how he scratched my arms !" said Rosalia, holding
them up to view.
Cumbo having sent in supper, felt herself in a better humour ;
and thought herself prepared to render judgment with marvellous
impartiality and wisdom, which, seating herself, and resting her
hands on her knees, she did to the following effect :
" Tarquinus Perbus, you go right in house an' wait on table.
Massa Widders, he callin' for you. An' Rose, you putty little
angel, you come here an' sit on old mammy's lap, and toast your
poor little footy toes before dis nice fire ; mammy's got a warm
biscuit for you in her bosom, too. An' Hagar, you ugly, bad ting,
go 'long right trait out dis here kitchen wid yourself. You're so
bad I can't a-bear you — but ugly people always is bad."
Now, if she had said bad people always are ugly, she might have
come nearer the truth, or at least taught a better lesson.
"I did not make myself, God made me," said Hagar.
"He didn't! He never made anything half so ugly and bad!
De debil made you. He made my beautiful, lovely, good, little
Rose. Some ob dese days she shall be de Presiden's wife, and i/ou
— you shall be her waitin' maid, 'cause nobody's ever gwine to
marry you — you're too ugly and hateful. Go 'long trait out dis
here kitchen now, I don't want nuffm 'tall to do wid you."
Hagar left the kitchen, casting back a look of inquiry at Rosalia;
but the little girl was petted, coaxed, flattered, and tempted by the
warm fire, and the prospect of the nice biscuit, and preferred to
keep her seat.
Hagar took her lonely way up the four flights of stairs that led
to the attic. Arrived there she sat down moodily upon the trunk,
resting her elbows upon her knees, and holding her thin face
between the palms of her hands ; her black elf-locks were hanging
wildly about her shoulders, and her eyes were wide open and fixed
upon the floor in a stare. She was bitterly reflecting that with a
really kind-hearted aunt she was suffering all the evils of orphanage,
abused by menials, pinched with hunger, and half frozen with cold.
She was wondering, too, how it was that the good God had made her
EMiMA D. E. N. SOUTH WORTH. 223
SO ugly that she could not be loved, and therefore could not be good.
Poor child, she never dreamed of general admiration, she only wished
to be loved ; and she had no one to tell her that the beauty which
wins permanent affection is the beauty of goodness ; that goodness
will soften the hardest, and intellect light up the dullest features ;
that though physical beauty may excite passion, and intellect attract
admiration, only goodness can win everlasting love.
When I recollect the strong and decided bias given in childhood
to my own character by people and circumstances over which I had
no sort of control, and against whose evil influence I could make no
sort of resistance ; when I suffer by the effect of impressions received
in infancy, which neither time, reason, nor religion have been able
to efface — which only sorrow could impair by bruising the tablet ;
knowing as I know the tender impressibility of infancy, feeling as
I feel the indelibility of such impressions, I tremble for the unseen
influences that may surround my own young children — ay, even
for the chance word dropped by stranger lips, and heard by infant
ears ; for that word may be a fruitful seed that shall spring up into
a healthful vine, or a upas tree, twenty years after it is sown. In-
fancy is a fair page upon which you may write — goodness, happi-
ness, heaven, or — sin, misery, hell. And the words once written,
no chemical art can erase them. The substance of the paper itself
must be rubbed through by the file of suffering before the writing
can be effaced. Infancy is the soft metal in the moulder's hands ;
he may shape it in the image of a fiend, or the form of an angel —
and when finished, the statue hardens into rock, which nothing
but the hammer of God's providence can break ; nothing but the
fire of God's providence can melt for remoulding.
THERESE LOUISE ALBERTINE ROBINSON.
(talvj.)
Mrs. Eobinson, the wife of the accomplished Orientalist, and herself
a very accomplished philologist and scholar, is a German by birth. But
so much of the outgrowth of her mind has been American in its origin,
that it seems but meet to give her a place in the present work.
The maiden name of Mrs. Robinson was Therese Louise Albertine von
Jacob. The initials of her name, with a slight change in the arrangement
of the letters, form the word Talvj, which has hitherto been her chief
nam de ^iilume. She is the daughter of the distinguished Professor von
Jacob, of Halle. She was born at that place, on the 26th of January,
1797. Her father became a Professor in a Russian University, first at
Charkow, in 1806, afterwards at St. Petersburg, in 1811. It was during
her ten years' residence at these two places, that she acquired her profound
knowledge of the Slavic languages and literatures. On the return of her
father to Halle, in 1816, she acquired a knowledge of the Latin. In 1822,
she translated into German two of Scott's novels, " Old Mortality" and
" Black Dwarf." In 1825, she published several original tales, under the
title of "Psyche." Her next publication was "Popular Songs of the
Servians," in two volumes, in 1826. They consisted of translations from
the Servian, a language to which her attention had been accidentally
turned, and which she mastered for the purpose of exploring its hidden
treasures.
She was married to Professor Robinson in 1828. On coming to her
home in the New World, her philological zeal followed her, and led her to
undertake researches into the aboriginal languages of this continent, and to
translate into German the work of Mr. Pickering on the " Indian Tongues
of North America." This translation was published in 1834, at Leipsic.
She published about the same time an historical view of the Slavic lan-
guages. This appeared first in 1834, in the form of contributions to the
(224)
TIIERESE LOUISE ALBERTINE ROBINSON. 225
"Biblical Repository." It was afterwards revised and enlarored, and
published as a separate volume in 1850, under the following title, "Histo-
rical View of the Languages and Literatures of the Slavic Nations, with
a Sketch of their Popular Poetry."
With the exception of a few articles in the Reviews and Periodicals, the
"Historical View" is Mrs. Robinson's only original English work. Her
novels, " Heloise, or the Unrevealed Secret," " Life's Discipline," and
"The Exiles," though composed in this country, were all written in Ger-
man, and translated into English by her daughter, who has the advantage
of tico native languages. In works of the imagination, where so much
depends upon idiomatic expressions and the niceties of diction, Mrs.
Robinson has not felt willing to trust herself to write in what is to her
after all a foreign tongue. Rut in works partaking more of a scientific
character, the case seemed to her different, and she has honoured the
country of her adoption by making its language the vehicle of the profound
and original work that has just been named.
During a temporary visit to Germany, in 1837, Mrs. Robinson prepared
and published an " Historical Characterization of the Popular Songs of the
Germanic Nations, with a Review of the Songs of the Extra-European
Races;" also a work on "The Falseness of the Songs of Ossian."
Among the results of her American studies, may be mentioned a "His-
tory of John Smith," published in Germany in 1845, and " The Coloni-
zation of New England," likewise published in Germany, in 1847. These
are both works of great research. They were prepared with a view to
make her countrymen better acquainted with the ante-revolutionary history
of this country.
As a German writer, Talvi had the good fortune to be introduced to the
public by Goethe, whose friendship she enjoyed, and who remarked of her,
that " she had the heart of a woman, but the brain of a man."
SLAVIC SUPERSTITIONS.
The strong and deeply-rooted superstitions of the Slavic nations
are partly manifest in their songs and tales ; these are full of fore-
boding dreams, and good or bad omens ; witchcraft of various kinds
is practised ; and a certain oriental fatalism seems to direct will and
destiny. The connexion with the other world appears nevertheless
much looser than is the case with the Teutonic nations. There is
no trace of spirits in Russian ballads ; although spectres appear
occasionally in Russian nursery tales. In Servian, Bohemian, and
29
220 TIIERESE LOUISE ALBERTINE ROBINSON.
Slovakian songs, it occurs frequently tliat the voices of the dead
sound from their graves ; and thus a kind of soothing intercourse
is kept up between the living and the departed. The superstition
of a certain species of blood-sucking spectres, known to the novel-
reading world under the name of vampp'cs, a superstition retained
chiefly in Dalmatia, belongs also here. In modern Greek, such a
spectre is called BruJcolaeas, in Servian WukocUak. We do not
however recollect the appearance of a vampyre, in any genuine
production of modern Greek or Servian poetry. It seems as if the
sound sense of the common people had taught them that this super-
stition is too shocking, too disgusting, to be admitted into poetry ;
while the oversated palates of the fashionable reading world crave
the strongest and most stimulating food, and can only be satisfied
by the most powerful excitement.
In the whole series of Slavic ballads and songs, which lie before
our eyes, we meet Avith only one instance of the return of a deceased
person to this w^orld in the like gloomy and mysterious way in which
the Christian nations of the North and West are wont to represent
such an event. This is in the beautiful Servian tale, " Jelitza and
her Brothers." As it is too long to be inserted here entire, we
must be satisfied with a sketch of it. Jelitza, the beloved sister of
nine brothers, is married to a Ban on the other side of the sea.
She departs reluctantly, and is consoled only by the promise of her
brothers to visit her frequently. But "the plague of the Lord"
destroys them all ; and Jelitza, un visited and apparently neglected
by her brothers, pines away and sighs so bitterly from morning to
evening, that the Lord in heaven takes pity on her. He summons
two of his angels before him ;
"Hasten down to earth, yo my two angels,
To the white grave where Jovan lies buried,
The lad Jovan, Jelitza's j'oungest brother ;
Into him, niy angels, breathe your spirit,
Make for him a horse of his white grave-stone.
Knead a loaf from the black mould beneath him,
And the presents cut out from his grave-shroud ;
Thus equip him for his promised visit."
TIIERESE LOUISE ALBERTINE ROBINSON. 227
The angels do as they are bidden. Jelitza receives her brother
with delight, and asks of him a thousand questions, to which he
gives evasive answers. After three days are past, he must away ;
but she insists on accompanying him home. Nothing can deter her.
When they come to the churchyard, the lad Joviin's home, he leaves
her under a j^retext and goes back into his grave. She waits long,
and at last follows him. When she sees the nine fresh graves, a
painful presentiment seizes her. She hurries to the house of her
mother. When she knocks at the door, the aged mother, half dis-
tracted, thinks it is "the j)lague of the Lord," which, after having
carried off her nine sons, comes for her. The mother and daughter
die in each other's arms.
This simple and affecting tale affords, then, the only instance in
Slavic popular poetry, of a regular apparition ; but even here that
apparition has, as our readers have seen, a character very different
from that of a Scotch or German ghost. The same ballad exists
also in modern Greek ; although in a shape perhaps not equal in
power and beauty to the Servian.
But the very circumstance that its subject is so isolated among
the Slavic nations, who are so ready to seize other poetical ideas
and to mould them in various ways, leads us to believe that the
Servian poet must have heard somehow or other the Greek ballad,
or a similar one ; and that the subject of the Servian ballad, although
this is familiar to all classes, was originally a stranger in Servia.
Nowhere indeed, in the whole range of Slavic popular poetry, do we
meet with that mysterious gloom, Avith those enigmatical contradic-
tions, which are peculiar to the world of spirits of the Teutonic
North ; and which Ave think find their best explanation in the anti-
thesis between the principles of Christianity, and the ruins of pagan-
ism on which it was built.
It is true, that, wherever Christianity has been carried, similar
contradictions must necessarily have taken place ; but the mind of
tbe Slavic nations, so far as it is manifest in their poetry, seems
never to have been perplexed by these contradictions. History
shows that the Slavic nations, Avith the exception of those tribes
228 THERESE LOUISE ALBERTINE ROBINSON.
who were excited to headstrong opposition by the cruelty and im-
prudence of their German converters, received Christianity with
chikllike submission ; in most cases principally because their supe-
riors adopted it. Vladimir the Great, to whom the Gospel and the
Koran were offered at the same time, was long undecided which to
choose; and was at last induced to embrace the former, because "his
Russians could not live without the pleasure of drinking." The
wooden idols, it is true, were solemnly destroyed ; but numerous
fragments of their altars were suffered to remain undisturbed at the
foot of the cross ; and the passion-flower grew up in the midst of
the wild broom, the branches of which, tied together, the Tshuvash
considers, even at the present day, as his tutelary spirit or Erich.
No struggle seems ever to have taken place to reconcile these con-
tradictory elements ; while the more philosophical spirit of the
Teutonic nations, and their genius for meditation and reflection,
could not be so easily satisfied. The character of the Teutonic
Avorld of spirits is the reflex of this struggle. The foggy veil which
covers their forms, the mysterious riddles in which their existence
is wrapped, the anxious pensiveness which forms a part of their
character, all are the results of these fruitless and mostly uncon-
scious endeavours to amalgamate opposing elements. We cannot
approach the region of their mysterious existence without an awful
shuddering ; while the few fairies which Slavic poetry and supersti-
tion present us, strike us by the distinctness and freshness of their
forms, and give us the unmingled impression either of the ludicrous
or of the wild and fantastic.
FRANCES S. OSGOOD.
The maiden name of Mrs. Osgood was Frances Sargent Locke. She
was a native of Boston, and born (we believe) about the year 1813. Her
early life was passed chiefly in the village of Hingham. She gave very
early indications of poetical talent. Her abilities in this respect were first
recognised by Mrs. Lydia M. Child, who was then editing a Juvenile
Miscellany. Miss Locke became a regular contributor to this work, and
subsequently to other works, under the name of " Florence." She was
married in 1834 to Mr. Osgood, the painter, and accompanied him soon
after to London. They remained in the great metropolis for four years,
Mr. Osgood acquiring an enviable reputation as an artist, and Mrs. Osgood
as a writer. After their return to the United States, they resided chiefly
in New York, although Mr. Osgood has been occasionally absent on pro-
fessional tours to different parts of the country. In 18-41, Mrs. O.sgood
edited an Annual, *' The Flowers of Poetry, and the Poetry of Flowers,"
and in 1847, " The Floral Offering." She published a collection of her
poems in 1846, and in 1850 a complete collection of her poetical works
in one large octavo volume. This work, which was issued in sumptuous
style, contains all of her poems, up to that date, which she thought worthy
of preservation. She, however, after that time produced some few other
poems, which will probably take their place in future editions of her
works.
Her prose contributions to the Magazines were numerous, and would
make, if collected, one or two volumes. Though prose in name, they are
all essentially poetical, far more so than much that goes under the name
of poetry. Her whole life, indeed, as it has been well remarked, was a
continual poem. "Not to write poetry — not to think it — act it — dream
it — and he it, was entirely out of her power."
Mrs. Osgood died, greatly lamented, in May 1850.
(229)
'2C0 FRANCES S. OSGOOD.
THE MAGIC LUTE. '
My beauty ! sing to me and make me glad !
Thy sweet words drop upon the ear as soft
As rose-leaves on a well. — Festus.
On a low stool at the feet of the Count de Courcy sat his bride,
the youthful Lady Loyaline. One delicate, dimpled hand hovered
over the strings of her lute, like a snowy bird, about to take wing
with a burst of melody. The other she was playfully trying to
release from the clasp of his. At last, she desisted from the
attempt, and said, as she gazed up into his proud "unfathomable
eyes" —
" Dear De Courcy ! how shall I thank you for this beautiful gift?
How shall I prove to you my love, my gratitude, for all your gene-
rous devotion to my wishes ?"
Loyaline was startled by the sudden light that dawned in those
deep eyes ; but it passed away and left them calmer, and prouder
than before, and there was a touch of sadness in the tone of his
reply—
" Sing to me, sweet, and thank me so !"
Loyaline sighed as she tuned the lute. It was ever thus when
she alluded to her love. His face would lighten like a tempest-
cloud, and then grow dark and still again, as if the fire of hope and
joy were suddenly kindled in his soul to be as suddenly extin-
guished. What could it mean ? Did he doubt her affection ? A
tear fell upon the lute, and she said, " I will sing
THE lady's lay."
The deepest wrong that thou couldst do,
Is thus to doubt my love for thee,
For questioning that thou question'st too
My truth, my pride, my purity.
: 'Twere worse than falsehood thus to meet
Thy least caress, thy lightest smile,
FRANCES S. OSGOOD. 231
Nor feel my heart exulting beat
With sweet, impassioned joy the while.
The deepest wrong that thou couldst do,
Is thus to doubt my faith professed;
How should I, love, be less than true,
When thou art noblest, bravest, best?
The tones of the Lady Lojaline's voice wei'e sweet and clear, yet
so low. so daintily delicate, that the heart caught them rather than
the ear. De Courcy felt his soul soften beneath those pleading
accents, and his eyes, as he gazed upon her, were filled with unut-
terable love and sorrow.
How beautiful she was ! With that faint colour, like the first
blush of dawn, upon her cheek^with those soft, black, glossy
braids, and those deep blue eyes, so luminous with soul ! Again
the lady touched her lute —
For thee I braid and bind my hair
With fragrant flowers, for only thee ;
Thy sweet approval, all my care,
Thy love — the world to me !
For thee I fold my fairest gown,
With simple grace, for thee, for thee !
No other eyes in all the town
Shall look with love on me.
For thee my lightsome lute I tune,
For thee — it else were mute — for thee !
The blossom to the bee in June
Is less than thou to me.
De Courcy, by nature proud, passionate, reserved, and exacting,
had wooed and won, with some difficulty, the young and timid girl,
whose tenderness for her noble lover was blent with a shrinking
awe, that all his devotion could not for awhile overcome.
At the time my story commences, he was making preparations
to join the Crusaders. He was to set out in a few days, and, brave
and chivalric as he was, there were both fear and grief in his heart,
when he thought of leaving his beautiful bride for years, perhaps
for ever. Perfectly convinced of her guileless purity of purpose,
^m FRANCES S. OSGOOD.
thouglit and deed, lie yet had, as he thought, reason to suppose that
her heart was, perhaps unconsciously to herself, estranged from
him, or rather that it never had been his. He remembered, with
a thrill of passionate grief and indignation, her bashful reluctance
to meet his gaze — her timid shrinking from his touch — and thus
her very purity and modesty, the soul of true affection, were dis-
torted by his jealous imagination into indifference for himself and
fondness for another. Only two days before, upon suddenly en-
tering her chamber, he had surprised her in tears, with a page's
cap in her hand, and on hearing his step, she had started up blush-
ing and embarrassed, and hidden it beneath her mantle, which lay
upon the couch. Poor Do Courcy ! This was indeed astounding ;
but while he had perfect faith in her honour, he was too proud to
let her see his suspicions. That cap ! that crimson cap ! It was
not the last time he was destined to behold it !
The hour of parting came, and De Courcy shuddered as he saw
a smile — certainly an exulting smile — lighten through the tears in
the dark eyes of his bride, as she bade him for the last time
" farewell."
A twelvemonth afterward, he was languishing in the dungeons
of the East — a chained and hopeless captive.
" Ah ! fleeter far than fleetest storm or steed,
Or the death they bear,
" _ The heart, which tender thought clothes, like a dove,
With the wings of care !"
The Sultan was weary ; weary of his flowers and his fountains —
of his dreams and his dancing-girls — of his harem and himself.
The banquet lay untouched before him. The rich chibouque was
cast aside. The cooling sherbet shone in vain.
The Almas tripped, with tinkling feet.
Unmarked their motions light and fleet !
His slaves trembled at his presence ; for a dark cloud hung lower-
ing on the brows of the great Lord of the East, and they knew,
FRANCES S. OSGOOD. 233
from experience, that there were both thunder and hghtning to
come ere it dispersed.
But a sound of distant plaintive melody was heard. A sweet
voice sighing to a lute. The Sultan listened. " Bring hither the
minstrel," he said in a subdued tone ; and a lovely, fair-haired boy,
in a page's dress of pale-green silk, was led blushing into the
presence.
" Sing to me, child," said the Lord of the East. And the youth
touched his lute, with grace and wondrous skill, and sang, in ac-
cents soft as the ripple of a rill,
THE violet's love.
Shall I tell what the violet said to the star,
While she gazed through her tears on his beauty, afar ?
She sang, but her singing was only a sigh,
And nobody heard it, but Heaven, Love, and I,
A sigh, full of fragrance and beauty, it stole
Through the stillness up, up, to the star's beaming soul.
She sang — " Thou art glowing with glory and might,
And I'm but a flower, frail, lowly, and light.
I ask not thy pity, I seek not thy smile ;
I ask but to worship thy beauty awhile ;
To sigh to thee, sing to thee, bloom for thine eye.
And when thou art weary, to bless thee and die !"
Shall I tell what the star to the violet said.
While ashamed, 'neath his love-look, she hung her young head ?
He sang — but his singing was only a ray.
And none but the flower and I heard the dear lay.
How it thrilled, as it fell, in its melody clear.
Through the little heart, heaving with rapture and fear !
Ah no ! love ! I dare not ! too tender, too pure.
For me to betray, were the words he said to her ;
But as she lay listening that low lullaby,
A smile lit the tear in the timid flower's eye ;
And when death had stolen her beauty and bloom,
The ray came again to play over her tomb.
Long ere the lay had ceased, the cloud in the Sultan's eye had
dissolved itself in tears. Never had music so moved his soul.
30
1234 FRANCES S. OSGOOD.
" The lute was enchanted ! The youth was a Peri, who had lost
his way ! Surely it must be so !"
"But sing me now a bolder strain !" And the beautiful child
flung back his golden curls — and swept the strings more proudly
than before, and his voice took a clarion-tone, and his dark, steel-
blue eyes flashed with heroic fire as he sang
THE CRIMSON PLUME.
Ob ! know ye the knight of the red waving plume ?
Lo ! his lightning smile gleams through the battle's wild gloom,
Like a flash through the tempest ; oh ! fly from that smile !
'Tis the wild-fire of fury — it glows to beguile !
And his sword-wave is death, and his war-cry is doom !
Oh ! brave not the knight of the dark crimson plume I
His armour is black, as the blackest midnight ;
His steed like the ocean-foam, spotlessly white ;
His crest — a crouched tiger, who dreams of fierce joy —
Its motto — " Beware ! for I wake — to destroy !"
• . And his sword-wave is death, and his war-cry is doom !
Oh I brave not the knight of the dark crimson plume !
" By Allah ! thou hast magic in thy voice ! One more ! and ask
what thou wilt. Were it my signet-ring, 'tis granted !"
Tears of rapture sprung to the eyes of the minstrel-boy, as the
Sultan spoke, and his young cheek flushed like a morning cloud.
Bending over his lute to hide his emotion, he warbled once again — ■
THE BROKEN HEART'S APPEAL.
Give me back my childhood's truth !
Give me back my guileless youth !
Pleasure, Glory, Fortune, Fame,
These I will not stoop to claim !
Take them ! All of Beauty's power.
All the triumph of this hour
Is not worth one blush you stole —
Give me back my bloom of soul !
Take the cup and take the gem !
What have I to do with them ?
Loose the garland from my hair !
Thou shouldst wind the night-shade there ;
FKANCES S. OSGOOD. 235
Thou who -wreath'st, with flattering art,
Poison-flowers to bind my heart !
Give me back the rose you stole !
Give me back my bloom of soul ?
" Name thy wish, fair chihl. But tell me first what good genius
has charmed thy lute for thee, that thus it sways the soul?"
" A child-angel, with large melancholy eyes and Avings of lam-
bent fire — we Franks have named him Love. He led me here and
breathed upon my lute."
"And where is he now ?"
" I have hidden him in my heart," said the boy, blushing as he
replied.
" And what is the boon thou wouldst ask ?"
The youthful stranger bent his knee, and said in faltering tones
— " Thou hast a captive Christian knight ; let him go free, and
Love shall bless thy throne !"
" He is thine — thou shalt thyself release him. Here, take my
signet with thee."
And the fair boy glided like an angel of light through the guards
at the dungeon-door. Bolts and bars fell before him — for he bore
the talisman of Power — and he stood in his beauty and grace at
the captive's couch, and bade him rise and go forth, for he was free.
De Courcy, half-awake, gazed wistfully on the benign eyes that
bent over him. He had just been dreaming of his guardian angel ;
and when he saw the beauteous stranger boy — with his locks of
light — his heavenly smile — his pale, sweet face — he had no doubt
that this was the celestial visitant of his dreams, and, following with
love and reverence his spirit-guide, he scarcely wondered at )iis
sudden disappearance when they reached the court.
" Pure as Aurora when she leaves her couch,
Her cool, soft couch in Heaven, and, blushing, shakes
The balmy dew-drops from Lier locks of light."
Safely the knight arrived at his castle-gate, and as he alighted
236 FRANCES S. OSGOOD.
from his steed, a lovely woman sprang through the gloomy arch-
way, and lay in tears upon his breast.
"My wife! my sweet, true wife! Is it indeed thou! Thy
cheek is paler than its wont. Hast moui'ned for me, my love?"
And the knight put back the long black locks and gazed upon that
sad, sweet face. Oh ! the delicious joy of that dear meeting ! AVas
it too dear, too bi'ight to last ?
At a banquet, given in honour of De Courcy's return, some of
the guests, flushed with wine, rashly let fall in his hearing an
insinuation which awoke all his former doubts, and, upon inquiry,
he found to his horror that during his absence the Lady Loyaline
had left her home for months, and none knew whither or why she
went, but all could guess, they hinted.
De Courcy sprang up, with his hand on the heft of his sword,
and rushed toward the chamber of his wife. She met him in the
anteroom, and listened calmly and patiently as he gave vent to all
his jealous wrath, and bade her prepare to die. Her only reply
was — " Let me go to my chamber ; I would say one prayer ; then
do with me as you will."
"Begone !"
The chamber door closed on the graceful form and sweeping
robes of the Lady de Courcy. But in a few moments it opened
again, and forth came, with meekly folded arras, a stripling in a
page's dress and crimson cap ! — the bold, bright boy with whom he
had parted at his dungeon-gate ! " Here ! in her very chamber 1"
The knight sprang forward to cleave the daring intruder to the
earth. But the stranger flung to the ground the cap and the golden
locks, and De Courcy fell at the feet, not of a minstrel-boy, but of
his own true-hearted wife, and begged her forgiveness, and blessed
her for her heroic and beautiful devotion.
ELIZABETH C. KINNEY.
Mrs. Kinney is a native of New York, and the daughter of Mr. David
L. Dodge, a wealthy and retired merchant of that city. She was married
in 1840 to Mr. "William B. Kinney, so well known as the editor of the
Newark Daily Advertiser, and as the leading political writer in the State
of New Jersey.
To Mrs. Kinney, the language of song seems to have been one of the
instincts of her nature, and, if she did not actually " lisp in numbers," her
poetical temperament was very early manifest, and has always been very
strong. Her poems, which have been profusely scattered through the
pages of the Knickerbocker, Graham, and Sartain, have, unfortunately,
never been collected into any more enduring shape. She commenced pub-
lishing under the name of " Stedman," dating from " Cedar Brook," the
country residence of her father, near Newark, New Jersey.
With the exception of " Aunt Rachel," published in Sartain's Magazine ;
"The Parsonage Gathering," "My Aunt Polly," and "Mrs. Tiptop,"
in Graham, and some few other tales and sketches, her prose writings have
appeared in the Newark Daily, the literary department of which has been
for several years committed to her hands. The critiques and essays of
various kinds that have graced these columns are among the best things
that Mrs. Kinney has written.
Mrs. Kinney, in 1850, went to Italy, her husband having received
from the United States Government the appointment to the Sardinian
mission. Her talents and her literary reputation have secured for her a
very flattering reception among the savants and the court circle to which
she has been accredited. Their residence is at Turin.
(237)
238 ELIZABETH C. KINNEY.
OLD MAIDS.
We might say "maiden ladies !" — but wish to redeem two plain
monosyllables from a certain undefinable stigma that they have
borne too long. Old implies years, and years imply wisdom ; why
should we despise the one and not the other ? Why, unless it be
that the word old, when coupled with maid, is held up as a bugbear
to frighten girls into hasty and injudicious marriages ; or is perverted
into another term for a shrivelled, vinegar-faced spinster, in whose
nature the milk of human kindness has been soured by disappoint-
ment, and turns to acid every sweet that it comes in contact with.
Words being but signs of ideas, if such is the apparition conjured
to the mind of any by the phrase old maid, we cannot wonder that
it seems formidably odious. To us, very different associations are
connected with it : the stigmatized name seems almost sacred, con-
veying to the mind, as it does, the image of a pure, patient, doing,
and enduring spirit, well nigh divested of the selfishness that,
innate, controls the infant, the child, the belle, and even the wife
and mother — that ideal of perfected woman I — in short, the embo-
diment of disinterestedness.
And who that Avill take off the glasses of prejudice, look around,
and call up recollections of domestic life either at home, or in other
homes, can fail to discover some female form and fjice — possibly
attenuated and wrinkled by time and care — moving about the house
from morning till night, ever bent on some errand of good to its
inmates: now nursing the sick; now contriving some delicacy for
the table, or to gratify the juvenile appetite ; now braA'ely leading
on to the fight a soap and water regiment, at that semi-annual
internal revolution called house-cleaning, herself in the thickest of
the fray ; now arranging wardrobes for the Spring and Autumn
comfort of all the household — save herself; now remaining through
the heat and noxious atmosphere of a summer in the city, to keep
the house in safety, while its proprietor, children, and even ser-
vants are enjoying cool sea-breezes, drinking at fountains of health,
ELIZABETH C. KINNEY. 239
or rovino" in the free air of the country ; now out watching the
moon, with weary but sleepless eyes, the uninvited, awaiting the
return of invited guests from some party or masquerade ; in brief,
spending and being spent in the service of perhaps a sister, a cousin,
or a niece, whose return for untiring, disinterested affection, is the
selfish love that considers its recipient invaluable, not as a gentle,
unpretending associate, but as a reliable convenience !
But let us look at the causes, as well as effects, of single life in
•women. If the histories of all old maids were written, what dis-
closures of female heroism would be made ! In how many cases
could celibacy be traced, not to want of personal or mental attrac-
tions ; nor of admiration or love ; but to that heroic nature which,
though capable of the deepest and most endui'ing passion, has the
fortitude to live alone, rather than be hound, not united, to an
uncongenial being. And if " He that ruleth his spirit be greater
than he that taketh a city," surely she that ruleth her heart is
greater than she that taketh a name for the sake of a name ; or to
avoid one stigmatized indiscriminately.
Love is the instinct of the female heart : almost every woman
who has lived to see thirty years, has felt the outgoings of affec-
tion's well-spring ; but hers is not often the power of choosing,
though it is of refusing. Who may tell the inward conflicts, the
unuttered agonies, the protracted soul-sickness of conquered pas-
sion ? But when a true woman once triumphs over an inexpedient
or unreciprocated attachment, she triumphs over self, and becomes,
that noblest of feminine spirits, the disinterested friend of mankind !
Be sure that the scandal-monger, the tart-mouthed old maid, is one
whose inner heart has never felt the wound that opens a passage
for human sympathies to flow out ; but is smarting under superficial
mortifications, that, like poison introduced only skin-deep, fester
and irritate continually. Rare are such cases, and yet few as they
are, they infect the general mind, so that old maid, thus considered,
is a noun of multitude, including all who choose or are destined to
live single lives. And how many unhappy marriages are the con
sequence of this opprobrium !
Even the single-hearted piety of unmarried females is derided.
240 ELIZABETH C. KINNEY.
Who has not heard such ribaldry as this, " 0, she's getting religion
now that she can't get a husband ?" But it is the inspired Apostle
who says, "The unmarried woman careth for the things of the
Lord, that she may be holy both in body and in spirit." Thus do
we see oftenest in the single woman that perfect love to God, which
manifests itself in love to all his creatures.
For our part, we venerate the very name of Old Maid — its hero-
ism, its benevolence, its piety ! Ye, who are blessed with an Aunt
Fanny, an Aunt Polly, or an Aunt Betsy — names too venerable to
be spelled with the modern ie, which in your own, perchance, is
substituted for the old-fashioned y — do ye ever think that, though
unwedded, she has a heart alive with all human sympathies ? Ah,
you cannot but feel this in her countless ministrations for your com-
fort. But do you ever realize that she feels, not loved for herself
in return, but for her deeds, and weeps silently under the con-
sciousness that when her lonely, loving life ceases on earth, not she,
but her offices of kindness will be missed and mom-ned for ?
Such are some of the obscurer subjects of the vulgar prejudice
against " Old Maids ;" and if these noiseless, yet immortalized indi-
viduals, "whose names are written in the Book of Life," are such
invaluable members of the household and of society ; what shall we
say of Hannah More, of Joanna Baillie, of Maria Edgeworth, of
Jane Taylor, of our own Miss Dix, and of a host of others, whose
names are written in the universal heart ; some of whom " do rest
from their labqurs," and all of whose works shall live after them?
For ever honoured, and through these renowned, be the sisterhood
of Old Maids.
THE SONNET.
There are people who seem to thmk that an intellectual taste
for certain kinds of poetry, or an ear for Italian music are to be
acquired ; like a physical relish for olives, tomatoes, or macaroni !
That even cultivated minds cannot appreciate some styles of poetic
ELIZABETH C. KINNEY. 241
composition, so as to feel the sentiment conveyed in them, till
familiarized to the form of conveyance : and that no ear — however
delicately attuned by the great Master — can naturally enjoy the
soul of melody that gushes from the throats of Italia's songsters,
because Art commingles the melting strains into harmonious pas-
sages, giving unity to multiplicity of sound ; as it weaves into
musical feet the inborn idea — the breathing thought of poesy.
We should like to have all who say they can enjoy natural, but not
artistic music, visit an aviary in the season of song ; when some
fifty vocal throats — pitched on as many keys — are striving to
drown one another's tones : we never hear such a discord " of
sweet sounds" from Nature's undrilled troupe, without thinking, if
it were possible for Art to harmonize the warblers' voices together,
what a tide of affluent melody would overpower the senses ! And
would it be less Nature s music than before ?
The truth is, that such as hear only artificial tones from Italy's
6o?'W-songsters — made artists by study and practice — have not the
ear for natural melody that they boast of; but one in sympathy
with discordant sounds. So he that cannot recognise at once the
native soul of poetry, in whatever form presented, has imagined
himself an admirer of poetry, when only in love with certain forms
of expression and musical cadences, while insensible to the spirit and
power of the poetic thought they embody ; and he is so constituted
in mind as never to acquire any true appreciation of at least one
form of the beautiful. "We noticed recently in a periodical paper
a Sonnet introduced by the following paragraph :
"We have an utter, relentless, unmitigated dislike, aversion,
horror, for those fourteen-lined efi"usions, called Sonnets. They
remind us of a child struggling to walk in swaddling clothes. They
are puny ideas on stilts. They have a central thought, which, like
the centre of gravity, is never seen. The poor thing flounders
about like a man running tied up in a sack. It is a puzzle for
children of a larger growth. Like a glass thread, one wonders
how it is spun, or how the apple got into the dumplings !"
Nor is the above the expression of an uncommon sentiment
regarding Sonnets. Now, no lover of the Sonnet will afiirm that
31
242 ELIZABETH C. KINNEY.
even its beautiful form of composition, ever so artistically Tvrought
out of rich material, can affect the human mind, unless the vital
spark animates the whole, any more than other forms of art through
■which no spiritual meaning is conveyed. But he, who in a true
Sonnet can see nothing but the imaginary laborious process of its
execution, would probably stand before a Grecian temple calculating
the labour and manner of its construction ; while the lover of Art,
blind to its processes, in silent awe worshipped the grandeui* of its
complete manifestation.
A Sonnet, in the highest sense, naturally obeys the law of art,
which is to conceal its processes. And where, in the Sonnets of
Petrarch, of Milton, of Shakspeare, of Coleridge, or of Wordsworth,
can any "anointed eye" see the least shadow of constraint, or
trace of effort ? So unconstrainedly do the poetic language and
imagery arrange their metrical feet in the beautiful order of the
Sonnet, — while the one luminous idea, like electricity, runs through
the whole, — that the mind which can perceive, sees only the radiant
thought, yet feels that a harmonious chain is its conductor.
Nor is the Sonnet such an effort to the poet, as the machine
poetaster or mechanical reader may suppose. All will allow that
love utters itself through the most natural forms of expression.
Petrach's love for Laura gave birth to the Sonnet : it was not the
invention of mechanical genius ; but a living creation, that owes its
being to the strong emotions of hopeless passion. And, if, when
reproduced in its original likeness, its beauty and vital power
are unfelt, depend upon it, the fault is not in the Sonnet.
Born in Italy — and how can anything lack music or warmth that
originated under those glowing skies ? — and introduced into England
by Lord Surrey, the Sonnet has for centuries been the medium of
conveying and receiving the richest gems of poetic thought and
fancy. In our opinion, Wordsworth's Sonnets, save one or two
Odes, are worth all his other poems ; and he has said,
"Scoi'ii not the Sonnet; Critic, you have frowned,
Mindless of its just honours ; with this key
Shakspeare unlocked his heart; the melody
Of this small lute gave ease to Petrarch's wound :
ELIZABETH C. KINNEY. 243
A thousand times this pipe did Tasso sound ;
Camoens soothed with it au exile's grief;
The Sonnet glittered a gay myrtle leaf
Amid the cypress with which Dante crowned
His visionary brow : a glow-worm lamp,
It cheered mild Spenser, called from Fairy-land
To struggle through dark ways ; and, when a damp
Fell round the path of Milton, in his hand
The thing became a trumpet, whence he blew
Soul-animating strains — alas, too few!"
But the Sonnet is not confined to the Old "World : — certain also
of our own poets have with this magic "key" unlocked the heart;
with this "glow-worm lamp," shed light into the enshrouded mind ;
with this " pipe," awakened tones musical as the shepherd god sent
through Arcadian vales ; with this "myrtle leaf," made green again
the cypress-crowned brow ; with this " trumpet," sounded the victory
of the spirit over human passions and earth-born hopes.
"And what shall we say more ? Time would fail us to tell of"
all that the Sonnet has effected — of all who have made it the
mighty instrument for the soul's unwritten music.
HARRIET FARLEY.
Soon after the commencement of the present century, a young minister,
named Stephen Farley, was settled in the beautiful town of Claremont,
New Hampshire, his native State ; and, as the rich soil on the banks of
the Connecticut was full of good things for the present, and good promise
for the future ; as the lively falls of Sugar river could be induced to turn
their active energies to the accumulation of comforts and wealth ; the new
preacher was easily persuaded to bring a young bride to alleviate his cares
and heighten his joys. She was born in Massachusetts, the child of a
father who had derived so rich an inheritance that, in her early childhood,
it might not have been supposed the daughter would ever be called upon
to eke out a frugally genteel subsistence by school teaching. Such, how-
ever, was her employment in Maine, where she went to reside with her
mother, after the sudden death of her father. That mother was of the
celebrated "Moody" family, so well known once throughout New Eng-
land, and not yet extinct, being still, whether on the high seas, or near
the forests of their native State, or in the metropolis of that section of the
country, or at the capital of the Union, or away in the new cities of the
far West — being everywhere distinguished for cultivation, urbanity, hos-
pitality, family pride, patriotism, and all those qualities which distinguish
the gentry of the " old school."
" Father Moody," so often quoted in the provincial history of New
England, was the ancestor of this family. " Handkerchief Moody," his
son, the hero of Hawthorne's story of " The Minister's Veil," is embalmed
in many memories for his piety and affliction. He committed an acci-
dental murder, and ever after covered his face from his fellow men.
" Master Moody," the celebrated preceptor of " Hummer Academy,"
wished that his niece had been a man, that he might have given her a
collegiate education. She was remarkable not only for intellectual quali-
ties, but for the gi'aceful dignity becoming to any woman.
(244)
HARRIET FARLEY. 24o
After her husband's death, she went with her children to the old town
of York, in the District of Maine, and thither the young New Hampshire
minister repaired to find, in her daughter, his future helpmeet. She was
a beautiful and very animated woman, with fine taste, much wit, and
unusual conversational powers. Among her rejected admirers were those
who have since become Judges, and otherwise " potent, grave, and reverend
seigniors." The calm, studious, sober minister, was her choice; and, in
an humble country cottage, she reared her little brood of children.
But afflictions came. Ill health and mental disquiet, the conflict of a
speculative mind with venerated creeds and cherished belief, impaired the
energies of the father. And then the dark cloud, that had cast its gloom
over Handkerchief Moody's life, and settled in blackness over, the close of
her father's, cast its fearful shadow upon the mother's mind ; and, through
her, a sombre shade upon her family. Some years after, the mental sun
broke through this cloud, and shone for a long ,time within the home-
stead; then again came the sad eclipse which, in this world, may never
pass away. During the interval of brightness, came the tenth, and last,
of the household band, more than half of whom have been taken away.
Harriet Farley was the sixth of these children. She was born amidst
the beautiful scenery of the Connecticut valley, but educated, principall}-,
in the quiet town of Atkinson, New Hampshire, where her father was
both pastor of the parish and preceptor of the academy.
Prior to her fifteenth year, her advantages were good for obtaining an
English and classical education. But she often expresses her regret that
these advantages were not duly appreciated ; that she was deprived in a
great measure of a mother's influence, and gave to light literature and
social enjoyment too much of the golden hours that should have been de-
voted to more solid intellectual acquisitions.
At the age of fifteen the truth came home to the poor minister's daugh-
ter, that upon herself she must henceforth depend for her subsistence.
School teaching, sewing, straw plaiting, and shoe binding, were succes-
sively tried, but none suited ; and so she went to the factory. Here she
perseveringly laboured for several years, returning home when the sick
or dying required her presence, and once leaving the mills for several
months to attend school.
In 1840 the "Improvement Circle" was established, to which she
became a constant contributor. Soon after, the establishment of the
" Lowell Ofi"ering" disseminated the knowledge of these mill-girls' efforts
throughout our own and other countries. Though the work first attracted
attention as a mere literary novelty, it was not destitute of intrinsic merit;
and the writers were stimulated by praise and patronage. Miss Farley
was invited to edit the third volume, a task which she combined with mill-
labour. "With editorial labours she combined the care of the '' Home
Department," in publishing the fourth, fifth, and sixth volumes.
246 HARRIET FARLEY.
The seventh volume she edited and published alone, charging herself
with all the duties of editor, publisher, and agent. The book-keeping,
mailing, canvassing, and all else, devolved on her. Since that time she
has employed an assistant, to mail the numbers, keep office, and accounts,
and do the stitching and folding.
She has contributed but little to other publications. Her literary
claims and history are pretty much confined to that of the "Offering."
This work has gained kind notices, in Great Britain, Germany, and
France, from eminent literati. Compilations from it have been pub-
lished in England and Scotland, and there have been some translations in
foreign tongues.
The first article, written expressly for publication, was '' Abby's Year
in Lowell," a story which was reprinted in Edinburgh, by the Messrs.
Chambers, in their series of cheap publications for the million. It is,
perhaps, as good a specimen of her style as can be given.
ABBY'S YEAK IN LOWELL.
" Mr. Atkins, I say ! Husband, why can't you speak ? Do
■you hear what Abby says ?"
"Anything worth hearing?" was the responsive question of Mr.
Atkins ; and he laid down the New Hampshire Patriot, and peered
over his spectacles with a look which seemed to say, that an event
so uncommon deserved particular attention.
" Why, she says that she means to go to Lowell, and work in
the factory."
"Well, wife, let her go;" and Mr. Atkins took up the Patriot
again.
" But I do not see how I can spare her ; the spring cleaning is
not done, nor the soap made, nor the boys' summer clothes; and
you say that you intend to board your own 'men-folks,' and keep
two more cows than you did last year ; and Chai'ley can scarcely
go alone. I do not see how I can get along without her."
"But you say she does not assist you any about the house."
" Well, husband, she might.'"
" Yes, she might do a great many things which she does not
think of doing ; and as I do not see that she means to be useful
here, we will let her go to the factory."
HARKIET FARLEY. 247
"Father! are you in earnest? May I go to Lowell?" said
Abbv ; and she raised her bright black eyes to her father's with a
look of exquisite delight.
" Yes, Abby, if you will promise me one thing ; and that is, that
you will stay a whole year without visiting us, excepting in case
of sickness, and that you will stay but one year."
" I will promise anything, father, if you will only let me go ; for
I thought you would say that I had better stay at home and pick
rocks, and weed the garden, and drop corn, and rake hay ; and I
do not want to do such work any longer. May I go with the
Slater girls next Tuesday, for that is the day they have set for
their return?"
" Yes, Abby, if you will remember that you are to stay a year,
and only one year."
Abby retired to rest that night with a heart fluttering with plea-
sure ; for ever since the visit of the Slater girls with new silk
dresses, and Navarino bonnets trimmed with flowers, and lace veils,
and gauze handkerchiefs, her head had been filled with visions of
fine clothes ; and she thought if she could only go where she could
dress like them, she should be completely happy. She was natu-
rally very fond of dress, and often, while a little girl, had she sat
on the grass bank by the roadside watching the stage which went
daily by her father's retired dwelling ; and when she saw the gay
ribbons and smart shawls, which passed like a bright phantom
before her wondering eyes, she had thought that, when older, she
too would have such things ; and she looked forward to womanhood
as to a state in which the chief pleasure must consist in wearing
fine clothes.
But as years passed over her, she became aware that this was a
source from which she could never derive any enjoyment whilst she
remained at home ; for her father was neither able nor willing to
gratify her in this respect, and she had begun to fear that she must
always wear the same brown cambric bonnet, and that the same
calico gown would always be her " go-to-meeting dress." And now
what a bright picture had been formed by her ardent and unculti-
vated imagination ! Yes, she would go to Lowell, and earn all that
248 HARRIET FARLEY.
slie possibly could, and spend those earnings in beautiful attire ;
she would have silk dresses — one of grass green, and another of
cherry red, and another upon the colour of which she would decide
when she purchased it ; and she would have a new Navarino bon-
net, far more beautiful than Judith Slater's ; and when at last she
fell asleep, it was to dream of satin and lace, and her glowing
fancy revelled all night in a vast and beautiful collection of milli-
ners' finery.
But very different were the dreams of Abby's mother ; and
when she awoke the next morning, her first words to her husband
were, "Mr. Atkins, were you serious last night when you told
Abby that she might go to Lowell ? I thought at first that you
were vexed because I interrupted you, and said it to stop the
conversation."
"Yes, wife, I was serious, and you did not interrupt me, for I
had been listening to all that you and Abby were saying. She is
a wild, thoughtless girl, and I hardly know what it is best to do
with her ; but perhaps it will be as well to try an experiment, and
let her think and act a little Avhile for herself. I expect that she
will spend all her earnings in fine clothes ; but after she has done
so, she may see the folly of it ; at all events, she will be rather
more likely to understand the value of money when she has been
obliged to work for it. After she has had her own way for one
year, she may possibly be willing to return home and become a
little more steady, and be willing to devote her active energies
(for she is a very capable girl) to household duties, for hitherto
her services have been principally out of doors, where she is now
too old to work. I am also willing that she should see a little of
the world, and what is going on in it; and I hope that, if she
receives no benefit, she will at least return to us uninjured."
" Oh, husband, I have many fears for her," was the reply of
Mrs. Atkins, "she is so very giddy and thoughtless; and the
Slater girls are as hairbrained as herself, and will lead her on in
all sorts of folly. I wish you would tell her that she must stay at
home."
HARRIET FARLEY. 249
" I have made a promise," said Mr. Atkins, " and I will keep it ;
and Abby, I trust, will keep hers."
Abby flew round in high spirits to make the necessary prepara-
tions for her departure, and her mother assisted her with a heavy
heart.
The evening before she left home, her father called her to him,
and fixing upon her a calm, earnest, and almost mournful look, ho
said, " Abby, do you ever think ?" Abby was subdued and almost
awed by her father's look and manner. There was something unu-
sual in it — something in his expression which was unexpected in
him, but which reminded her of her teacher's look at the Sabbath
school, when he was endeavouring to impress upon her mind some
serious truth.
"Yes, father," she at length replied, "I have thought a great
deal lately about going to Lowell."
" But I do not believe, my child, that you have had one serious
reflection upon the subject, and I fear that I have done wrong in
consenting to let you go from home. If I were too poor to main-
tain you here, and had no employment about which you could make
3^ourself useful, I should feel no self-reproach, and would let you
go, trusting that all might yet be well ; but now I have done what
I may at some future time severely repent of; and, Abby, if you
do not wish to make me wretched, you will return to tis a better,
milder, and more thoughtful girl."
That night Abby reflected more seriously than she had ever done
in her life before. Her father's words, rendered more impressive
by the look and tone with which they were delivered, had sunk into
her heart as words of his had never done before. She had been
surprised at his ready acquiescence in her wishes, but it had now a
new meaning. She felt that she was about to be abandoned to
herself, because her parents despaired of being able to do anything
for her ; they thought her too wild, reckless, and untameable to be
softened by aught but the stern lessons of experience. I will sur-
prise them, said she to herself; I will show them that I have some
32
250 HARRIET FARLEY.
reflection ; and after I come home, my father shall never ask me
if I think. Yes, I know what their fears are, and I will let them
see that I can take care of myself, and as good care as they have
ever taken of me. I know that I have not done as well as I might
have done ; but I will begin now, and when I return, they shall see
that I am a better, milder, and more thoughtful girl. And the
money which I intended to spend in fine dress shall be put into the
bank ; I will save it all, and my father shall see that I can earn
money, and take care of it too. Oh how difierent I will be from
what they think I am ; and how very glad it will make my father
and mother to see that I am not so very bad after all !
New feelings and new ideas had begotten new resolutions, and
Abby's dreams that night were of smiles from her mother, and
words from her father, such as she had never received nor deserved.
When she bade them farewell the next morning, she said nothing
of the change which had taken place in her views and feelings, for
she felt a slight degree of self-distrust in her own firmness of
purpose.
A-bby's self-distrust was commendable and auspicious ; but she
had a very prominent development in that part of the head where
phrenologists locate the organ of firmness ; and when she had once
determined upon a thing, she usually went through with it. She
had now resolved to pursue a course entirely different from that
which was expected of her, and as different from the one she had
first marked out for herself. This was more difficult, on account
of her strong propensity for dress, a love of which was freely grati-
fied by her companions. But when Judith Slater pressed her to
purchase this beautiful piece of silk, or that splendid piece of mus-
lin, her constant reply was, " No, I have determined not to buy
any such things, and I will keep my resolution."
Before she came to Lowell, she wondered, in her simplicity, how
people could live where there were so many stores, and not spend
all their money ; and it now required all her firmness to resist being
overcome by the tempting display of beauties which met her eyes
whenever she promenaded the illuminated streets. It was hard to
walk by the milliners' shops with an unwavering step ; and when
HARRIET FARLEY. 251
she came to the confection arics, she could not help stopping. But
she did not yield to the temptation ; she did not spend her money
in them. When she saw fine strawberries, she said to herself, "I
can gather them in our own pasture next year;" when she looked
upon the nice peaches, cherries, and plums, which stood in tempting
array behind their crystal barriers, she said again, " I will do with-
out them this summer;" and when apples, pears, and nuts, were
offered to her for sale, she thought that she would eat none of them
till she went home. But she felt that the only safe place for her
earnings was the savings' bank, and there they were regularly
deposited, that it might be out of her power to indulge in moment-
ary whims. She gratified no feeling but a newly-awakened desire
for mental improvement, and spent her leisure hours in reading
useful books.
Abby's year was one of perpetual self-contest and self-denial ;
but it was by no means one of unmitigated misery. The ruling
desire of years was not to be conquered by the resolution of a mo-
ment ; but when the contest was over, there was for her the tri-
umph of victory. If the battle was sometimes desperate, there
was so much more merit in being conqueror. One Sabbath was
spent in tears, because Judith Slater did not wish her to attend
their meeting with such a dowdy bonnet; and another fellow-
boarder thought her gown must have been made in " the year one."
The colour mounted to her cheeks, and the lightning flashed from
her eyes, when asked if she had '^just come dotvn;" and she felt
as though she should be glad to be away from them all, when she
heard their sly innuendoes about "bush-whackers." Still she re-
mained unshaken. It is but for a year, said she to herself, and the
time and money that my father thought I should spend in folly
shall be devoted to a better purpose.
At the close of a pleasant April day, Mr. Atkins sat at his
kitchen fireside, with Charley upon his knee. "Wife," said he to
Mrs. Atkins, who was busily preparing the evening meal, " is it
not a year since Abby left home ?"
252 HARRIET FARLEY.
" Why, husband, let me think : I ahvays clean up the house
thoroughly just before fast-day, and I had not done it when Abby
went away. I remember speaking to her about it, and telling her
that it was wrong to leave me at such a busy time ; and she said,
' Mother, I will be at home to do it all next year.' Yes, it is a
year, and I should not be surprised if she should come this week."
"Perhaps she will not come at all," said Mr. Atkins, with a
gloomy look ; " she has written us but few letters, and they have
been very short and unsatisfactory. I suppose she has sense
enough to know that no news is better than bad news ; and having
nothing pleasant to tell about herself, she thinks she will tell us
nothing at all. But if I ever get her home again, I will keep her
here. I assure you her first year in LoAvell shall also be her last."
" Husband, I told you my fears, and if you had set up your
authority, Abby would have been obliged to stay at home ; but
perhaps she is doing pretty well. You know she is not accustomed
to writing, and that may account for the few and short letters we
have received ; but they have all, even the shortest, contained the
assurance that she would be at home at the close of the year."
"Pa, the stage has stopped here," said little Charley, and he
bounded from his father's knee. The next moment the room rang
with the shout of "Abby has come ! Abby has come !"
In a few moments more she was in the midst of the joyful
throng. Her father pressed her hand in silence, and tears gushed
from her mother's eyes. Her brothers and sisters were clamorous
with delight, all but little Charley, to whom Abby was a stranger,
and who repelled with terror all her overtures for a better acquaint-
ance. Her parents gazed upon her with speechless pleasure, for
they felt that a change for the better had taken place in their once
wayward girl. Yes, there she stood before them, a little taller and
a little thinner, and, when the flush of emotion had faded away,
perhaps a little paler ; but the eyes were bright in their joyous
radiance, and the smile of health and innocence was playing around
the rosy lips. She carefully laid aside her new straw-bonnet, with
its plain trimming of light-blue ribbon, and her dark merino dress
showed to the best advantage her neat symmetrical form. There
HARRIET FARLEY. 2o3
Tvas more delicacy of personal appearance than wlien slic left them,
and also more softness of manner ; for constant collision Avitli so
many young females had worn off the little asperities which had
marked her conduct while at home.
"Well, Abby, how many silk gowns have you got?" said her
father, as she opened a large new trunk.
"Not one^ father," said she, and she fixed her dark eyes upon
him with an expression which told all. " But here are some little
books for the children, and a new calico dress for mother ; and
here is a nice black silk handkerchief for you to wear around your
neck on Sundays. Accept it, dear father, it is your daughter's
first gift."
" You had better have bought me a pair of spectacles, for I am
sure I cannot see anything." There were tears in the rough
farmer's eyes, but he tried to laugh and joke, that they might not
be perceived. " But what did you do with all your money ?"
"I thought I had better leave it there," said Abby, and she
placed her bank-book in her father's hand. Mr. Atkins looked a
moment, and the forced smile faded away. The surprise had been
too great, and tears fell thick and fast from the father's eyes.
"It is but a little," said Abby.
"But it was all you could save," replied her father, "and I am
proud of you, Abby; yes, proud that I am the father of such a girl.
It is not this paltry sum which pleases me so much, but the prudence,
self-command, and real affection for us which you have displayed.
But was it not sometimes hard to resist temptation ?"
"Yes, father, you can never know how hard; but it was the
thought of tins night which sustained me through it all. I knew
how you would smile, and what my mother would say and feel ;
and though there have been moments, yes, houi-s, that have seen
me wretched enough, yet this one evening will repay for all. There
is but one thing now to mar my happiness, and that is the thought
that this little fellow has quite forgotten me," and she drew Charley
to her side. But the new picture-book had already effected wonders,
and in a few moments he was in her lap, with his arms around her
254 HARRIET FARLEY.
neck, and his mother could not persuade hun to retire that night
until he had given " Sister Abby" a hundred kisses.
"Father," said Abby, as she arose to retire when the tall clock
struck eleven, " may I not some time go back to LoAvell ? I should
like to add a little to the sum in the bank, and I should be glad of
one silk gown."
"Yes, Abby, you may do anything you wish. I shall never
again be afraid to let you spend a year in Lowell. You have
shown yourself to be possessed of a virtue, without which no one
can expect to gain either respect or confidence — Self-Dexial."
MARY H. EASTMAN.
Mary Henderson, now Mrs. Mary H. Eastman, was born in Warren-
ton, Fauquier county, Virginia. Her father is Dr. Thomas Henderson,
of the U. S. Army; her mother is a daughter of the well known naval
commander, Commodore Truxtun. Her parents left Warrenton while she
was still young, and removed to the city of Washington, where she lived
till the time of her marriage, which took place at West Point, in 1835.
Her husband, Captain S. Eastman, of the U. S. Army, is a graduate of
the West Point Academy. Since his graduation, which was in 1829, he
has spent most of his time in frontier stations, chiefly at Fort Snelling,
where he was for a period of nine years. Mrs. Eastman was with him the
greater part of this time. While there she had more favourable opportu-
nities, probably, for studying the Indian character and customs than were
ever possessed by any lady before. Having enjoyed while young the
advantages of an excellent education, and possessing intellectual gifts of a
high order, as well as much natural shrewdness of observation, she employed
herself in gathering up curious Indian lore, which, since her return to the
abodes of civilization, she has communicated to the public in several very
interesting publications. The first of these was published in 1849, and
entitled "Dahcotah, or Legends of the Sioux." The second series of
papers was published in 1851, of the same character as "Dahcotah."
These all consist of stories, sketches, poems, &c., relating to the Sioux and
Chippeway Indians, whom she saw at and near Fort Snelling. A third
work, called the " Aboriginal Portfolio," in quarto, appeared in 1853 ; and
still a fourth, of the same general character, but relating chiefly to the
Indian tribes of Pueblos in New Mexico, is now in press (1854).
Of all the portraitures of Indian life and character that have been given
to the public, none, probably, have come more nearly to the truth than
those by Mrs. Eastman. Her books are among the very best contributions
(255)
256 MARY H. EASTMAN.
to our native literature tliat have lately appeared. Her descriptions are
happily free from the prevailing bombast and extravagance. She has the
faculty — rare among her sex — of saying much in little space, and of saying
that much with commendable precision. She conceives strongly what she
means to say, and says it directly and in good English.
Besides her Indian books, Mrs. Eastman made, in 1852, a successful
hit in another walk of literature. "When " Uncle Tom's Cabin" was at
the height of its popularity, she published a reply, under the title of
"Aunt Phillis's Cabin, "-a novel in form, but abounding in sharp retort
and hard argument. Eighteen thousand copies of this work were sold in a
few weeks.
SHAH-CO-PEE.
No one Avho has lived at Fort Snelling can ever forget Sliali-co-
pee, for at what house has he not called to shake hands and smoke,
to say that he is a great chief, and that he is hungry and must eat
before he starts for home ? If the hint is not immediately acted
upon, he adds that the sun is dying fast, and it is time for him to
set out.
Shah-co-pee is not so tall or fine looking as Bad Hail, nor has he
the fine Koman features of Old Man in the Cloud. His face is
decidedly ugly ; but there is an expression of intelligence about his
quick black eye and fine forehead, that makes him friends, notwith-
standing his many troublesome qualities.
When he speaks he uses a great deal of gesture, suiting the action
to the word. His hands, wdiich are small and well formed, are
black with dirt ; he does not descend to the duties of the toilet.
He is the orator of the Dahcotahs. No matter how trifling the
occasion, he talks well ; and assumes an air of importance that
would become him if he Avere discoursing on matters of life and
death.
Some years ago, our government wished the Chippoways and
Dahcotahs to conclude a treaty of peace among themselves. Fre-
quently have these two bands made peace, but rarely kept it any
length of time. On this occasion many jDromises were made on
MARY n. EASTMAN. 257
both sides ; promises wliicli would be broken by some inconsiderate
young warrior before long, and then retaliation must follow.
Shah-co-pee has great influence among the Dahcotahs, and he
was to come to Fort Snelling to be present at the council of peace.
Early in the morning he and about twenty warriors left their vil-
lage on the banks of the St. Peter's, for the Fort.
When they were very near, so that their actions could be dis-
tinguished, they assembled in their canoes, drawing them close
together, that they might hear the speech which their chief was
about to make to them.
They raised the stars and stripes, and their own flag, which is a
staff adorned with feathers from the war eagle ; and the noon-day
sun gave brilliancy to their gay dresses, and the feathers and orna-
ments that they wore.
Shah-co-pee stood straight and firm in his canoe — and not the
less proudly that the walls of the Fort towered above him.
" My boys," he said (for thus he always addressed his men) " the
Dahcotahs are all braves ; never has a coward been known among
the People of the Spirit Lakes. Let the women and children fear
their enemies, but we will face our foes, and always conquer.
" We are going to talk with the white men ; our great Father
wishes us to be at peace with our enemies. We have long enough
shed the blood of the Chippeways ; we have danced round their
scalps, and our children have kicked their heads about in the dust.
What more do we want ? When we are in council, listen to the
words of the Interpreter as he tells us what our great Father says,
and I will answer him for you ; and when we have eaten, and
smoked the pipe of peace, we will return to our village."
The chief took his seat with all the importance of a public bene-
factor. He intended to have all the talking to himself, to arrange
matters according to his own ideas ; but he did it with the ut most
condescension, and his warriors were satisfied.
Besides being an orator, Shah-co-pee is a beggar, and one of a
high order too, for he will neither take offence nor refusal. Tell
him one day that you will not give him pork and flour, and on the
next he returns, nothing daunted, shaking hands, and asking for
S3
'2oS MARY H. EASTMAN.
pork and flour. He always gains his point, for you are obliged to
give in order to get rid of him. He will take up his quarters at
the Interpreter's, and come down upon you every day for a week
just at meal time — and as he is always blessed with a ferocious
appetite, it is much better to capitulate, come to terms by giving
him what he wants, and let him go. And after he has once started,
ten to one if he does not come back to say he wants to shoot and
bring you some ducks ; you must give him powder and shot to
enable him to do so. That will probably be the last of it.
It was a beautiful morning in June when we left Fort Snelling
to go on a pleasure party up the St. Peter's, in a steamboat, the
first that had ever ascended that river. There were many draw-
backs in the commencement, as there always are on such occasions.
The morning was rather cool, thought some, and as they hesitated
about going, of course their toilets were delayed till the last
moment. And when all were fairly in the boat, wood was yet
to be found. Then something was the matter with one of the
wheels — and the mothers were almost sorry they had consented to
come ; while the children, frantic with joy, were in danger of
being drowned every moment, by the energetic movements they
made near the sides of the boat, by way of indicating their satis-
faction at the state of things.
In the cabin, extensive preparations were making in case the
excursion brought on a good appetite. Everybody contributed
loaf upon loaf of bread and cake ; pies, coffee, and sugar ; cold
meats of every description ; with milk and cream in bottles. Now
and then, one of these was broken or upset, by way of adding to
the confusion, which was already intolerable.
Champagne and old Cogniac were brought by the young gentle-
men, only for fear the ladies should be sea-sick ; or, perhaps, in
case the gentlemen should think it positively necessary to drink
the ladies' health.
"When we thought all was ready, there was still another delay.
MARY H. EASTMAN. 259
Sliah-co-pee and two of his warriors were seen coming doAvn the
hill, the chief making an animated appeal to some one on board
the boat; and as he reached the shore he gave us to understand
that his business was concluded, and that he would like to go with
us. But it was very evident that he considered his company a
favour.
The bright sun brought warmth, and we sat on the upper deck
admiring the beautiful shores of the St. Peter's. Not a creature
was to be seen for some distance on the banks, and the birds as
they flew over our heads seemed to be the fit and only inhabitants
of such a region.
When tired of admiring the scenery, there was enough to employ
us. The table was to be set for dinner ; the children had already
found out which basket contained the cake, and they were casting
admiring looks towards it.
When we were all assembled to partake of some refreshments,
It was delightful to find that there were not enough chairs for half
the party. We borrowed each others' knives and forks, too, and
etiquette, that petty tyrant of society, retired from the scene.
Shah-co-pee found his way to the cabin, where he manifested
strong symptoms of shaking hands over again ; in order to keep
him quiet, we gave him plenty to eat. IIow he seemed to enjoy a
piece of cake that had accidentally dropped into the oyster-soup !
and with equal gravity would he eat apple-pie and ham together.
And then his cry of " wakun"* when the cork flew from the cham-
pagne bottle across the table !
How happily the day passed — how few such days occur in the
longest life !
As Shah-co-pee's village appeared in sight, the chief addressed
Colonel D , who was at that time in command of Fort Snel-
ling, asking him why we had come on such an excursion.
" To escort you home," was the ready reply; "you are a great
chief, and worthy of being honoured, and we have chosen this as
the best way of showing our respect and admiration of you."
The Dahcotah chief believed all ; he never for a moment
* Mysterious.
2G0 M A R Y 11 . E A S T M A. N .
thought there was anything like jesting on the subject of his
own high merits ; his face beamed with delight on receiving such
a compliment.
The men and women of the village crowded on the shore as
the boat landed, as well they might, for a steamboat was a new
sight to them.
The chief sprang from the boat, and swelling with pride and
self-admiration he took the most conspicuous station on a rock
near the shore, among his people, and made them a speech.
We could but admire his native eloquence. Here, with all that
is wild in nature surrounding him, did the untaught orator address
his people. His lips gave raj^id utterance to thoughts which did
honour to his feelings, when we consider who and what he was.
He told them that the white people were their friends ; that
they wished them to give up murder and Intemperance, and to live
quietly and happily. They taught them to plant corn, and they
were anxious to instruct their children. "When we are suffering,"
said he, " during the cold weather, from sickness or want of food,
they give us medicine and bread."
And finally he told them of the honour that had been paid him.
" I went, as you know, to talk with the big Captain of the Fort,
and he, knowing the bravery of the Dahcotahs, and that I was a
great chief, has brought me home, as you see. Never has a Dah-
cotah warrior been thus honoured !"
Never, indeed ! But we took care not to undeceive him. It was
a harmless error, and as no efforts on our part could have diminished
his self-importance, we listened with apparent, indeed with real admi-
ration of his eloquent speech. The women brought ducks on board,
and in exchange we gave them bread ; and it was evening as we
watched the last teepee of Shah-co-pee's village fade away in the
distance.
Shah-co-pce has looked rather grave lately. There is trouble
in the wigwam.
The old chief is the husband of three wives, and they and their
MARY II. EASTMAN. 261
children are ahvays fighting. The first Avife is old as the hills,
■wrinkled and haggard ; the chief cares no more for her than he
does for the stick of wood she is chopping. She quarrels with
everybody but him, and this prevents her from being quite
forgotten.
The day of the second wife is past too, it is of no use for her
to plait her hair and put on her ornaments; for the old chief's
heart is wrapped up in his third wife.
The girl did not love him, how could she ? and he did not suc-
ceed in talking her into the match ; but he induced the parents to
sell her to him, and the young wife went weeping to the teepee of
the chief.
Hers was a sad fate. She hated her husband as much as he
loved her. No presents could reconcile her to her situation. The
two forsaken wives never ceased annoying her, and their children
assisted them. The young wife had not the courage to resent
their ill treatment, for the loss of her lover had broken her heart.
But that lover did not seem to be in such despair as she was — he
did not quit the village, or drown himself, or commit any act of
desperation. He lounged and smoked as much as ever. On one
occasion, when Shah-co-pee was absent from the village, the lovers
met.
They had to look well around them, for the two old wives were
always on the lookout for something to tell of the young one ; but
there was no one near. The wind whistled keenly round the bend
of the river as the Dahcotah told the weeping girl to listen to him.
When had she refused ? How had she longed to hear the sound
of his voice when wearied to death with the long boastings of the
old chief !
But how did her heart beat when Red Stone told her that he
loved her still — that he had only been waiting an opportunity to
induce her to leave her old husband, and go with him far away !
She hesitated a little, but not long; and when Shah-co-pee
returned to his teepee his young wife was gone — no one had seen
her depart — no one knew where to seek for her. When the old
man heard that Red Stone was gone too, his rage knew no bounds.
2G2 MARY H. EASTMAN.
He beat his two wives almost to death, and would have given his
handsomest pipe-stem to have seen the faithless one again.
His passion did not last long ; it would have killed him if it had.
His wives moaned all through the night, bruised and bleeding, for
the fault of their rival ; while the chief had recourse to the pipe,
the never-failing refuge of the Dahcotah.
"I thought," said the chief, "that some calamity was going to
happen to me" (for, being more composed, he began to talk to the
other Indians who sat with him in his teepee, somewhat after the
manner and in the spirit of Job's friends). " I saw Unk-a-tahe,
the great fish of the water, and it showed its horns ; and we know
that that is always a sign of trouble."
"Ho !" replied an old medicine man, " I remember when Unk-
a-tahe got in under the falls" (of St. Anthony) "and broke up the
ice. The large pieces of ice went swiftly down, and the water
forced its way until it was frightful to see it. The trees near the
shore were thrown down, and the small islands were left bare.
Near Fort Snelling there was a house where a white man and his
wife lived. The woman heard the noise, and, waking her husband,
ran out ; but as he did not follow her quick enough, the house was
soon afloat and he was drowned."
There was an Indian camp near this house, for the body of
Wenona, the sick girl who was carried over the Falls, was found
here. It was placed on a scaffold on the shore, near where the
Indians found her, and Checkered Cloud moved her teepee, to be
near her daughter. Several other Dahcotah families were also
near her.
But what was their fright when they heard the ice breaking, and
the waters roaring as they carried everything before them ? The
father of Wenona clung to his daughter's scaffold, and no entreaties
of his wife or others could induce him to leave.
"Unk-a-tahe has done this," cried the old man, "and I care
not. He carried my sick daughter under the waters, and he may
bury me there too." And while the others fled from the power of
Unk-a-tahe, the father and mother clung to the scaffold of their
daughter.
MARY 11. EASTMAN. 263
They were saved, and they lived by the body of Wenona until
they buried her. The power of Unk-a-tahe is great!" So spoke
the medicine-man, and Shah-co-pee almost forgot his loss in the
fear and admiration of this monster of the deep, this terror of the
Dahcotahs.
He will do well to forget the young wife altogether ; for she is
far away, making mocassins for the man she loves. She rejoices
at her escape from the old man, and his two wives ; while he is
always making speeches to his men, commencing by saying he is a
great chief, and ending with the assertion that Red Stone should
have respected his old age, and not have stolen from him the only
wife he loved.
Shah-co-pee came, a few days ago, with twenty other warriors,
some of them chiefs, on a visit to the commanding officer of Fort
Snelling.
The Dahcotahs had heard that the Winnebagoes were about to
be removed, and that they were to pass through their hunting-
grounds on their way to their future homes. They did not approve
of this arrangement. Last summer the Dahcotahs took some scalps
of the Winnebagoes, and it was decided at Washington that the
Dahcotahs should pay four thousand dollars of their annuities as
an atonement for the act. This caused much suffering among the
Dahcotahs ; fever was making great havoc among them, and to
deprive them of their flour and other articles of food was only
enfeebling their constitutions, and rendering them an easy prey
for disease. The Dahcotahs thought this very hard at the time ;
they have not forgotten the circumstance, and they think that they
ought to be consulted before their lands are made a thoroughfare
by their enemies.
They accordingly assembled, and, accompanied by the Indian
agent and the interpreter, came to Fort Snelling to make their
complaint. When they were all seated (all on the floor but one,
who looked most uncomfortable, mounted on a high chair), the
agent introduced the subject, and it was discussed for a while ; the
204 MARY II. EASTMAN.
Dahcotalis paying the most profound attention, although they
could not understand a word of what was passing; and when
there was a few moments' silence, the chiefs rose each in his turn
to protest against the Winnebagoes passing through their country.
They all spoke sensibly and well; and when one finished, the
others all intimated their approval by crying "Ho!" as a kind
of chorus. After a while Shah-co-pee rose ; his manner said " I
am Sir Oracle." He shook hands with the commanding officer,
Avith the agent and interpreter, and then with some strangers who
were visiting the fort.
His attitude was perfectly erect as he addressed the ofiicer.
" "We are the children of our great Father, the President of the
United States ; look upon us, for we are your children too. You
are placed here to see that the Dahcotahs are protected, that their
rights are not infringed upon."
While the Indians cried " Ho ! ho !" with great emphasis, Shah-
co-pee shook hands all round again, and then resumed his place
and speech.
" Once this country all belonged to the Dahcotahs. Where
had the white man a place to call his own on our prairies ? He
could not even pass through our country without our permission !
" Our great Father has signified to us that he wants our lands.
We have sold some of them to him, and we are content to do so,
but he has promised to protect us, to be a friend to us, to take care
of us as a father does of his children.
" When the white man wishes to visit us, we open the door of
our country to him ; we treat him with hospitality. He looks at
our rocks, our river, our trees, and we do not disturb him. The
Dahcotah and the white man are friends.
" But the Winnebagoes are not our friends, we suffered for them
not long ago ; our children wanted food ; our wives were sick ;
they could not plant corn or gather the Indian potato. Many of
our nation died ; their bodies are now resting on their scaffolds.
The night birds clap their wings as the winds howl over them !
" And we are told that our great Father will let the Winneba-
MARY II. EASTMAN. 265
goes make a path through our hunting-grounds : they ^vill subsist
upon our game ; every bird or animal they kill will be a loss to us.
" The Dahcotah's lands are not free to others. If our great
Father wishes to make any use of our lands, he should pay us.
"We object to the Winnebagoes passing through our country ; but
if it is too late to prevent this, then we demand a thousand dollars
for every village they shall pass."
"Ho !" cried the Indians again ; and Shah-co-pee, after shaking
hands once more, took his seat.
I doubt if you will ever get the thousand dollars a village. Shah-
co-pee ; but I like the spirit that induces you to demand it. May
you live long to make speeches and beg bread — the unrivalled
orator and most notorious beggar of the Dahcotahs !
3i
S. MARGARET FULLER,
(maechionessofossoli.)
Sarah Margaret Fuller was born at Cambridge, Massachusettj,
May 23, 1810. She was the daughter of the Hon. Timothy Fuller, a
lawyer of Boston, but nearly all his life a resident of Cambridge, and a
Representative of the Middlesex District in Congress from 1817 to 1825.
Mr. Fuller, upon bis retirement from Congress, purchased a farm at some
distance from Boston, and abandoned law for agriculture, soon after
which he died. His widow and six children still survive.
Margaret was the first-born, and from a very early age evinced the
possession of remarkable intellectual powers. Her father regarded her
with a proud admiration, and was from childhood her chief instructor,
guide, companion, and friend. At eight years of age he was accustomed
to require of her the composition of a number of Latin verses per day,
while her studies in philosophy, history, general science, and current
literature were in after years extensive and profound. After her father's
death, she applied herself to teaching as a vocation, first in Boston, then
in Providence, and afterwards in Boston again, where her " Conversa-
tions" were for several seasons attended by classes of women, some of
them married, and including many from the best families of that city.
In the autumn of 1814, she accepted an invitation to take part in the
conduct of " The Tribune," with especial reference to the department of
Reviews and Criticisms on current Literature and Art, a position which
she filled with eminent ability for nearly two years. Her reviews of
Longfellow's Poems, Wesley's Memoirs, Poe's Poems, Bailey's "Festus,"
Douglas's Life, &c., may be mentioned with special emphasis. She had
previously found " fit audience, though few," for a series of remarkable
papers on ''The Great Musicians," "Lord Herbert of Cherbury,"
"Woman," &c., in "The Dial," of which she was at first co-editor
(266)
^ J^^c,'
2.fARCKiOMESS DOS SOU.,
S. MARGARET FULLER. 267
with Ralph Waldo Emerson, but which was afterwards edited by liim
only, though she continued a contributor to its pages. In 1843, she
accompanied some friends on a tour by Niagara, Detroit, and Mackinac
to Chicago, and across the Prairies of Illinois, and her resulting volume,
entitled "Summer on the Lakes," is considered one of the best works in
its department ever issued from the American press. Her " Woman in
the Nineteenth Century" — an extension of her essay in " The Dial" — was
published early in 1845, and a moderate edition sold. The next year a
selection from her " Papers on Literature and Art" was issued by Wiley
& Putnam, in two fair volumes of their " Library of American Books."
These " Papers" embody some of her best contributions to " The Dial,"^
"The Tribune," and perhaps one or two which had not appeared in
either.
In the summer of 1845, Miss Fuller accompanied the family of a
devoted friend to Europe, visiting England, Scotland, France, and pass-
ing through Italy to Rome, where they spent the ensuing winter. She
accompanied her friends next spring to the north of Italy, and there
stopped, spending most of the summer at Florence, and returning at the
approach of winter to Rome, where she was soon after married to Gio-
vanni, Marquis d'Ossoli, who had made her acquaintance during her first
winter in the Eternal City. They afterwards resided in the Roman
States until the summer of 1850, after the surrender of Rome to the
French army of assassins of libei'ty, when they deemed it expedient to
migrate to Florence, both having taken an active part in the Republican
movement. Thence in June they departed and set sail at Leghorn for
New York, in the Philadelphia brig Elizabeth, which was doomed to
encounter a succession of disasters. They had not been many days at
sea when the captain was prostrated by a disease which ultimately exhibited
itself as confluent small-pox of the most malignant type, and terminated
his life soon after they touched at Gibraltar, after a sickness of intense
agony and loathsome horror. The vessel was detained some days in
quarantine by reason of this affliction, but finally set sail again just in
season to bring her on our coast on the fearful night between the 18th
and 19th of July, 1850, when darkness, rain, and a terrific gale from the
south-west conspired to hurl her into the very jaws of destruction. She
struck during the night, and before the next evening was a mass of
drifting sticks and planks, while her passengers and part of her crew
were buried in the boiling surges.
Among those drowned in this fearful wreck were the Marquis and
Marchioness d'Ossoli, and their only child.
Miss Fuller was more remarkable for strength and vigour of thought,
and a certain absolute and almost scornful independence, than for the
graces of style and diction. She had the reputation of being " the best
talker since Madame de Stael," and by those who knew her most inti-
268 S. MARGARET FULLER.
niately her conversational powers were considered more brilliant even than
her talents as a writer. She was, without doubt, in both respects, one of
the most remarkable women of the present century. Her friends, R. W.
Emerson and W. H. Channing, published in 1851 an interesting Memoir
of her life and writings, in two volumes.
A SHORT ESSAY ON CRITICS.
An essay on Criticism were a serious matter ; for, though this
age be emphatically critical, the writer "would still find it necessary
to investin;ate the laws of criticism as a science, to settle its condi-
tions as an art. Essays, entitled critical, are epistles addressed to
the public, through which the mind of the recluse relieves itself of
its impressions. Of these the only law is, " Speak the best word
that is in thee." Or they are regular articles got up to order by
the literary hack writer, for the literary mart, and the only law is
to make them plausible. There is not yet deliberate recognition
of a standard of criticism, though we hope the always strength-
ening league of the republic of letters must ere long settle laws on
which its Amphictyonic council may act. Meanwhile let us not
venture to write on criticism, but, by classifying the critics, imply
our liopes and thereby our thoughts.
First, there are the subjective class (to make use of a convenient
term, introduced by our German benefactors). These are persons
to whom writing is no sacred, no reverend employment. They are
not driven to consider, not forced upon investigation by the fact,
that they are deliberately giving their thoughts an independent
existence, and that it may live to others when dead to them. They
know no agonies of conscientious research, no timidities of self-
respect. They see no ideal beyond the present hour, which makes
its mood an uncertain tenure. How things affect them now they
know ; let the future, let the whole take care of itself. They state
their impressions as they rise, of other men's spoken, written, or
acted thoughts. They never dream of going out of themselves to
seek the motive, to trace the law of another nature. Tliey never
dream that there are statures which cannot be measured from their
point of view. They love, they like, or they hate ; the book is
S. MARGARET FULLER. 269
detestable, immoral, absurd, or admirable, noble, of a most ap-
proved scope ; — these statements they make with authority, as those
■who bear the evangel of pure taste and accurate judgment, and
need be tried before no human synod. To them it seems that their
present position commands the universe.
Thus the essays on the works of others, which are called criti-
cisms, are often, in fact, mere records of impressions. To judge
of their value you must know where the man was brought up,
under what influences, — his nation, his church, his family even.
He himself has never attempted to estimate the value of these
circumstances, and find a law or raise a standard above all circum-
stances, permanent against all influence. He is content to be the
creature of his place, and to represent it by his spoken and written
word. He takes the same ground with a savage, who does not
hesitate to say of the product of a civilization on which he could
not stand, "It is bad," or "It is good."
The value of such comments is merely reflex. They characterize
the critic. They give an idea of certain influences on a certain
act of men in a certain time or place. Their absolute, essential
value is nothing. The long review, the eloquent article by the
man of the nineteenth century, are of no value by themselves con-
sidered, but only as samples of their kind. The writers were con-
tent to tell what they felt, to praise or to denounce without needing
to convince us or themselves. They sought not the divine truths
of philosophy, and she proffers them not if unsought.
Then there are the apprehensive. These can go out of them-
selves and enter fully into a foreign existence. They breathe its
life ; they live in its law ; they tell what it meant, and why it so
expressed its meaning. They reproduce the work of which they
speak, and make it better known to us in so far as two statements
are better than one. There are beautiful specimens in this kind.
They are pleasing to us as bearing witness of the genial sympathies
of nature. They have the ready grace of love with somewhat of
the dignity of disinterested friendship. They sometimes give more
pleasure than the original production of which they treat, as melo-
dies will sometimes rino- sweetlier in the echo. Besides there is a
270 S. MARGARET FULLER.
peculiar pleasure in a true response ; it is the assurance of equipoise
in the universe. These, if not true critics, come nearer the stand-
ard than the subjective class, and the value of their work is ideal
as well as historical.
Then there are the comprehensive, who must also be apprehen-
sive. They enter into the nature of another being, and judge his
work by its own law. But having done so, having ascertained his
design and the degree of his success in fulfilling it, thus measuring
his judgment, his energy, and skill, they do also know how to put
that aim in its place, and how to estimate its relations. And this
the critic can only do who perceives the analogies of the universe,
and how they are regulated by an absolute, invariable principle.
He can see how far that work expresses this principle, as well as
how far it is excellent in its details. Sustained by a principle, such
as can be girt within no rule, no formula, he can walk around the
work, he can stand above it, he can uplift it, and try its weight.
Finally, he is worthy to judge it.
Critics are poets cut down, says some one by way of jeer ; but,
in truth, they are men with the poetical temperament to apprehend,
with the philosophical tendency to investigate. The maker is
divine ; the critic sees this divine, but brings it down to humanity
by the analytic process. The critic is the historian who records
the order of creation. In vain for the maker, who knows without
learning it, but not in vain for the mind of his race.
The critic is beneath the maker, but is his needed friend. What
tongue could speak but to an intelligent ear, and every noble work
demands its critic. The richer the work, the more severe should
be its critic ; the larger its scope, the more comprehensive must be
his power of scrutiny. The critic is not a base caviller, but the
younger brother of genius. Next to invention is the power of
interpreting invention ; next to beauty the power of appreciating
beauty.
And of making others appreciate it ; for the universe is a scale
of infinite gradation, and below the very highest, every step is
explanation down to the lowest. Religion, in the two modulations
of poetry and music, descends through an infinity of waves to the
S. MARGARET FULLER. 271
lowest abysses of human nature. Nature is the literature and art
of the divine mind ; human literature and art the criticism on that ;
and they, too, find their criticism within their own sphere.
The critic, then, should be not merely a poet, not merely a philo-
sopher, not merely an observer, but tempered of all three. If he
criticise the poem, he must want nothing of what constitutes the
poet, except the power of creating forms and speaking in music.
He must have as good an eye and as fine a sense ; but if he had
as fine an organ for expression also, he would make the poem
instead of judging it. He must be inspired by the philosopher's
spirit of inquiry and need of generalization, but he must not be
constrained by the hard cemented masonry of method to which
philosophers are prone. And he must have the organic acuteness
of the observer, with a love of ideal perfection, which forbids him
to be content with mere beauty of details in the work or the com-
ment upon the work.
There are persons who maintain, that there is no legitimate criti-
cism, except the reproductive ; that we have only to say what the
work is or is to us, never what it is not. But the moment we look
for a principle, we feel the need of a criterion, of a standard ; and
then we say what the work is not, as well as what it is ; and this
is as healthy though not as grateful and gracious an operation of
the mind as the other. "We do not seek to degrade but to classify
an object, by stating what it is not. We detach the part from the
whole, lest it stand between us and the whole. When we have
ascertained in what degree it manifests the whole, we may safely
restore it to its place, and love or admire it there ever after.
The use of criticism, in periodical writing, is to sift, not to stamp
a work. Yet should they not be " sieves and drainers for the use
of luxurious readers," but for the use of earnest inquirers, giving
voice and being to their objections, as well as stimulus to their
sympathies. But the critic must not be an infallible adviser to his
reader. He must not tell him what books are not worth reading,
or what must be thought of them when read, but what he read in
them. Woe to that coterie where some critic sits despotic, en-
trenched behind the infallible " We." Woe to that oracle who has
272 S. MARGARET FULLER.
infused such soft sleepiness, such a gentle dulness into his atmo-
sphere, that Avhen he opes his lips no dog will bark. It is this
attempt at dictatorship in the reviewers, and the indolent acquies-
cence of their readers, that has brought them into disrepute. With
such fairness did they make out their statements, with such dignity
did they utter their verdicts, that the poor reader grew all too
submissive. He learned his lesson with such docility, that the
greater part of what will be said at any public or private meeting
can be foretold by any one who has read the leading periodical
works for twenty years back. Scholars sneer at and would fain
dispense with them altogether ; and the public, grown lazy and
helpless by this constant use of props and stays, can now scarce
brace itself even to get through a magazine article, but reads in
the daily paper laid beside the breakfast-plate a short notice of the
last number of the long-established and popular review, and there-
upon passes its judgment and is content.
Then the partisan spirit of many of these journals has made it
unsafe to rely upon them as guide-books and expurgatory indexes.
They could not be content merely to stimulate and suggest thought,
they have at last become powerless to supersede it.
From these causes and causes like these, the journals have lost
much of their influence. There is a languid feeling about them,
an inclination to suspect the justice of their verdicts, the value of
their criticisms. But their golden age cannot be quite past. They
afford too convenient a vehicle for the transmission of knowledge ;
they are too natural a feature of our time to have done all their
work yet. Surely they may be redeemed from their abuses, they
may be turned to their true uses. But how ?
It were easy to say what they should not do. They should not
have an object to carry or a cause to advocate, which obliges them
either to reject all writings which wear the distinctive traits of
individual life, or to file away what does not suit them, till the
essay, made true to their design, is made false to the mind of the
writer. An external consistency is thus produced, at the expense
of all salient thought, all genuine emotion of life, in short, and all
living influence. Their purpose may be of value, but by such
S. MARGARET FULLER. 273
means was no valuable purpose ever furthered long. There are
those, "who have with the best intention pursued this system of
trimming and adaptation, and thought it well and best to
"Deceive their country for their country's good."
But their country cannot long be so governed. It misses the
pure, the full tone of truth ; it perceives that the voice is modulated
to coax, to persuade, and it turns from the judicious man of the
world, calculating the eifect to be produced by each of his smooth
sentences, to some earnest voice which is uttering thoughts, crude,
rash, ill-arranged it may be, but true to one human breast, and
uttered in full faith, that the God of Truth will guide them aright.
And here, it seems to me, has been the greatest mistake in the
conduct of these journals. A smooth monotony has been attained,
an uniformity of tone, so that from the title of a journal you can
infer the tenor of all its chapters. But nature is ever various,
ever new, and so should be her daughters, art and literature. We
do not want merely a polite response to what we thought before,
but by the freshness of thought in other minds to have new thought
awakened in our own. We do not want stores of information only,
but to be roused to digest these into knowledge. Able and expe-
rienced men write for us, and we would know what they think, as
they think it not for us but for themselves. We would live with
them, rather than be taught by them how to live ; we would catch
the contagion of their mental activity, rather than have them direct
us how to regulate our own. In books, in reviews, in the senate,
in the pulpit, we wish to meet thinking men, not schoolmasters or
pleaders. We wish that they should do full justice to their own
view, but also that they should be frank with us, and, if now our
superiors, treat us as if we might some time rise to be their equals.
It is this true manliness, this firmness in his own position, and this
power of appreciating the position of others, that alone can make
the critic our companion and friend. We would converse with him,
secure that he will tell us all his thought, and speak as man to man.
But if he adapts his work to us, if he stifles what is distinctively
his, if he shows himself either arrogant or mean, or, above all, if
35
274
S. M4.IIGARET FULLER.
he wants faith in the healthy action of free thought, and the safety
of pure motive, we Avill not talk Avith him, for we cannot confide in
him. We will go to the critic who trusts Genius and trusts us, who
knows that all good writing must be spontaneous, and who will
write out the bill of fare for the public as he read it for himself, —
" Forgetting vulgar rules, Tvith spirit free
To judge each author by his own intent,
Nor think one standard for all minds is meant."
Such an one will not disturb us with personalities, with sectarian
prejudices, or an undue vehemence in favour of petty plans or
temporary objects. Neither will he disgust us by smooth obse-
quious flatteries, and an inexpressive, lifeless gentleness. lie will
be free and make free from the mechanical and distorting influences
we hear complained of on every side. He will teach us to love
wisely what we before loved well, for he knows the difference be-
tween censoriousness and discernment, infatuation and reverence ;
and while delighting in the genial melodies of Pan, can perceive,
should Apollo bring his lyre into audience, that there may be strains
more divine than those of his native groves.
CATHERINE E. BEECHER.
Miss Beecher's literary history is remarkable, and illustrates one of
her own favourite maxims in regard to education. Until the age of twenty,
her reading, so far as left to her own choice, was confined to works of ima-
gination and humour, she had written nothing but letters and poetry, had
a decided aversion to the practical duties of domestic life, was so disin-
clined to metaphysical inquiries, though living in a family where such
inquiries formed the staple of daily conversation, as never to have given the
subject any connected attention, and withal was so averse to mathematical
studies as not even to have learned the multiplication table, or to have
mastered the simplest arithmetical process. Yet this woman has become
distinguished as a writer on some of the most abstruse questions of mental
and moral science, has prepared one of the clearest manuals extant for
teaching the rationale of arithmetic, has written most acceptably on
domestic economy, and she is most favourably known, throughout the length
and breadth of the land, by the sober and practical character of her views
as an educator and a philanthropist.
Miss Beecher is the daughter of the eminent theologian, the Rev. Lyman
Beecher, D. D. She was born at East Hampton, Long Island, Sept. 6,
1800. In 1810, the family removed to Litchfield, Connecticut, where
Catherine was placed at Miss Pierce's school for young ladies, then the
most celebrated in the country.
About the age of twenty, according to Mrs. Hale, " an event occurred
that ended for ever all Miss Beecher's youthful dreams of poetry and.
romance, and changed the whole course of thought and feeling as regarded
her destiny in life. But the Providence that withdrew her heart from the
world of woman's hopes, has proved a great blessing to her sex and her
country."
In consequence of the event thus delicately alluded to, 3Iiss Beecher
directed her whole energies to the subject of education. She founded, in
(275)
276 CATHERINE E. BEECHER.
1823, the Hartford Female Seminary, which received pupils from every
State in the Union, numbering at one time as high an attendance as one
hundred and sixty.
In 1832, she accompanied her father to Cincinnati, and established
there, in 1833, the Western Female Institute. Her more recent efforts
towards organizing a general plan for popular education, thqugh highly
important in themselves and honourable to her, do not lie strictly within
the scope of the present article.
Miss Beecher's first published work was entitled " Suggestions on Edu-
cation," a small volume of eighty-four pages, which appeared in 1829. The
next was the "Arithmetic" already referred to, which appeared in 1830. It
was designed to make teachers more thorough in explaining the rationale
of arithmetical processes, and was quoted with high commendation by
Prof. Olmstead of Yale College. Her next work was printed in 1831, but
has never been published. It was an octavo of 452 pages, on the " Ele-
ments of Mental and Moral Philosophy, as founded on Reason, Experience,
and the Bible." The extract which is given is from this work. It was
printed privately for the use of her own pupils, the author always intending
to rewrite and publish it as the chief literary labour of her life. " Letters
on Difficulties in Religion," 351 pp., appeared in 1836. It was occasioned
by the author's meeting in her travels with many sceptical persons of high
character, with whom she had carried on earnest discussions, both oral and
written. "The Moral Instructor," 191 pp., appeared in 1838. It was
designed as a text-book to teach a complete system of Christian morals to
young children. She next published a small volume on the slavery ques-
tion, discussing the duty of American women in reference to this subject.
"Domestic Economy for Young Ladies," which appeared soon after, has
had the largest circulation of all of Miss Beecher's works, and the author
boasts, that, notwithstanding her early distaste for the subject, there is not
a household or culinary process described in her book with which she is
not practically familiar. A memoir of her brother, the Rev. George
Peecher, 345 pp., appeared in 1844. "Truth Stranger than Fiction,"
294 pp., 1850, was intended to redress an individual wrong, exposing the
conduct of a young clergyman who had been guilty of a virtual breach of
promise of marriage. Miss Beecher's last work, " The True Remedy for
the "Wrongs of Woman," 263 pp., 1851, contains a history of her views
and efforts in regard to female education.
CATHERINE E. BEECIIER. 277
HABIT.
Habit is a facility in performing physical or mental operations,
gained by the repetition of such acts. As examples of this facility
gained in physical operations, may be mentioned the power of walk-
ing, which is acquired only by a multitude of experiments ; the
power of speech, which is a slow process of repeated experiments at
imitation ; and the power of writing, gained in the same way. Suc-
cess in every pursuit of life is attained by oft-repeated attempts,
which finally induce a habit. As examples of the formation of
intellectual habits, may be mentioned the facility which is gained
in acquiring knowledge, by means of repeated efforts, and the accu-
racy and speed with w^hich the process of reasoning is performed
after long practice in this art. As examples of the formation of
moral habits, may be mentioned those which are formed by the
exercise of self-government, of justice, veracity, obedience, and
industry. After the long practice of these virtues they become such
fixed habits, that it is much more easy and natural to practise them
than it was before such habits were formed. On the contrary, the
indulgence of indolence, pride, envy, selfishness, and deceit, forms
habits of mind which are equally manifest and powerful.
The happiness of man, in the present state of existence, depends
not solely upon the circumstances in which he is placed, nor upon
the capacities with which he is endowed, but almost entirely upon
th.Q formation of his habits. A man might have the organ of sight
bestowed, and be surrounded with all the beauties of nature, and
yet if he did not form the habit of judging of the form, distance,
and size of bodies, all pleasure and all use from this sense would
be destroyed. The world and all its beauties Avould be a mere con-
fused mass of colours. If the habits of walking, and of speech,
were not acquired, the faculties, and the circumstances for employ-
ing them, would not furnish the enjoyment they were made to secure.
It is the formation of intellectual habits by mental discipline and
study, also, which opens the vast resources for intellectual enjoy-
278 CATHERINE E. BEE CHER.
ment that otherwise would be for ever closed, and it is by practising
obedience to parents that moral habits of subordination are formed,
which are indispensable to our happiness as citizens, and as subjects
of the Divine government. There is no enjoyment which can be
pointed out, that is not, to a greater or less extent, dependent upon
the formation of habits, and upon this, all increase of happiness is
equally dependent.
The formation of the habits depends upon the leading desire or
governing purpose, because, whatever the mind desires the most, it
will act the most to secure, and thus by repeated acts will form its
habits. The character of every individual depends upon the mode
of seeking happiness selected by the will. Thus, the ambitious man
has selected the attainment of power and admiration as his leading
purpose, and whatever modes of enjoyment interfere with this are
sacrificed. The man of pleasure seeks his happiness from the various
gratifications of sense, and sacrifices other modes of enjoyment that
interfere with this. The man devoted to intellectual pui'suits, and
seeking reputation and influence through this medium, sacrifices
other modes of enjoyment to secure this gratification. The man
who has devoted his affections and the service of his life to God and
the good of his fellow-men, sacrifices all other enjoyments to secure
that which results from the fulfilment of such obligations. Thus, a
person is denominated an ambitious man, a man of pleasure, a man
of literary ambition, or a man of piety, according to the governing
purpose or leading desire of the mind. There are some minds,
however, which seem destitute of any leading purpose or charac-
teristic ; who seem to be creatures of circumstance, and merely seek
enjoyment from any object that happens to ofier, without any defi-
nite purpose of life.
There is one fact in regard to the choice of the leading object of
desire, or the governing purpose of life, that is very peculiar. Cer-
tain modes of enjoyment, in consequence of repetition, increase the
desire, but lessen the capacity of happiness from this source ; while,
at other sources of enjoyment, gratification increases the desire, and
at the same time increases the capacity for enjoyment.
CATHERINE E. B EEC HER. 279
The pleasure of sensitive enjoyments is of the first kind. It will
be found as a matter of universal experience, that where this has
been chosen as the main purpose of life, though the desire for such
enjoyments is continually increased, yet owing to the physical effects
of excessive indulgence the capacity for emotions of enjoyment is
decreased. Thus the man who so degrades his nature as to make
the pleasures of eating and drinking the great pursuit of life, while
his desires never abate, finds his zest for such enjoyments continually
decreasing ; — finds a perpetual need for new devices to stimulate
appetite and aAvaken the dormant capacities for enjoyment. The
pleasures of sense always pall from repetition, grow " stale, flat,
and unprofitable," though the deluded being who has slavishly
yielded to such appetites, feels himself bound by chains of habit
which, even when enjoyment ceases, seldom are broken.
The pleasures derived from the exercise of power, when the
attainment of this gratification becomes the master passion, are also
of this description. We find our fellow-creatures toiling and striv-
ing for the attainment of this good ; the statesman, the politician,
the conqueror, are all seeking for this, and desire never abates while
anything of the kind remains to be attained. We do not find that
enjoyment increases in proportion as power is attained. On the
contrary, it seems to cloy in possession. Alexander, the conqueror
of the world, when he had gained all for which he had sought, wept
that objects of desire were extinct, and that possession could not
satisfy. Intemperate gratification of this desire always lessens the
capacity of enjoyment.
But there are other sources of happiness, which while sought, the
desire ever continues, and possession only increases the capacity for
more enjoyment. Of this class is the susceptibility of happiness
from giving and receiving affection. Here, the more is given and
received, the more is the power of giving and receiving increased,
and the more is the susceptibility of gratification refined and
strengthened. We find that this principle outlives the decay of
every other, and even the decays of nature itself. When totter-
ing age on the borders of the grave is just ready to resign its wasted
2S0 CATHERINE E. B E E C H E R.
tenement, often from its dissolving ashes the never-dying spark of
aiFection has burst forth with new and undiminished lustre. This is
that immortal fountain of happiness always increased by imparting,
never surcharged by receiving.
Another principle which is never weakened by exercise, is the
poAver of enjoyment from being the cause of happiness to others,
and to this may be added, as partially involved in it, the happiness
which results from conscious rectitude. Never was an instance
knoAvn of regret for the pursuit of rectitude, or for devotion to the
happiness of others. On the contrary, the more these holy and
delightful principles are in exercise, the more the desires are in-
creased, and the more are the susceptibilities for enjoyment enlarged.
While the votaries of pleasure are wearing down with the exhaustion
of abused nature, and the votaries of ambition are sighing over its
thorny wreath, the benevolent spirit is exulting in the success of its
accomplished plans of good, and reaching forth to still piirer and
more accomplished bliss.
The pleasures which result from sympathy, depend almost entirely
on the circumstances in which a person is placed, and on the mode
of happiness he has chosen to secure. If he is surrounded by those
he is aiding to comfort and bless, their happiness is his, in a measure
peculiarly delightful. If he is the cause of sorrow, suffering, and
crime, his power of sympathy is only a cause of suffering. A bene-
volent mind, even while surrounded by sorrow and suffering, while
agitated with sympathizing grief, is solaced and cheered with the
assurance that this painful sympathy is a source of comfort and
relief to the wounded spirit that for ever seeks this balm.
The pleasures which result from activity of body and mind, depend
very much upon the object of pursuit which occupies the mind. If
the objects pursued are found to be unsatisfactory, and ever mingled
with sorroAV and disappointment, the pleasures of activity are very
much decreased. If, on the contrary, activity is ever found to
insure success in attaining good to ourselves and others, enjoyment
from this source is increased.
It thus appears that there are ttvo sources of happiness, which, if
CATHERINE E. B EEC HER. 281
made the chief objects of life, ahyays increase desire, while they
lessen the capacity for enjoyment. There are three sources of hap-
piness which always increase the desire, and also increase the capa-
city for enjoyment, so long as they are sought, while there are tivo
sources of happiness which depend entirely upon the nature of that
species of enjoyment from Avhich the mind chooses to derive its
chief happiness.
But there is another fact in regard to habit, which has an immense
bearing on the well-being of our race. When a habit of seeking
happiness in some one particular mode is once formed, the change
of this habit becomes difficult just in proportion to the degree of
repetition which has been practised. After a habit is once formed,
it is no longer an easy matter to choose between that mode of secur-
ing happiness pursued, and another, which the mind may be led to
regard as much superior. Thus, after a habit has been formed of
gratifying the appetite, a man may feel that instead of increasing
his happiness, it is continually diminishing it, and that, by sacrificing
it, he may secure much greater enjoyment from another source :
yet the force of habit is such, that decisions of the will seem per-
petually to yield to its power. Thus also if a man has found his
chief enjoyment in that admiration and applause of men so ardently
desired, even after it has ceased to charm, and seems like emptiness
and vanity, still when nobler objects of pursuit and happiness are
offered, the chains of habit bind him to his wonted path, and though
he looks and longs for the one that his conscience and his intellect
assure him is brightest and best, the conflict with bad habits
often ends in fatal defeat and ruin. It is true that every habit can
be corrected and changed, but nothing requires greater firmness of
purpose and energy of will. For it is not one resolution of mind
that can conquer habit, it must be a constant series of long-continued
efforts.
From this it appears that all the happiness of life is dependent
on the early formation of right habits ; and the revelations of ano-
ther world give fearful evidence that the happiness of an eternal
existence is resting on the same foundation.
36
282 CATIIEIIINE E. BEECHER.
The influence of habit in reference to emotions is very peculiar,
and deserves special attention, as having a direct influence upon
character and happiness. All pleasurable emotions of mind, being
grateful, are indulged and cherished, and are not weakened by repe- .
tition unless they become excessive. If the pleasures of sense are
indulged beyond a certain extent, the bodily system is exhausted,
and satiety is the consequence. If the love of power and admira-
tion is indulged and becomes the leading purpose of life, they are
found to be cloying. But within certain limits all pleasurable emo-
tions do not seem to lessen in power by repetition.
But, in regard to painful emotions, the reverse is true. The
mind instinctively resists or flics from them, so that after a frequent
repetition of the same cause, a habit of resisting such emotions is
formed, vmtil the susceptibility appears almost entirely destroyed.
The mind seems to be able to turn its attention from painful emo-
tions, or in some way to suppress them, after continued repetition.
Thus, a person often exposed to danger ceases to be troubled by
emotions of fear, because he forms a habit of suppressing them. A
person frequently in scenes of distress and suffering learns to sup-
press the emotions of sympathy and pity. The surgeon is an exam-
ple of the last case, where, by repeated operations, he has learned
to suppress emotions until they seldom recur. A person inured to
guilt gradually deadens the pangs of remorse, until, as the Scrip-
ture expresses it, the conscience becomes " seared as with an hot
iron." Thus also with the emotion of shame. After a person has
been repeatedly exposed to contempt, and feels that he is universally
despised, he grows hardened and callous to any such emotions.
The mode by w'hich the mind succeeds in forming such a habit,
seems to be by that implanted principle which makes ideas that are
most in consonance with the leading desire of the mind become vivid
and distinct, while those which are less interesting fade away. Now,
no person desires to witness pain except from the hope of alleviating
it, unless it be that from anger the mind is sometimes gratified with
the infliction of suffering. But in ordinary cases the sight of suf-
fering is avoided except where relief can be administered. In such
CATHERINE E. BEEC HER. 263
cases, the desire of admistering relief is the one which is the leading
desire, so that the mind is turned off from the view of the suffering
to dwell on conceptions of modes of relief; and thus the surgeon
and physician gradually form such habits that the sight of pain and
suffering lead the mind to conception of modes of relief, whereas a
mind not thus interested dwells on the more painful ideas. The
mind also can form a habit of inattention to our own bodily suffer-
ings by becoming interested in other things, and thus painful sensa-
tions go unnoticed. Some persons ayHI go for years with a chronic
headache, and yet appear to enjoy nearly as much as those who
never suffer from such a cause. Thus those also who violate con-
science seem to relieve themselves from suffering by forming a habit
of dwelling on other themes, and of turning the mind entirely from
those obligations, which, when contemplated, would upbraid and pain
them. Thus, too, the sense of shame is lost. A habit is formed of
leading the mind from whatever pains it, to dwell on more pleasura-
ble contemplations.
The habits of life are all formed either from the desire to secure
happiness or to avoid pain, and the fear of suffering is found to be
a much more powerful principle than the desire of happiness. The
soul flics from pain witli all its energies, even when it will be inert
at the sight of promised joy. As an illustration of this, let a per-
son be fully convinced that the gift of two new senses would confer
as great an additional amount of enjoyment as is now secured by
the eye and ear, and the promise of this future good would not sti-
mulate with half the energy that would be caused by the threat of
instant and entire blindness and deafness.
If, then, the mind is stimulated to form good habits and to avoid
the formation of evil ones most powerfully by the activity of pain-
ful emotions, if they are called into exercise, and their legitimate
object is not effected in producing such good habits or in removing
bad ones, by the very constitution of mind they must continually
decrease in vividness, and so the hope of good to one who thus
resists them must continually diminish. If a man is placed in cir-
cumstances of danger, and fear leads to the formation of habits of
284 CATHERINE E. BE EC HER.
caution and carefulness, the object of exciting this emotion is accom-
plished, and the diminution of the emotion is attended with no e\i\.
But if fear is continually excited and no such habits are formed,
then the susceptibility is lessened, while the good to be secured by it
is lost. Thus also with emotions of sympathy. If we witness pain
and suffering, and it leads to the formation of habits of active devo-
tion to the good of those who suffer, the diminution of the sucepti-
bility is a blessing and no evil. But if we simply indulge emotion,
and do not form the habits they were intended to secure, the power
of sympathy is weakened, and the benefit to be secured by it is lost.
Thus again with shame. If this painful emotion does not lead us to
form habits of honour and rectitude, it is continually weakened by
repetition, and the object for which it was bestowed is not secured.
And thus also with remorse. If this emotion is awakened without
leading to the formation of habits of benevolence and virtue, it
constantly decays in power, and the good it would have secured is
for ever lost.
It does not appear, however, that the power of emotion in the
soul, is thus destroyed. Nothing is done but to form habits of inat-
tention to painful emotions, by allowing the mind to be engrossed
in other and more pleasurable subjects. This appears from the fact
that the most hardened culprits, when brought to the hour of death,
where all plans of future good cease to charm the mental eye, are
often overwhelmed Avith the most vivid emotions of sorrow, shame,
remorse, and fear. And often in the course of life there are seasons
when the soul returns from its pursuit of deluding visions, to com-
mune with itself in its own secret chambers. At such seasons,
shame, remorse, and fear, take up their abode in their long-banished
dwelling, and ply their scorpion whips, till they are obeyed, and the
course of honour and virtue is resumed ; or till the distracted spirit
asain flies abroad for comfort and relief.
This peculiarity of our mental character leads to the most anxious
and painful reflections. Does every act of indolence, selfishness,
pride, envy, and revenge, lead to the formation of one of these
powerful fetters, these habits of crime so easily formed and so diffi-
CATHERINE E. BE EC HER. 285
cult to break ? Docs the resistance of the admonitions of fear,
shame, and conscience, tend to form another terrible habit which
removes the most powerful restraints of guilt ? Is every act of
meekness, self-denial, justice, magnanimity, and obedience necessary,
not only to immediate rectitude and peace, but necessary as a golden
link in the bright chain of some habit indispensable to our happiness ?
Is the soul so constituted that its susceptibilities can never be
destroyed ? Is there an hour coming when all the illusions of life
will cease, and the soul must return to commune with itself, and
understand and feel all its iron chains of guilt and miserable cap-
tivity ? What terrific anticipations for a mind estranged from the
only foundation of safety and of hope, the favour and guidance of
Him who formed the undying spirit, and who ofiers, when sought,
to guide it aright ; but who, when forsaken, can never afford His
almighty aid !
HARRIET BEECHER STOWE.
Harriet Elizabeth Beecher is the daughter of Rev. Lyman Beecher
D. D., and seems to have inherited much of the splendid talents of her
father. She was born at Litchfield, Connecticut, June 15, 1812. She
went to Cincinnati with her father's family in the autumn of 1832. In
the winter of 1836 she was married to Professor Calvin E. Stowe, of the
Theological Seminary of that place. In 1850 Professor Stowe accepted a
professorship in Bowdoin College, Brunswick, Maine, where the family
resided for one or two years, when he was transferred to a chair in the
Theological Seminary, at Andover, Massachusetts.
Mrs. Stowe's writings are found principally in the various literary and
religious periodicals of the country, and in a volume of tales, called " The
Mayflower," published in 1843. She has not written so much as some
of our female authors, but what she has written has left a profound
impression. She is remarkable for the qualities of force and clearness.
Few readers can resist the current of her argument, and none can mistake
her meaning. She possesses also a great fund of wit, and a delicate play
of fancy not inferior to our most imaginative writers.
The foregoing paragraphs were published in 1851, the year before the
appearance of Mrs. Stowe's great work. In revising our article for the
present edition (1854), we have concluded to let the verdict stand unal-
tered, merely adding, in the briefest possible manner, such remarks as
subsequent events seem to call for.
" Uncle Tom's Cabin" was published in March, 1852. Its success was
unprecedented in the annals of literature. In less than nine months, the
sale had exceeded a million of copies ; the author and her publishers had
made fortunes out of it; more than thirty rival editions of it had been
published in London alone, besides numerous other editions in different
parts of Scotland and Ireland ; it was translated into every living language
that possessed a popular literature; and Harriet Beecher Stowe, before
(2S6)
HARRIET BEEC II ERSTO WE. 287
comparatively unknown even in her own country, became as familiar a
name in every part of the civilized world, as Homer or Shakespeare.
It is absurd to attribute such extraordinary success to the abolition
character of the book. This feature of the work has probably repelled
quite as many readers as it has attracted. The anti-slavery sentiment,
obtruded by the author in her own person, is the greatest blemish of the
book as a work of art. It is an undoubted proof of the extraordinary skill
of the author in other respects, that she has been able so completely to
fascinate millions of readers, to whom her anti-slavery opinions have been
utterly offensive. The whole secret of the matter simply is, Mrs. Stowe ia
a woman of genius, and her book is one of consummate skill. No living
writer equals her in abilities as a mere story-teller, seizing the reader's
attention, as she does, on the very first page, and holding it captive, with-
out any let-up to the very last. Her delineations of character are per-
fectly life-like. Even those personages that are introduced incidentally
in a single scene, stand out clear and distinct upon the canvass, like the
charcoal sketches in the contours of a great master. Of her dramatic
power — generally considered the highest walk of genius — it is superfluous
to speak, when hundreds of theatres have been kept thronged for months
in succession, by the exhibition of her story even in the crude form given
to it by some bungling playwright. Her mastery of pathos is apparently
unbounded. The springs of emotion are touched at will ; the heart throbs,
the eyes swim, without a moment's notice, and without any apparent effort
or preparation on the part of the writer.
Blackwood, in an article of more than thirty pages, devoted to the exa-
mination of the literary merits of " Uncle Tom's Cabin," viewing it solely
as a work of art, and apart entirely from the social and political questions
which it suggests, thus sums up its opinion of the author.
" Mrs. Stowe is unquestionably a woman of genius ; and that is a word
which we always use charily : regarding genius as a thing pc?'se — different
from talent, in. its highest development, altogether, and in kind. Quick-
ness, shrewdness, energy, intensity, may, and frequently do accompany,
but do not constitute genius. Its divine spark is the direct and special
gift of God : we cannot completely analyze it, though we may detect its
presence, and the nature of many of its attributes, by its action ; and the
skill of high criticism is requisite, in order to distinguish between the feats
of genius and the operation of talent. Now, we imagine that no person
of genius can read Uncle Tom's Cabin, and not feel in glowing contact
with genius — generally gentle and tender, but capable of rising, with its
theme, into very high regions of dramatic power. This Mrs. Stowe has
done several times in the work before us^^ — exhibiting a passion, an
intensity, a subtle delicacy of perception, a melting tenderness, which are
as far out of the reach of mere talent, however well trained and expe-
rienced, as the prismatic colours are out of the reach of the born blind.
288 HARRIET BE EC HER S TO WE.
But the genius of Mrs. Stowc is of that kind which instinctively addresses
itself to the affections; and though most at home with the gentler, it can
be yet fearlessly familiar with the fiercest passions which can agitate and
rend the human breast. With the one she can exhibit an exquisite ten-
derness and sympathy ; watching the other, however, with stern but calm
scrutiny, and delineating both with a truth and simplicity, in the one case
touching, in the other really terrible."
In 1853, ''Uncle Tom" being then in the very acme of his renown, the
author visited England, and several countries of Europe. The enthusiasm
of her reception abroad is still too fresh upon the minds of all to need
repetition. In the British Isles, particularly, it was a regular ovation.
Since her return, she has prepared and published a book of travels, called
"Sunny Memories of Foreign Lands," now just from the press. It is in
two volumes, 12ino., and is having a rapid sale. These volumes are very
unequal in style and execution. Parts of them are devoted to the expo-
sition of the various religious and philanthropic institutions of Great
Britain. These are of course plain and practial, as they should be. But
in those parts, as in the visits to Melrose Abbey, to Abbotsford, to Strat-
ford-upon-Avon, to Warwick Castle, and to various other places and persons
of historical renown, the imaginative temperament of the author has had
free play, and she has written in a manner not surpassed by anything in
" Uncle Tom." One would have supposed it impossible to write with such
freeness on such hackneyed topics. The incidental remarks, interspersed
here and there in the midst of her narrative, contain some of the finest
specimens of aesthetic criticism to be found anywhere. What she says, for
instance of Shakspeare, and of Gothic architecture, as exhibited in the
various cathedrals which she visited, is in the very highest style of criti-
cism. These criticisms, oftentimes profound as they are brilliant, seem to
gush forth in the simplest and most natural manner, as if from an over-
flowing fountain, giving an indescribable charm to the parts of her book in
which they occur.
THE TEA ROSE.
There it stood, in its little green vase, on a light ebony stand,
in the window of the drawing-room. The rich satin curtains, with
their costly fringes, swept down on either side of it, and around it
glittered every rare and fanciful trifle which wealth can offer to
luxury, and yet that simple rose was the fairest of them all. So
pure it looked, its white leaves just touched with that delicious
creamy tint peculiar to its kind : its cup so full, so perfect ; its
HARRIET BEECIIER STOWE. • 289
head Lending as if it were sinking and melting away in its own
richness — oh ! when did ever man make anything to equal the
living, perfect flower !
But the sunlight that streamed through the window revealed
something fairer than the rose. Reclined on an ottoman, in a
deep recess, and intently engaged with a book, rested what seemed
the counterpart of that so lovely flower. That cheek so pale, that
fair forehead so spiritual, that countenance so full of high thought,
those long, downcast lashes, and the expression of the beautiful
mouth, sorrowful, yet subdued and sweet — it seemed like the picture
of a dream.
"Florence ! Florence !" echoed a merry and musical voice, in a
sweet, impatient tone. Turn your head, reader, and you will see
a light and sparkling maiden, the very model of some little wilful
elf, born of mischief and motion, with a dancing eye, a foot that
scarcely seems to touch the carpet, and a smile so multiplied by
dimples that it seems like a thousand smiles at once. " Come,
Florence, I say," said the little sprite, "put down that wise, good,
and excellent volume, and descend from your cloud, and talk with
a poor little mortal."
The fair apparition, thus adjured, obeyed; and, looking up,
revealed just such eyes as you expected to see beneath such lids —
eyes deep, pathetic, and rich as a strain of sad music.
"I say, cousin," said the "light ladye," "I have been thinking
what you are to do with your pet rose when you go to New York,
as, to our consternation, you are determined to do ; you know it
would be a sad pity to leave it with such a scatterbrain as I am.
I do love flowers, that is a fact ; that is, I like a regular bouquet,
cut off and tied up, to carry to a party ; but as to all this tending
and fussing, which is needful to keep them growing, I have no gifts
in that line."
"Make yourself easy as to that, Kate," said Florence, with a
smile ; " I have no intention of calling upon your talents ; I have
an asylum in view for my favourite."
" Oh, then you know just what I was going to say. Mrs. Mar-
shall, I presume, has been speaking to you ; she was here yester-
37
290 HARRIET BEECH ER STO WE.
day, and I was quite pathetic upon the subject, telling her the loss
your favourite would sustain, and so forth ; and she said how
delighted she would be to have it in her green-house, it is in such
a fine state now, so full of buds. I told her I knew you would
like to give it to her, you are so fond of Mrs. Marshall, you
know."
"Now, Kate, I am sorry, but I have otherwise engaged it."
" Who can it be to ? you have so few intimates here."
" Oh, it is only one of my odd fancies."
"But do tell me, Florence."
" Well, cousin, you know the pale little girl to whom we give
sewing."
" What ! little Mary Stephens ? How absiu'd ! Florence, this
is just another of your motherly, old-maidish ways — dressing dolls
for poor children, making bonnets and knitting socks for all the
dirty little babies in the region round about. I do believe you
have made more calls in those two vile, ill-smelling alleys back of
our house, than ever you have in Chestnut street, though you
know everybody is half dying to see you ; and now, to crown all,
you must give this choice little bijou to a sempstress-girl, when one
of your most intimate friends, in your own class, would value it so
highly. What in the world can people in their circumstances want
with flowers?"
"Just the same as I do," replied Florence, calmly. "Have
you not noticed that the little girl never comes here without
looking wistfully at the opening buds ? And, don't you remem-
ber, the other morning she asked me so prettily if I would let her
mother come and see it, she was so fond of flowers ?"
"But, Florence, only think of this rare flower standing on a
table with ham, eggs, cheese, and flour, and stifled in that close
little room where Mrs. Stephens and her daughter manage to wash,
iron, cook, and nobody knows what besides,"
" Well, Kate, and if I were obliged to live in one coarse room,
and wash, and iron, and cook, as you say — if I had to spend every
moment of my time in toil, with no prospect from my window but
HARRIET BEECIIER STOWE. 291
a brick wall and dirty lane, such a flower as this would bo untold
enjoyment to me."
" Pshaw ! Florence — all sentiment : poor people have no time
to be sentimental. Besides, I don't believe it will grow with
them; it is a greenhouse flower, and used to delicate living."
" Oh, as to that, a flower never inquires whether its owner is
rich or poor ; and Mrs. Stephens, whatever else she has not, has
sunshine of as good quality as this that streams through our win-
dow. The beautiful things that God makes are his gift to all alike.
You will see that my fair rose will be as well and cheerful in Mrs.
Stephens's room as in ours."
" Well, after all, how odd ! When one gives to poor people, one
wants to give them something useful — a bushel of potatoes, a ham,
and such things."
" Why, certainly, potatoes and ham must be supplied ; but,
having ministered to the first and most craving w^ants, why not add
any other little pleasures or gratifications we may have it in our
power to bestow ? I know there are many of the poor who have
fine feeling and a keen sense of the beautiful, which rusts out and
dies because they are too hard pressed to procure it any gratifica-
tion. Poor Mrs. Stephens, for example : I know she would enjoy
birds, and flowers, and music, as much as I do. I have seen her
eye light up as she looked on these things in our drawing-room, and
yet not one beautiful thing can she command. From necessity, her
room, her clothing, all she has, must be coarse and plain. You
should have seen the almost rapture she and Mary felt when I
oifered them ray rose."
" Dear me ! all this may be true, but I never thought of it
before. I never thought that these hard-working people had any
ideas of taste !"
" Then why do you see the geranium or rose so carefully nursed
in the old cracked teapot in the poorest room, or the morning-glory
planted in a box and twined about the window. Do not these show
that the human heart yearns for the beautiful in all ranks of life ?
You remember, Kate, how our washerwoman sat up a whole night,
292 HARRIET BEECHER STOWE.
after a hard day's work, to make her first baby a pretty dress to
be baptized in."
" Yes, and I remember how I laughed at you for making such a
tasteful little cap for it."
" Well, Katy, I think the look of perfect delight with which the
poor mother regarded her baby in its new dress and cap, was some-
thing quite worth creating ; I do believe she could not have felt
more grateful if I had sent her a barrel of flour."
" Well, I never thought before of giving anything to the poor
but what they really needed, and I have always been willing to do
that when I could without going far out of my way."
" Well, cousin, if our heavenly Father gave to us after this mode,
we should have only coai'se, shapeless piles of provisions lying about
the world, instead of all this beautiful variety of trees, and fruits,
and flowers."
" Well, well, cousin, I suppose you are right — but have mercy
on my poor head ; it is too small to hold so many new ideas all at
once — so go on your own way." And the little lady began prac-
tising a waltzing step before the glass with great satisfaction.
It was a very small room, lighted by only one window. There
was no carpet on the floor ; there was a clean, but coarsely-
covered bed in one corner ; a cupboard, with a few dishes and
plates, in the other ; a chest of drawers ; and before the window
stood a small cherry stand, quite new, and, indeed, it was the only
article in the room that seemed so.
A pale, sickly-looking woman of about forty was leaning back in
her rocking-chair, her eyes closed and her lips compressed as if in
pain. She rocked backward and forward a few minutes, pressed
her hand hard upon her eyes, and then languidly resumed her fine
stitching, on which she had been busy since morning. The door
opened, and a slender little girl of about twelve years of age entered,
her large blue eyes dilated and radiant with delight as she bore in
the vase with the rose-tree in it.
HARRIET BEECHER ST OWE. 293
" Oh ! see, mother, sec ! Here is one in full bloom, and two
more half out, and ever so many more pretty buds peeping out of
the green leaves."
^he poor woman's face brightened as she looked, first on the
rose and then on her sickly child, on whose face she had not seen
so bright a colour for months.
"God bless her !" she exclaimed, unconsciously.
" Miss Florence — yes, I knew you would feel so, mother. > Does
it not make your head feel better to see such a beautiful flower ?
Now you will not look so longingly at the flowers in the market,
for we have a rose that is handsomer than any of them. Why, it
seems to me it is worth as much to ns as our whole little garden
used to be. Only see how many buds there are ! Just count
them, and only smell the flower ! Now where shall we set it up ?"
And Mary skipped about, placing her flower first in one position
and then in another, and walking off to see the effect, till her
mother gently reminded her that the rose-tree could not preserve
its beauty without sunlight.
"Oh yes, truly," said Mary; "well, then, it must stand here
on our new stand. How glad I am that we have such a handsome
new stand for it ; it will look so much better." And Mrs. Ste-
phens laid down her work, and folded a piece of newspaper, on
which the treasure was duly deposited.
"There," said Mary, watching the arrangement eagerly, "that
will do — no, for it does not show both the opening buds ; a little
farther around — a little more; there, that is right;" and then
Mary walked around to view the rose in various positions, after
which she urged her mother to go with her to the outside, and see
how it looked there. " How kind it was in Miss Florence to think
of giving this to us !" said Mary; "though she had done so much
for us, and given us so many things, yet this seems the best of all,
because it seems as if she thought of us, and knew just how we
felt; and so few do that, you know, mother."
What a bright afternoon that little gift made in that little room !
HoAV much faster Mary's fingers flew the livelong day as she sat
sewing by her mother ; and Mrs. Stephens, in the happiness of her
294 HARRIET BEE CHER S TO WE.
child, almost forgot that she had a headache, and thought, as she
sipped her evening cup of tea, that she felt stronger than she had
done for some time.
That rose ! its sweet influence died not with the first day.
Through all- the long cold winter, the watching, tending, cherish-
ing of that flower awakened a thousand pleasant trains of thought,
that beguiled the sameness and weariness of their life. Every
day the fair, growing thing put forth some fresh beauty — a leaf,
a bud, a new shoot, and constantly awakened fresh enjoyment in
its possessors. As it stood in the window, the passer-by would
sometimes stop and gaze, attracted by its beauty, and then proud
and happy was Mary ; nor did even the serious and careworn
widow notice with indiiference this tribute to the beauty of their
favourite.
But little did Florence think, when she bestowed the gift, that
there twined about it an invisible thread that reached far and
brightly into the web of her destiny.
One cold afternoon in early spring, a tall and graceful gentle-
man called at the lowly room to pay for the making of some linen
by the inmates. He w^as a stranger and wayfarer, recommended
through the charity of some of Mrs. Stephens's patrons. As he
turned to go, his eye rested admiringly on the rose-tree, and he
stopped to gaze at it.
" How beautiful !" said he.
"Yes," said little Mary, "and it was given to us by a lady as
sweet and beautiful as that is."
"Ah!" said the stranger, turning upon her a pair of bright
dark eyes, pleased and rather struck by the communication ;
"and how came she to give it to you, my little girl ?"
" Oh, because we are poor, and mother is sick, and we never can
have anything pretty. We used to have a garden once, and we
loved floAvers so much, and Miss Florence found it out, and so she
gave us this."
"Florence!" echoed the stranger.
" Yes — Miss Florence I'Estrange — a beautiful lady. They say
HARRIET BEECHER STOWE. 293
she was from foreign parts ; but she speaks English just like other
ladies, only SAveeter."
"Is she here now? Is she in this city?" said the gentleman,
eagerly.
" No ; she left some months ago," said the widow, noticing the
shade of disappointment on his face; "but," said she, "you can
find out all about her at her aunt's, Mrs. Carlysle's, No. 10
street."
A short time after, Florence received a letter in a handwriting
that made her tremble. During the many early years of her life
Pjpent in France, she had w'ell learned to know that WTiting — had
loved as a woman like her loves only once ; but there had been
obstacles of parents and friends, long separation, long suspense,
till, after anxious years, she had believed the ocean had closed
over that hand and heart ; and it was this that had touched with
such pensive sorrow the lines in her lovely face.
But this letter told that he was living, — that he had traced her,
even as a hidden streamlet may be traced, by the freshness, the
verdure of heart, which her deeds of kindness had left wherever
she had passed.
Thus much said, my readers need no help in finishing the story
for themselves.
SARA H. BROWNE.
Sara Hall Browne, the subject of this sketch, was born in Sunder-
land, Massachusetts, during one of those calamitous periods which not
unfrequently interrupt the prosperity of families, where the husband and
father is engaged in the mercantile profession. A series of misfortunes
and losses had reduced her parents, at the time of her birth, to circum-
stances of difficulty and embarrassment, which ultimately led to the aban-
donment of trade for the safer and surer pursuit of agriculture. AYith
this design they removed to Hyde Hillside, a pleasant maternal estate in
the retired town of Templcton, Massachusetts, which has ever since been
the family residence.
A very quiet place is the Hillside ; beautiful and picturesque in its
environments. Sequestered like a nest among the hills, it is a sweet, wild,
rural abode, every way fitted to be a child's paradise, and the nursery and
school of that species of genius which feasts on natural beauty and unfolds
most successfully in solitude.
Hyde Hillside is, some might affirm, a very lonely abode, on the southern
slope of a rocky hill, yet surrounded by scenery of remarkable beauty. On
the east, the descent is quite abrupt for a few hundred yards to a beauti-
ful expanse of water, partly lying in the shadow of dark pine woods, and
again spread out in the sunshine, sparkling like a lake of molten diamonds.
Another hill rises from this watery interval, with a smooth and gradual
ascent, for a mile or two, on the summit of which stands the pleasant
village of Templeton, in full view, with its trees, its church spires, and
its white dwellings.
Mount Monadnock rises, hoary and cloud-capped, to the north, while
on the south and west the prospect is bounded by hill and woodland.
The venerable ancestral mansion is a large commodious dwelling, which
has offered the hospitalities of nearly a century to friend and stranger.
(296)
SARA ir. BROWNE. 297
In this rural retreat was passed Miss Browne's cLildhood ; here was she
instructed by an excellent mother in all those domestic virtues which are
appropriate to the female character, in all stations and circumstances ;
here were laid the foundations of every valuable attainment which after
years may have more fully developed; here dawned those aspirations,
which, kindled by the fire of inborn genius, quickened and expanded by
judicious parental encouragement, have borne her ever onward in a career
certainly not after the ordinary level of common workday life, and which
promises to give her a still widening sphere of influence and usefulness.
By the aid of advanced preparation in the home school-room, and the
practice of rigorous economy — for her pecuniary resources were by no
means abundant — 3Iiss Browne was able to complete an extensive course
of study, in one of our best female seminaries, in 1841. For a short time
subsequently she engaged in teaching, but a severe and protracted bronchial
affection ultimately prohibited effort in that department of congenial
labour.
In 1846 occurred her first great sorrow, in the death of a father whose
moral and intellectual worth and experience were always a safe anchorage
for the doubts and difficulties of children who ever had occasion to rise up
and call him blessed, alike for the prudent and judicious policy exercised
in their mental training and direction, as for those lessons of piety and
benevolence which he was faithful to instil and to exemplify.
Within the last few years Miss Browne has devoted herself mainly to
the literary profession, both as a means of giving scope to her inclina-
tions and tastes, and of gaining an independent livelihood. Having
encountered trials and overcome difficulties which would have daunted a
less courageous heart, she seems particularly prepared to contend in that
race in which mind measures with mind, and ultimately to put on the
laurels which belong to the victor.
Though yet at the very commencement of her literary career. Miss
Browne has won very unequivocal favour both as a vigorous painter of
illustrative fiction and a teacher of religious truth.
Her prose is characterized by a very marked originality, force, and
point. The moral she invariably inculcates is always apparent in its
meaning and strong in its application. The characters she delineates are
clearly individualized, and usually contrasted finely with one another,
while a tendency to, and keen relish of, the humorous is distinctly per-
ceptible. She unfolds truthfully and happily the workings of the purest
and tenderest human sensibilities, yet her style never verges towards senti-
mentalism, and the entire survey of her published writings would not
furnish a single sickly feature, or a single example which would lay her
open to the charge of moral cowardice. Light and shadow, joy and sor-
38
298 SARA n. BROWNE.
row, tears and laughter, tragedy and comedy, follow in the wake of her
versatile pen.
As a religious writer, no one can mistake the earnest loving warmth of
the Christian heart. Baptized into the spirit of that piety she commends
to others, especially to the young, her success in this department of let-
ters has been truly encouraging. Her "Book for the Eldest Daughter,"
has had and will continue to have a wide circulation ; and she has received
from time to time most grateful assurances of its popularity and useful-
ness. It is indeed a felicitous compound of physical, intellectual, moral,
and religious instruction, given in a clear, affectionate, attractive style,
which falls on the young ear and heart like those sweet '' mother tones"
which irresistibly constrain to the path of virtue and holiness.
As a poetess, Miss Browne is not remarkably prolific ; she writes deli-
berately and cautiously, rather than abundantly. She is a poetic sculp-
tor rather than painter — patient to chisel into perfect harmony and
proportion, the outline and lineaments of every image whose glowing ideal
adorns the inner chambers of her imagination.
A list of Miss Browne's publications is given in the subjoined note.
For Sartain's Union Magazine, Miss Browne has furnished various articles
of prose and poety, viz. : In 1849, a " Salutation to Fredrika Bremer;" "Wa-
ters of Marah," (poem) ; in 1850, "The Goblet of Revenge," (poem); "Song of
the Winter Serenaders," (poem); "Death Bed of Schiller;" in 1851, "The Token
of Hope," (poem); " Sing to me," (poem). For the Dollar Newspaper, Philadel-
phia— 1847, a prose tale, "Reforming a Husband;" in 1848, " Fretting for a
Secret ;" " Prescribed by a Physician ;" in 1849, " Maying in December ;" in 1850,
"The Iron Grays." For the Boston Rambler and National Librarj-, Boston —
1847, " Capt. Gage's Cousins ;" " The First Falsehood ;" " The Pauper Bride ;" in
1848, " Things Old," Nos. I. II. Ill ; in 1849, "Mary Stuart's last Pageant," (poem) ;
" The Two Homes ;" " The Snow Buried," (poem). For the American Cabinet
and Atlieneum — 1848, "One Among a Thousand;" "John Quincy Adams,"
(poem) ; in 1849, " Mendelssohn's last Composition," (poem) ; " The First Crime,"
(poem) ; in 1850, " Mode and Tense." For the Lady's Book several poems : 1845,
" Last of the Asmonians," (poem); in 1843, " The Unknown Flower," (poem); in 1847,
"Madame Roland," (poem) ; "The Wife's Dowry," (poem); in 1845, " The Costliest
Gift," (poem . Besides a great many other fugitive articles of both prose and
poetry for various magazines, papers, and annuals. In 1847, her iirst volume
was published, entitled "My Early Friends ;" 1849, " Book for the Eldest Daugh-
ter," a work of between two and three hundred pages ; 1850, " Recollections of
my Sabbath School Teachers," besides other.s now in press, and a volume of poems
in course of preparation.
SARA H. BROWNE. 299
A SALUTATION TO FREDRIKA BREMER.
When America bids you ^Yelcome, sweet Lady of the Norseland,
it is not as a stranger. Witli the lineaments of your countenance,
to be sure, she cannot assert familiarity, but then how small a por-
tion of one's individuality is the face ! Useful indeed it is to its
possessor, and pleasant to look upon as the medium of noble, or
gentle, or playful emotions ; but ah ! how much may be learned of
a human being with no knowledge of the physical outline ! The
soul can speak with a voice so clear and far-resounding that
"nations, and tongues, and people," catch the strain and echo it
from heart to heart till the speaker is lost in what she has spoken !
Thus is it. Lady of the Norseland, betAveen you and America,
when she takes you by the hand to greet your first footstep on the
soil.
The great, the rich, the titled sometimes come from the Fathex'-
land to view our cities, our forests, our lakes, our foaming cataracts,
our lofty mountains, our interminable caverns. The splendour of
their retinue and appointments dazzles the eye as they dash from
object to object. They stare at this, wonder at that, dance a few
measures at somebody's fancy ball, dine with a bevy of our million-
aires, shake hands with their wives and daughters, and are oif in
the next steamer to write a book of travels ! And it is well thought
of, this book of travels ; for it reminds the American reader of what
he had otherwise speedily forgotten, viz., that the author has actu-
ally been and gone ! Few heard of him before he came — few saw
him — few cared to recollect him when he had taken leave, and, save
a smile or two awakened by the book of travels, he is altogether
as though he were not. Such travellers must ever be strangers —
when they come, and while they tarry, and when they depart. No
bosom swells joyfully at the mention of their names, if indeed they
are mentioned out of the small circle which has been in personal
contact. They have done nothing, said nothing, attempted nothing
which deserves daguerreotyping in a nation's memory, how lefty
300 SARA H. BROWNE.
soever their station, how noble their descent ; and they must bo
content with the tribute of forgetfuhiess !
But when Fredrika Bremer declares her resolution to crosfl
the world of waves which roll between us and the Norseland, and
the papers, circulating in the huts and hamlets all over our broad
land, echo that intention, an emotion of a different kind is stirred,
and thousands of glad young voices from the cabin as well as froni
the villa, exclaim, " Welcome to her !" There is no need to explain
who she is, or whence she comes — there is not a hamlet in all the
land where the question could not be intelligently answered, accom-
panied with a hearty " God bless her !"
What has made the difference between them ? between these
scores of gay, and proud, and rich, and great, who move among us
like meteors from time to time, and this one woman, whose soft and
steady starlight has reached us long before the path of her orbit
had brought her hitherward, to shine brighter and brighter unto
the perfect day ?
He has made it. Lady of the Norseland, who anointed you high
priestess of the affections in their truest and purest exercise ! He,
•who inspired your pen to consecrate and sanctify the Home ! He,
who constrained you. to pour out from its full fountain such rills and
rivers of Love and Concord, of Peace and Hope, and every element
of the better life !
Then come among us, and be sure of a benediction. Come to
our cots as well as to our palaces — to our wild woods as well as to
our gardens — to our hearts as well as to our hearths, and you shall
find that we too have our "Homes," our "Brothers and Sisters,"
our "Neighbours," our Lares and Penates, Avith their shrines and
vestals, our loves and lovers, our jealousies and fears, as well as all
gentler and lovelier emotions. Come and see.
From the class which the writer of these lines would represent, a
welcome especially sincere and warm will everywhere await you.
Homes like hers you have entered again and again with a soft and
soothing tread — communicating a peace and joy, a contcntedness
with life and labour and care — a knowledge that others have borne
SARA H. BROWNE. 301
our burdens of grief and disappointment, have wept our tears and
endured our agonies, have cherished our hopes and aimed at our
mark ; impressing too a conviction that others will yet find strength
and courage, faith and fruition, from balmy words welling up from
a loving heart, and dropping like diamonds from sweet sympathizing
lips ! Lone dwellers with nature are we — afar from tower and
town, from noise and bustle and business ; with forest and lake,
hill and village for our wild landscape, with needle and books,
music and flowers for society, through the long winter without a
"Midnight Sun." Lights that have burned around the hearthstone
have been here and there put out. A silvery head has lately gone
from its " old arm-chair" to heaven. Alas ! alas ! in what Home
will you not find one ever vacant chair ? Hedvig too has gone, to
make a heaven in a newly consecrated household ; and sometimes we,
the small remnant, repine for a little while, but anon, we are cheered,
for we look joyfully onward and aloft, awaiting a sure reunion day ;
and sweet words, which your dear pen has traced, teach us lessons
of Life, of inner, deeper, spiritual Life, whose peace and repose,
like a broad still river, SAveeps along until it is lost in the ocean
depths of Eternity and God !
Yes, you have made blessed such homes as ours. Come to them,
and make them lighter and lovelier, by starting an echo of your own
human voice, and a reflection of your own human smile, and we
will love you better — and for ever !
MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
Maria Jane Bancroft Browne is a native of the beautiful town of
Northami^ton, Mass. In her early childhood, however, her parents
removed from that place to the retired inland town of Templeton, Mass.,
which has since been her home.
Miss Browne's parents belonged to that judicious class, who, while their
pecuniary means were restricted, considered the acquisition of a liberal
education by their children of vastly more value than the inheritance of
that wealth which so proverbially spreads its pinions and flies away, or,
what is worse, enchains the energies to frivolity and indolence. To faci-
litate so desirable an object, these excellent parents did what they could.
They had already transmitted to their daughters their own characteristics
of energy, resolution, and perseverance, and having removed obstacles out
of the way, they left those qualities, under the sunshine of encouraging
words and smiles, to their own irrepressible expansiveness and eventual
success. Thrown thus mainly on their own resources. Miss Browne and
her two elder sisters succeeded in completing an extensive course of study,
and were graduated with distinction at the Mount Holyoke Seminary in
1841. Since that time Miss Browne has devoted herself principally to
the instruction and training of young ladies in the various departments of
moral, intellectual, and physical culture ; a profession for which, by the
structure of her own mind, and the nature of her acquirements, she is
very happily adapted.
Her tastes, however, — the bent of those tastes having unfolded itself in
Tery eiirly life, — incline her to the pursuit of letters. Endowed with a
vigorous and varied imagination, gifted with clear, quick, and discriminating
perceptions, which penetrate beneath the surface of things for principles and
conclusions ; with eye, and ear, and heart, alive to all that is lovely and
truthful in nature, art, and the peculiar province of intellect — possessing
a wide humanity which earnestly labours for, and expects moral renovation
(302)
MARIA J. B. BROWNE. 303
to follow the wheels of progress; possessing also the courage and the skill
to hold the mirror before the face of folly, and to paint the silly linea-
ments of its deformity ; we scarcely need wonder at the tendency of her
raind to this species of labour, in a "field which is the world."
Miss Browne's literary career is however, comparatively, but just begun.
The efforts of her pen have been very favourably received by the public,
and these tones of kindness and welcome from the popular voice, encou-
rage the hope that hers has not been an adventurous launch amidst the
shoals and breakers of authorship.
Miss Browne's style of writing contains many popular elements as well
as intrinsic beauties. In portraying the incidents of actual life, in depict-
ing scenes of familiar occurrence in the family or the neighbourhood, she
has few equals, and no superiors. That sterling common sense which
strips off the mask of frivolity and conventionalism, which falls with
withering and mortifying weight upon false pretensions, which holds up
to derision and contempt those hollow and heartless principles and prac-
tices, which obtain in so-called "fashionable" society, lends a peculiar
charm of satisfaction to the perusal of her tales. Of these qualities her
" Town and Country," " Marrying for the Parish," and " Looking up in
the "World," furnish eminent examples. No one can rise from the perusal
of these excellent life-pictures, having fairly imbibed their spirit and
meaning, without a thrill of gratification at the well-ordered finale, and
its admirable point and truthfulness.
She is playful, pathetic, serious, earnest, full of life and intensity, never
prosaic, never tedious, never common-place, deeply imbued with the reli-
gious, largely read in that school of sensibility which enables her to
sympathize with all forms of human sorrow and suffering; her writings,
consequently, find their way directly to the heart and bosom of the reader.
In argument, she is clear, persuasive, and convincing; in satire, keen, and
cutting, and a remarkable coherency and unity runs through the whole,
so as to make it a difficult thing to isolate a passage in any given article,
on which something antecedent or subsequent does not materially depend ;
every passage is linked with its neighbour so necessarily and appropriately,
that an extractor finds his task a perplexing one. Harmony and felicity
of diction is another invariable attribute of Miss Browne's style of compo-
sition. Her command of language is so affluent, that it sometimes insen-
sibly leads her into a redundancy of epithet tending toward the superlative;
but the finished elegance of her periods compensates amply for this defect,
which time and experience will eradicate.
In Miss Browne's religious writings appears an element of depth and
fervour which has made them decided favourites with the serious and devout.
Her little volumes for the young are replete with pathos, tenderness, and
truthfulness, conveying lessons of piety and virtue in a manner peculiarly
304 MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
calculated to impress the heart and conscience. In all there is something
so obviously instructive, so high-toned a morality, so transparent a purity,
so heartfelt a Christianity, which never once condescends to utter a low
thought, an equivocal idea, or an objectionable word, that they are emi-
nently proper to place in the hands of children and youth by the most
careful parent, which is, perhaps, the truest compliment which can be paid
to a popular writer.
Miss Browne lias furnished for Sartain's Union Magazine, to -which she
is an engaged contributor, the following articles : April, 1849 — " Marrying for
the Parish ;" October and November, 1849 — "The Ace of Hearts," Parts I. and
II.; November, 1850— " Looking Up in the World;" July, 1851— "The Rabbit
on the Wall." For Graham's Magazine, Philadelphia: February, 1849 — "Les-
sons in German;" September, 1849 — "Jessie Lincoln, or The City Visiters."
For the Dollar Magazine, New York : November, 1849 — " Going into Winter
Quarters ;" February, 1850 — " Condescending to Marry." For the Ladies' Maga-
zine, Boston : November, 1846 — " Precept and Example;" February, March, and
April, 1847— "Choosing how to Die," Parts I., IL, III., IV. ; October, 1847— "Not
Wealth, but Worth ;" November, 1847 — "The Disappointed Husband;" IMarch,
April, jMay, June, 1848— " Self-Conquest ;" February, 1849— " En Dishabille, a
Story for Young Wives." For the Dollar Newspaper, Philadelphia: July, 1848 —
" Town and Country;" August, 1849 — " Reversed Decision;" November, 1849 —
"Thanksgiving Carols;" February, 1850 — "The One-Horned Dilemma." For
the New York Organ: March, 1850— "The Misadventure;" July, 1850— " The
Bachelor's Criticisms;" July, 1851 — "The Promise and the Pledge."
Several other fugitive sketches have appeared, from Miss Browne's pen, through
various channels : " The Fatal Jest," " The Bride of the Buccaneer," " Elizabeth
Falconer," "Love and Policy," &c. The religious press has also brought out a
variety of articles from the same source, and three small volumes for the young :
1848— " Margaret McDonald, or The True Sister;" 1849— "Story of a Western
Sabbath School;" 1850— " Laura Huntley ;" 1850— " The Youth's Sketch Book"
(of which Miss Browne and her sisters are joint authoresses). The "Snow
Flake," an annual for 1851, has also an article entitled "The Contrast," of 18
pages.
LOOKINa UP IN THE WORLD.
Something must be done to escape from the inevitable disgrace
and odium of labouring at such a disgraceful and odious business as
shoemaking. James Skates should not be a shoemaker any longer,
nor Katy a shoemaker's wife ! " 0 yes, to be sure, something must
be done," said Cousin Sophronia, "it was a shame they were not
getting above their neighbours, and looking up in the world, when
Katy had natural abilities to make so much of an appearance, and
cut such a dash in the city. Mr. Skates must be persuaded ; and she
MARIA J. B. BROWNE. 3^5
guessed between tliem, tlicy could manage it, as he was not tbe
readiest with arguments or decision, in matters where the odds of
logic were so decidedly on the other side. Yes, Skates must he
brushed up, and persuaded to go to the city with his family, board
them at a hotel or boarding-house, and then engage himself in some
employment which would furnish spending money — money was to
be made so easy in the city. And then it would be so much more
respectable than to burrow in the country, where one never was
heard of, and slwemake for a living ! She herself would introduce
them into the 'first society,' and bestow favours of that important
kind upon them in such profusion, a lifetime would not be long
enough to cancel the debt of gr<ititude they would owe her !"
Katy and Sophi'onia " cut and dried" the whole affair, while
Sophronia sat in the rocking-chair with her mits on, and fanned her-
self; and Katy ran about as if she had been put upon an extra pair
of springs in every limb, to wait upon her. When it was all ready
and propped up on all sides with invincible arguments, Mr. Skates
was cautiously and warily "towed in," to become the lion in the
scheme ; while Sophronia and her cousin worked vigorously at the
long arm, till all obstacles were finally thrust out of the way.
Indeed, such had been the silent effect of Sophronia's " continual
dropping" about gentility and respectability, even upon a mind so
slowly perceptive, and so absolutely common-place as Mr. Skates's,
that the difficulty of gaining him over to their side, was far less formi-
dable than the ambitious cousins had anticipated. To the unconcealed
surprise and consternation of all his neighbours and friends, and in
the very face of remonstrance, and forebodings of ruin, Mr. Skates did
let his house and shop, and consent to emigrate upon uncertainties,
to the great city — the great city, which stood out in alto relievo
before the vision of his wife, like the veritable Paradise. To his
praise, however, be it spoken, it was not without many inward mis-
givings, and hours of almost tearful reluctance, that he started upon
such a wildgoose chase ; and if his wife, who was the polestar of his
being, though now dangerously out of her true position, had not
been on the wing, fluttering up almost out of his sight in the track
of her foolish ambition, the peaceful scenes that had always encir-
39
306 MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
cled hira, and bounded his desires, and the almost irresistible
attractions of his pleasant labour, would have won him back from
his illusion, and left him a quiet, useful, and valuable citizen.
These arrangements were very suddenly got up, and of course
must be executed while at a fever heat, or they would be likely to
fail, as Mr. Skates, though his neighbours had never called him
" shifty-minded" before, might possibly sicken of the prospective
change, and overturn the whole just on the very eve of accomplish-
ment. When Katy was so near the enchanted circle, it would be
death to be obliged to withdraw. Sophronia considerately pro-
tracted her stay a week longer than she had at first meditated, to
mind the children, and do some "light chores," to facilitate the
preparations which Mr. and Mrs. Skates were so busy and so
animated in making. And when the "things" were nearly all
removed from their places, and packed away into the chambers,
and all the rooms began to look stripped and melancholy, and there
began to be gloomy and ill-omened echoes shooting through the
unfurnished apartments — echoes that would croak of desolation,
and would sometimes strike like a knell on James's simple heart in
spite of himself — in spite of the bustling and gleefulness of his
triumphant little wife — in spite of the glare of Cousin Sophronia's
fancy paintings, which she took care to hold up before him to the
very last moment of her tarrying, — when matters were in such a
train, and she had given the unsophisticated aspirants all necessary
directions, — quite a catalogue, by the Avay, — Cousin Sophronia
took her departure, and in a few days Mr. and Mrs. Skates were
ready to follow.
Mrs. Skates was happy as a queen when they were all seated in
the cars going to the city — the city at last ! — and when the coach
drew up before the splendid entrance of a great castle-like hotel,
and the servants came out and overwhelmed them with attentions
and services, and conducted them in as if they were indeed the Hon.
Captain Somebody and lady, she was quite bewildered with excite-
ment and triumph. " Let my neighbours sneer now if they will,"
thought Katy, as she tossed her vain little head, and sat down
with a mixture of confusion, diffidence, and complacency, in the
MARIA J- B. BROWNE. 307
long, brilliantly illuminated, and magnificent drawing-room. Oh,
such a gorgeous carpet, her feet fairly sunk in its plushy softness,
as if she had been treading on a bed of fresh moss ! Such luxurious
furniture ! — such dazzling lamps and mirrors ! While her bewil-
dered vision was struggling to take in all this grandeur at one
grasp, another sense carried in a throb of bitter mortification to her
heart.
"Name, sir ?" said a servant to her husband, who was standing
still with mouth and eyes wide open, looking about him in amaze-
ment, trying to collect himself, and to decide whether he was in
the body or out of the body, so like an unreal panorama seemed all
that was around him to his simplicity. "Name, sir?" politely
repeated the servant, his face looking the personation of a subdued
chuckle.
" Oh, Squire James and Miss Skates !" replied Mr. Skates very
audibly ; and then, on second thought, as if something of the most
absolute importance had been forgotten, he added, " and the child-
ren, too, — put them in."
The servant retreated instantly, and saved himself a hemorrhage,
perhaps, by indulging his overcharged mirthfulness, and recorded
on the book of arrivals for the morning paper, " James, Esq.,
and Miss Skates."
Now Mr. Skates had been instructed — specifically instructed —
to say, when his name was called for at the hotel, "James Skates,
Esq., lady and children," but his mind and memory were topsy-
turvy with this dashing so suddenly into gentility, and no wonder
he could not concentrate his ideas to a proper focus. Mrs. Skates
felt badly about it, for she feared the whole city would be misled
when they came to read it, and she thought best to have the mistake
corrected ; but she would consult Cousin Sophronia. By the time
she had an opportunity to consult her oracle, however, the unfor-
tunate edition of the paper had gone by, and everybody in the world
but themselves had forgotten the announcement, if, indeed, they
ever noticed it.
It was already evening when Mr. and Mrs. Skates arrived;
Katy was very much excited, and cruelly exhausted — her cheeks
808 MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
burned like a fever, and her arms trembled -with fatigue, as she
tossed the baby hither and thither to quiet him, and alternately
soothed and scolded poor little terrified James. Mr. Skates indi-
cated, as soon as he could collect his recreant faculties, that they
would like to engage board " for a spell, and see if they liked ;"
and the landlord, whose keen eye was so familiarly educated to the
mensuration of pretensions, and who could detect at a glance the
spurious from the genuine coin, after some demurring and some
adroitly directed regrets that his house was so crowded he should
not bo able to accommodate the . gentleman for a few days as well
as he could desire, to all of which Mr. Skates obligingly replied " it
was just as wal," he ordered a servant to conduct Mr. and Mrs.
Skates to No. 150 !
Oh what a journey it was, superadded to the day's weariness, to
reach No. 150, and through what a labyrinth of endless halls,
walled up on both sides by rows of green window-blind-looking
doors ! and up, up, up what flights and flights of stairs, and round
what numbers of corners ! Katy felt as if she should drop down,
and Mr. Skates, whose good temper outlasted everything, jocosely
remarked to his baggage-laden conductor, " "Wal, sir, if it's much
further, we'll stop in somewhere and rest. I hope when you
get us up here you'll be sure to come and show us the way out
again !"
Poor Katy was sick enough by the time she reached her room ;
and as she entered it, her thoughts would revert to her own bed-
chamber at the cottage home — vastly larger than this little hot " six
by eight" enclosure — so pleasantly and commodiously furnished,
and commanding a view of such a green and flowing landscape from
its windows ; here she could see from the one window, she knew
not what it was, some great dark object, which gradually developed
into the brick wall of a neighbouring building, and that bounded
the prospect. But she was too ill to care much that night, — her
head ached violently, and spun round with dizziness, and all she
could do was just to go to bed, sweltering and fainting, and leave
the charge of unrobing and quieting the children to her husband.
Mr. Skates thought the undertaking too hopeless to get down stairs
MARIA J. B. BROWNE. :i09
and up again alone, so he Avent "without his supper, and bathed
Katy's burning forehead, and -whistled and hummed the old home
lullabys to the children, till all -were uneasily slumbering, and then,
as the noise in the streets died away, all but the occasional rattle
of a vehicle on the pavement, or the echoing tramp of a solitary
foot -fall breaking in on the midnight hush of the city, and the
lamps one by one flickered and expired, Mr. Skates too, his mind
in a whirl, and his purposes and expectations all misty and intan-
gible, composed himself into a restless and half-watchful I'epose.
Even that was broken, exer and anon, by a sudden scream from one
or both of the children, whose sleep itself was fritted away by the
stifling heat of the small, close room, and the excitement and fatigue
their OAvn little frames were suff'ering.
But they all rose quite as vigorous as could reasonably be anti-
cipated, and novelty supplied abundantly the stimulus that other-
wise would have been lacking. Mrs. Skates was somewhat faint,
and felt some disagreeable visitings of nausea now and then, but
she managed with her husband's good offices, in matters pertaining
to the toilet, to get herself and the children all ready in full dress
for breakfast, some minutes before it was announced. When the
terrific notes of the gong — it had a giant voice — were heard peal-
ing and groaning and moaning and growling and howling through
the long empty halls, aff"righting the very echoes, such a choi'us of
unaff"ected terror as issued from the throats of the two young
Skateses was appalling ! Mr. and Mrs. Skates, too, were startled
and alarmed, and thought at first that all the wild beasts in the
world were in desperate battle just outside of their own door, and
the children shrieked as if every sense were but an inlet to the most
excruciating torture. In vain did papa and mamma hush and hug
and soothe and threaten after the cause of the alarm was ascertained ;
every measure weighed light as a feather in the balance with the
fright and horror they experienced at the sudden acquaintanceship
of this unearthly noise. The poor children refused to be comforted
till it was too late for the regular breakfast, so Mr. Skates, lady
and children, breakfasted alone.
Cousin Sophronia was good enough to come quite early, and
.310 MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
spend all the morning -with Mrs. Skates, congratulating lier on hav-
ing emerged from a living burial in the country, 'welcoming her to
the unutterable delights of a city life, and giving her lessons in
gentility, while Mr. Skates went out into the street to look up some
kind of "genteel business;" for he was made distinctly to under-
stand, that none other would answer his purpose, though his simple
ideas were at the lowest possible ends concerning the boundary
lines between a genteel and an ungenteel occupation. But Sophro-
nia assured hira that such as he was in pursuit of was "plenty as
quails," and he supposed it must be of course, if he had only been
sufficiently acquainted in the city to know where to look for it.
Everywhere he inquired he was informed by the industrious
and laborious business men, that "they did not keep the article,''
and he came to his hotel from his unsuccessful tour quite discou-
raged and disheartened. But he was soon called to forget his ill
success in obtaining employment, by the necessity of preparation
for dinner. Cousin Sophronia had apprised Mrs. Skates that
" folks did not dress much for breakfast, but dinner at hotels and
fashionable bordin' houses" was a great affair, and conducted with a
marvellous display of state and ceremony — that they must be
dressed in their very best and gayest clothes, and be on the alert
to " see just how other folks did," or coming from the country so
fresh, they would be liable to some gross violations of dinner-table
etiquette, and the "folks would think so strange of it."
Katy felt less apprehension for her own ability to manage than
she did for her husband and children. Mr. Skates was mortally
awkward, there was no disputing, and the children would be most
likely to do as children always will — behave Avorst when they are
put upon their best behaviour — cry when it is indispensable they
should be quiet, — seize upon things they should let alone, and
sometimes, by the simplest prattle, uncover family secrets it takes
the practised ingenuity of parents to conceal — the plain-spoken
little wretches !
Mr. Skates was sent to the barber to get himself shaved after
the most approved fashion, and then he was trimmed out in his new
suit of blue broadcloth, with his fancy silk vest and his new blue
MARIA J. B. BROWNE. 311
and white plaid neckerchief, and his white linen handkerchief
shaken out of its neat folds, and stuffed with fashionable careless-
ness into his coat pocket, by Sophronia's own competent hands.
Indeed, he looked very much dressed up, and you would hardly
have suspected his occupation but for the peculiar stoop in the
shoulders craftsmen of his calling are apt to acquire, and for cer-
tain dark-coloured and very incorrigible labour-lines and calluses
on his hands, Avhich perseveringly resisted all the influence of soap
and sand which could be brought to bear upon them. Honourable
labour-lines and calluses they were, too ; he was in no danger of
losing the good opinion and respect of any whose respect and good
opinion were worth preserving, for these ; he might be, for suffer-
ing himself to be pei'suaded to blush for them, to be coaxed, and
not very reluctantly, into his present apish and incongruous
transition !
Katy Skates robed herself in her new changeable silk, flounced
and resetted in the skirt, and decorated about the low neck and
short sleeves in the very latest style. Her hair shone and waved
and curled deliciously, her eyes sparkled, and her cheeks glowed
like roses ; and if she had been going to figure at a magnificent
entertainment on some great and special occasion, by invitation from
an affluent host, she would have looked not only suitably but beau-
tifully habited ; for Mrs. Skates was really handsomer in person
than many renowned beauties Avho make considerable sensation in
the world. Moreover, to set off her charms still more effectually.
Cousin Sophronia — obliging soul ! — had been so good as to loan
Mrs. Skates a very gay bracelet and brooch, with great glaring,
hot-looking purple stones in them, and a chain from which dangled
a gold pencil. And when these were all fixed on in their places,
and Katy looked in the mirror to see herself, she was sensible of a
glow of real admiration, and her little vain heart swelled with pride
and satisfaction. I am sorry her pride and satisfaction had no
nobler groundwork to base themselves upon !
Mr. Skates, I need not say, admired her too, and could hardly
forbear kissing her, as if he were a lover, or she a bride.
The horrible notes of the gong were at length heard grumbling
31-2 MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
along through the halls. This time the children only turned pale,
and clung closer to their parents, with their eyes stretched open,
staring Avonderingly, Mr, Skates carried the haby, and Mrs.
Skates led James and hung on her husband's arm, till, with a crowd
that kept swelling all the way from "No. 150" down, they found
themselves floating into the spacious dining-hall of the hotel ; and
somehow, they hardly realized how, they were seated at the table.
Everything was new and strange. Mt. Skates innocently stared
at the services and ceremonies he could not understand, and Mrs.
Skates increased and made manifest her confusion, by trying to
appear at ease, and accustomed to it all. The " great towel" laid
by his plate Mr. Skates had no use for, with a good white hand-
kerchief in his pocket, so he "doubled it up," and put it behind
him, to keep it out of little James's hands.
That hopeful young " scion" opened the table scene by being
vastly troublesome. He refused to be seated on his father's knee,
and clamoured bravely for his " high chair." Mr. Skates's argu-
ments for some time were of no avail, but at length he succeeded
in persuading his small but resolute antagonist that " they did not
have high chairs here in the city," and he must either be good, or
be sent to No. 150 to stay alone. James surrendered ; but as soon
as he was fairly settled in his place, and had looked a long inquisi-
tive stare into the faces of the company on the opposite side of the
table, he seized a silver fork that lay by his father's plate, and
began raking it over his checks and his protruded tongue.
" What's this, pa ? what's this thing ?" he inquired, holding it
still more fast, while his father attempted to take it out of his
determined grasp.
" You mustn't meddle with it — let it alone, James. It looks
some like a spoon !" replied Mr. Skates, forcing it away from the
little hand, -and laying it down on the cloth. But James, with the
children's universal license to misbehave on the most important
occasions, instantly took it up again, and began ringing the elegant
champagne glass which a servant that moment presented to a gen-
tleman who sat next.
MARIA J. B. BROWNE. 313
" Wc han't got no such 'poons to home, have Me, pa ?" interro-
gated the youngster.
" Ah, James !" interrupted Mrs. Skates, -who had had more than
she could do thus far to keep her horrowed finery out of the hands
and mouth of the astonished bahy, " Ah, James ; what did I tell
you?"
"You said you should trounce me if I wnsn't still," confessed
the child, rapping his head with the fork, and making it do the
service of a comb in frizzling up his nicely-smoothed hair. But
the memory of the threat silenced him for a few minutes, while a
fiery-red blush of three-fold mortification, suffused the before glow-
ing cheeks of his exasperated mamma — mortification that her son
had exposed his ignorance of the purposes for which silver forks
are used — that he should disclose so publicly, and without remorse,
the unfortunate and disgraceful fact that he was a stranger to such
luxuries at home, and lastly, that he should be so explicit in his
delineation of her peculiar mode of family discipline !
But Mrs. Skates's cheeks tingled worse and worse, and her fore-
head burned hotter and hotter, when she heard her unsophisticated
spouse remark to a waiter who handed him a well-filled plate,
" Thank'ee, thank'ee, sir, but you've loaded 'most too heavy of
that; I can't eat all this and taste of all them other sorts, too. I
see you've got lots back there yet!" Mrs. Skates set her satin
slipper hard down on Mr. Skates's boot, under the table, telegraph-
ing that he was guilty of something, he hardly knew what ; but it
made him silent, and left her to blush and flutter at the impertinent
smile she saw running from lip to lip on the other side of the table,
— a cruel but very common way of exposing the real vulgarity and
grossness of mind which would pass itself for high breeding, and a
contempt for what, by a kind of false comparison, appears unrefined
or uncultivated in the manners of others.
Little James by this time had recovered from the shock he had
experienced from the recollection of what Avas in store for him, if
he " wasn't still," and he found his curiosity was by no means
satisfied concerning the new things that were about him. He pro-
40
314 MARIA J. B. BROWNE.
ccedcd witli his investigation by seizing a " bill of fare," 'whicli the
nearest neighbour had just laid down.
"What's this, pa?" he inquired, bringing the smooth, clean
paper into contact with his greasy mouth. It was a fixed habit of
Master James's this, of introducing everything to the acquaint-
anceship of his facial orifice, whether said orifice was in receiving
order or not.
" I do' know, child ; let it alone, and hand it right straight back
to the gentleman — it's his'n," replied Mr. Skates, getting not a
little impatient at his son's inquisitiveness.
"But w'hat is it, pa?" persisted James, pouting and scowling
that the dawning of his curiosity should be so cruelly repressed.
" I do' know, I tell you ; it looks like a little newspaper about
vittles. Now hold your tongue !" retorted Mr. Skates, as he took
the soiled paper out of James's hand, and administered a box on
his ear sufficiently expressive to set him snivelling.
This scene of course added to the amusement of the gay young
people across the table. They discoursed very audibly about
"Jonathans," and "bumpkins," and "country animals," and one
young woman, more bold and vulgai'-souled and ill-bred than her
companions, though her face Avas royally beautiful, and her voice
as soft and sweet as the song of a siren, and her diction, even in
rude sarcasm, as polished and musical as the diction of an orator,
called quite aloud, " Waiter, do give me that little newspaper about
vittles !" Her party joined in the joke Avith boisterous merriment,
and poor Katy, instead of feeling honest contempt, rejoiced that
her baby screamed just then, for even an uncomfortable and annoy-
ing circumstance relieved the bitter confusion of a consciousness
that she and her well-meaning husband were the unfortunate objects
of such unprincipled ridicule.
"That's Avhat we call a bill of fare, mum, not a newspaper,"
replied the waiter, obsequiously, placing the paper in her fair hand.
"Oh, I understand, sir!" retorted the disconcerted beaut}', a
flush of indignation mounting to her very temples, that a servant
should dare to presume her ignorant ; " your explanation is unne-
cessary, quite;" but before she could deliver the rebuke she medi-
MARIA J. B. BROWNE. ;U5
tatcd, the offending waiter was out of heaving on the other side of
the hall.
Mrs. Skates now began to hope that her sufferings for this once
were at an end, but scarcely was the baby quieted, when James
caught hold of the chain that depended from his mother's neck, and
inquired with the most provoking innocence, " Whose is this, ma ?
'Taint yours, is it? Cousin 'Phrony lent it to you; didn't she, ma?"
" Sh-h-h, James !" fretted Mrs. Skates. I think at that moment
she would have enjoyed the "trouncing business" right heartily!
It was too vexatious that he should expose what one felt the keen-
est anxiety to conceal — the fact that she was really glittering in
••'borrowed plumage !"
"Shall you whip me, ma?" pursued the little wretch, taking
alarm from his mother's severe expression, and cowering down in
the chair behind his father, where he had been standing ; while
that uncomfortable and embarrassed worthy was trying to clear his
plate of its contents, and at the same time working industriously
to keep the perspiration from streaming in rivulets over his face.
James managed to entertain himself in his new situation with his
own perpetual chatter, and with scratching the chair with his fork,
till the meal was finished. Oh, how glad were Mr. and Mrs.
Skates when that event happened ! Poor Katy felt that her little
No. 150 would be an asylum, indeed, she was so thoroughly dis-
concerted ; and Mr, Skates felt that he should never desire to dine
again as long as he lived ! Visions of his own quiet and social
table at the forsaken home danced through his mind with a kind
of tantalizing mockery ; and then the precious absence of ceremony
there ! Sick, indeed, he was of so much ceremony, that " he didn't
know nothing what they meant by!" He would have relished
Katy's very poorest "washing-day hash," done up in "pot-skim-
mings," a thousand times better than those elaborately served
viands, and their multitude of French gastronomic accompaniments,
and "feel so all shook-up in his mind," as he declared he had done
at this first city dinner.
ELIZABETH BOGART.
Miss Booart has written only a few tales in prose, but tliey have all
been of sterling excellence.
Her first tale, " The Effect of a Single Folly/' obtained a prize in the
" Memorial/' an Annual published in Boston, 1828. It was her first
attempt at story writing, and was completed and sent secretl}", without
being submitted to any of her friends for correction or improvement. In
the course of a few months afterward, she received a copy of the book
from the publishers, and found, to her surprise, that she had been suc-
cessful in obtaining one of the two prizes ofi"ered. From that circumstance,
she was induced to write occasional tales for her own amusement, and
convey them through the medium of different periodicals to the public.
In 1830 she obtained a second prize for a tale entitled " The Forged
Note/' in 1844 another, for a domestic story, entitled "Arlington House/'
and in 1849 the fourth, for "The Heiress, or Romance of Life."*
She has written much more poetry than prose. The history of her
mind in this respect is sketched with much beauty and simplicity in the
following extract from a letter in reply to one making inquiries on this
point. " My rhyming propensity," says she, " commenced, I believe, with
my earliest powers of thought, as I remember nothing previous to my first
attempts at scribbling verses ; but those youthful productions were inva-
riably destroyed from a feeling of difiidence, and an utter impossibility
of satisfying myself. My ideas of excellence in metrical composition, so
* The titles of her other stories are as folloTvs : " The Secrets of the Heart,"
1828; "The Cloaked Gentleman," 1829; "Decourcy," 1829; "The Family of
Mereditxi," 1830; " Traditions of the Visions of Armies in the Heavens," 18i4;
"The Bachelor's Wedding," 1846; " Gertrude AVurtemburg," 1848 ; "Love and
Politics," 1849 ; " Rose Winters," 1849 ; " The Widow's Daughter," 1851; "The
Auction, or the Wedding Coat," and "Ada Danforth, or the Will," not yet pub-
li.shed.
(316)
ELIZABETH BOG ART. 317
far exceeded my own eiforts, that I was frequently tempted to give up the
Muse in despair, and probably I would have done so, had not the poetic
passion been too strongly implanted in my nature. The indulgence of
this love for embodying my thoughts and feelings in verse, was the happi-
ness of my life. It was often cherished in the place of friends or lovers.
It was my resource in solitude, my consolation in trials, my reward for
disappointments, my relief in weariness, my recreation in idleness, and my
delight in every change of residence, by which new scenes and scenery
have been presented to my view."
Miss Bogart was born in the city of New York, which was also the
birth-place of her father and his ancestors for several generations back.
They are descended on the paternal side from the Huguenots who fled to
Holland after the revocation of the edict of Nantz, and emigrated from
Holland to America.
Her father was the Rev. David Schuyler Bogart, a graduate of Colum-
bia College, and a minister of the gospel. In his profession, he was
highly respected and esteemed, and exceedingly beloved by the people of
his charge. Soon after entering on his profession he accepted a call to a
Presbyterian church at Southampton, an isolated town, on the eastern part
of Long Island, where he resided for fifteen years. There, in the village
school-house, Miss Bogart received all her education, excepting what was
given her by her father, whose instructions were continued even to the
close of his life. From Southampton they removed, in 1813, to Hemp-
stead Harbour, a wild and lovely spot, some eighty miles further west, and
on the north side of the island.
" The scenery of the two places," says Miss Bogart, in the letter already
quoted, " presented a perfect contrast. The country at Southampton was
entirely level, and the town situated immediately on the Atlantic, within
sight of its foaming surf, and sound of its ceaseless roar — while Hemp-
stead Harbour was located at the head of a beautiful bay running in from
the Long Island Sound, and surrounded with high hills, covered with
forest trees and evergreens. It was truly a place to charm the eye, and
enrich the imagination ; and thus it was, that while my first love was for
the grand and magnificent ocean, my second was for the more fascinating
and picturesque beauty of nature's scenery ; amid which the early romance
of my disposition was nurtured into an enduring character. The name
of the little village of Hempstead Harbour has since been changed to that
of Roslyn, but it seems to me an unmeaning appellation, and no improve-
ment; although it will doubtless receive an eclat from the fact of our
poet Bryant having fixed his residence there.
" It was from my home in that place, in 1825, that I sent forth my
first poem, simply headed ' Stanzas,' on a venture to the press. It was
published in the ' Long Island Star,' under the signature of ' Adelaide,'
and made the subject of a complimentary poetical address in the same
318 ELIZABETH BOG ART.
paper. I soon afterward commenced writing for ' The New York Mirror/
which was at that time in its most flourishing state, under the able
management of its proprietor, George P. Morris. My signature was then
changed to that of ' Estelle/ a nom de plume, which I have ever since
retained; and which, before my real name was known, procured me a
poetical correspondent in the ' Mirror,' the history of which is quite a
little romance. The correspondence was carried on at intervals, for nearly
four years; the writer being all the while utterly unknown to me, except-
ing inasmuch as his poems declared him to be a gentleman of taste, talent,
and education. He had mistaken me for another person, and notwith-
standing my repeated denials of the identity, he persisted in addressing
me as the ' Estelle' of his love, whose name I had unwittingly stolen. My
curiosity became at length considerably excited, but he maintained his
incognito ; and it was not until several years after he had ceased writing,
that I accidentally learned his name, and that by means of his initials,
and the signature of ' Estelle' to the pieces passing between us in the
'Mirror,' he had recovered his true ladye love, and married her."
Miss Bogart was particularly fond of these little literary mysteries.
They amused and interested her, and gave her both subject and occupa-
tion. In the country she had always leisure, as well as love for the Muses.
'' Without this love," says she, " my life would have been divested of
half its pleasures ; and without the leisure to indulge it, I think I should
have felt as if time, however otherwise employed, were only wasted."
Her fugitive poems have now accumulated to a number sufiicient to fill a
large volume, although they have never been collected and prepared for
publication in that form.
In 1826 her father removed, with his family, into the city of New
York, where he continued to reside during the remainder of his life.
Miss Bogart lives there still.
The first of the extracts which follow, is from " The Forged Note."
It is a description of Arthur Mowbray, the hero of the " tale," given from
the impression which the author, while a child, had received from seeing
him. He had been a country boy, born and educated in humble life, and
the history of his school days is first told.
ARTHUR MOWBRAY.
It was years after that period, that Arthur Mowbray came to
my father's house, a travelled and polished gentleman. The rus-
ticity of country manners was entirely obliterated. Not a word or
action betrayed his early habits, and those who knew him not would
never have suspected his humble parentage. The grace and ease
ELIZABETH BOG ART. 319
of his behaviour made an impression on my cliiklish fancy ; and
though then incapable of judging of character or talent, I listened
to his fluent and fiiscinating conversation with ■wonder and delight.
He was indeed a young man of most astonishing powers. His
Proteus mind assumed a thousand different shapes, from its inex-
haustible store of knowledge, observation, and uncommon originality.
The current of his ideas never ceased to flow for an instant; and
what was more remarkable, they passed over nothing in their
course without adding a nev.' touch of brilliancy, beauty, or vigour.
No subject escaped his attention, nor was beyond his mastery. His
giant intellect grasped the whole range of literature and science,
and held them as nothing in its strength : and while others were
seeking with weary labour their hidden treasures, he drew forth
the pearls from their unfathomed depths, and cast them around him
with an unsparing hand. His face and figure were eminently hand-
some ; but the expression of his eyes I have never forgotten. It
was wily, dark, and unstable. His sudden glance was like the
lightning flash, which carries with it an involuntary thrill of fear.
It told that the heart was not right. The seeds of vice had fallen
promiscuously on its prolific soil, and choked, in their wild luxu-
riance, the early growth of virtue. *****
[This character is justified by his after-course in life. He is con-
victed of forgery, and sentenced to the State Prison, from which
"durance vile" he is released after three years, by a pardon from
the Governor.] It was a bright and beautiful morning, when the
bars were removed, and the bolts withdrawn from his prison doors ;
and he came forth from the gloomy and frowning edifice, a solitary
being in the midst of a gay and populous city. The clear heavens,
and the bright earth, and the varied objects which met his eager
gazo, yielded him no thought of pleasure ;
" For bitter shame had spoiled the sweet world's taste."
He knew that he could have no communion with those whom he
had once known : and as he Avandered on among the multitude of
busy and happy faces, he experienced a feeling of hatred to man-
kind, mingled with a sense of desolation more withering to his
320 ELIZABETH BOG ART.
heart than even the dreary and hopeless solitude of his prison cell.
In the bitterness of his soul he cursed himself and his destiny.
True, he was again free to walk the earth, and look upon his fellow-
men ; but Cain-like, he was cast out as a fugitive and vagabond
from among them. The mark of disgrace was set upon hira.
The stain of guilt and ignominy could never more be wiped from
his name ; and he saw himself cut oflF from that part of society
which nature and education had fitted him to enjoy. His former
visions of greatness could return to him no more ; and with
the terrible consciousness of his irretrievable fall, his heart
became hardened, and his conscience callous to the stings of
reproach.
[He was subsequently convicted of a similar crime in another
State, and fated to die at last in a prison. A fragment of his
history is given, as having been written by himself in his cell,
in which he says,] " I know no dates for time. The days, and
weeks, and months, are all alike to me. There is but one
thought in my bosom continually, from the rising to the setting
of the sun ; and it gnaws with ceaseless and corroding power
on my heart. The tormenting thought that I am always in
one place — that I cannot move beyond a certain limit, and that
here I must remain until death closes my disgraceful career.
My glass is nearly run, and I rejoice at it ; although I ought
now to have been in the very prime of manhood : but my con-
stitution has given way to the midnight revel, and the unna-
tural excitement of the gaming table. The inebriating bottle
has mingled its deadly poison in my blood ; gray hairs have
scattered an untimely frost upon my head ; and the life of man
already appears to me like a little speck in the ocean of eter-
nity. Eternity! No — there is no eternity! I believe it not!
I am a renegade from the faith of my fathers ! I have laughed
at all religion, and derided the idle terrors of a hdJ, as the
mere bugbear of canting hypocrites. Why, then, did I speak
of eternity? We die, are laid in the grave, and are as if we
had never been Even now, my brain is on fire. Reason
totters. Philosophy trembles — and I sink — am lost." * * =i=
ELIZABETH BOGART. 321
KECOLLECTIONS OF CHILDHOOD.
There are, perhaps, no scenes wliich make so strong an impres-
sion on the mind, as those with which our early recollections are
associated. Other things may pass from the memory, and be lost
amid the vicissitudes of the world ; but these will still recur at in-
tervals, as some wandering thought or truant feeling comes home
to the heart. In such moments, I have frequently felt a strong
and irrepressible desire to revisit the scenes of my childhood ; and
it was with mingled emotions of pleasure and impatience that I at
length prepared for the journey. Every spot was familiar to my
imagination, and I even fancied on the way, that I could already
hear the voices of welcome, and that I possessed the sight of Lyn-
ceus to look through the distant space. It was at the close of a
summer afternoon that we arrived at the place of our destination.
The sun was setting in full splendour over the same local scenes
which were engraven on the first page of my memory, and the
changing hues of the clouds reminded me of those hours when I
delighted to Avatcli them till their gorgeous colours were lost in
darkness. The moon looked down with bright, unaltered face, on
the same green fields and clear waters, and the stars peeped out
from their hidden worlds, as if to return my gaze of recognition.
There was a kind of imaginary happiness connected wuth real ob-
jects in my mind, as I walked through the quiet town. The little
school-house where I was first taught the pleasant use of my pen,
and the perplexing mysteries of figures, brought back many remi-
niscences both ludicrous and interestino;. The idea of the ing-eni-
ous and burlesque punishments, invented by our benevolent and
good-natured teacher, for his mischievous, unruly boys, occasioned
an involuntary burst of laughter, and the images of "Lew,"
"Tom," and "Bob," with their inked hands and shamed faces,
seemed instantly to rise before me, but it was only for a moment.
The question, Where is now our indulgent and beloved preceptor ?
darted across my mind, and I felt a pang of self-reproach, as I
turned my eyes to the grave-yard, and remembered that he "rested
from his labours," in the silent tomb.
41
JANE ELIZABETH LARCOMBE.
Miss Larcombe has, ■within the last few years, won an honourable
place among the magaziuists of the country. Her tales are sprightly and
piquant, and show a degree of originality and a fertility of invention, which
augur well for her future and more elaborate efforts. Her stories thus far
have appeared in Neal's Gazette, Godey, Peterson, Sartain, as well as in
the Annuals, and all under the assumed name of "■ Kate Campbell." She
is at present engaged as a regular contributor to some of the religious
periodicals of the church to which she belongs — the Baptist.
Miss Larcombe was born January 13, 1829, at Colebrook, Connecticut.
The family removed in 1831, to Danbury, Connecticut; in 1834, to Sau-
gerties. New York; and in 1835, to Philadelphia, where they still reside.
She is descended, on the mother's side, of a Scottish family, staunch cove-
nanters. Iler father, who is a clergyman, and who, the greater part of
his life, has been chaplain to the Eastern Penitentiary of Pennsylvania,
is of French descent, from the Waldenses of Piedmont. The family left
France at the revocation of the Edict of Nantes, and settled in Bristol,
England, and thence emigrated to Hartford, Connecticut.
On the ^th of November, 1851, Miss Larcombe was married to the Rev.
Heman Lincoln, of the Baptist church.
THOUGHTS BY THE WAYSIDE.
A SUMMER twilight ! who enjoys it ? or rather, avIio can resist
the magnetism whicli draws one to tlie open window, beneath which
the leaves of the trees tremble in the quiet air, while the Heaven
above lies so hushed and smiling, with a calmness as though it had
been shedding tears, and, worn and exhausted, could do nought but
smile languidly on the broad, sinful earth ?
(322)
JANE ELIZABETH LARCOMBE. 323
Yet wo can remember, when a little child, thinking the twilight
hour the gloomiest of the twenty-four — a dark spirit commanding
us to give up work or play, and loiter restlessly around the house,
till the first welcome glimmer of a light released us from its dismal
thraldom. It seemed to us the most particularly unpleasant
arrangement of nature to be conceived, and often and often did we
wonder ourself stupid, trying to solve the phenomenon.
It was equally puzzling to see with what a spirit of enjoyment
the "old folks" settled themselves comfortably in their easy chairs,
and with eyes fixed on the fading heavens, seemed soaring away
from earthly cares and joys. Instinctively we felt that mirth and
mischief must be postponed to a more convenient season.
When we grew older, wise enough to contrive, we got along much
better ; the gathering gloom of evening was the signal for a general
muster ; out we flew from the quiet parlour to the dim hall and
passages, where, with stifled shouts and shrieks of mysterious mer-
riment, we indulged in all the excitement of a game at hide and
seek, or, when tired out, gathered in a compact knot at the foot of
the stairs, and with elbows on our knees, heads supported by our
hands, and eyes widely dilated, listened to the delicious horrors of
some marvellous tale of ghost or ogre. Such stories ! no one else
ever dreamed of such delights ! Such giants as we had ! such
fairies ! such a quantity of winding-sheets as our favourite narrator
provided for us ! — our brother, with his wide, smiling mouth, and
glistening teeth ! We can see him now, his rosy face ever in a
perpetual grin, even while skilfully depicting scenes which made
" each individual hair to stand on end" among his entranced audi-
ence ! Our brother ! — " gone, but not lost."
Sometimes, too, of a winter's evening, we found our way into
the warm, bright, cozy kitchen, bringing our noise and mirth with
us, which was speedily quelled, however, through the influence of
the presiding spirit of the place — a tidy, thrifty servant girl, who
loved us all dearly — troublesome as we were — and who, despite her
unattractive appearance, stole a place for herself in our kind
memories. She was an Irish girl, with features strongly marked
324 JANE ELIZABETH LARCOMBE.
with small-pox, and a most disastrous hump between her shoulders;
short in person, somewhat short in speech, but withal, the kindest
heart that ever beat ! Dearly did she love to gather the unruly
crowd of boys and girls around her glowing, social fire, and hush
them to a grave-like stillness with the wild legends of her native
isle.
Ah, well ! those days have passed and gone now, for ever.
"We can only sit quietly by the open window and think of the
"now, and what has been," and remember with a blending of the
mirthful and sorrowful — a kind of comic sadness — how we grew out
of those pleasant ways ; how our first influx of sentimentalism crept
in about the time we put up our "elf-locks wildly floating," and
imbibed a strong disgust for long-sleeved checked aprons ; how we
took to reading newspaper poetry, descrij^tive of the " shining
stars" and "silver moon," and naturally enough, went from that
to looking in the gray heavens for them ; how we laid aside the
favourite book, smoothed down the folds of our dress, and seated
ourself methodically at the window, vis-d-vis to our mother, and
gazed perscveringly at the steadfast skies, persuading ourself that
we were immeasurably happy, while all the time, had we listened
to the heart's truth, tears would have been dropping for the good
old times — the "joyous days of yore" — with the romp in the hall,
the blazing kitchen fire, the hump-backed servant girl, and the
merry playmates, now slumbering beneath the sod.
So, after all, it took Time, patient teacher, to instil a full appre-
ciation of the delights of twilight. Time brought the thousand
things which make at once the charm and the sadness of that mys-
tic hour ; — the fleeting, intangible Past, the ideal hues which form
a fairy halo round the most common-place occurrences ; the real
Present, contrasting vividly with the buried life ; the last friends
beyond the skies to draw our thoughts thither, and more than all,
the feeling that we have tasted through experience somewhat of
existence, and have earned a right to moralize upon its fleeting
pleasures.
EMILY C. JUDSON,
(fanny FORRESTER.)
Emily C. Chubbuck was born in the pleasant town of Morrisville, in
the central part of New York. This is the " Alderbrook" so familiar to
her readers. Here she made a profession of religion, and connected her-
self with the Baptist church.
From Morrisville she went to Utica, to engage in teaching. While
living at Utica, she made her first essays at authorship. These consisted
of some small volumes of a religious character published by the Baptist
Publication Society, and poetical contributions to the Knickerbocker.
None of these, however, attracted any special attention. The first pro-
duction of her pen that is at all noticeable was a light article which she
wrote, without any very definite design, under the assumed name of
" Fanny Forrester," to the "New Mirror," while on a visit to the city of
New York. This was in June, 1844. The editor had the sagacity, in
this, as in several other instances, to perceive at once the evidences of
genius that appeared in this playful bagatelle, and by a warm and judi-
cious commendation, led the author to a continued, and, in the end, most
successful, exploration of the vein thus accidentally brought to light. A
series of essays, sketches, and poems followed, of a very brilliant character,
which in 1846 were collected and published in two volumes under the title
of " Alderbrook."
In the beginning of 1846, the venerable missionary Judson returned to
America, to visit the churches. On coming to Philadelphia, he was directed
to Miss Chubbuck as a suitable person to prepare a memoir of his lately
deceased wife, the second Mrs. Judson. Miss Chubbuck, then resident in
Philadelphia, cheerfully undertook the grateful task. Being thus thrown
much together, a mutual affection sprung up between them, and the favoured
child of literature joyfully laid aside the laurels then fresh upon her brow,
to go, as the wife of Dr. Judson, on a self-denying mission to the Burmans.
They were married, at Hamilton, New York, June 2, 1846, and soon after
(325)
;32G EMILY C. JUDSOX.
sailed for Burniah. The "Memoir" was published in 1848. Dr. Judson
died at Maulmain, in Burniah, in 1850. Soon after the death of her
husband, Mrs. Judson returned to the United States. Her health soon
began to decline, and on the first of June, 1854, after a lingering illness,
she died at the residence of her brother, at Hamilton, Madison county,
New York.
LUCY BUTTON.
It was an October morning, warm and sunny, but with even its
sunshine subdued into a mournful softness, and its gorgeous drapery
chastened by a touch of the dreamy atmosphere into a sympathy
with sorrow\ And there was a sorrowing one who needed sympa-
thy on that still, holy morning — the sympathy of the great Heart
Tvdiich beats in Nature's bosom — for she could hope no other. Poor
Lucy Dutton !
There was a funeral that morning — a stranger would have judged
by the gathering that the great man of the village was dead, and
all that crowd had come out to do his ashes honour — but it was not
so. Yet the little, old-fashioned church was filled to overflowing.
Some there were that turned their eyes devoutly to the holy man
that occupied the sacred desk, receiving from his lips the words of
life ; some looked upon the little coffin that stood, covered with its
black pall, upon a table directly below him, and perhaps thought
of their own mortality, or that of their bright little ones ; while
many, very many, gazed with cold curiosity at the solitary mourner
occupying the front pew. This was a young creature, in the very
spring-time of life, — a frail, erring being, whose only hope was in
Him who said, " Neither do I condemn thee — go, and sin no
more." There was a weight of shame upon her head, and woe
upon her heart, that together made the bereaved young mother
cower almost to the earth before the prying eyes that came to look
upon her in her distressing humiliation. Oh ! it was a pitiful sight !
that crushed, helpless creature's agony.
But the year before, and this same lone mourner was considered
a sweet, beautiful child, whom everybody was bound to protect and
love ; because, but that she was the pet lamb of a doting old wo
EMILY C. JUDSON. 327
man, she was ■without friend and protector. Lucy Dutton -was the
]ast blossom on a tree which had boasted many fair ones. When
the grave opened to one after another of that doomed family, till
none but this bright, beautiful bud was left, she became the all in
all, and with the doting aifection of age was she cherished. When
poverty came to Granny Dutton's threshold, she drew her one
priceless jewel to her heart, and laughed at poverty. When sor-
rows of every kind compassed her about, and the sun went down
in her heaven of hope, another rose in a holier heaven of love ; and
Lucy Dutton was this fountain of love-born light. The old lady
and her pretty darling occupied a small, neat cottage, at the foot
of the hill, with a garden attached to it, in which the child flitted
all day long, like a glad spirit among the flowers. And, next to
her child-idol, the simple-hearted old lady loved those flowers, with
a love which pure natures ever bear to the beautiful. It was by
these, and the fruit produced by the little garden, that the twain
lived. Many a fine carriage drew up before the door of the hum-
ble cottage, and bright ladies and dashing gentlemen sauntered
beneath the shade, while the rosy fingers of Lucy adjusted bou-
quets for them, her bright lips wreathed with smiles, and her
sunny eye turning to her grandmother at the placing of every stem,
as though for approbation of her taste. Not a child in all the
neighbourhood was so happy as Lucy. Not a child in all the
neighbourhood was so beautiful, so gentle, and so good. And
nobody ever thought of her as anything but a child. Though she
grew to the height of her tallest geranium, and her form assumed
womanly proportions, nobody, not even the rustic beaux around
her, thought of her as anything but a child. Lucy was so artless,
and loved her dear old grandmother so truly, that the two were
somehow connected in people's minds, and it seemed as impossible
that the girl should grow older, as that the old lady should grow
younger.
Lucy was just booked for fifteen, with the seal of innocence
upon her heart, and a rose-leaf on her cheek, when " the Herman
property," a fine summer residence that had been for years unoc-
cupied, was purchased^ by a widow lady from the metropolis. She
323 EMILY C. JUDSON.
came to Aklevbrook early in the spring, accompanied by her only
son, to visit her new possessions, and finding the spot exceedingly
pleasant, she determined to remain there. And so Lucy met the
young metropolitan ; and Lucy was beautiful and trusting, and
thoughtless ; and he was gay, selfish, and profligate. Needs the
story to be told ?
When the Howards went away, Lucy aAvoke from her dream.
She looked about her, and upon herself, with the veil taken from
her eyes ; and then she turned from all she had ever loved ; for,
in the breaking up of those dreams, was broken poor Lucy's heart.
Nay, censor, Lucy was a child — consider how very young, how
very untaught — oh ! her innocence was no match for the sophistry
of a gay city youth ! And young Howard stole her unthinking
heart the first day he looked in to purchase a bouquet. Poor, poor
Lucy !
Before the autumn leaves fell, Granny Button's bright pet knelt
in her little chamber, and upon her mother's grave, and down by
the river-side, where she had last met Justin Howard, and prayed
for death. Sweet, joyous Lucy Dutton, asking to lay her bright
head in the grave ! Spring came, and shame was stamped upon
the cottage at the foot of the hill. Lucy bowed her head upon her
bosom, and refused to look upon anything but her baby ; and the
old lady shrunk, like a shrivelled leaf, before this last and greatest
of her troubles. The neighbourhood had its usual gossip. There
were taunts, and sneers, and coarse jests, and remarks severely
true ; but only a little, a very little, pity. Lucy bore all this well,
for she knew that it was deserved ; but she had worse than this to
bear. Every day she knelt by the bed of the one being who had
doted upon her from infancy, and begged her blessing, but in vain.
" Oh ! that I had laid you in the cofiin, with your dead mother,
when all around me said that the breath had passed from you !"
was the unvarying reply ; " then my gray hairs might have gone
down to the grave without dishonour from the child that I took
from the gate of death, and bore for years upon ray bosom. Would
you had died, Lucy !"
And Lucy would turn away her head, and, in the bitterness of
EMILY C. JUD SON. 329
her heart, echo, "Ay ! would that I had died!" Then she would
take her baby in her arras, and, while the scalding tears bathed its
unconscious face, pray God to forgive the wicked wish, and pre-
serve her life for the sake of this sinless heir to shame. And
sometimes Lucy would smile — not that calm, holy smile which
usually lingers about an infant's cradle, but a faint, sicklied play
of the love-light Avithin, as though the mother's fond heart were
ashamed of its own throbbings. But, before the autumn passed,
Lucy Dutton was fearfully stricken. Death came ! She laid her last
comfort from her bosom into the coffin, and they were now bearing
it to the grave, — she, the only mourner. It mattered but little
that the grandmother's forgiveness and blessing came now;- Lucy
scarce knew the difference between these words and those last
spoken ; and most earnestly did she answer, " Would, would that
I had died !" Poor, poor, Lucy !
She sat all through the sermon, and the singing, and the prayer,
with her head bowed upon the side of the pew ; and when at last
they bore the coffin to the door, and the congregation began to
move forward, she did not raise it until the kind clergyman came
and led her out to take a last look at her dead boy. Then she laid
her thin, pale face against his within the coffin, and sobbed aloud.
And now some began to pity the stricken girl, and whisper to their
neighbours that she was more sinned against than sinning. Still
none came forward to whisper the little word which might have
brought healing, but the holy man whose duty it was. He took
her almost forcibly from the infant clay, and strove to calm her,
while careless eyes came to look upon that dearer to her than her
own heart's blood. Finally, curiosity was satisfied ; they closed
the coffin, screwed down the lid, spread the black cloth over it, and
the procession began to form. Minister Green left the side of the
mourner, and took his station in advance, accompanied by some
half dozen others ; then four men followed, bearing the light coffin
in their hands, and all eyes were turned upon the mourner. She
did not move.
"Pass on, madam," said Squire Field, who always acted the
part of marshal on such occasions ; and, though little given to the
42
330 EMILY C. JUDSOX.
"Weakness of feeling, he now softened Lis voice as mucli as it would
bear softening. " This way — right behind the — the — pass on !"
Lucy hesitated a moment, and many a generous one longed to
step forward and give her an arm ; but selfish prudence forbade.
One bright girl, Avho had been Lucy's playmate from the cradle,
but had not seen her face for many months, drew impulsively
towards her ; but she met a reproving eye from the crowd, and
only whispering, " I c?o pity you, Lucy!" she shrunk back, and
sobbed almost as loud as her erring friend. Lucy started at the
words, and, gazing wildly round her, tottered on after the coffin.
Loud, and slow, and fearfully solemn, stroke after stroke, the
old church-bell doled forth its tale ; and slowly and solemnly the
crowd moved on with a measiired tread, though there was many a
careless eye and many a smiling lip, turning to other eyes and
other lips, with something like a jest between them. On moved
the crowd after the mourner ; while she, with irregular, laboured
step, her arms crossed on her bosom, and her head bent to the
same resting-place, just kept pace with the body of her dead bo}-.
Winding through the opened gate into the church-yard, they went
trailing slowly through the long, dead grass, while some of the
children crept slily from the procession, to pick up the tufts of
scarlet and yellow leaves, Avhich made this place of graves strangely
gay ; and several young people wandered off, arm in arm, pausing
as they went, to read the rude inscriptions lettered on the stones.
On went the procession, away to the farthermost corner, where
slept the stranger and the vagabond. Here a little grave had been
dug, and the coffin was now set down beside it, while the long pro-
cession circled slowly round. Several went up and looked into the
dark, damp cradle of the dead child ; one observed to his neigh-
bour that it was very shallow ; and another said that Tom Jones
always slighted his work when there w"as nobody to see to it ; any-
how, it was not much matter, the child would stay buried ; and
another let drop a jest, a hard, but not very witty one, though it
was followed by a smothered laugh. All this passed quietly;
nothing was spoken above a low murmur ; but Lucy heard it all ;
E?.IILY C. JUDSON. 331
and, as she heard and remembered, what a repulsive thing seemed
to her the human heart ! Poor Lucy Button !
Minister Green stood at the head of the grave and said a prayer,
while Lucy leaned against a sickly-looking tree, alone, and pressed
her cold hands against her temples, and wondered if she should
ever pray again — if God would hear her if she should. Then they
laid the little coffin upon ropes, and gently lowered it. The grave
was too short, or the men were careless, for there was a harsh
grating against the hard earth, which made Lucy start and extend
her arms ; but she instantly recollected herself, and, clasping her
hands tightly over her mouth, lest her agony should make itself
heard, she tried to stand calmly. Then a handful of straw Avas
thrown upon the coffin, and immediately a shovelful of earth fol-
lowed. Oh ! that first sinking of the cold clod upon the bosom we
have loved ! What a fearful, shivering sensation, does it send to
the heart and along the veins ! And then the benumbing faint-
ness which follows, as though our own breath were struggling up
through that damp covering of earth ! Lucy gasped and staggered,
and then she twined her arm about the body of the little tree, and
laid her cheek against its rough bark, and strove hard to keep her-
self from falling.
Some thought the men were very long in filling up the grave,
but Lucy thought nothing about it. She did not, after that first
shovelful, hear the earth as it fell ; and when, after all was done
and the sods of withered grass had been laid on, Minister Green
came to tell her, she did not hear his voice. When she did, she
pushed back the hair from her hollowed temples, looked vacantly
into his face, and shook her head. Others came up to her — a good-
natured man who had been kind to her grandmother ; then the
deacon's wife, followed by two or three other women ; but Lucy
only smiled and shook her head. Glances full of troubled mystery
passed from one to another ; there was an alarmed look on many
faces, which those more distant seemed to comprehend ; and still
others came to speak to Lucy. It was useless — she could find no
meaning in their Avords — the star of intellect had gone out — the
temple was darkened. Poor, poor Lucy Button !
37
332 E M I L Y C . J U D S 0 N .
They bore her home — for she was passive and helpless — home to
the sick old grandmother, who laid her withered hand on those
bright locks, and kissed the cold cheek, and took her to her bosom,
as though she had been an infant. And Lucy smiled, and talked
of playing by the brook, and chasing the runaway bees, and of
toys for her baby-house, and wondered why they were all weeping,
particularly dear grandmamma, who ought to be so happy. But
this lasted only a few days, and then another grave was made, and
yet another, in the poor's corner ; and the grandmother and her
shattered idol slept together. The grave is a blessed couch and
pillow to the wretched. Rest thee there, poor Lucy !
MY FIRST GRIEF.
I LAUGHED and crowed above this water, when I was a baby,
and, therefore, I love it. I played beside it, when the days were
years of summer-time, and the summers were young eternities of
brightness, and, therefore, I love it. It was the scene of my first
grief, too. Shall I tell you ? There is not much to tell, but I
have a notion that there are people above us, up in the air, and
behind the clouds, that consider little girls' doings about as impor-
tant as those of men and women. The birds and the angels are
great levellers.
It was a dry season ; the brook was low, and a gay trout in a
coat of golden brown, dotted over with crimson, and a silver pina-
fore, lay, weather-bound, on the half-dry stones, all heated and
panting, Avith about a tea-spoonful of lukewarm water, turning
lazily from its head, and creeping down its back at too slow a pace
to afford the sufferer hope of emancipation. My sympathies — little
girls, you must know, are made up of love and sympathy, and such
like follies, which afterwards contract into — nlmportc! I was
saying, my sympathies were aroused ; and, quite forgetting that
Avater would take the gloss from my new red morocco shoes, I
EMILY C. JUDSON. 33;j
picked my way along, and laying hold of my fine gentleman in
limbo, succeeded in burying him, wet face and all, in the folds of
my white apron ! But such an uneasy prisoner ! More than one
frightened toss did he get into the grass, and then I had an infinite
deal of trouble to secure him again. His gratitude was very like
that of humans', when you do them unasked service.
When I had reached a cool, shaded, deep spot, far adown, whero
the spotted alders lean, like so many self-enamoured narcissuses,
over the ripple-faced mirror, I dropped my apron, and let go my
prize. Ah ! he was grateful then ! He must have been ! How
he dived, and sprang to the surface, and spread out his little wings
of dark-ribbed gossamer, and frisked about, keeping all the time a
cool, thin sheet of silver between his back and the sun-sick air ! I
loved that pretty fish, for I had been kind to it ; and I thought it
would love me, too, and stay there, and be a play-fellow for me ; so
I went every day and watched for it, and watched until my little
eyes ached; but I never saw it again. That was my first grief:
"what is there in years to make a heart ache heavier? That first
will be longer remembered than the last. I dare say.
SARA J. LIPPINCOTT.
(grace greenwood.)
Sara J. Clarke was born in Pompey, an inland town in the county
of Onondaga, New York. Here, and in the neighbouring town of Fabius,
she spent the greater portion of her childhood. During her early girlhood
she resided with her parents, at Rochester, N. Y., but at the age of nine-
teen removed with them to New Brighton, Penn., which has since been
her nominal home, though perhaps the larger part of her time is spent
with her friends, in New England, at Washington, and Philadelphia.
Miss Clarke wrote verse at an early age, and published under her own
name ; but, on coming out as a prose writer, being doubtful of the experi-
ment, she shielded herself behind a nom dc j^lunie. Her success has thus
far greatly exceeded the expectations of her most sanguine friends. Yet, in
a life of constant change and excitement, of extensive and pleasant social
relations, she has not been able to concentrate her powers on any important
work, but has given them at best but imperfect exercise in a series of
magazine articles, brief sketches, light critiques, and lighter letters.
A selection from her prose writings, making a volume of over four hun-
dred pages, entitled " Greenwood Leaves," was published in the fall of
1849. This work has reached a third edition. In the autumn of the fol-
lowing year was brought out a collection of her poems, a volume of 190
pages ; also, a volume of original juvenile stories, entitled " History of My
Pets," both of which publications have passed through several editions.
In the autumn of 1851, she published "Greenwood Leaves, Second
Series," and another volume of juvenile stories, entitled ''Recollections of
my Childhood."
In the spring of 1852, Miss Clarke visited Europe, and spent about
fifteen months in England, Ireland, Scotland, France, Italy, and the Tyrol.
On her return, she published a volume of travels, entitled "Haps and Mis-
haps of a Tour in Eui'ope." This has proved her most successful work.
In October, 1853, she was married to Mr. Lcander K. Lippincott, of
Philadelphia, removed to that city, and commenced with her husband the
editorship and publication of a juvenile monthly journal entitled "The
Little Pilgrim."
The father of Mrs, Lippincott, Doctor Thaddeus Clarke, formerly a
(334)
SARAJ. LIPriNCOTT. 335
plij-sician of some eminence, was born in Lebanon, Connecticut, of a good
old Puritan stock. He died at New Brighton, February 15th, 1854. Her
mother, a native of Brooklyn, Connecticut, is of Hugenot descent. Sara, the
youngest daughter, is one of eleven children, nine of whom are now living.
The following carefully written estimate of the intellectual character of
jMrs. Lippincott is from the pen of that accomplished critic, the Rev.
Henry Giles :
"That Grace Greenwood is a writer, ready, rapid, bold, brilliant, and
most discursive, whatever she throws from her pen at once reveals. But
to be ready and rapid is often to be nothing more than possessed of fatal
facility; and to seem bold, brilliant, and discursive is frequently to have
only the hardihood of ignorance, and to be glittering and superficial. The
readiness and rapidity, however, of this writer are in themselves surprising,
from the truth and force with which thought keeps pace with expression;
and we wonder to find so much true beauty, so much genuine coinage of
golden fancies in the prodigality with which she flings about her shining
store. Yet not on these do we dwell, and not by these does she win the
cordial feeling with which we regard her genius. We find in it a noble
seriousness. Bounding, elastic, and sportive as her imagination is, it is
not all a sparkling stream, and is not all in sunlight; it winds at times
through the solemn shadows of life ; and it has springs in the sources of
reflective thought, to make for itself, and fill deeper and broader channels
than any of those in which it has yet found outlets. As it is, the impulses
of earnest purpose and the gush of generous desire, often break to pieces
the delicate wreath which had been already half woven out of ingenious
fancies, and cast the scattered flowers upon the boiling torrent of indignant
sympathies. The M'orkings of mere fancy, however admirable or admired,
could never exhaust, could never express, could never content a nature
such as hers — for she feels too much in herself, and she feels too much for
others, to find only play and summer-time in the life of genius. In the
gayest tale of hers, we read below it meanings from the heart ; in the most
laughing letter, we can often discern a pensive wisdom hidden in the
smile ; in the passing criticism on a work of art, we have often not only
the fine enthusiasm, which flames up with the love of beauty ; but when
the work is devotional, we have, with phrase more happy and with spirit
more profound, the subdued eloquence of inborn reverence. The serious-
ness of Grace Greenwood is not the less intense because it is not moody
or murky ; because it does not tire you with tears, nor disturb you with
groans, nor disgust you with men, nor dishearten you with nature. Grace
is too healthy for mumps ; she is too sincere to be maudlin ; she is too
cheerful for lamentations ; and her love is too large for creation and too
kind, to tolerate the gloom of a dissatisfied spirit. But no soul is more
quick to kindle at a wrong done to the lowest; and no soul more brave to
rebuke unworthincss in the highest. Yet is her heart gentle, compas-
sionate; aroused only by the very strength of its goodness; by its hatred
J5,% SARA J. LIPPING OTT.
against injustice, and by its sympathy with suffering. Even when a lofty
anger moves her, there is ever sighing througli its tones a sound of pity.
For there is nothing that we can be rightly angry at in this world, but we
must pity also. Every soul that feels much, feels this.
" We think, therefore, that in her pages, radiant as they seem, we can
read, without any doubtful interpretation, meanings of sadness. If it were
not so, we should be disappointed ; for they manifest that genius of a
loving humanity, which cannot help but oftentimes be sad. Grace Green-
wood, say what persons will, is not what we should call a sprightly writer.
Her productions are not mere sprightly flashes, but many-toned utterances
of feelings, that lay deep down in the breast, and to which occasions gave
nothing but expression.
" Genius, accompanied with strong sensibility, were it not for certain com-
pensations, would be a penalty and not a boon. Such compensation Grace
Greenwood has in considerable affluence. One of these is the relief that
mental hilarity gives to mental intensity. Strong as her perception is of
what is serious in life, it has its counterpoise by her equally strong feeling
of what is joyous. The grave and troubled condition of man's estate we
can observe that she reverently appreciates ; but we can as well observe
that she also detects man's absurdities and vanities, and heartily she laughs
at them. Yet is there no contempt in the laughter, but an affectionate
humanity. She has humour most rich and racy — that which springs from
keenness of intellect, fullness of imagination, kindliness of temper, and
playfulness of spirit.
" This remark has its proof and its example in the parodies contained in
some of her writings. The imitation is unniistakeable ; the fun resist-
less ; and yet, we are so made to feel the beauty of the writers in the bur-
lesque, that while we laugh we admire. And this enjoyment of beauty is
another compensation for the painful sensibility of genius, and the only
other we shall mention. The language, and the activity of such enjoy-
ment in Grace Greenwood, no one can doubt, who reads her pages with
any spirit like her own. Neither can we doubt the sincerity of it and its
healthiness. It is no matter of artificial or factitious cultivation ; it has
grown with her in her native valleys and woodlands; she has listened to
its music in the foamings of her native waves and torrents; she has gazed
upon its majestic forms in the glory of her native mountains ; and she has
communed with the boundless spirit of it in that mighty azure dome of
matchless purity that rests over her native laud."
A DREAM OF DEATH.
How appropriate, and sadly truthful, is the expression, "■ The
night of the grave !" How the deep shadows of impenetrable mys-
tery hang about the dread portals of eternity ; how, in approach-
SARA J. LIPPINCOTT. 337
ing them, even in thought, we lose ouvsclves in clouds, and grope
in thick darkness !
In the near and solemn contemplation of the awful change which
awaits us all, how eagerly does the soul receive everything, in
religion, philosophy, or personal experience, which lifts, or seems
to lift, even a little way, a corner of the vast curtain which hides
from our mortal view the spirit-realm to which we go ; letting in
gleams of its immortal joy and glory, to light and cheer our painful
path through the dark valley.
During a late illness, there came a dream to me as I slept, which
left a solemn and ineffaceable impress upon ray mind, but to which
I may seem, by relating, to attach undue importance ; for, after
all, it was but a dream ; and I hardly know how it is, that I have
so laid it away in my heart, as a treasure of exceeding worth, almost
as a heavenly revelation. It was no wild, mystic, and fanciful
dream, but strangely distinct and beautifully consistent through-
out ; and it is with the most faithful truthfulness that I now ven-
ture to relate it, hoping that to some hearts it may have, or seem
to have, a meaning and a purpose.
In my vision, it seemed that my last hour of the life of earth
was swiftly passing from me. The dread presence of Death filled
my chamber with mourning and gloom, and awe unspeakable. My
heart, like a caged bird, now struggled and fluttered wildly in my
breast, now seemed sinking, faint, and panting with weariness and
fear. The last mist was creeping slowly over my eyes, and I heard
but imperfectly the words of prayer, sorrow, and tenderness,
breathed around me. Dear forms were at my side, clasping my
cold hands, and weeping upon my neck. The bosom of the best
beloved pillowed my poor head ; her hand Aviped the death-dew
from my brow ; she spoke to me strong words of comfort, crushing
down the great anguish of her heart the while.
It was no hour of joy or triumph ; my spirit was not buoyed up
by exulting faith, nor did waiting angels minister to it the peace
and consolation of Heaven ; but storm, and darkness, and fear,
encompassed it, filling it with wild regrets, an awful expectation, a
sore dismay. Its feet were already set in the river of death ; but,
43
338 SARA J. LIPPINCOTT.
like a timid child, it shrank from the chill, midnight "waves, and
clung convulsively to its earthly loves, — vain, alas ! to protect,
powerless to detain !
Soul and body parted, as they part who have lived and suffered,
and toiled together, in bondage, but who love one another, and
Avho, at last, are torn asunder by the inexorable will of a remorse-
less master.
But joy for one of these ! for whom the weariness of mortal
bondage was to give place to tlie freedom of eternity ; the pain,
the struggle, the fear, the sorrow of its earthly lot, to peace, rest,
assurance, and joy unspeakable ! for, at last, at last, that soul,
breaking from this poor life, with one glad bound, leaped into
immortality ! Oh ! the sudden comprehension of the height and
depth of the fulness of being ! How every thought, and aspiration,
and affection, and power, seemed springing up into everlasting
life!
But methought that the first feeling or sentiment, of which I
was conscious, was freedom, — freedom, which brought with it a
sense of joy, and power, and glorious exultation, utterly indescrib-
able in words. Ah ! it was beautiful, that this crowning gift of
God to His creatures, which had ever been so dear to my human
heart ; this principle, which hero I had so adored, was the first
pure and perfect portion of the Divine life, whose presence I hailed
with the great and voiceless rapture of a disenthralled spirit.
Methought that I witnessed no immediate visible manifestation
of Deity, heard no audible revelation of the Divine existence ; but
that I received fullness of faith, and greatness of knowledge, in
loneliness and stillness, yet instantaneously^, and more like recol-
lections than revelations. Cloud after cloud rolled swiftly away
from the dread mysteries of eternity, till all was meridian bright-
ness and surpassing glory. The presence of Deity was round
about me everywhere — -felt, methought, not beheld; it flowed to
me in the air, " every undulation filled with soul;" floated about
me in the rapt silence, like an all-pervading essence, diffusing itself
abroad over the great immensity of being.
There was no sudden unveiling of my eyes to behold the burning
SARA J. LIPPINCOTT. SSO
Splendours of the dread abode of the Sovereign of the Universe,
"the city of our God," girdled about with suns, over whose " crys-
tal battlements" float banners of light, within whose courts bow
the redeemed in ceaseless adoration ; there was no sudden unseal-
ing of my ear to the triumphal psalms of the blessed, to the grand
resounding march of the stars. And, methought, no fair creatures
of light came to me at once, to bear me upward, nor was my soul
eager to depart, on swift, impatient wing, from the dear, though
darkened scenes of earth, and the strong, though transient, asso-
ciations of time ; but still lingered, hovering over that chamber of
death, from which now arose a passionate burst of grief, the deep
sobbing, and wild swell of the first storm of sorrow. Then, me-
thought, my soul looked down upon its perishing companion in toil
and suffering — the worn and resigned body ; marked the rigid
limbs, the parted lips, the pale and sunken cheek, the shadowed
eye, and all the mortality settled on the brow; looked upon these,
and felt no sorrow. But ah ! the tears and groans of those dear
bereaved ones, had power to grieve it still, to " disturb that soul
with pity," yet not such mournful pity as it had known on earth.
A serene and comprehending faith in the wisdom and loving care
of the Father, reconciled it to all things ; the years of this life, to
the vision of its new existence, seemed shortened to brief days, and
thus the time of release, for all who suffer and toil, near at hand.
Yet with great yearnings it lingered there, its earthly love not
destroyed, not weakened, but made stronger far, and purer, more
like to the love of Heaven.
Then, methought, a form of ineffable beauty, with a countenance
of peace, wherein was human love breaking through celestial glory,
came to me, and said, " Oh, daughter of earth, it is now thine to
go forth, with the freedom of an immortal, among the infinite
worlds ; to range at will through the vast domains of the wide and
wondrous creation ; to track the shining paths of beneficent power,
leading on from beauty to beauty, and glory to glory, through the
grand and measureless universe of God. Shall wc visit those fair
worlds, those radiant stars, thou seest shining afar in the clear
depths of air ? — they, who have known no fall, and on whom the
340 SARA J. LIPPINCOTT.
Father's approving smile rests ■\vitli a perpetual Avarmtli and
serenity ; "whose inhabitants dwell in love, and worship, and con-
tent ; where there is neither death nor oppression, suffering nor
sin ; no spoiler, and none ' to make afraid ;' none who slay ; none
who starve ; none who flee from their brothers, and call on God in
secret places.
" There also the laws of beauty and harmony subdue and rule
the elements, so that there are no harsh frosts, nor fierce heat,
neither earthquake nor whelming flood ; no storms, to vex the
heavens, nor to desolate the earth ; whose bloom is glad in the
morning sun, and beautiful in the starlight. There, over hill and
plain, angels have written holy music in flowers ; there, summer
streams chime down the mountain side, and winds play among the
trees with the sound of anthems.
" Over those worlds divine beings oft walk, as once they walked
in the Eden of thy earth, ere man sinned, and, covering h*is face,
went out from the presence of God. Wilt, thou go thither? Or
wouldst thou ascend the steps of morning light, to the Divine
courts, thence to go forth on some errand of good, or enter on
some ofiice of love, thy portion of that labour which is worship ?"
Then it seemed that I made no answer, save to point downward
to those beloved ones, who still sat in darkness, and would not be
comforted. Then the angel smiled, and said, — " It is well; remain
thou with these through their day of time ; be near them, and con-
sole them always ; go before them, leading their way down the dark
valley ; welcome them through the immortal gates, for to the holy
ministration thou hast chosen wert thou appointed."
When the cold light of dawn broke the sleep which brought this
heavenly vision, it was as the coming of night, and not of morning.
EXTRACT FROM A LETTER.
I AM reminded of an incident, or rather tlic incident of yester-
day— an accidental meeting with the poet Longfellow.
SARA J. LIPPINCOTT. 341
Aside from mere curiosity, of -ffliich I suppose I have my woman's
share, I have always wished to look on the flesh and blood embodi-
ment of that rare genius, of that mind stored with the wealth of
many literatures, the lore of many lands, — for in Longfellow it is
the scholar as well as the poet that we reverence. The first glance
satisfied me of one happy circumstance — that the life and health
which throbbed and glowed through this poet's verse had their
natural correspondences in the physical. He appears perfectly
healthful and vigorous — is rather English in person. His head is
simply full, well-rounded, and even, not severe or massive in cha-
racter. The first glance of his genial eyes, which seem to have
gathered uj) sunshine through all the summers they have known,
and the first tones of his cordial voice, show one that he has not
impoverished his own nature in so generously endowing the crea-
tions of his genius — has not drained his heart of the wine of life,
to fill high the beaker of his song.
Mr. Longfellow does not look poetical, as Keats looked poetical,
perhaps ; but, as Hood says of Gray's precocious youth, who used
to get up early
" To meet tlie sun upon the upland lawn" — ■
''he died young." But, what is better, our poet looks well, for,
after all, health is the best, most happy and glorious thing in the
world. On m^ Parnassus, there should be no half-demented, long-
haired, ill-dressed bards, lean and pale, subject to sudden attacks
of poetic frenzy — sitting on damp clouds, and harping to the winds ;
but they should be a hearty, manly, vigorous set of inspired gentle-
men, erect and bi'oad-chested, with features more on the robust
than the romantic style — writing in snug studies, or fine, large
libraries, surrounded by beauty, elegance, and comfort — receiving
inspiration quietly and at regular hours, after a hot breakfast, the
morning paper, and a cigar — given to hospitality and great din-
ners— driving their own bays, and treating their excellent wives to
a box at the opera, a season at Newport, a trip to the Falls, or a
winter in Rome.
The comforts of life have been long enough monopolized by
thrifty tr a iesmen — "men in the coal and cattle line" — and good
342 SARAJ. LIPPINCOTT
living by bishops and aldermen. It is the divine right of genius
to be well kept and cared for by the world, which too often " enter-
tains the angel unaware," on thin soups and sour wines, or, at the
best, on unsubstantial jJi'ff-JJaste.
I heard yesterday that Fredrika Bremer had really arrived in
New York. I hope that it is so. She has hosts of admirers all
over our country, and is actually loved as few authors are loved,
with a simple, cordial, home affection — for she is especially a writer
for the fireside, the family circle, and thus addresses herself to the
affections of a people Avhose purest joys and deepest interests centre
in domestic life. America will take to her heart this child of genius
and of nature — her home shall be by every hearth in our land, which
has been made a dearer and a brighter place by her poetry, her
romance, and her genial humour. She will be welcomed joyfully
by every nature which has profited by her pure teachings, and
received her revelations — by every spirit which has been borne
upward by her aspirations, or softened by the spring breath, the
soft warmth and light of her love.
To tvommi has the Swedish novelist spoken, and by woman nmst
she be Avelcomed and honoured here ; but to the men of America
comes one whose very name should cause the blood to leap along
their veins — he, the heart's brother of freemen all over the world
— the patriot, prophet, and soldier, the hero of the age — Kossuth
the Hungarian !
How will he be received here ? How will the deep, intense, yet
mournful sympathy, the soul-felt admiration, the generous homage
of the country, find expression ? Not in parades and dinners, and
public speeches, for Heaven's sake !
Would you feast and fete a man on whose single heart is laid
the dead, crushing weight of a nation's sorrow — about whose spirit
a nation's despair makes deep, perpetual night ?
I know not how my countrymen will meet this glorious exile;
but were I a young man, with all the early love and fresh enthu-
siasm for liberty and heroism, I would bow reverently, and silently
kiss his hand. Were I a pure and tried statesman, an honest
patriot, I would fold him to my breast. Were I an old veteran,
SARA J. LIPPINCOTT. 343
with the fire of freedom yet warming the veins whose young blood
once flowed in her cause, I should wish to look on Kossuth and die.
Who can say this man has lived in vain ? Though it was not
his to strike the shackles from his beloved land, till she should
stand free and mighty before Heaven, has he not struggled and
suflFered for her ? Has he not spoken hallowed and immortal
words — words which have gone forth to the nations, a power and a
prophecy, which shall sound on and on, long after his troubled life
is past — on and on, till their work is accomplished in great deeds
— and the deeds become history, to be read by free men with
quickened breath, and eyes that lighten with exultation ? And it
is a great thing that Europe, darkened by superstition and crushed
by despotism, has known another hero — a race of heroes, I might
say, for the Hungarian uprising has been a startling and terrific
spectacle for kings and emperors. And "the end is not yet."
There must be a sure, a terrible retribution for the oppressors — a
yet more ieaviul finale to this world-witnessed tragedy. While the
heavens endure, let us hold on to the faith that the right shall
prevail against the wrong, when the last long struggle shall come,
that the soul of freedom is imperishable, and shall triumph over all
oppressions on the face of the whole earth.
ANNE C. LYNCH,
Anne Charlotte Lynch was born in Bennington, Vermont.
Her father belonged to the gallant band of " United Irishmen," who
so vainly attempted in 1798 to achieve the independence of the " Emerald
Isle." At the age of sixteen, against the protests, and even commands
of his father, he joined the rebels, and, with many others, was soon made
prisoner. During a gloomy imprisonment of four years, he received advan-
tageous offers of liberty and a commission in the army, if he would take
the oath of allegiance. These offers he boldly spurned, and at the age of
twenty, with Emmet, McNeven, and other illustrious exiles, came to the
United States. He married a daughter of Colonel Gray, and finally died
in Cuba, where he had gone in search of health.
On the mother's side, also. Miss Lynch has patriot blood in her veins.
Her grandfather, Lieutenant-Colonel Gray, of the 6th Regiment of the
Connecticut Line, received his first commission in January, 1776. He
was appointed Major in 1777, and Lieutenant-Colonel in 1778, which
rank he held till the close of the war. He served in the army of the
Revolution during the whole period of seven years, and retired at the
close of the war with a constitution so broken down by the fatigues and
hardships he had undergone, that he was never able to resume the duties
of bis profession, and he died, after a few years, of a lingering disease,
contracted in the service, leaving his family entirely destitute. The
widow of Colonel Gray petitioned Congress several times ineffectually for
relief The petition was renewed by her daughter, Mrs. Lynch, in 1850,
and, through the tact and persuasive eloquence of the grand-daughter,
finally received a favourable hearing, even amid the exciting scenes of the
Compromise Congress.
After finishing her education, which was at a female seminary of some
celebrity in Albany, Miss Lynch lived for a time in Providence, Rhode
Island. There she published; in 1841, a volume entitled the "Rhode
(344)
ANNE C. LYNCH. 34o
Island Book," consisting of selections of prose and verse from the writers
of that State, and including several pieces of her own. She subsequently
spent some time in Philadelphia, where her poetical abilities attracted
much attention, and gained for her the friendship and encouragement of
many persons of distinction ; among others, of Fanny Kemble, then in
the zenith of her popularity. Several of her poems were contributed to
the " Grift" in 1845, also a long chapter in prose called " Leaves from the
Diary of a Recluse."
For the last eight or nine years she has lived in the city of New York.
In this period she has contributed to the current literature of the day, both
in prose and verse. A collection of her poems was published in 1848, in
a small quarto, elegantly illustrated with original designs by Huntington,
Cheney, Darley, Durand, Rothermel, Rossiter, Cushman, Brown, and
Winner.
The combination of the social element with the pursuits of literature
and art, is a problem to which Miss Lynch has given a practical solution,
and by which she has gained her chief celebrity. She has for many years
opened her house on every Saturday evening to ladies and gentlemen of
her acquaintance, connected with literature or the fine arts. Men and
women of genius here meet, very much as merchants meet on 'Change,
without ceremony, and for the exchange of thought. They pass together
two hours in conversation, music, song, sometimes recitation, and disperse
without eating or drinking, nothing in the shape of material refreshment
being ever offered. At no place of concourse, it is said, is one so sure to
see the leading celebrities of the town. I give two sketches of these
soirees, the first from a writer — evidently a woman — in Neal's Gazette,
the second from the pen of Miss Sedgwick :
'■'■ At her brilliant Saturday evening reunions one may see all who are
in any way distinguished for scientific, artistic, or literary attainments,
mingled with a band of fine appreciating spirits, who are content with that
power of appreciation, and whose social position shows at once the high
station which Miss Lynch has won by her merits as a woman and a
scholar.
'' One of these same reunions would be the realization of many a school-
girl's dream of happiness. We can almost see the young neophyte of
authorland nestled in some sheltering recess, or shrouded by benevolent
drapery, and gazing with wonder and admiration on those whose words
have long been the companions of her solitary hours.
" ' Can that really be Mrs. Osgood ?' she would exclaim, as a light
figure glided before her retirement.
" ' Is that truly Mrs. Oakes Smith on the sofa beside Mrs. Hewitt ?
Grace Greenwood ! how I have longed to see her, and Darley, Willis,
Bayard Taylor, ah ! me,' and the sweet eyes would grow weary with
watching the bright constellation, and the little hands clasp each other
41
346 ANNE C. LYNCH.
close — and more closely still, as slie tried to realize that those whom she
had long loved were in truth before her.
" Then gliding through their midst, calmly, almost proudly in her
serene repose, is the hostess herself. Her wavy hair, gathered in a
braided coronet, her mild, blue eyes serenely smiling, and at once thoughts
of Miss Barret's Lady Geraldine come to the mind of the gazer, and these
words to her parted lips —
" For her eyes alone smiled constantly; her lips had serious sweetness,
And her front was calm — the dimple rarely rippled on her cheek ;
But her deep blue eyes smiled constantly, as if they had by fitness
The secret of a happy dream she did not care to speak."
" There is a warm greeting and kind word for all, and even the little
trembler in the window curtain does not start as she kindly addresses
her."
The next extract is from Miss Sedgwick, written in the character of a
gentleman on a visit to New York.
" From Mallark's, I passed to the drawing-room of Miss Lynch. It
was her reception evening. I was admitted to a rather dimly lighted hall
by a little portress, some ten or twelve years old, who led me to a small
apartment to deposit my hat and cloak. There was no lighted staircase,
no train attendant, none of the common flourish at city parties. ' Up
stairs, if you please, sir — front room for the ladies — back for the gentle-
men ;' no indication of an overturn or commotion in the domestic world;
no cross father, worried mother, or scolded servants behind the scenes —
not even a faint resemblance to the eating, worrying, and tossing of 'the
house that Jack built.' The locomotive was evidently not off the track;
the spheres moved harmoniously. To my surprise, when I entered, I
found two fair-sized drawing-rooms filled with guests, in a high state of
social enjoyment. There was music, dancing, recitation, and conversation.
I met an intimate fi'iend there, and availing myself of the common privilege
of a stranger in town I inquired out the company. There were artists in
every department — painting, poetry, sculpture, and music. There 1 saw
for the first time that impersonation of genius, Ole Bull. Even the his-
trionic art asserted its right to social equality there in the person of one
of its honourable professors. You may think that my hostess, for one so
young and so very fair, opened her doors too wide. Perhaps so, for though
I detest the duenna system and believe that the unguarded freedom per-
mitted to our young ladies far safer as well as more agreeable, j'et I would
rather have seen the mother of Miss Lynch present. Certainly no one
ever needed an a^gis less than my lovely hostess. She has that quiet
delicacy and dignity of manners that is as a ' glittering angel' to exorcise
every evil spirit that should venture to approach her. How, without for-
tune or fashion, she has achieved her position in your city, where every-
thing goes under favour of these divinities, I am sure I cannot tell. To
ANNE C. LYNCH. 347
be sure, she has that aristocracy which supersedes all others — that to
which prince and peasant instinctively bow — and though unknown in the
fashionable world, you would as soon confound the exquisite work of a
Greek sculptor with the wax figures of au itinerant showman, as degrade
her to the level of a conventional belle.
"■ Yet she docs not open her house as a temple to worshippers of whom
she is the divinity, but apparently simply to aiford her acquaintances the
hospitality of a place of social meeting. She retires behind her guests,
and seems to desire to be the least observed of all observers.
"I had supposed that war might as well be carried on without its
munitions, officers as well live without their salaries, children as well go
to bed without their suppers, as a party to go off without its material
entertainment. But here was the song without the supper, not even those
poor shadows of refreshments, cakes and lemonade. Here was a young
woman without ' position' — to use the cant phrase — without any relations
to the fashionable world, filling her rooms weekly with choice spirits, who
caine without any extraordinary expense of dress, who enjoyed high rational
pleasures for two or three hours, and retired so early as to make no drafts
on the health or spirits of the next day. I communicated my perplexity
to a foreign acquaintance whom I met at Mrs. Booth's.
"'Why,' said he, 'your fair friend has hit upon a favourite form of
society common in the highest civilization. Miss Lynch's soirees are
Parisian — only not in Paris. Not in the world, with the exception of the
United States, could a beautiful young woman take the responsibility
unmatronized of such a ' reception.' "
FEEDRIKA BREMER.
When it was announced, a few months since, that Fredrika
Bremer had landed upon our shores, the intelligence was received
by the thousands who have read her works, "with an interest that
admiration of literary talent or genius alone could never have
inspired. More than almost any other writer, Miss Bremer seems
to have become a personal friend to every reader, and the cause
of this is to be found in a far deeper source than mere admiration
for the novelty and vividness of her narratives, her quiet pictures
of domestic life, or her strong delineations of the workings of
human passion. Her large and sympathetic heart is attuned to
such harmony with humanity, or rather she so expresses this beau-
tiful harmony of her own soul with God, with nature, and with
humanity, that the human heart that has suffered or enjoyed,
348 ANNE C. LYNCH.
vibrates and responds like a harp-string to the master-hand. She
has somewhere said, " Hereafter, when I no more belong to earth,
I should love to return to it as a spirit, and impart to man the
deepest of that which I have suffered and enjoyed, lived and loved.
And no one need fear me; — should I come in the midnight
hour to a striving and unquiet spirit, it would be only to make it
more quiet, its night-lamp burn more brightly, and myself its friend
and sister." Although she still belongs to earth, this aspiration has
been satisfied. Even here, without having crossed the mysterious
bourn, she has revealed to us great depths of suffering and joy, of
life and love, and to many troubled hearts she has come in their
midnight hours, a friend, a sister, a consoler. It is no wonder,
then, that homes and hearts have opened to her, and that welcome
and gratitude await her in every town and village of our country.
When Miss Bremer's works were first introduced to us a few
years ago, the brilliant narrations of Scott had been succeeded by
the passionate and romantic creations of Bulwer, and our literature
was flooded with inundations from the voluptuous and sensational
school of France, which deposited its debris and diffused its malaria
wherever its impure waters subsided. At this period the writings
of FreJrika Bremer came upon us, suddenly and beautiful as
summer comes in her northern clime, as pure and sparkling as its
mountain streams, as fresh and invigorating as its mountain air.
As Avorks of art, or in a literary point of view, these novels have
doubtless their faults. But those who have been elevated by their
ennobling spirit, who have drunk at their clear, cool fountains, and
felt their strengthening and life-giving influence, who have dwelt
with her lovely characters in their happy homes, and participated
in their joys and sorrows, would find it as impossible to turn upon
them the cold eye of the critic, as to analyze the sunshine and the
landscape that delight the eye, or to judge the features of a beloved
friend by the strictest rules of beauty or of art. The office of the
critic has come to be in literature what that of the surgeon is in
the actual world. With perfect development, beauty, and harmony,
he has nothing to do. He has eyes only for deformities and faults,
and wherever they are to be found, he applies his merciless scalpel,
ANNE C. LYNCH. 349
with a firm hand and an unrelenting heart. But the critic who
judges by rules of art alone, does not give us the highest truth any
more than the chemist, Avho, while he shows us how to analyze the
diamond and to resolve it to its original elements, forgets to place
it before us flashing in the sunlight ; or the botanist Avho, in dis-
secting the flower, leaves its beauty to pass unnoticed, and its per-
furne to escape. Mere criticism is the judgment of the intellect
alone ; but the highest and truest judgment is that where the heart
also has a voice, and an object seen through the one or the other
medium, intellect or heart, is like those transparencies which in one
light represent the dreary desolation of a winter landscape, and in
the other, all the luxuriance and beauty of summer.
The age in which we live is one of scepticism, of analj'sis, and
of transition. Religion, government, society, are all in turn inves-
tigated by its indomitable spirit of inquiry. All great questions
relating to humanity, its reform, its progress, and its final destiny,
are agitated to a degree not known before at any period of the
world's history. The conservative and destructive principles are
at war, and there are moments when those of the firmest faith seem
to doubt what the final issue of the contest may be. The litera-
ture, as could not fail to be the case, takes its tone from the spirit
of the age, and no department of literature has more direct bearing
upon the popular mind than that of fiction. He who writes the
songs and romances of a people may well leave to others to make
their laws. Not, indeed, those lighter romances, intended only to
interest or amuse the fancy, but those which embody some deep
sentiment, or some vital principle of society or of religion. Truths
and principles thus inculcated or difi'used, have their most direct
influence upon the youthful mind, and, like the impressions made
upon the rock in its transition state, they harden and remain.
As an instance of the extent of this influence of fiction, we may
refer to the writings of that woman, who, possessing the most ex-
traordinary combination of masculine and feminine qualities under
the name of George Sand, for the last few years has taken the
first rank among the writers of her native language, and from that
eminence has exercised such incalculable influence, not only over
S50 ANNE C. LYNCH.
her OTTii but all other countries. George Sand and Fredrika Bre-
mer stand at the head of two widely different classes of fictitious
writing, each having other and higher objects than to amuse.
Through the writings of both there is a deep and powerful under-
current, to which the story is but the sparkle on the surface. Both
discuss great questions of social reform, the laAvs of marriage, and
the nature of love. Both enter the temple of humanity — but the
one to overthrow its altars, and to shatter its cherished images —
the other to render them more firm and steadfast — to burn incense
on the shrines, and adorn them with garlands of immortal flowers.
The fi-enius of the one is the flaming torch of the incendiary, that
carries destruction and desolation in its course — that of the other
is the fragrant lamp, that illumines the darkness, and dispels, by
its steady and benignant beams, the gathering and mysterious
gloom. The course of the one has been like that of the furious
tempest of the tropical regions, that uproots the old landmarks,
floods the gentle streams till they overflow tlicir channels, and
sweep away banks, bridges, and barriers that oppose their course;
that of the other, like the evening dews and the summer showers,
that sink softly into the bosom of the earth, refreshing, gladdening,
and fertilizing.
The institution of marriage, the root from which society springs,
the groundwork upon which it stands, George Sand, with all the
force of her genius and eloquence, seeks to degrade and to destroy ;
while Fredrika Bremer would ennoble, not the institution of mar-
riage only, but she would exalt it into that deeper and holier spirit-
ual union, of which the actual marriage is but the symbol. Love,
that most divine of all our sentiments, the bloom and perfume of
the tree of Life, the sun that lights and gladdens the night of
existence, the one presents to us as burning with all the voluptuous
ardour of the senses, the other, as glowing Avith the sacred fire of
the impassioned soul.
It seems to be a law of Providence, that good and evil should
ever co-exist, both in the outer and inner world ; that wherever
poisons abound, the antidotes are also to be found ; and the contem-
poraneous appearance of the two leading minds ■\yc have been con-
ANNE C. LYNCH. .-^ol
trastiri"", is an instance of the verification of this law in the intel-
lectual or moral world. Some one has truly said, that " where
nothing great is to be done, the existence of great men is impossi-
ble." Goodness is only one form of greatness, and in opposing
the influence of the materializing and disorganizing school of French
romances, there was a great good to be attained ; and by Miss
Bremer, and the class of writers of which she stands at the head,
it has been in a measure accomplished ; for there is another law
of Providence which secures the final triumph of good over evil,
and renders the contest not doubtful in the end, although it may
be of long duration.
Besides the French school of romance waiters, there is another,
to which the works of Miss Bremer offer an equally salutary anti-
dote. We refer to those who, with contempt in their hearts, and
bitterness and sarcasm on their lips, go through the world like
Mephistopheles, only to sneer at the weaknesses of humanity, to
magnify its errors, and to question or despise its virtues, and who,
like certain birds of prey, seem to be attracted only by that which
is in its nature offensive. The mischief of such works is, that they
lower the standard of human excellence, they unsettle our faith in
human nature, and they engender a sceptical and contemptuous
spirit, that as fatally extinguishes the higher virtues and aspira-
tions, as fire-damp extinguishes the miner's lamp. Goethe has
somewhere said that if we would make men better, we must treat
them as if they were better than they are ; if we take them at
their actual level we make them worse ; much more then do we
render them worse when we put them below their actual level, pre-
serving, though caricaturing the likeness.
The characters Miss Bremer has drawn, while they are free from
this charge, do not on the other hand fall into the opposite error of
being too favourably depicted. They represent human nature as
it often is, as it is always capable of being, refined, elevated, and
noble. The home affections that she so vividly portrays, though
originating in the domestic circle, radiate from that centre until
they encompass all that live and suffer, genial as the sun, and
embracing as the atmosphere ; and, like the sun and air in the
352 ANNE C. LYNCH.
outward world, tliey call forth the verdure and bloom of tlie inner
life in all those whom they thus enfold.
It may be objected that we assign too great an influence, too
prominent a position, to these creations of the imagination, pre-
sented to us on the pages of fiction. But fiction, in its action on
the mind, has all the effect of history ; it has even an advantage
over history. Since the one gives but the outward and apparent
life, while the other enters the secret recesses of the heart, unveils
the hidden springs of motive and of action, and lays open to our
view, what no history and no confessions ever do, the secret work-
ings of the human soul, that most mysterious and complicated of
all the works of God. Into these " beings of the mind," the writer
of fiction, like the sculptor of old, breathes life, thought, and immor-
tality, and they become to us positive existences. Lear and Cor-
delia, Othello and Desdcmona, Ivanhoe and Rebecca, are as much
realities as if they had dwelt upon the earth, and their lives had
come down to us beside those of the heroes and heroines of history.
So it is with the characters Miss Bremer has drawn. ^Ye are as
familiar with Bear and his little wife, as if we had dwelt with them
at their cottage-home of Rosenvik. We shrink before the iron will
and the imperious commands of 3Ia cliere mere, and shudder to
encounter the dark form and the lowering glance of the fierce
Bruno.
If, then, fiction in its eff'ects is to be regarded as possessing equal
power with history, it becomes a more important feature, not only
in literature, but in morals, and should occupy a higher place than
has been assigned to it, and those who people the world with these
airy yet actual beings, and present to us in them ideals to contem-
plate and to imitate, should be regarded as the benefactors of men.
And so, indeed, it has been with her who is the subject of this brief
sketch. Iler works have gone abroad on their message of peace
and love over the civilized world, and her fame has resounded far
and wide, till its echo returned to her native land. Fame, as it is
generally understood, however, is but a poor expression of the
relation that exists between Miss Bremer and her world of readers ;
it is but the outward fact of the deep, spiritual relation she bears
ANNE C. LYNCH. 353
to them all ; for each one receives from her some direct rays, as
the "wavelets of the lake, lying in the light of the moon, receive
each some heam of her silver light.
As to Miss Bremer's future, we do not consider her course by
any means as ended. We know that in her works, as in her life,
she aspires to that ascending metamorphosis, without which the
normal development of life is not accomplished. We know that
she aspires to put the romance of individual life in closer connexion
with the great romance of humanity, and that her present visit to
the New World is connected with this view. We know that through
the impressions here received, she hopes to realize and to give
expression to ardent hopes and long-cherished visions. We know
that " the light of her life's day, like that of the morning, will be
an ascending one, and that whether its beam shine through mist or
through clear air, that the day will increase — the life will brighten."
45
MARY E. HEWITT.
Mrs. Hewitt's maiden name was Mary Elizabeth Moore. She was
born in Maiden, Massachusetts. Her father, an independent New Eng-
land farmer, a man of good education, and fine personal appearance, died
when Mary was but three years of age, leaving a young wife and four
children. The family removed the following year to Boston, where the
subject of this sketch remained until her marriage with Mr. James L.
Hewitt, an extensive publisher of music in New York city. In this latter
place Mrs. Hewitt has resided ever since.
By her maternal grandfather she is descended from an old family by
the name of Collins, in Kent, England. "Thomas Collins, lord of the
manor, — son of John, son of Alexander, son of Alexander," was first per-
mitted to bear a coat of arms, and to figure in heraldry with "gules," and
"griffins," and "martelets azure." By her maternal grandmother, how-
ever, she had a descent still more honourable, being a lineal descendant
of the good old puritan, Roger Williams.
As a writer, Mrs. Hewitt is known almost exclusively by her poetry.
A volume of her poems published in Boston in 1846, called "The Songs
of our Land," was very well received, both in England and America.
Edgar A. Poe published three separate critiques on these poems. After
a very learned show of "trochees" and "iambuses," he declares that
" they are generally, rather than particularly, commendable — abounding
in forcible passages," and that " many of them would do credit to any
poet in the land." He pronounces the "Hercules and Omphale" to be
"worthy of all praise," and "that vara avis in our literature, a well-
constructed sonnet."
Mrs. Hewitt's prose writings, though not numerous, have been such as
to justify the expectation raised by her poems. She has contributed several
excellent stories to the "Memorial," the "Odd Fellows' Offering," and
the " Gem of the Western World," and some sketches for the " Southern
(354)
MARY E. HEWITT. 355
Literary Messenger." She is at present engaged upon a prose volume, to
be entitled " The Heroines of History."
The following extract is from an Irish legend, the events of which are
supposed to have occurred during the times of the Druidical superstition.
A LEGEND OF IRELAND.
The business of state was over for the day. Judgments had
Deen awarded, the different records of the kingdom examined, and
whatever material they afforded for national history had been care-
fully entered in the great national record called the Psalter of
Tara ; when a herald advanced and proclaimed to the assembly
that a combat would take place on the morrow, between Conrigh,
a celebrated chieftain, and Maon, a knight of the Red Branch.
These warriors had each demanded the hand of the lady Brehilda,
the king's ward, as the meed of their prowess in battle, and the
lady was to be the reward of the successful competitor. But Bre-
hilda had known Maon and loved him from her childhood, far away
in her own home ; for he was the son of a neighbouring chieftain,
and years ago he had gathered flowers for her upon the hills, and
walked at her bridle rein, while her rough pony scrambled with
her over the rocky passes.
But her sire was dead — no son inherited his name and glory —
his estate had passed away to a distant male relative ; for, by the
law existing among the Irish, females of every degree were pre-
cluded from the inheritance, and Brehilda was the ward of the
nation's monarch.
There was feasting that night in the palace of Tara, and a noble
assemblage of the brave and beautiful of the land. In the banquet
hall the bards sang the praises of heroes to the harp, while the
chiefs feasted at the board and quaffed meadh from the corna — the
trumpet in battle, and in peace the drinking cup — and in the
lighted saloon the guests of the monarch danced the rincead-fadha,
the national dance, to the music of the harp, the tabor, and the
corobasnas — an instrument formed of two circular pieces of brass,
strung together by a wire of the same metal and used for marking
time — but the lady Brehilda sat alone in her bower, looking out
356 MARY E. HEWITT.
upon the moonlit scene, and thinking with a dread foreboding of
the morrow, which might separate her for ever from the one she
loved, and consign her to a hateful existence with Conrigh.
The walls of the apartment were hung with tapestry representing
the landing of Heremon and Heber, and the contests of the Dano-
nians with their Milesian invaders. The floor was strewn with
fresh rushes, and the few articles of furniture scattered throughout
the room, were as rude in design and workmanship as the age to
which they belonged. An embroidery frame was placed in one
corner, and near it a small harp, such as was used by ladies of the
time, rested against a low table.
Without the tower lay the moonlit sward, the glittering river
winding away among the woody hills, the rude castle of the chief-
tain, and the mud hovel of the peasant, where from the windows of
each gleamed out the festal torch and the fire light.
But the sound of mirth had ceased in the palace of Tara, and
the lights had gone out one by one from the distant dwellings, and
still Brehilda sat at the narrow window, communing with her own
sad heart. She was very beautiful as she sat there in her grief,
with her fair hair, that had escaped from its fillet, falling in ripples
of gold over her green, embroidered kirtle almost to the border of
the white garment beneath it. Her small hands clasped, rested
upon her lap, and her full blue eyes were turned tearfully upward,
as if she were invoking the One great Principle of the universe,
whose worship the Druids taught, to strengthen the arm of her
lover and save her from the fate she would rather die than meet.
The moon was now slowly descending behind the distant hills, and
all nature reposed in silence, when the strings of a harp lightly
touched, sounded from a grove not far off, and a full, manly voice
sang the following words :
Doubt not my steed — he hath breasted the water,
When the torrent came down from the hills in its might ;
And with white, flowing mane, deeply reddened in slaughter,
He hath borne me in battle, nor shrank from the fight.
Doubt not my lance — a young mountain scion.
It grew 'mid the storm, rooted fast to the rock ;
MARY E. HEWITT. 357
Its point knows the sound of a breastplate of iron,
And gladly it springs, like my steed, to the shock.
Doubt not my arm in the combat Tvill serve me —
My bard sings the deeds of his chieftain, with pride ;
And the strength of a legion to-morrow will nerve me
To conquer in battle, and win thee my bride.
Doubt not my heart, in its truth, here repeating
That thou art its life-pulse — the throb of my breast —
And never till death stops my bosom's swift beating, ■
In the cold narrow house, will thy thouglit be at rest.
Springing to her feet at the first sound of the voice, every fea-
ture of her beautiful face lighted up with intense joy, she stood
like a young pythoness filled with the oracle, and extended her
arras toward a figure arrayed in the long, fringed colchal of a bard,
that now emerged from the grove, and whom her heart told her
truly could be no other than Maon. Casting back the hood from
his face, he stood revealed in the waning moonlight, and raising
his hand to his lips, then waving it upward in parting salutation to
the maiden, he again entered the grove and disappeared ; and
Brehilda, strengthened by the words of his song, and reassured by
his presence, retired to her couch, and soon in sweet slumber forgot
the cares that oppressed her heart.
The morrow, like all dreaded to-morrows, dawned brightly.
The combat was to take place early in the day, and the field had
been prepared for the rivals and those who were to witness the
contest. The thrones of the Irish monarch and the kings of the
four provinces were arranged much in the same manner as in the
hall of legislation, save that the King of Connaught had his place
on the left of the King of Munster, while platforms or galleries
were erected on either side for the accommodation of spectators.
It is not to be supposed that a trial of arras in that remote time
was conducted with the order and magnificence of the more modern
tournament ; but still the field was not wanting in much of the
material that served to make up the display of that after period.
The seats around the arena were now fillino; to their utmost extent
and capacity. There were nobles and knights, and esquires bearing
the shields of their chiefs ; and to the several orders of bards assem-
358 MARY E. HEWITT.
bled for the convention of the states were assigned conspicuous
places in the enclosure. Each king, robed in the colours appro-
priate to royalty, occupied the throne prepared for him, seated
beneath his own banner, and in a gallery behind the throne of
Ollamh sat Brehilda, arrayed like a noble Irish maiden, pale as
sculptured marble, surrounded by the principal ladies of the
monarch's court.
At a loud blast of the corna the combatants entered the arena
from opposite sides of the field. They were noble in appearance,
well matched in size, and sat their chafing steeds as firmly as the
Thessalian riders whose horsemanship gave birth to the fabled
Centaurs. Each warrior was arrayed in the rude and defective
armour of the time — the head covered with the head-piece of iron,
which at that period had neither crest nor vizor. The right hand
bore a lance, the left arm a buckler, while an iron maul, powerful
as the hammer of the northern Thunder God, hung pendent at
each saddle-boAY, for the battle-axe was then unknown in warfare.
Eager for the conflict, at a signal from the herald they sprang to
the encounter, and for a long time the victory seemed doubtful ;
but the lance of Conrigh splintered against the shield of Maon,
and each unslung the ponderous maul, and jDoising it aloft, again
spurred to the contest.
With hushed heart and dilated eyes Brehilda gazed upon the
scene. A moment of intense bewilderment, and she sank in a
death-like swoon upon the floor of the gallery, for Maon lay
stunned upon the field, beneath his prostrate steed. The shout
that hailed the victor was unheard by the maiden as they bore her
from the throng, and placed her insensible form upon the couch in
her tower.
But the festival was over. The solemn feast in the temple of
Yiachto had been partaken of — the great fire of Samhuin had been
lighted, and the Deity invoked to bless their national counsels, and
Conrigh had departed to his castle on the river Eionglasse, in the
county of Kerry, where he dwelt in all the barbarism of feudal
magnificence, bearing with him his bride, the wretched Brehilda.
Neither the devotion of her lord, nor the splendour that sur-
MARY E. HEWITT. 359
rounded lier, could console, or render the new-made wife contented
with her lot. She envied the peasant maidens who milked the
kine beyond her window, free to love where the heart prompted
and to wed where they loved — and her daily prayer to Dhia, the
great Creator of all things, was that her spirit might be permitted
to enter the flowery fields, and dwell in the airy halls of Flathinnis,
the Druidical heaven, with those beloved who had gone before.
The winter was ended, and the festival of Beil Tinne was at
hand. All nature seemed to rejoice in the season of the returning
sun, and Brehilda, to whom the brightness of spring brought no
joy, wandered alone on the banks of the Fionglasse. The birds sang
upward to the highest heaven, and the over-hanging trees waved
their fresh green leaves to the rippling water. Brehilda seated her-
self listlessly beside the stream, and anon the following song from
her lips, in a subdued voice, sounded tunefully over the waters.
They have parted for ever
Our hearts' rosy chain,
And bound me, all helpless,
To a love I disdain.
They have ruthless bereft us
Of the fond hope of years,
And given my young life
To sorrow and tears.
Yet my heart, Oh Beloved,
To thy memory clings,
As the bird o'er her nestling
Folds closely her wings.
The dark clouds may gather
Aloft in the sky.
And the tempest toss wildly
The branches on high ;
But faithful and fond,
With her young 'neath her breast,
Still fearlessly cleaveth
The bird to her nest.
And thus, though in peril.
And secret it be,
Oh ! Bird of my breast !
Clings my true heart to thee.
360 MART E. HEWITT.
Scarcely was the song finished when a light skiff, made of hide
stretched over a frame of wicker, propelled by a single oarsman,
shot out from beyond a clump of alders, and swiftly approached
the river's bank. Touching the earth lightly with his oar, the
boatman leaped to land almost at the feet of Brehilda. He waa
clad in the simple garb of a peasant, and Brehilda, alarmed at the
act of the stranger, would have fled, but a motion of his hand
restrained her, and the next moment she lay panting and sobbing
on the bosom of Maon.
Their interview was long, and passionate their communing, and
at length the lovers parted. Maon again embarked on the Fion-
glasse, and Brehilda returned to the castle.
In those early days, when war and glory were the theme of
song, acts of violence and bloodshed were frequent, and revenge
followed fast upon wrong ; for the light of revelation had not yet
dawned upon the world that knew no return for injury but retri-
bution.
It was the first of May, and the day of the festival of Beil
Tinne. Fires were lighted, and sacrifices were offered on the
most lofty eminences in every part of the kingdom to Beil, or the
Sun, The Druids danced around their round towers the sacred
dance of their profession, as was the custom of this priesthood
during the religious festivals of the nation ; and the martial follow-
ers of the chiefs joined in the Rinkey, or field-dance — a perform-
ance not unlike the armed dance with which the Greek youth
amused themselves at the siege of Troy — to the sound of the bag-
pipes, upon the green-sward.
A stranger bard feasted that night in the hall of Conrigh, with
the guests and retainers of the chieftain. He wore the truise of
weft, which covered the feet, legs, and thighs, as far as the loins,
striped with various colours, and fitting so closely as to discover
every motion and muscle of the limbs ; and the cotaigli, or tunic
of linen, dyed yellow, and ornamented with needle-woi'k, reaching
to the mid-thigh, and confined around the loins by an embroidered
girdle. The sleeves of this garment were loose and long, and the
bosom was cut round, leaving the neck and upper part of the
MARY E. HEWITT. 361
shoulders bare. His beard "was long, and his hair flowed over his
neck and shoulders in wavy luxuriance. Thus arrayed in the
picturesque habit allowed to that order of men whose persons were
held sacred everywhere throughout the kingdom, he was one of
those noble specimens of manly beauty formed to awaken the
interest and admiration of all beholders.
Meadh foamed at the board — the bards sang "the days of other
years," nor was the theme of love held unmeet for so joyous an.
occasion — the harp was passed round from hand to hand among
the guests, each one contributing his portion of song to enliven
the feast, and the unknown bard, in his turn taking the instru-
ment, struck the chords loudly ; and while Brehilda, who was seated
near her lord, listened, trembling and pale with apprehension lest
the intruder should be discovered beneath the disguise which the
eyes of love had already penetrated, he sang —
The dove was the falcon's love,
The dove with her tender breast;
Ah ! weary the fate that gave
The dove to the kite's vile nest !
The moon from yon cloud to-night
Looks down on the feast of shells ;
Oh, marked she the falcon's flight
For the home where his own dove dwells ?
There's a veil o'er my harp's true strings,
There's a cloud o'er the fair moon's breast;
And the falcon, with outspread wings,
Hangs o'er the kite's vile nest.
The famishing birds of prey,
Are hurrying through the night,
But the dove with her falcon love
Will have flown ere the morning light !
The feast flowed on, uninterrupted by aught but song; and at a
late hour the revellers retired from the banquet to their apartments
in the castle.
It was long after midnight, when the sleepers were aroused from
their slumbers by the sound of conflict in the hall below. Hastily
dressed, and half armed, they rushed forth from their apartments
to meet the swords of their unknown assailants. Wildly the contest
46
362 MARY E. HEWITT.
raged, and everywhere was seen the strange bard, encouraging the
intruders, until at length in the aifray he encountered Conrigh,
and casting off the false heard that disguised him, they stood face
to face amid the combat — the husband and the lover of Brehilda.
They fought with all the terrible hate that animated them, and
Conrigh fell, pierced with many wounds, beneath the sword of his
adversary. A brief moment, and Maon, bearing the insensible
form of Brehilda, passed swiftly through the hall and out at the
portal. Mounting a strong steed, while the assailants continued
their work of blood, and placing her for whom he had wrought the
night's sacrifice, before him, he fled with all speed toward the court
of Conquovar Mac Nessa, King of Ulster.
This wise and munificent king was a patron of the learned, and
in his court the unfortunate and the proscribed found an asylum
and a mediator. Morning dawned as Maon paused in his flight
beside a running spring, and alighted with his unconscious burthen.
He sprinkled her brow with the cool lymph, and filling the korn —
the cup sacred to the deity of the earth and the waters, suspended
from the overhanging branch of a tree — he raised the draught to
her lips. Who can describe the rapture of Brehilda, on awaking
from her long trance, to find herself supported by the arms of the
lover of her girlhood, and to meet again his look of ardent affection.
.^■^ ^.
ALICE B. NEAL.
The banks of the Hudson seem destined to become classic ground.
Not a few of our most distinguished writers, men and women, have either
lent their genius to the celebration of its beauties, or have themselves
drawn inspiration from its mountain breezes. The name of Alice B. Neal
is now to be added to the list. Born in 1828, in the city of Hudson, she
may have owed her early love for the beautiful to the romantic scenery by
which her childhood was surrounded. If there be any truth in the theory
of physical influences upon the mental, we may in like manner trace
something of the enduring energy with which she has met her many trials
to her subsequent dwelling upon the hardier soil of the granite State.
Her education was finished in New Hampshire, where she gave early indi-
cations of intellectual superiority.
An apparently trivial incident of the school-room led to a most romantic
issue, and fixed indeed her course in life. In a sportive hour, her school-
mates challenged her to try her success before the world with some of
those compositions which had so excited the admiration of the school.
The challenge was accepted, and a tale was at once despatched to Joseph C.
Neal, who had then just established the " Saturday Gazette." It was
entitled " The Game of Checkers," and signed Alice G. Lee.
Mr. Neal was then in the prime of his days, and one of the acknowledged
arbiters of taste in literature. His decision as to the rejection or the
acceptance of the story was watched with eager eyes by the merry young
coterie. How those eyes must have sparkled to find in a subsequent
Gazette, not only the tale published in full, but on a third prose contribu-
tion, " The First Declaration," the following editorial comments :
" Taking it for granted that our literary department for the week will
receive an attentive perusal, we shall be mistaken — much mistaken, ladies
— for to your peculiar appreciation of the beautiful and refined we appeal,
particularly in the present instance — if the reader does not agree with us
(363)
364 ALICE B. NEAL.
in our estimate of the merits of the charming original sketch, published
in our present number, from the pen of Miss Alice G. Lee.
" 'No oflfence to the general, or any man of quality,' as Cassio has it;
but though second to none in our admiration of ' Fanny Forrester,' it
would be injustice not to say, that ' The First Declaration' will compare,
without injury, to any other production of the kind that has adorned of
late our periodical literature. How it may affect others we cannot tell;
but it is to us like moonlight on the flowers when the weary day is done,
or like music on the waters, to meet with a sketch so replete with play-
fulness, yet so delicately marked with Coleridge's ' instinct of ladyhood.'
There is genius, too, and originality, in its naivete — a nice and feminine
perception of the beautiful, with an ability to portray it, which cannot fail
of its purpose whenever it is thus executed."
The matter did not end here. The new author continued to contribute
to the Gazette. A correspondence ensued, which led to the entertainment
on his part of a deep and warm regard. Discovering at length, accident-
ally, that " Alice G. Lee" was a fiction, and that the real lady was Miss
Emily Bradley, now returned to her own home on the Hudson, he imme-
diately sought her acquaintance, and in December, 1846, received her hand
in marriage, and brought her to Philadelphia, which has been her home
ever since. At his request, she resumed, and she still retains, the endeared
name of " Alice," by which he had first known her.
This union, so romantic iu its origin, was doomed to a sad and speedy
termination. In July, 1847, the hand of death left Mrs. Neal a widow,
at the early age of nineteen. Experience shows, in the moral world if
not in the physical, that the coarsest plants are not always the hardiest.
This delicate flower, so tenderly fostered and so fragrantly blooming, be-
neath the genial influences that surround the parterres of city life, now
that it was exposed to the blast, seemed suddenly to resume the hardihood
of its mountain birth. With a courage that might do honour to an expe-
rienced matron, this widowed girl decided at once to assume the editorial
duties of her deceased husband, and thus not only avoid eating the bread
of dependence, but also win the dearer privilege of ministering to the
comfort of her husband's now childless mother. At the death of Mr. Neal,
the two ladies continued to live together, the younger gracefully acknow-
ledging that the rich stores of experience, the varied reading, fine taste,
and judicious counsels of her aged companion, have more than compen-
sated for her own more active exertions.
Her first literary effort, after her mournful bereavement, was to super-
intend the publication of the third series of " Charcoal Sketches," by her
late husband. She has since then, besides her weekly editorial labours in
the Gazette, written several books for children, and contributed largely,
both in prose and verse, to our leading Magazines. " Helen Morton,"
appeared in 1849 under the auspices of the Protestant Episcopal Sunday
ALICE B. NEAL. 365
School Union, and was well received. It has been followed by "Pictures
from the Bible," and the continuations of "Helen Morton," called "Watch
and Pray," and " In the World, but not of the World." She is at present
engaged upon a series of juvenile books, for the Appletons. Four of them
have already appeared : " No Such Word as Fail," " Patient Waiting no
Loss," "Contentment Better than Wealth," "All's Not Gold that Glit-
ters." Of her works of a diiferent kind, the first that has assumed the
book form is the " Gossips of Rivertown, or Lessons of Charity." Her
other tales in Godey, Graham, and Sartain, would make, if collected, two
or three volumes of the size of the " Gossips of Rivertown."
Mrs. Neal is still one of our youngest writers, and what is of most
favourable omen, shows in her writings constant signs of improvement.
In the language of a contemporary critic, who writes on this subject con
amove, and whose opinion we make our own : " Her poetry has more ma-
turity than her prose ; for the gift of song comes to the bard, as to the
bird, direct from Heaven. Polish and metrical correctness may be added
to genuine poetry ; but it is doubtful whether the fount be not as pure
and sparkling at its first gush, as when quietly flowing on in a deeper
stream. Mrs. Neal's prose compositions are continually improving, and
the knowledge, which, with her uncommon industry, she is constantly
acquiring, will enlarge her sphere of thought and illustration; and better
yet, the religious tenor of her writings shows that she is guided by prin-
ciples which will strengthen her intellect, and make her, we trust, in after
years, an ornament and blessing to our famed land."
THE CHILDr-LOVE.
" He prayeth best, who loveth best
All tilings both great and small;
For the dear God who loveth us —
He made and loveth all." — Coleridge.
" I AM sure ^oit love me, little Miriam ?"
"Love you? — oh, so dearly!" And, as if her childish words
needed a stronger confirmation, she put her arms caressingly about
his neck and laid her head upon his bosom. Her face was very
lovely as she looked up to him in all the winning truthfulness of
an affectionate heart. Large gray eyes, with lashes so long and
deep as almost to give them a sorrowful expression at times, and a
mouth now smiling, and so disclosing small pearly teeth, and then
the crimson lips ^vould meet in pouting fullness —
366 ALICE B. NEAL.
" As though a rose should shut,
And be a bud again."
So thought the student as he bent down to return the fond caress,
and mingled his darker locks with the light floating curls that were
thrown back over his shoufder.
"And will you always love me, Miriam ?"
" Oh, always !"
"But when I am gone — for I may not be with you long; and
then, when you do not see me every day, and you have other
friends who love you better, and can make you more beautiful
presents?"
She seemed to be pained, as if she understood the worldliness
thus imputed to her, young as she was.
"But why must you go ? and where will you go ? Home ?"
" Home ! Ah, no, my child ; I have not had a home these many
years."
And then they were both silent for a little while ; she pitying
him because he had no home, and he dwelling on thoughts and
recollections which the word had called up. The low brown farm-
house where his boyish days were passed, with the mossy bank
around the well ; the little garden at the entrance of the orchard ;
the orchard itself, white with blossoms at this very season of the
year. And then there was the brook, gurgling through the alder
bushes, and reflecting the tall spires of the crimson cardinal, or
the field lily, that sprung among the rich grass. He seemed once
more to lie, an idle, careless boy, watching the clouds floating lazily
overhead, while the summer insects sang around him, and the wind
came gently to lift the hair from his sunburnt forehead.
This brought a recollection of his mother's kiss. It always
seemed to him like the summer wind, so quiet, so warm, so loving.
Her kiss and blessing, as she bent over his pillow, and then she
would kneel and pray so earnestly for her son, her only child.
How unlike his father was that gentle woman ! He had wondered
at that even when a boy. His stern, rigid parent, who rarely
smiled, and made self-denial and never-ceasing labour his religion,
as though he felt the cui'se of Cain ever upon his rugged fields.
ALICE B. NEAL. 367
They were united only in one thing, their love for him, and the
zealous prayer that he might be, like Samuel, called even in child-
hood to the service of the Temple. So they had dedicated him ;
and, when he saw the grass springing upon their graves in the
churchyard, and took a last look upon that humble home, now
passed into other hands, he remembered this strong wish of the
hearts that had loved him so, and were noAV mouldering to dust
beneath his feet.
"But where are you going?" said the child, who had been
thinking of many other things, and had now returned to this new
fear of parting.
"Many, many hundred miles from this, Miriam, away from the
busy city and its crowded streets. Far off to the still woods, where
there are no church-bells, and even no Sabbaths. I am going to
the poor Indians, to teach them where to look for the Great Spirit
they worship, and to the settlers of those Western lands, ruder
still, and in darker ignorance. They scarcely know there is a
God."
"But they have the sky there, and the sun; and who do they
think made them and the little flowers in the grass ? They could
not make the flowers !"
" But they do not love the flowers and the sky as you do ; they
are blind : ' Eyes have they, and they see not ; ears, but they do
not hear.' So I am going to them with God's own word, that will
speak more plainly to their hearts. Do you not think it will be a
beautiful life" — and his sunken eyes glanced with strange enthusi-
asm— " devoting every power of soul and body to those benighted
people, forgetting this life and its comforts and pleasures in the
thoughts of that which is to come ? — reaping the broad whitening
harvest ?"
He forgot that he was speaking to a child. And yet she seemed
to understand him, at least to feel that he was swayed by some
noble emotion ; for she raised her head and listened eagerly, as if
a new life of thought was opened to her.
" And will you have a home there ?"
" Nay, I shall never have a home on earth ; parents, wife,
368 ALICE B. NEAL .
children are not for me. I go forth -with neither purse nor scrip,
following our Divine Master ; I shall not have where to lay my
head. But his love constrains me ; he will not desert his servant."
And his voice sank, as it were, to a thought of prayer for the
strength he would need in the arduous path he had chosen.
" But you Avill be all alone and sick, and there will be no one to
take care of you ; then perhaps you wall die." The look of sad-
ness we have spoken of came into the child's earnest eyes, as she
laid her soft head against his cheek, and wondered why he should
choose to go away from her.
" We will not talk of this any longer, little one. I have made
you so sad and grave. I do not like that look on your face ; it is
too w^omanly for such a little maiden. You are too young to
understand all these things, and you must not try to ; but you
must love mc, that is all I ask. See, there is your kitten, come to
invite you away from me."
It was with a strong effort that he had shaken off the sombre
mood into which he had fallen, and attempted to enter into her
childish amusements once more. He was startled by the earnest,
dreamy look that she still retained. As he had said, it was too
womanly for that young fair face.
She smiled again ; obedience to those she loved was the strong
principle of her nature, for she had ever been governed by affec-
tion. No one ever spoke a harsh word to Miriam, motherless
Miriam Arnold, the light of her father's lonely life, and the pet
of the neighbours, who looked out to catch a glimpse of her light
figure as she bounded up the dark court like a flitting ray of sun-
shine. It was a gloomy abode for such a bright young creature,
ol" a stran";er would have thought so. The house so old and cheer-
less, far away from the gay shops and the beautiful women who
frequent them. There was not even a green tree or an ivy wreath
to refresh the eye, nothing but Miriam's little pot of mignonette
upon the window-sill, fresh and fragrant like herself, and her bird,
who sang above it with a carol as light-hearted as her own. The
bird, the child, and the flowers, these were the light of that lonely
house, since Miriam's mother had faded in its dreariness. And it
ALICE B. NEAL. 369
■was homo, too, even if the okl servant, who moved with such a
cautious tread among the dusty books of her master's study, was
the only companionable creature, save the bird. How carefully
she rubbed the dingy furniture, and mended the threadbare cur-
tains, long since faded from their cheerful neatness ! It was,
perhaps, this still seclusion that had given Miriam, with all her
eager childish grace, thoughts above her years ; and, after her friend
had gone, she put the kitten from her lap and leaned out of the
window to watch for her father's return, musing, as she had never
done before, how men could ever live without knowing they had a
Father up in Heaven, and who else they could thank for taking
care of them through the long dark night ? And then her friend
— Paul, he had told her to call him, when he first came to read
those strange Hebrew words to her father, a daily study of the
ancient language of the Bible he reverenced so much — Paul was
going away to tell them to love him. How very good he was !
She should miss him a great deal though. Perhaps he would take
her too. Oh, she had not thought of that before ! But, then,
there was her father ! No, Paul must go alone. Poor Paul, with
no one to love him but herself ! How gravely he . had made her
promise to love him, as if she had not always done so from that
very first day when he had taken her upon his knee and talked to
her as no one else could talk !
The young curate, for such he was, of a wealthy parish church,
old and "lukewarm" because of its long prosperity, had gone to
his daily duty of reading the evening service to a scattered con-
gregation, half hidden in the high straight pews, that almost
stifled their faint responses. He went with a heavy load upon his
heart, for he was a stranger among them and to their sympathies.
There was no poverty to call such as he to their homes ; the rector
only was bidden to the rich man's feasts. He came and went to
and from the gilded chancel, with scarce a smile of recognition
from those to whom his rich voice had read the "comfortable
words" of their Master and his. The Bible told him they were
brethren, but his heart said they were utter strangers. It was this
cold supineness that had first turned his thoughts to a more earnest,
47
370 ALICE B. NEAL.
active life among men "ready to perish," while his present minis-
try -was to those who were "full and had need of nothing." And,
at last, after many a struggle and many a prayer, he had stead-
fastly turned his face to a mission in the western wilds of his native
land.
In all that wide, wide city, there was one only object his heart
could cling to — the little child whose arms had circled him, whose
kiss had comforted his loneliness. This was perhaps from his own
reserve, for he had been solitary even from a boy. He had never
attached his playmates to him, he could not seek for sympathy
among strangers ; opening to them the sorrows of his heart, a
gentle heart like the mother who had given him life : but he
checked its longing sympathies with a pride inherited from his
sterner parent, and turned to fasting and lonely vigils of prayer
and meditation. Miriam was the frail golden link that bound him
to active human sympathies. He was attracted by her strange
loveliness as she came, half pleadingly, half timidly, to prefer some
request to her father, and since then she had been the prattling
companion of many a lonely hour, when the task was ended, and
his teacher had gone forth to impart to other pupils the stores of
his great learning.
She was watching for him the next day at the entrance of the
court, as he came slowly along, absorbed in one of those abstracted
moods which had now become habitual to him. Her eyes bright-
ened as she caught sight of his slender figure, and she ran to place
her hand in his with the confidence of an habitual favourite.
Something which pleased her very much had evidently occurred ;
but when she was questioned, she only smiled, and said it was a
great secret ; even papa was not to be told. Yet it was not
naughty : Margery had said so. Every day after that, for a long
time, he found the faithful little sentinel at her post ; and sometimes
their walk was extended, and she would go with him into the busy
street, clinging closer to her dear companion, and looking up with
smiles into his face, if the crowd jostled her, the embodiment of
the spirit of faith.
At last the secret was revealed. It was when he came to tell
ALICE B. NEAL. 371
her that he was going, all was ready for his departure, and he had
but one farewell to make. He was later than usual, and she was
watching for him with more eagerness than ever. She tripped
demurely by his side, looking so beautiful in her clean white dress,
and her curls in such rich profusion flowing round her delicate
throat. He could not bear to pain her happy heart by the sad
news of their parting, so he drew her gently to his bosom for the
last time, while he waited for her father's return ; and they were
all alone but the kitten purring in the sun, and old Margery bus-
tling in and out, intent on household cares. They did not talk
much, but now and then she would pass her hand caressingly over
his face, or he would bend down and kiss her tenderly. At last
he said —
" I am going, Miriam. This is the last time I shall see you in
many a day."
" Going !" she said, echoing the word sorrowfully.
" Yes, as I told you when the spring first came. To-morrow I
shall be on my Avay to the deep woods and the boundless prairies
of the western land."
He expected at least a burst of passionate sobs ; but she only
nestled closer to his heart, and twined her arm more tightly about
his neck.
After a little time, she slid from his knee, still sorrowful, and
came back to him holding a little picture. It was a miniature of
herself, exceedingly lifelike, and it had the dreamy, serious gaze
which he had first noticed when speaking of his mission. This
was her innocent little secret. It had been painted by a poor
artist, with more talent than friends, who had his home in the
same dark court. He had thought her so beautiful, that he begged
her to sit to him, intending a surprise to her father, who, in his
unostentatious way, had once been of service to his poorer neigh-
bour. That very day she had brought it home, so she told Paul,
and laid it in a book before him.
"And he was pleased," said Paul, "and kissed you, and thought
it was very like you, as I do ?"
"I don't believe he liked it so very much. I don't think he
42
372 ALICEB.NEAL.
likes pictures at all," answered the child. " He never looks at my
sweet mother, with the blue dress and the rose in her hair. But
he smiled, and told ine to give it to the person I loved best in the
"world."
" And you gave it to Margery, perhaps ?" Paul smiled at the
thought of bestowing such a gem upon Margery's dark little
kitchen.
"No, I don't love her best, and that would not be right. I
kept it for you, because there is no one but papa and you I ever
dream about. Sometimes I have such lovely dreams, and think
you are never going away. But you are, and you must take this,
and keep it always. I'm sure you will, Paul."
A tear, yes, a tear, fell upon the beautiful picture — so touched
was he by the earnestness and sincerity of her affection, and the
thought that he was so soon to leave her.
Her father came, a mild, benevolent-looking man ; but, never-
theless, with the air of one who had no strong hopes or desires. He
was sorry to part with his favourite pupil, but blessed him in God's
name; for he, too, had been "a minister about holy things," and
knew the burning zeal which had filled the heart of the young
devotee.
The morrow came, and Miriam was restless and sad as the hour
for their walk drew near, and there was no friend to join her.
Many and many a day did she linger at their old trysting-place,
her heart beating fast, if she saw in the distance a face or figure
that might be his. But one day after another came and went, and
he was not there. Then she found other friends, and Time was
her consoler.
Yeai'S, many years had passed, and the missionary sat at the
door of his rude cabin, and leaned his weary head against the
rough unhewn beams for support. He was far older, and had a
dejected, sorrowful air that had deepened the lines upon his fore-
head, though his dark clustering hair had not silvered, and his eyes
still lighted with the fire of manly thought. Yet the fresh vigour
of his youth was spent, and his heart was weary and athirst for
closer sympathy than he had found among the rude dwellers of the
ALICE B. NEAL. 373
land. Their numbers had greatly increased since he first came
among them, and the Indian haunts had retreated from before
approaching civilization. They had prayed him to remain among
them, t? visit their sick and bury their dead, and they were kind
to him in their own way. They had built his cabin, and furnished
it with their own rude manufactures, and brought him presents of
game from the forest, and fruit from their thriving farms. But,
now the zeal of his first consecration was spent, he saw little fruit
of all his labours ; the wilderness had not yet blossomed as the
rose. He longed for some one who could sympathize in his ardent
desire to do good, and to encourage him to cast his " bread upon
the waters." He covered his face with his hands and prayed,
communing with the only intelligence that could read his heart,
and then he looked around him and still sighed.
Perhaps it was that he had seen the cheerful blaze from the fire-
side of some of his people, as he came homewards, and stopped to
speak some playful word with the urchins before the door; but, as
he sighed, he wondered if he could have been happier had he not
denied to his starving heart all human, household love. " Per-
haps I have wronged my nature," he thought. "It may not be
required of me to lead this lonely life." And then — he never
could tell what brought the recollection so vividly before him at
that moment — there came a yearning thought of the little ^liriam
of years ago — his child-friend.
She must be a woman now, and beautiful and good. Perhaps
she had already a home of her own, and her children about her.
At any rate, she had forgotten him. If she had not, if she still
remembered her childish promise to love him always — but no, he
would not be so mad, so selfish, as to ask her to sacrifice her youth
and beauty to his life of lonely privation. But he could not banish
her from his mind, and he went in and unclasped the miniature he
had not seen for many a day. It was a little faded now; but
there were the earnest, serious look, and the soft curls, and the
fond smile. How she had loved him ! and he could almost feel
her arras about his neck and her heart beating close to his. It
was the isolation of spirit as well as outward life which had impressed
374 ALICE B. NEAL.
these remembrances so forcibly upon him. Everything seemed as
if yesterday. Again that yearning thought ; and even before a
resolve, he had smothered a fear, and was pouring out to her, or
what he felt to be her now, all that was in his heart.
After the letter was gone, there were weeks of anxious suspense ;
and then he began to wonder at his own madness and folly. Some-
times he would try to calm himself with thinking that they had left
their old home, and it would never reach Miriam ; and then he
almost wished it would be so, for she would never learn his pre-
sumption. But at last the ansAver came, when he had quite ceased
to expect it ; and he knew only by the tumult of his emotions, as
he broke the seal, how much he had perilled upon what would now
be revealed. He did not think to glance at the signature to see
if she was still unmarried, but, as one resolved to drain to the dregs
a bitter cup, he tore open the sheet, allowing himself no hope.
" Paul — dear Paul !" — he was so dizzy that he could scarcely see
the words — " you will think me strange, unmaidenly, when I tell
you that my pen trembles in my hand for very happiness. I have
heard from you once more ! The dream of my youth, of many,
many years, has at last been fulfilled ! I Icneto you had not for-
gotten me ; and I have kept you ever in my mind, mingled with all
that I counted good and noble. I have kept the promise which you
recall, unconsciously, for I had forgotten it was ever required. I
have 'loved you always,' Paul.
" No doubt much of this has been wild imagination, nursed in the
lonely life I have ever led. I mean the seclusion ; for we are still
here as when you left us, except that my father is older and more
feeble, and I have assumed Margery's household duties, for we are
very poor. You have sought a portionless bride. But we will
come to you, as you have asked, for we know you cannot leave
your people, and your heart will grow strong again and be com-
forted by my father's gentle counsels; and J will be your 'home.'
I can remember asking you if you were going home.
" Do not fear that I shall not be content. I am strong and
well ; I have never been accustomed to luxuries ; and am I unwo-
ALICE B. NEAL. 375
manly in telling you liow my very heart has gone out to you, at
your first bidding ? I have never lost trace of your labours. I
have seen what you have done for those scattered people. I read
of the consecration of your little church ; and once I have seen one
who had met you, and who told me of your fervour, and that you
were wearing yourself out by your never-ceasing labour. lie said
your eyes were large and dark, though sunken, and that you looked
too frail for so rude a life. You see it was not all imagination.
*' Yes, we will come. My father has said so with his blessing,
and he will renew his youth living among the beautiful things of
nature ; and I shall know you there face to face as I know you
now in spirit, gentle, patient, unselfish."
The promise was kept, strange as it may seem to those who walk
ever in the beaten track of cold formalities. It was again evening;
on those broad prairie lands, and Paul Stanbridge waited the
approaching twilight, pondering on the new revelation of life, the
seals of which another day would open. He wondered if it Avere
not a blessed dream, and then he turned to look once more at the
few comforts he had recently gathered in his little cabin for her
who was henceforth to be its mistress. She had always loved
flowers. How fortunate that he had twined the prairie rose and
the clematis over the misshapen walls of his dwelling ! and the
smooth lawn-like slope to the river-side, how peaceful it all seemed
as it slept in the sun's last rays !
Suddenly, he felt rather than saw an approach, and he turned to
find two coming slowly towards him. No, no, it was a dream —
they could not reach even the village before the morrow — and the
strangers were alone, and coming as if they knew the foot-path.
It was no dream ; one more glance, and he knew that venerable
form ; an instant, and that noble woman was clasped in a welcoming
embrace. There was no coldness, no formality in that greeting.
She was all that he had dreamed and pictured ; she was much more
than he had dared to hope ; and she had bound him for ever by her
trustful confidence, her womanly devotion. So they were united
for life or death. Her father blessed them as he had done before,
376 ALICE B. NEAL.
calling them by that holiest and dearest of titles, "man and wife,'
and, for the first time in many years, the missionary had a home.
You will wonder if there was no sad awaking when the romance
of youthful girlhood had passed, and Miriam knew that the step
was irrevocable. You would need no other answer than a glance
at the peace and happiness which sprung up in that quiet dwelling,
a light that was diffused among all his little flock ; for he had
found the key to their hearts — his creed was no longer gloomy and
morose, looking coldly on all their social joy. And every one loved
Miriam, who became, young as she was, a guide and a friend to
many beside her husband.
But did she truly love him ?
Her father, happy in his serene old age, did not doubt it, as he
saw her place their first born, Paul, in his arms, and look up to
him with the trusting confidence of old, mingled with a deeper,
because wifelike, tenderness.
CLARA MOORE.
Mrs. Claea Moore is a native of Westfield, Massachusetts^ but has
resided in Philadelphia since her marriage. Her maiden name was Jes-
sup. She has distinguished herself as a writer both of prose and of poetry,
but principally of the former. Her stories are natural in their incidents,
gracefully written, and full of fine delineation of character. A vein of
sentiment, which pervades most of her writings, renders them especial
favourites with her sex. In describing the struggles of woman's heart,
when actuated by the passion of love, she is peculiarly happy : indeed,
few female authors in the United States excel her in this respect. Her
story entitled "Emma Dudley's Secret" is an instance in point. This
powerful tale has been republished in London with much success. "The
Mother-in-Law" and " The Estranged Hearts," both prize tales, may
be quoted as happy illustrations of her style.
It is a high merit with Mrs. Moore, that she seeks her subjects in every-
day life, instead of dealing in the visionary regions of inflated romance.
The calamities which oppress her heroines are such as might happen to
any woman. Another merit in this author is, that instead of confining
herself to the passion of love, as it exists in the female heart before mar-
riage, she depicts it in the varied trials to which it is subjected after mar-
riage ; and this opens a mine which has been but little worked by novel-
ists. Mrs. Moore understands her own sex thoroughly. It would be
difficult, perhaps impossible, for a man to anatomize the female heart as
she has done. Her plots are generally well managed, though she has as
yet published no fiction of sufficient length to test her powers in this
respect fully. As a magazinist, she enjoys an enviable reputation. Her
success, indeed, is the more distinguished because authorship with her is
an amusement rather than a profession. She wisely considers, that the
duties of a wife and mother are paramount, and hence it is only her leisure
that she surrenders to literature. Her pride is to be a woman first, an
48 (377)
378 CLARA MOORE.
author afterwards; yet we trust that she will eventually find time for the
composition of some more elaborate fiction than the short, fugitive stories
with which she has hitherto graced our literature ; and with her wide
observation of the female heart, and her skill in managing incidents, sho
cannot but succeed brilliantly if she makes the attempt.
Most of her writings have been published under the nom de plume of
" Clara Moreton."
THE YOUNG MINISTER'S CHOICE.
Alone in her chamber, Gertrude Leslie sat, reading in bitter-
ness of spirit the once cherished testimonials of her early love.
Years had passed since those glowing words had been penned, and
yet the fountains of her heart w^ere stirred as violently as upon
their first perusal. Still burned upon its altar-shrine the love
which years of estrangement had not the power to destroy ; and
like a guilty creature she hid her face within her hands, when she
remembered that her heart was now promised to another.
Too well she knew that no promise bore the power of recalling
that love from the worshipped idol of her youth, and that with
false hopes she had deceived herself, as well as the noble and trust-
ing heart now resting its happiness upon hers.
For a long time Gertrude sat motionless, her white hands pressed
tightly over her colourless face, and her mind far away in the
dreamy past. Sweet memories of that olden time came thronging
to her brain, and again she was the guileless, happy child of "long
ago" — again, in fancy, her light feet crushed the grass of the valley
home where her childhood had been passed — again leaning upon
the arm of one most tenderly beloved, she strayed along the banks
of the moonlit river, her young heart as pure as the clear depths
of the stream which reflected the golden gleaming stars of the azure
sky. So in her heart did the stars of love then shed round a
golden glow, but years had passed, and dimmer, still dimmer had
grown their lustre, until at last she had fancied that the light of
that early love had died away for ever. Vain fancy, when those
written words had power to waken such strong emotions !
Rising from her seat, Gertrude with a quick impatience tore
CLATx-A MOORE. HTQ
into shreds letter after letter, and one by one cast them upon the
glowing grate before her.
" So perish all memory of the past," she said, '• all memory
of the misplaced attachment of my youth ; yet not misplaced, for
he would have been true to me, I know he would, had I been
worthy of such love as his once was." For a long time did Ger-
trude thus commune with her own thoughts — then kneeling beside
her couch, her bruised spirit poured itself out in broken words.
Thanks to the Author of our being, that always the prayer of
the earnest heart is answered — answered by the serene happiness
which ever follows aspirations after truth — by the guiding light
which dawns upon the mind — by the renewed strength which gives
power to trample down all obstacles, and follow without faltering
that beacon light.
This light now dawned upon Gertrude's mind, showing her plainly
the path of duty which led to her own happiness — the only path
which could bring her peace.
Her resolution being once taken she knew no faltering, and that
evening, when her affianced husband, Julien Neville, resumed his
accustomed seat beside her, in the brilliantly-lighted parlours of her
father's splendid mansion, she met him, nerved to carry out her firm
convictions of duty.
They were alone in those large apartments, filled with every
luxury. The light from the massive chandeliers flashed back from
polished mirrors and costly frames of rare paintings, and from the
gilded cornices of the rich curtains woven in foreign looms which
shrouded the lofty windows, and fell in heavy folds to the tufted
carpeting, where stainless lilies and glowing roses were blooming
side by side in loving rivalry. They were alone — hope beating
high in Julien's heart, although the fingers which he essayed to
clasp within his own were cold and tremulous. Twice Gertrude
had attempted to answer his loving words of greeting, and twice
had the echo of her own thoughts died away upon her heart without
leaving a vibration to the ear.
"Ah, Julien," at length she gasped, "you will cease to care for
me, cease to respect me, and yet I must tell you all."
380 CLARA MOORE.
"Never, my own — my sweetest, I know all that you would say.
It has been told me this day, and I have come to urge a speedy
union — to offer your father a home with us. Oh ! Gertrude, you
wronged me by imagining for a moment, that the deep devotion of
my heart could ever from such a cause know decay or change."
" My father ! Julien, what do you mean ? Surely he needs no
other home!" she said, and her quick eyes glanced over the elegant
rooms, and rested in inquiry upon those of her lover.
Julien Neville sighed heavily as he answered —
" I had hoped, my dearest, that your father's misfortunes had
already been broken to you, but surely no one could do it more
tenderly than myself. Trust in me, darling, and do not fear for
the future. I have wealth enough for all — more than enough,
thank God ; and this house, Gertrude, everything herein shall
remain untouched. So do not look so wildly, my own, you shall
know no change ; and your father shall not miss the luxuries to
"which he has always been accustomed."
" My father ! change ! misfortunes ! you cannot mean, Julien,
that he, that my father is a bankrupt !"
"You have guessed but too truly, dear Gertrude."
Overcome by the unexpectedness of the blow, Gertrude buried
her head in the cushions of the lounge — refusing all the sympathy
which Julien so tenderly proffered. Her heart bled at the thought
of her father's disappointments, but not even for one moment did
she swerve from her purpose. In days that were past she had de-
ceived herself, but no longer was the calm affection which she had
felt for Julien Neville to be mistaken for love. When she raised
her face to his, it was as he had ever been wont to see it — there were
mirrored there no traces of the wild torrent of emotions now delug-
ing her bosom, and Julien gazed with pride upon her queenly
beauty. The silence of that moment was broken by these words —
" Julien, you will hate me for what I have to say this night, but
it must be said. You must not reproach me — you must not call
me fickle until you hear the whole. Oh ! Julien, my love for you
is but as a sister's love, I cannot be more to you." She veiled her
CLARA MOORE. 381
eyes with one hand, as if to hide the anguished expression of her
companion's face, and continued —
" To you, Julien, I owe a confession which I thought shouhl have
died with me. When I was young — scarcely sixteen, my mother
died. My father could not endure the mournful loneliness of our
village home after she had gone, and in the bustle and excitement
of business in the city he strove to forget all sad memories. It was
then that I parted from Howard Beauchamp, the only child of our
village minister. His mother had died in his infancy, and we had
been almost constantly together from our childhood. Upon the
evening of our parting we exchanged promises of eternal constancy.
" Months passed — his letters brought me the only happiness that
I knew, for my father could in no way replace to me the love which
in my mother's death I lost. At length the letters ceased entirely.
I heard of his father's death, and of his own illness, and still I
wrote, for I could not believe that he was false to me. One day a
note was brought to me — the handAvriting was strange. I broke
the seal. It was from a cousin of his whom I had never seen, but of
whom he had often spoken to me as a prodigy of beauty and talent.
She wrote me that she had nursed him during his illness — that
change of air had been prescribed by the physician, and that he had
accompanied her to her Southern home, where it was now his inten-
tion to reside. In delicate and sympathizing words she wrote of
the transferral of Howard's love from me, to her, his cousin — of
their strong attachment for each other, and her earnest wish that I
would not tell him that she had written. ' Not for my sake do I
write this,' she said, 'but for his, whose happiness is dearer to me
than life itself.' There was but one course before me. I summoned
all my pride, and wrote to him what I imagined I ought to feel, not
what I did. I made no allusion to his cousin. I told him that I
loved him no longer ; I wrote a great deal that was false, but I
fully intended to make it truth. Years passed — we travelled all
over the United States, and I heard no more from Howard Beau-
champ. When at Newport you saved my life, and added to it the
offering of your own, I felt toward you more affection than had
been awakened for years ; but I was deceived with regard to my
383 CLARA MOORE.
true feelings ; for, Julien, they can never be more than those of a
sister."
Bitter, indeed, Tvere these words to Julien Neville — doubly bitter
because be knew Gertrude too well to doubt the strength of an
attachment which would enable so proud a spirit to endure the
mortification of such a confession. Yet with all his disappointment,
he could find no heart to blame, even for an instant, the stricken
form before him.
" Oh ! Gertrude," he said, " nothing can change my love for you,
and I will not even ask yours in return. I will strive to be satis-
fied with a sister's afi"ection, only give me the blessed privilege of
ever remaining near you to cherish and protect."
" It cannot be, Julien. I know how free from selfishness your
love is ; and I know that could you see the wild emotions which the
recalled memories of those hours have this day awakened, you
would never wish me to be other to you than I am. This must be
our last meeting, Julien, unless you will promise not to use one
persuasion to induce me to change — not that I fear my own
strength, but because every effort which you make will only increase
the misery which I now feel."
Hours passed before that promise was given.
Poor Julien Neville ! He left Gertrude that night with the full
belief that in all the world there was no balm for a heart so
wounded as his own. ~ . . -
When Gei'trude entered her father's library early the next morn-
ing, she found him sleeping lethargically in his large arm-chair.
Wondering that he should be up so much sooner than his custom —
or that he could thus sleep when he knew of his utter ruin, she
looked in surprise upon him.
She knew not that all the weary night he had paced the room,
weeping in bitter agony over the loss of his worshipped wealth.
Drawing closer to him, she said — " Father, I have something to
say to you, will you listen ?" There was no answering sound, save
CLARA MOORE. 3S3
tliose of his heavy breathings. Alarmed, she took hold of him by
the shoulder.
" Father ! father !" she screamed.
The piercing tones of her voice aroused him — he started, looked
around, passed one hand hurriedly over his eyes, and then with a
long sigh sank back in his chair again.
Relieved from her anxiety, Gertrude drew a seat beside him.
" I have come, father, to converse with you about your misfor-
tunes— perhaps they are not so bad as you imagine."
"All is lost! every cent!" replied Mr. Leslie, in a husky tone
of voice ; " but it will make no difference to you, Gertrude, for
Julien is a noble fellow ; but it is hard for me in my old age to be
dependent upon my child."
" We Avill not be dependent upon Julien, father — we will go back
to our old place at Elmwood, and I can teach music and drawing
in the village academy, and we shall be as happy as we have ever
been here ; for, father, I do not love Julien as I ought to love him,
and I have told him so, and we have parted to meet only hereafter
as friends."
The words which she had so dreaded to say had now escaped her
lips, and her father's stern gaze was fixed steadily upon her.
" Gertrude 1 what have you done V — taken away my only hope !
— tui-ned us both out into the world as beggars ! I tell you every
cent is gone : beggars 1 beggars !" he repeated in a low, deep tone.
He arose from his seat — his face crimsoning with excitement —
stepped but one foot forward, then fell over heavily upon the floor.
Gertrude's screams brought the servants to her. Physicians
were immediately summoned, and Mr. Leslie was borne in an
unconscious state to his room. They pronounced him in an apo-
plectic fit, but the usual remedies were tried in vain. Gertrude
sat constantly beside him, watching for hours for some sign of
returning consciousness. At length the hand which she held moved
slightly.
" Oh, father !" she ci'ied, " speak to me once more : do not leave
me alone ! oh, father ! father !"
The agonized tones of her voice seemed to arouse him. His
^4 CLARA MOORE.
lips moved. She bent her head to listen, and caught the woids,
" God bless my poor child ; God bless thee, Ger ," his lips still
moved, but there came no audible sound.
Poor Gertrude ! She was now alone !
At twilight, when Gertrude entered the lonely grave-yard, she
met Howard Beauchamp just emerging from an avenue of cedars.
He paused for a moment, and then advancing said —
"We were friends once ; may I hope that we still are?"
Gertrude could not speak, but she stretched out her hand to
answer his greeting.
" Time has brought many changes to both of us," he continued ;
" in this place of graves, your sainted mother and my revered
father sleeps ; but since I have become an orphan — alone and deso-
late in the world, I have heard but little of you, excepting of your
marriage ; I trust for your sake, Gertrude, that the mourning gar-
ments which you now wear are not a widow's weeds."
Gertrude Leslie looked in surprise upon him as she answered —
" I have never been married, Howard ; it is for my father that
T mourn."
A sudden ray of joy illuminated his fine face, then died away
as he said in sad, low tones —
"And you are an orphan, too ; but oh ! not so desolate an one,
I trust, as myself."
" And why should I not be, Howard ? — the blow which deprived
me of my father left me penniless — well-nigh friendless ; but you
in your cousin's love have found a happiness which I can never
hope."
She saw the crimson glow which spread over the marble features
of her companion.
" Then you too know of her unfortunate attachment — poor
Ellen ! I have tried in vain to feel more than a brother's attach-
ment to her ; the memory of my youthful love, Gertrude, is too
strong to bear to be replaced, even in imagination," said Howard,
as he bent his dark eyes searchingly upon hers.
CLARA MOORE. 385
"And you — you, Howard — are not you married?" questioned
Gertrude, almost breathless, as her eyelids drooped under the
steadiness of his gaze.
" No, Gertrude ; the vows which I plighted to you were too
solemn ever to be broken, even though you gave them bade Avith
scornful words and bitter mockings. Do you not remember that
on the evening of our parting I promised ever to love you, and you
alone ?"
As Gertrude raised her eyes to answer, she saw the figure of a
graceful female gliding toward them in the dim twilight.
" It is my cousin, Ellen Beaucharap," Howard said.
They were leaning upon the marble tomb of Mrs. Leslie ; and
Ellen advancing stood beside them. Her cheeks were pale and
transparent ; and the large, brilliant eyes were sunken, yet there
were many traces of exceeding beauty.
" You must neither of you curse me, for I have suffered enough,"
she said.
"Why should we curse you, dear Ellen?" said Howard, ten-
derly— "my poor cousin is not well, Gertrude — she was the most
faithful of nurses to me when I was so ill that my life was despaired
of, and she has never been well since — we are travelling now with
her — her mother and myself, in hopes of restoring her health —
poor Ellen !"
"Yes, poor Ellen!" echoed the hollow voice of the emaciated
form beside him — "poor Ellen needs pity. Gertrude, will you
promise to pity me if I tell you all ?"
" No, Ellen, not pity ; but my heart's warmest sympathy I will
offer to you." Tears dropped like rain from Ellen's large eyes as
she clasped the hand which Gertrude had extended.
" Oh, Gertrude ! I wrote falsely to you, when I told you that
Howard no longer loved you. I was mad with love for him — so
mad that I forgot that you had a heart which could be crushed
even as mine is now. Howard ! I burned the letters which you
penned in your first sickness — I burned all which she wrote to you.
I wrote to her, and told her that you loved her not, that you waited
but a release from your vows to breathe them to me ; and then I
49
383 CLARA MOORE.
told you that she "was married, and I showed you the letter which
I had goaded her on to write. In the relapse which followed your
reading of that letter I would have told you all, but you looked so
gently and tenderly upon me, I could not bear to tell you what a
wretch I was. Has my repentance come too late to either of you ?
Have I sinned past forgiveness ? Oh ! believe me, I have suffered
enough in the agony of my unloved life — in the memory of those
false words, which I fear have perjured my soul for ever."
"No, Ellen; not for ever. Repentance never comes too late.
God will forgive you, even as I know Gertrude and myself have
already done — have we not, dear Gertrude?"
It was the first word of love, and Gertrude bent her head to con-
ceal the warm blushes which crimsoned her face ; but as she did so,
she kissed the delicate hand of Ellen, which she still retained.
When they passed out of the grave-yard, Ellen and Gertrude
each leaned upon an arm of Howard Beauchamp — Ellen still " sow-
ing in tears," and Gertrude and Howard "reaping in joy."
ANN E. PORTER,
Miss Lyma Ann Emerson was born October 14, 1816, at Newbury-
port, Massachusetts, where was her home, except when away at school, till
1833. In that year she went to Koyalton, Vermont, as an assistant teacher
in the Academy of that place.
Her mother died when she was but two years old, and at four she was,
with brothers and sisters, under the care of a stepmother. Between three
and four years, from her thirteenth to her seventeenth year, she enjoyed
a regular course of instruction at the celebrated Ipswich Female Academy.
In 1834, she went to Springfield, Vermont, and established a Select
School, which met with eminent success.
In 1836, she was invited to the charge of the Southampton Academy,
but was early induced to remove to Putnam, Ohio — where she became the
principal of a newly opened Female Seminary. During four years' resi-
dence at this interesting place, she experienced many of those incidents
of western life, so soul-stirring to the young emigrant. Those only who
have enjoyed the sociality of life in a new country, or the hospitality of an
earlier age, will be likely to appreciate the recollections of a lone female
instructor, thus employed among strangers. It is hoped that her con-
nexion with that seminary and community is still remembered by her
pupils and their friends, as it is by herself, with interest and enjoyment.
Newark, Ohio, was the home of another year in Miss Emerson's diver-
sified life; and the year 1841 was spent most agreeably at that place in
charge of the female department of " Delaware Academy," at the Springs.
Here, too, the social freedom peculiar to frontier civilization, had influ-
ences on mind and memory, often recurred to with pleasure.
In the autumn of 1841, Miss Emerson became the wife of Mr. Charles
E. Porter, of Springfield, Vermont, and she has ever since been a resident
of that place.
Mrs. Porter has been an occasional contributor to the periodical presa
(3S7)
3SS ANN E. PORTER.
since the year 183-i : of late, under her own signature. Her tbouglits and
sketches, though hasty, have endeared her to many friends. She has also
contributed two small volumes towards the Sunday School Library. But
the labours of love, and the duties of domestic life, have not as yet per-
mitted that concentration of her powers upon any extended work, which
some who know her, anticipate, when an appropriate occasion shall come.
COUSIN HELEN'S BABY.
Your letter, dear cousin, is before me, for I am resolved to do,
■what is someAvhat unusual among our sex, ansiver it; that is, give
a reply to all the questions contained therein, and, if possible,
attend to the most important before I come to the postscript. You
begin as follows : —
" How in the world am I to write this letter "with my baby ?"
Well, it seems from your own statement at the close, as well as
from sundry other unmistakeable signs, such as a few blots, paper
a little '■'■crumpled,'" and a few extra flourishes, that you did
actually accomplish the thing, and that, too, with the baby in the
room, and part of the time in your arms.
"Impossible !" said Napoleon ; "let that word be struck out of
my dictionary." Alas ! we poor mothers often find in our pathway
rugged Alps to climb, but, almost always, ingenuity and patience
will work a way around the jagged rocks, or through the narrow
defiles.
"Oh, this baby tending!" you next exclaim; and, from the
heavy tread of the pen and the big admiration point, it seems to
come from a spot deeper than the German gutturals ; I conclude,
even from the bottom of your heart, for you go on to say, " Oh !
if these husbands, who can commence and finish their business at
stated hours, and do everything by the clock, could know how tedi-
ous is the tread-mill path of one who has a troublesome, crying
baby to manage, they would certainly try to initiate themselves
into the mystery of baby tending, and aid us more."
Really, Ann, I had supposed you possessed of different ideas of
woman's cares and man's duties ; or have you become an ultra
woman's rights partizan, or are you so clear-sighted as to understand
ANN E. PORTER. 389
Miss Fuller's "Woman in the nineteenth century?" If so, my
humble experience will be of little avail ; for, as a wife and mother, I
have trod a lowly path, and never dared step foot into the balloon
of transcendentalism.
Again you say : " If one child is so much care, how can you
manage five ?"
Well might you ask, and I would answer, if you find that one,
as you say, makes you half crazy, five will certainly send you to the
insane asylum, unless upon the homoeopathic principle, " that which
kills will cure." But, the truth is, you lived in such a still, orderly
way so long after your marriage, that the change seems more strik-
ing to you, and the care more onerous than it really is.
" But for a chapter of your experience ;" and you shall have it ;
for, on glancing back upon what I have written, I find that it has
a dictatorial air, which it ill becomes me to assume ; and, to punish
myself, I will give you a little sketch of my management with my
first baby, that you may see I was far behind yourself in prudence
and skill.
Need I tell any one who has been a mother, of the joy which
one experiences at the birth of her first-born ? It is like the
glorious sunlight of morning after a night of storm and darkness ;
yea, like the rapture of heaven to the weary spirit, when she folds,
for the first time, the young immortal to her bosom, and breathes
from a full heart her gratitude to God. At least, such were my
own feelings when my eldest, my precious child Arthur, was born.
I had read Grahame and Alcott, and a score of other writers
upon the management of infants, and thought myself quite wise —
certainly capable of criticising others — but now, all my wisdom for-
sook me, and I felt ignorant as a child. Our means were limited,
and we were not able to hire just such help as we wished ; but an
old woman, who had had some little experience, was engaged, and
so confident was she of her own abilities, that I yielded implicitly
to her directions. When I remonstrated upon the use of pins, she
exclaimed, " Lawful sake, ma'am ! do you expect me to use these
ere strings ani loops ? I never did afore, and you can't expect me
990 ANN E. PORTER.
to begin now; besides, what kind er shape suppose j'our baby 'II
be, if I don't pin it up snug and tight now ?"
Feeble as I then was, I coukl do little for myself or the babe,
but I would sometimes quiet its cries by stealthily loosening its
clothes as it lay by my side. My child was scarcely two days old
before my kind neighbours began to pour in with their sympathy
and congratulations. Too timid to refuse them admittance, and too
weak to endure company, I suffered much, and yet the scenes were
sometimes so comical I could not help laughing. Some days quite
a number would call at once. Mrs. Higgins, and Aunt Lucy, and
old Mrs. Gove, were in one day together.
"What a nice fat baby!" said the last, who had just entered;
"for all the world the very image of its father" — (it had just been
pronounced " as like to me as two peas') — " and not a mark about
it ; — why my John has an apple on his forehead, and a strawberry
on his great toe. I hope you've given the little thing some physic,
Mrs. Bagly." , .
"La, yes," said the latter, bridling up ; "I always gives caster
He the first thing — nothing better, you know."
" And then, I suppose, you feed it some, till its mother has milk
sufficient?"
"The little darling don't suffer, I can tell you," answered the
nurse, proudly. " I take the top of the milk and sweeten it up
well, and it has as much as It can take. Mrs. Wadsworth talked
about leaving things to nater, but I tell her I guess nater would
leave her if I didn't stick by."
" I hope, In all conscience, you won't get any of these new-
fangled notions into your head," said Mrs. Higgins. " You'll
sartinly kill your baby if you do. Why our minister's wife is half
crazy with her book larning about babies. She washes hers all
over in cold water every morning, and e'en amost starves it, too ;
for no matter if it cries ever so hard, she Avon't feed it till the time
comes, as she calls it, and that's once in three hours. If she warn't
the minister's wife, I believe the selectmen would take the matter
up ; but I eased my conscience by giving her a piece of my mind."
"I didn't say a word when she was at our house," said the
ANN E. rORTER. 391
kind-hearted Aunt Lucy, " but I was a feeding it with appie pie —
nothing in the world but plain apple pie, 'twouldn't hurt a flea —
when she come along, and, in her pleasant way, said, ' I would
rather the baby have nothing to eat, Mrs. Nutting.' I was most
scared, for fear I'd done something sinful."
Arthur was now trying the use of his little lungs, and powerfully,
too, much to the discomfort of the guests and myself.
"Can't you give the child something to quiet it?" said Aunt
Lucy. " Some catnip tea would be good."
"Not half so good as piny root," said Mrs. Higgins, "or some
camphor sling."
"Now, that reminds me," chimed in Mrs. Gove, "of one injury
that these temperance societies have done. Babies didn't use to
cry so when I was young ; and I never thought, when I had a baby,
that I could do without a decanter of gin. There's nothing like it
for the cholic ; and then it would strengthen you up, Mrs. Wads-
worth, and set you right upon your feet again.'
"That's just what I tell her," said the nurse ; "but there ain't
a drop in the house, and Mr. Wadsworth says that he prefers not
to use it unless the doctor prescribe."
"Well, well, every one to their notion," said Mrs. Higgins.
" I'm not certain but soot tea will answer the purpose as well —
that's one of my favourite remedies."
"I must go now," said Aunt Lucy, as she rose to depart, "for
my old man will be wanting his supper ; but between sundown and
dark I'll run over with some arbs, catnip and sage, and thorough-
wort. I reckon I can cure the baby."
In the mean while I had exerted all my strength to hush the
little sufferer, and he now lay asleep upon my arm ; but I was
covered with a profuse perspiration, and, as soon as the child was
removed, fell back exhausted.
The next day, about the same hour, Arthur commenced crying
again, and it continued so long and loud that I became thoroughly
alarmed. Poor Mrs. Bagly did her best, but all in vain. I re-
moved the pins and loosened his dress, but it did no good, he cried
without ceasing.
392 ANN E. PORTER.
" There now," said Mrs. Bagly, " don't worry any more, and
I'll give him something that will make him sleep sweetly."
"Not camphor sling?" I said, inquiringly.
" La, no ; now don't be so scared. I'll just go into the kitchen
and take my pipe and let the smoke of the tobacco go into a bowl
of water, and then I'll sweeten some of that water and give it to
him ; it wnll make him so easy and still."
This Avas something so novel, that I hardly knew what to say ;
it seemed a strange medicine for a babe, and yet she assured me
that she had used it a hundred times, and that it Avas harmless.
But the screams of the child continuing, I allowed her to do as she
pleased, though I said, faintly —
" I hope his father won't smell the smoke when he comes in to
see the baby ; he perfectly despises the weed, as he calls it."
Mrs. Bagly stopped short in the middle of the room : " Well, I'm
beat now ! I never heard of a lawyer before that didn't cliaio, nor
smoke, or, at least, take snuff. Why, Squire Tappan never come
to see my old man, but he'd out with his box, and ' Won't you take
a pinch, Mrs. Bagly ?' He was a smart man, I can tell you, and
I believe it was the tobacco put the grit into him. He never spoke
but he had a pinch between his thumb and finger, and it was scat-
tered as thick among his books and papers as a French stew with
pepper."
" Well, wtII, Mrs. Bagly, my baby will cry itself to death if
something isn't done."
"I know it, ma'am; it will certainly hust itself if it don't have
the smoked water;" and she disappeared to fetch it. . ■
" Oh, dear," I groaned within myself, " I wish Charles were
here, perhaps he could aid me;" but he was gone to the next
village, and would not be at home for some hours.
The nurse was not long absent, and taking the child in her lap
fed it freely. Its cries ceased, and it soon fell asleep. With a
feeling of relief I flung myself upon the bed, while she wrapped
little Arthur in his blanket, laid him in his cradle, and left the room
to attend to her duties in the kitchen.
I soon fell into a quiet sleep, and I know not how long I had
ANN E. PORTER. 393
lain, when a slight rustling disturbed me. I opened my eyes, and
saw my dearest friend, Mary Porter, near me.
"Why have you not been to see me before?" I said, rather
reproachfully.
" I have ; but when you Avere asleep. I thought I must see you
and the baby, so I stole in at that time, for I knew company would
injure you, and I feared we would talk too much. There now, go
to sleep again, and I will watch by the cradle — you must, or I shall
leave."
Seeing her resolute, I tried to obey, but I could not refrain from
opening my eyes to look at her, it seemed so pleasant to have her
near me. She sat in a low rocking-chair by the side of the cradle.
She watched for a while the sleeping babe, and then I saw her
stoop and place her ear as if listening to its breathing ; then, rising,
she knelt over it, and taking one hand, held it for a moment and
let it drop, then she did the same with the other. Removing the
covering, she felt its little feet, and held them awhile in her hands.
I thought for the moment she was rather childish. After again
covering the child, she drew the curtains of my own bed close
around me, and then, as I thought, removed the cradle farther
from my bed, and left the room.
I wondered what this meant, and was about to rise and go to the
cradle myself, when the door gently opened, and I distinguished
the voices of Mrs. Bagly and Mary, though they spoke in whispers.
" Don't make such a fuss about nothing, Miss Mary. Ha'n't I
had children ? and don't an old woman like me know more about
nursing than such a young thing as yourself?"
"But look, Mrs. Bagly, for yourself," and she lifted the babe
from the cradle.
I did not wait for a reply, but sprang to my feet and took my
child. "It's certainly dead!" I exclaimed, as, with every muscle
relaxed, it lay unconscious in my arms.
"Not dead, I trust," said Mary. "See, its little heart yet
beats."
I tried to waken it, but in vain. It lay like one in deep stupor,
and, as I believed, the stupor of death.
50
394 ANN E. PORTER.
"We've killed it — poisoned it with that vile tobacco!" I ex-
claimed ; and, in despair, I pressed it to my bosom and wept like
a child.
"Let me take the baby," said a kind voice, and looking up I
recognised Dr. Perkins.
I held it still more closely, while I begged him to tell me if there
was any hope. He took the little hand in his own, and placed his
ear so that he could distinguish the breathing.
"I think that we can save your babe, Helen; but," he added,
in a tone of mild authority, "you are killing yourself; go and lie
down, and I will see to the child."
He was our family physician ; one to whom, from childhood, I
had been accustomed to look up with reverence. I yielded my
j)recious burthen, and reluctantly obeyed. My husband came in
at that moment and enforced the doctor's direction, assuring me
that everything in their power should be done for the child.
But what a night of anguish and suspense we passed ! Morning
found the doctor still there ; for it was not until then that he was
able to rouse the infant from that dreadful stupor, and then, for
days, it hovered on the very verge of death. It was a sad lesson
to a young mother.
E. W. BARNES.
Miss Barnes is a native, and has been all her life a resident, of Ports-
mouth, New Hampshire. Her father is by birth a Swede, the only son
of an officer in the Swedish army. On his arrival in this country in
early youth, he was persuaded by a clergyman of Salem to change his
name from Ludwig Baarnhielm to Lewis Barnes, for greater convenience
of pronunciation. Miss Barnes has published, in Annuals and Magazines,
a considerable amount of prose and verse, all of a very creditable charac-
ter. From a prose tale published in 1850, the following sketch has been
selected as a fair specimen of her style.
THE YOUNG KECTOR.
The crash startled from his revery a pale student, who, in the
same apartment by his solitary lamp, sat poring over the pages of
a ponderous volume, while beside it, on his writing-desk, lay the
half-written page on which, with a vigorous and rapid pen, he wrote
from time to time, with an energy which told how every faculty of
his mind was absorbed in the work before him. He rose from his
task as the shattered glass flew even over the table at which he sat,
and, still engrossed in the thoughts which had occupied him for
some hours, went mechanically to the window, thrust into the aper-
ture some old and worn-out garment, and returned again abstract-
edly to his work.
The hours moved on, and no sound recalled him from the intel-
lectual world in which his spirit was far away, except the continued
(395)
Sfl6 E. W. BARNES.
discord of the elements without, and the monotonous tickins; of the
old clock, Avhich had grown aged with the time-worn habitation in
which it had stood for nearly a century. Page after page, glowing
with his own deep earnestness of spirit, and the rich imagery Avhich
the study of the Sacred Volume and of classic lore had taught
him, was filled, and at length the young rector rose wearily from
his desk, and pressing his hand to his aching brow, walked to the
window, and, for the first time, seemed quite aware of the rude
conflict amid the elements of the outward world. Shading his
eyes from the light, he peered out through the shattered casement.
"What a night," thought he, "for the poor and homeless ! and
ah ! how many among my parishioners must feel this keen and
cutting blast through the crevices in their wretched dwellings !
Would that I could provide for each a comfortable shelter from the
storm ; but, alas ! my miserable pittance ! — what does it more than
keep together 'the mortal body and the immortal soul?' "
With a sigh he turned away, and drawing his chair in front of
the fire, he stirred the expiring embers, and sat gazing abstractedly
into them, while his thoughts dwelt upon the diiferent allotments of
good and ill which fall to the share of human destiny. He had
seen the honest and deserving poor baffled in every effort to advance,
bravely bufieting the billows of misfortune, with scarce a gleam of
hope to cheer them on, yet blessing God daily and hourly in their
hearts for the good things they received ; and he had seen the
wealthy revelling in their luxury, thankless and thoughtless, closing
the ear to the appeals of starving poverty, and forgetful even of
Him whose bounty they enjoyed. Then came his thoughts down
to a narrower sphere, and dwelt on his own personal history. Far
back his memory bore him to the days of early childhood, to its
poverty and its privations. Then came the labours and struggles
necessary to bear him through the years of his college life, upheld
by the resolution to develop by culture the powers of a naturally
fine and vigorous intellect.
Re-perusing, line by line, the pages of his past existence, and
sulfering a tear occasionally to fall, — prompted by bitter Memory,
as if to blot out the record she had made, — the young rector sat in
E. W. BARNES. £97
a lialf-i'cclining position, in his well-worn arm-chair, with his feet
upon the fender, and in deep revery gazed musingly into the
declining fire. Ever and anon it threw up a fitful gleam, that
reminded him of some of the many hopes which had arisen on his
horizon, and sunk again as soon in darkness. It was Christmas
Eve, the eve preceding the great festival of the Nativity. Why,
then, was he gloomy and depressed at this hour of triumph to the
church he loved ? Fain would he have shaken off the sad fantasies
which hung like an incubus upon his spirit, but his efforts were in
vain. Again and again they returned to the charge, and at every
onset they became an ever-increasing, darkening host, resistless in
their power. He tried to picture to his imagination those happy
homes, which were drawing around them at this festive season, as
round a dazzling nucleus, the wanderers who had gone out from
them on the voyage of life. He fancied the happy meetings and
the glad welcome home ; the merry fire would sparkle in the grate,
and send forth its ruddiest glow ; the cheerful board would be
spread ; merry hearts and merry voices would hail the coming of
the "merry Christmas;" the aged sire, with thin, white locks,
would look round with satisfaction upon his children, and his child-
ren's children, as he asked God's blessing on the festive cheer.
Alas ! these pictures but restored, with a deeper colouring, his own
sense of loneliness ; and yielding finally to its resistless sway, he
sufi"ered the hours to wax and wane, all heedless of their flight : the
surging of the great and limitless ocean on the shore of time, and
its rapidly advancing waves, affected him not. He was alone ; —
alone must he meet his doom.
Still not a sound disturbed the deepening silence, or broke in
upon his gloomy revery, but the same monotonous ticking of the
venerable time-piece, the hollow moaning of the storm, or the faint
falling of the waning embers. He leaned his head wearily upon
his hand, and watched them as they sunk and were extinguished
one by one. His revery deepened ; silence was becoming almost
audible ; a torpor was stealing over him ; but now, as his gaze was
fixed steadfastly upon the declining fire, a light, thin vapour seemed
to rise from beneath it, and curling gently upward and over it, par-
8S8 E. W. BARNES.
tially obscured it to his vision. Gradually it ascended, wreathed
itself over the antiquated fire-place, stole softly up to the ceiling,
and wound its enfolding arms quietly about the old clock, till its
face and hands became imperceptible in the pale lamp-light. Grow-
ing denser as it proceeded, round and round the time-stained walls
it noiselessly crept, and continued its quiet circuitous motion, fold
within fold, filling up the whole intermediate space between them
and the chair of the young rector, and shutting out every familiar
object in his desolate apartment, till he Avas hemmed in by an
impervious atmosphere. Closer and closer the walls of his prison-
house were pressing upon him at each moment ; his breath came
thicker and heavier at every inspiration ; a sense of oppression, of
suffocation, was upon him ; yet had he no power of motion, no
ability to seek relief.
How long he thus lay bound, manacled, speechless, he knew not.
He heard no sound ; even the tempest seemed to have ceased its
moaning ; and he asked himself, " Must I thus die ? — is there no
hand to aid ?" There was a pause, during which it seemed as if
thought itself were checked in its flow, and then there was observa-
ble a slight undulation in the dense mass ; it trembled, it wavered,
it parted in the midst — moved slowly, almost imperceptibly, but
steadily, and falling back on either side, shaped itself gradually
into graceful columns. First the base appeared, then rose the shaft,
and then the finished capital. Moving thence gently upward, it
threw its graceful mist-wreaths into noble Gothic arches. The
marble pavement noiselessly spread itself beneath his feet, and he
sat before the high altar of a great cathedral. Upon it stood
seven golden candlesticks, and in the midst a golden censer. Soft
moonlight, tinged with the rainbow dyes of the stained glass
through which it passed, rested on the surrounding objects. Thei'e
was a silence, so deep, so solemn, that it pervaded his whole being ;
and then the strains of the organ, soft, distant, as if amid the
spheres, rolled through the high arches, which, as they grew deeper
and louder, trembled beneath the vibrations.
Awe-struck, he listened, and then voices, as of unseen angels,
mingled in the deep swell, and the " Stabat Mater" poured its holy
E. W. BARNES. 399
strains on his rapt senses ; and his soul, lifted, inspired by the
divine harmony, seemed borne upward, even into the pi*esence of
the Holy One. With hands clasped and unconsciously upraised,
he heard the strains die away softly upon the car, but the echoes
lingered long among the lofty arches. There was a pause, and not
a sound of earth disturbed that hallowed stillness ; but, though he
saw them not, he felt the presence of angel forms around and
above him, moving silently on their silver wings. Again breathed
the tones of the organ, and the grand " Te Deum" rose to the
" Lord God of Sabaoth ;" and that too died away upon the ear,
but its heavenly music vibrated long in the listening spirit.
Now from the golden censer a soft and fragrant incense slowly
ascends ; and with reverential awe he watches it, till, as it higher
mounts, the edges of the light and vapoury folds are touched with
a silver brightness, as if a glory from on high had lightened them.
And on the bosom of the cloud, gracefully reposing, he beholds a
form that has no parallel amid the forms of earth. Dimly and indis-
tinctly he sees her, cradled within those misty folds ; and slowly
the silvery mass descends with its heavenly burden, until it rests
above the sacred altar. A holy influence steals over his senses —
an unspeakable serenity — a calm like that of Gennesareth, when
the voice of the Saviour spoke to the troubled waters. AVhence
comes the hallowed peace, the sweet repose that pervades his
spirit, as, rapt and awe-stricken, he gazes on that benignant face ?
Ah ! could it be impressed for ever on the mirror of his soul, never
more would it reflect the blackening cloud, — never more would it
be ruffled by the storm-winds of passion, or shadowed by the dark-
ness of despair. Would she but speak to him ! — would she but
make known her angel mission ! — but no, she does but gaze upon
him with sweetness, with pity, with benignity. The eyes, so gen-
tle, never for a moment turned from his ; and, as bound by a
resistless spell, he yielded to the repose which they inspired. He
was no longer of the earth : purified by that soft smile from every
trace of its corruptions, he basked in the purity of that radiance,
and trembled lest a cloud should overshadow it, lest the holy spell
400 E. W. BARNES.
should be bi'oken. Oh ! to be ever thus — to know such transcend-
ent peace ! This it is to be in communion with the angels.
And now the beauteous vision, with its garments of silver vapour,
stood upright upon the fleecy masses of the cloud, with her eye
unmoved from the face of the entranced beholder. Her left arm
slowly advanced from the mists around her, and, bending gently
towards him, she extended the cross, one arm of it encircled by a
crown of thorns, the other draped with the purple robe, and over
it this motto : " On earth thou ivilt ivear these, for thy Saviour's
sake."
Deep was the silence which followed. He moved not, spoke not,
lest, like a dream, his happiness should vanish away. Soft strains
of music were heard in the distance, growing fainter and fainter,
till they were lost upon the ear. And now the right arm gradually
rose, and a taper finger pointed upward. Following it with his
eye, he descried, distant far and almost unseen, a crown, irradiated
W'ith a soft halo of golden light, and bearing these words : " This
awaits thee in Heaven."
One arm upraised, and one extending towards him the cross, her
eye riveted upon him, she stood motionless as a statue. Again
rose the soft strains of music, mingled with voices of angelic sweet-
ness. Her voice was not heard among them, but her gaze seemed
reading the secrets of that spirit, still condemned to struggle a
while longer with the cares of earth. To pity and to soothe it
seemed her mission ; and that mission was fulfilled, — so calm, so
deep was the peace which settled on his spirit, so elevated were his
thoughts, and so attuned to worship. The music continued, now
like the far distant sound of many waters surging upon an unseen
shore, now nearer and nearer, and then floating upwartl and dying
away in heaven. It ceased, and he fancied that the silver cloud
was rising again, and that the vision was fading away. AYith an
irresistible impulse he sprang forward, threw himself on his knees
before the heavenly vision, and extended his arms to embrace the
cross. Alas ! in a moment all had vanished ; the beautiful pageant
was no more ; and he awoke, to find himself prostrate, with out-
stretched arms, before the desolate walls of his room. There were
E. W. BARNES. 401
the remains of his decayed fire, there his arm-chair, and there the
ohl time-piece, telling the same monotonous tale. The da\Yn Avas
not yet breaking, and his dim lamp was just expiring in its socket.
It was indeed the old familiar scene, which had witnessed all his
struggles, all his tears, but which he had briefly exchanged for the
communion and the minstrelsy of heaven. He rose, and pressed
his hand to his brow. It was then indeed a dream, and he had
been revelling amid the hallowed joys of "the spirit-land?" Yet,
if "millions of spiritual creatures Avalk the earth," might not this
be one, sent on a mission of mercy to his suffering, struggling
spirit ; to raise him from despondency ; to bid him bear on unmur-
muringly, and, while wearing the cross, to look ever upward and
onward to the promised crown ?
When the Rector awoke the next morning, the sun was brighter
to his eye, the wind fell more softly on his cheek, and stirred the
light clustering hair upon his brow. He was no more alone, for
that ministering angel had taken up her abode within his soul, and
her serene smile was fixed upon him ever. He loved the clouds,
the air, the earth ; he loved the glittering icicle that was melting
in tears beneath the sunbeam ; and he loved the snow-wreath that
gracefully hung over the cottage porch. Love — love to God, and
love to man — was the prevailing attribute of his soul ; and those
who listened that day to the voice of their rector in his village
church, felt, though they knew not why, a higher, fuller sense of
the " beauty of holiness." His words were fraught with a new
energy ; his voice rose with his choir in the full strains of the
Christmas anthem ; and when he entered his pulpit, a new and
divine inspiration seemed to have touched his lips, as with a live
coal from the altar.
That vision of the night became to the young rector the vision
also of his waking hours ; and when his congregation wondered at
the new traits which manifested themselves in his character, —
when they saw his peculiar serenity under all the ever-varying
phases of his existence, they saw not the angel within the sanctu-
ary of his spirit, and the hand that, pointing upward to the crown,
pointed also to the words — " This axvaits thee in Heaven.'"
51
ANNE T. WILBUR.
To translate well is a rare accomplishment. So far as mere style and
language are concerned, translation is more difficult than original compo-
sition. Among the few who have excelled in this line, may be mentioned
the lady whose name stands at the head of this article. Her translations
have, indeed, the ease and grace and the idiomatic propriety of writings
of a native growth. These translations have been from the popular litera-
ture of Europe, chiefly from the French, and have consisted mostly of
short tales. Some of them have been published in the form of small
volumes; others have appeared in periodicals of di3"erent kinds.
Besides her translations, Miss Wilbur has written occasionally original
articles for the magazines and weekly papers, under the name of " Florence
Leigh," and has performed a considerable amount of editorial labour. As
editor of the "Ladies' Magazine,' published in Boston, in 1848, and of
the " Ladies' Casket," published the same year, in Lowell, she secured
for those works many valuable contributors.
Miss Wilbur was born at Wendell, Massachusetts, in 1817. She is
the daughter of the Rev. Henry Wilbur, of Newburyport, extensively
known as a lecturer on astronomy, and as the originator of Bible Classes.
The secluded life and leisure of a village pastor, led him to take unusual
pains in the instruction of his oldest child and only daughter. This, and
the possession of a mind constitutionally precocious, led to very early
attempts at authorship — the first, a school-girl feat, achieved at the age
of eleven, entitled " Grimalkin, a Tragedy," and ending in the destruction
of an entire family of rats.
Miss Wilbur began, at the age of fifteen, to teach, and has been engaged
as a teacher until within the last three or four years, which have been
occupied with literary labour. Her residence is Newburyport, Massa-
chusetts.
(402)
ANNE T, AVILBUR. 403
ALICE YERNOX. «
A PLEASANT company were assembled around the breakfast-table,
and discussing their plans for the day. In some casual conversa-
tion, I heard a careless mention of a name very familiar and very
dear — "Mrs. Vernon." I reflected a moment, — it was a name
closely associated in my mind with the past, yet how, I could not
immediately recall. Suddenly it came like a lightning flash —
Alice Vernon, once Alice Maitland. I inquired of the individual
who had spoken, and learnt that my early friend had indeed been
the subject of conversation. I obtained her address, and sallied
forth to find her, sure of a welcome, though we had not met for
years.
A great military and civic procession was passing through the
streets, and it was with some difliculty that I made my way into a
retired street in a distant part of the city. There, in a modest
dwelling, I found my old friend Alice. Herself and a widowed
mother were the only occupants. It was scantily furnished, but
bore the impress of that exquisite taste which a truly refined
woman can thx'ow over the meanest abode, giving to poverty attrac-
tions which wealth does not always bestow upon its palaces. Alice
had, in our school-days, been a favourite,^ — not that she was beau-
tiful, but her simplicity of character, her upright and truthful
mind, her sincere and strong affections, had won friends, lasting
and true, such as she well knew how to value. On leaving school
we had been separated, and had since rarely met — nevertheless,
with that interest which those who have been educated together
often continue to feel for each other through life, we had not failed
to make inquiries which kept us informed of the after-fate of those
most dear to us. That of Alice had been so unlike the even and
calm lot which we had planned for her, as to have excited the
surprise and wonder of us all.
I found her busily at work, though the street was full of the
gathering multitude, and a branch of the procession was forming
404 • ANNE T. WILBUR,
immediately beneath the ^vindo^y. After the first cordial greetings
had passed, I said to her, -with the authority -which, as somewhat
her senior in years, I had been accustomed to exercise : " Come,
Alice, put away your work for the day, and let me take you with
me. I am alone, and want an escort. Your cheek is pale, and
this fresh pure air will give it a little colour." " Go, Alice," said
her mother, "Florence is right; it Avill do you good." A word
from her mother was enough, and very soon we were threading our
way through the crowded streets, and talking with the freedom and
confidence of old times.
" Tell me your whole sad story, dearest," I said, "while we are
alone, for but an allusion to it has now and then reached me, and
I would know it all from yourself." An expression of sudden pain
crossed the countenance of my friend, but it passed away, and her
full heart was relieved by the recital, and happier, I knew, for my
sympathy.
She had married young. One of whom we had often heard her
speak as a dear friend and brother, but in a station so far above
her, that she had never dreamed of aspiring to share it, or that he
could turn from the gay and brilliant flowers which lavished their
sweets around him, to cull a modest and humble violet, had found
more fragrance and beauty in the latter, and passed by the gor-
geous parterre, to pluck this and place it in his bosom. Her married
life commenced under the happiest auspices. Ernest Vernon was
proud, but his pride took the right direction ; — he was proud of his
own discernment in having transplanted the floweret which other-
wise might have bloomed unheeded, or " wasted its sweetness on
the desert air." All the luxuries which wealth could purchase
were lavished upon his fair young wife ; — he never seemed happy
away from her, and bestowed all his love and confidence where it
was gratefully appreciated and returned a thousand-fold. Ernest
was, like herself, an only child, and their happiness thus centred
in each other. No wonder that Alice almost worshipped him. He
had always been her beau ideal of manly beauty, and now that
those radiant eyes looked lovingly upon her, her heart often ached
ANNE T. WILBUR. 405
with excess of happiness, and with that fear which, in a workl of
change, comes like a cloud between us and perfect repose, —
That faint sense of parting, such as clings
To earthly love and joy in loveliest things.
Ernest, too, was happy, for his bride was a realization of the
description of his favourite poet, the embodiment of his ideas of
perfection in woman.
He saw her upon nearer view
A spirit, yet a woman too;
Her household motions bright and free,
And steps of virgin liberty ;
A creature not too light or good,
For human nature's daily food ;
For transient sorrows, simple wiles,
Praise, blame, love, kisses, tears, and smiles.
Eut I must pass briefly over those halcyon days, and come to
the dark cloud which first and finally intercepted the sunlight.
Ernest had, as I have said, the most entire confidence in his wife,
and was accustomed to reveal to her every transaction in his busi-
ness which could awaken her interest or command her sympathy.
On one occasion he confided to her a secret in which the welfare
and reputation of one of his dearest friends was concerned. An-
other, who had, through a different channel, got possession of a clue
to this, and who supposed Mrs. Vernon must be aware of it, had,
in conversation with her, designedly asked a direct question, to
which she could not with truth give the denial with which she
would gladly have put an end to his suspicions. He immediately
made use of his information, and quoted her authority to con-
firm it.
Ernest returned home from an absence of a few days, to find his
cherished secret, involving the honour of his friend, public, coupled
with the name of his wife as the authority. He was hasty and
passionate ; defects which are oftener those of a truly noble and
generous soul than a secret and persevering vindictiveness. In his
anger he foi'got that the silence and passiveness with which Alice
received his reproaches might be evidences of sufi'ering rather than
406 ANNE T. WILBUK.
of guilt, and used language ■which, as she thought, proved that his
affections were "withdrawn from her for ever.
Days passed away, and there was no relenting ; Ernest was too
proud to ask an explanation, and Alice scarcely knew of what she
was accused. It was evident to her that her husband was alienated
from her, no matter how, and in silence and in secrecy she formed
her plans and executed them.
It was a bright, beautiful summer morning, when Alice Yernon
stole softly down in the early twilight to bid adieu to the haunts
and associations of her happiest hours. Her flowers looked lov-
ingly upon her, and the tears that gemmed each petal and leaf
were those of gratitude only, not sorrow. All was joyous, save the
heart of one who was now, like Eve, to say farewell to her Para-
dise. But, unlike Eve, she went forth alone, with no manly arm
to shield her, and no loving heart to interpose between herself and
life's sorrows. The lovely cottage home she was leaving had never
seemed more attractive : yet she had scarcely realized that it was
her own, so far had it exceeded her wildest expectations. Yuth a
few valued relics, and simple articles of clothing, which had been a
part of her own poor dowry, she sought her humble city home.
Months, years had passed away. The slight difference which
had produced this alienation had been increased by professed
friends, — angry words borne to the ears of the parties, and exag-
gerated in the repetition. Alice's only defensive weapon had been
silence. It may seem strange that such a bond could thus easily
be broken. One who is deeply read in the mysteries of love mat-
ters has, however, said :
Alas! how slight a cause may move
Dissension between hearts that love ; —
Hearts that the world in vain has tried,
And sorrow but more closely tied ;
A something light as air, a look,
A word unkind or wrongly taken,
A love ! that tempests never shook,
A breath, a touch like this has shaken.
We had pursued our way around the common, now one sea of
A N N E T . W I L B U R . 4fff
heads, and glittering with military costumes and arms. The excite-
ment was contagious, and we could not but reflect the gayety and
animation which shone in every feature of the various physiogno-
mies about us. It was nearly time, however, to begin to look for
the grand event of the day — the procession — so we found a quiet
spot where we could see the pageant, and sat down by an open
windoAY to breathe the cool air, and listen to the distant music.
With thrilling fife and pealing drum,
And clashing horn, they come ! they come !
Gay banners waved, and white plumes danced in the breeze ; shin-
ing arms, and glittering epaulets ; regalia goi'geous in purple and
gold ; noble steeds and noble riders — came thronging and pouring
througli the narrow street, and, as they passed slowly along often
pausing, as impeded by some obstacle, we could read the motto on
every banner, and catch the expression of every face. As I looked
at Alice I saw that she had given herself wholly to the excitement
of the scene ; her face was radiant with pleasure ; and her cheek
but now pale, crimsoned with the flush of unaccustomed interest.
One must indeed have been a stoic not to have shared in the general
enthusiasm and joy.
My eyes fairly ached with gazing on the brilliant array, and I
had turned them for relief once more upon the face of my new
found friend, when I saw her lip quiver convulsively, and the bloom
which I had but now noticed, suddenly leave her cheek as colour-
less as before. She moved hastily from the window, and looking
up to me imploringly, said: "Take me away, Florence." As I
passed the window I caught a glimpse of a noble-looking horseman
in the uniform of one of the principal companies, and the emotion
which his fine features revealed, gave me a clue to that of my friend.
Poor Alice ! Alone in the parlour, and away from the sights
which had just before given her such unwonted pleasure, she threw
herself on the sofa, and wept bitterly. " Dear Florence, you will
think me childish," she said, when the violence of the first pas-
sionate burst of feeling had spent itself in tears ; " but you must
have seen him — my Ernest, my noble, my beloved husband. Oh,
408 ANNE T. "WILBUR.
Florence, you know not how many hours of bitterness and tears I
have spent in my solitude for him. I ought not to have come Avith
you to-day, for I had a presentiment of this. Go, dear Florence,
and leave me alone with my heart till its wild beatings are hushed."
There are times when grief is too deep and sacred to endure the
presence of a spectator, and solitude is then a luxury to the sorrow-
ing— so I obeyed.
The bright day was drawing to its close, and the last remnant
of that long and motley train was filing through the street, when
the bell was rung hastily, as if by an impatient hand. The ser-
vants were not to be found on an occasion like this, so I opened
the door ; a face, of which I had before caught a hasty glimpse,
once more met my eye, and I kncAV that Ernest Vernon stood
before me. "Is Alice ! Mrs. Vernon, here?" asked he, and on my
replying in the affirmative, followed me to the room where I had
left her. I opened the door, and said gently, " Shall I come,
Alice?" "Without waiting for her reply, Ernest stepped forward
and repeated, "Alice." She hurriedly looked up, and with a cry
of joy, sprang into his arms, and was clasped to his heart. There
was no need of an explanation, for each read in the face of the
other restored confidence, and full forgiveness of all the past.
ELIZA L. SPROAT.
Miss Sproat is known almost exclusively as a poet. All the prose
that she has published, amounting at most to not more than three or four
contributions to annuals and magazines, is so essentially poetical, that it
seemed a matter of doubt, whether to include her name at all in the
present volume. Whether prose or poetry, however, her writings are
among the most original and the most beautiful that our current literature
affords. The article '■'■ Love versus Cupid," which appeared in the June
number of Sartain, for 1849, is alone sufScient to stamp the author as a
woman of high genius.
Miss Sproat is still very young. She is a native, and has always been
a resident, of Philadelphia. The extract which follows, is from the
Christian Keepsake for 1847. It is the first piece she ever published.
THE ENCHANTED LUTE.
Once, in the old days of the fairy dominion, two sisters sat
beneath an ancient vine-entangled tree, which overhung an old
stone fountain.
They were beautiful ; but why should they hide their beauty in
this lonely solitude ? — yet not lonely, for Mira bore in her hand a
marvellous talisman — an enchanted lute, whose lightest touch had
power to waken the voices of a thousand unseen spirits, and reveal
to mortal eye and ear the wonderful sealed mysteries of Nature.
As yet, its power had never been challenged ; but the sisters had
been told, that if, at the dim solemn hour between the night and
morning, they would venture to sit alone by the haunted fountain,
52 ^409;
410 ELIZA L. SPRO AT.
tliej could find the key to its music ; tliat they could then discover
the master-tone which should rule their future destiny.
For a time they sat in awe ; for, as the night-breeze swej^t over
the instrument, they were oppressed with a strange sense of the
surrounding invisible presence.
"Let us try the spell," at length said Mira ; "a little low
sound is rising in my heart, which may be the key to our music."
"Pause yet a moment," whispered Ernesta, "oh! pause, my
sister, and think that of all the great world's harmony, the tone
you choose this day must rule your life for ever."
"I have no fear," said Mira, touching the outer chord.
A deep harsh note arose from the instrument : the trees reared
their heads towards the sky, and the night-winds raised their voices.
The weak vines in their dreaming clasped the trees convulsively,
and seemed striving to climb to their summits.
Mira saw gleaming eyes in the darkness, and heard the murmur
of strife in the air: even the very grass-blades jostled each other,
as they stood side by side.
"Ah!" said Mira, shuddering, "this is Ambition — this is not
the master-tone which should rule the world."
With a trembling hand she touched the second chord. A faint
indefinite sound, neither music nor discord, played around the lute.
The trees swung carelessly, and the vines loosed their hold ; the
clear Avaters stagnated ; the air was filled with heavy vapour ; and
all the while there issued from the lute the dull monotonous tone of
indolent Content. "That is not music," said Mira indignantly.
" Once more, my sister," said Ernesta; and again she tried the
chords.
A flash like sunlight played through the darkness; — a sweet
rich strain arose from the lute, and a richer, deeper, sweeter
music faintly re-echoed the notes around. The waters smiled and
murmured ; the little flowers laid their cheeks against each other
li'^e happy sleeping children ; each created thing responded to the
all-pervading music of Love.
" This is the tone," cried Mira enchanted; — "this is the one
great master-key of existence : it is not to toil, nor to strive, nor
ELIZA L. S PR OAT. 411
to battle, that we are placed in this world of pleasure — it is only to
live and to love."
" Mira," said her sister earnestly, "try them once again."
" Not again," said Mira ; " I have found my life."
"But I thought, when you touched the last sweet chord, that a
note still sweeter fell upon my ear ; try it, Mira !"
But Mira heard her not — her heart was filled with the music of
love : she had chosen her lot, and over her the untried chords had
power no more.
The hour had passed, and the Night Angel was departing. As
he retired, he rolled away the soft dark mists in which he had ten-
derly enveloped the sleeping earth. The violets opened their eyes
in time to catch a glimpse of the brighter eyes which all night long
had watched their slumbers ; the birds waked too, and looked out
from their nests ; — but the Night Angel stood with his finger on his
lip, and all the world was silent.
Speeding through the dim air came the Angel of the Morning.
"With a pencil of flame he silently streaked the eastern sky, and
fringed the clouds for the reception of the monarch.
The morning breezes grew uneasy in their hiding-places ; the
hushed waters trembled with eagerness ; the flowers held their
breath ; the bi|ds seemed bursting with long-pent melody ; — but
still, the Night Angel stood with his finger on his lip, and all the
earth waited in silence.
Silence !
The Sun ! the Sun ! with a warm sudden kiss he greets the
earth — the spell of the night is broken ; all nature rises with a
shout, and from a thousand thousand tongues bursts forth the
imprisoned melody. How the trees wave their arms ! how the
singing waters glance and sparkle ! how the forest gossips nod
their heads to one another, and the busy happy breezes hurry to
and fro with sweet gratulations borne from flower to flower!* All
motion — all happiness ; every nook and corner of the great earth
filled with life and love.
" Erncsta," said her sister, " art thou still faithless ? Does not
412 ELIZA L. SPROAT.
this blessed morning teach thee that there is no one tone in earth
or heaven so worthy to rule as Love ?"
"Touch the lute once more," said Ernesta ; "only try once
more."
Again those sweet strains rose in the morning air, and again to
the listening ear of Ernesta rose that faint clear echo-tone, so
strange, so pure, so far surpassing music ever heard before by
mortal ear, that her raptured sense could scarcely endure the
excess of melody.
But Mira's ears were filled with the music of the heart, and she
could not hear these higher seraph strains.
"Now, Mira," said Ernesta, "look around, and tell me truly
what thou seest."
" I see a beautiful, happy world, full of rich sunlight and flowers,
and thronged with good, loving fairies roaming here and there,
tending the sickening plants and supporting the delicate flower-
buds ; helping the young birds in their flight, and teaching all
created things to live and to love. And what sees my sister
Ernesta?"
" I see, between heaven and earth, God's holy cherubim ascend-
ing and descending ; searching out the weary fainting spirits
throughout the world, and bearing to them balm from Paradise.
I see them rising with the prayers of the afflicted, and returning
with sweet answers fresh from Heaven. And sometimes I see a
newly perfected, enfranchised soul, borne rejoicing by the angels
to the Throne, to dwell for ever in the presence of the Fountain of
Love transcendent. But, Mira, look ^ip, and tell me what you
see."
" When I look up, I see nothing, because of the dazzling
sunlight."
" Ah ! but through the sunlight I can see the stars ! the clear
stars, that ever shine and never weary. And hark ! From high,
above the stars, floats down the trancing echo-tone. 'Tis the voice
of the angels with their harps — they answer my heaven-yearning
lute ! 'Tis the great master-tone which rules the universe — the
music of the soul !"
SUSAN FENIMORE COOPEE.
Miss Cooper is a native and resident of Cooperstown, New York, and
a daughter of the great American novelist. Her first publication, " Eural
Hours," a splendid octavo issued by Putnam in 1850, gave her at once a
high rank among our female authors. It is in the form of a journal,
running through one entire year, and giving an account of the most nota-
ble sights and sounds of country life. Miss Cooper has an observant eye,
and a happy faculty of making her descriptions interesting by selecting
the right objects, instead of the too common method of extravagant embel-
lishment. She never gets into ecstacies, and sees nothing which anybody
else might not see who walked through the same fields after her. Her
work accordingly contains an admirable portraiture of American out-door
life, just as it is, with no colouring but that which every object necessarily
receives in passing through a contemplative and cultivated mind. Miss
Cooper has also edited a work called " Country Rambles in England," and
has in press (1854) a new volume of her own, under the title of " Fields
Old and New, or the Ehyme and Reason of Country Life."
SPIDERS.
Upon one of these violets we found a handsome coloured spider,
one of the kind that live on flowers and take their colour from
them ; but this was unusually large. Its body was of the size of
a well-grown pea, and of a bright lemon colour ; its legs were also
yellow, and altogether it was one of the most showy-coloured
spiders we have seen in a long time. Scarlet or red ones still
larger, are found, however, near New York. But, in their gayest
aspect, these creatures are repulsive. It gives one a chilling idea
of the gloomy solitude of a prison, when we remember that spiders
have actually been petted by men shut out from better companion-
(413)
414 SUSANFENIMORECOOPER.
sliip. They are a very common insect "witli us, and on that account
more annoying than any other that is found here. Some of them,
with great black bodies, are of a formidable size. These haunt
cellars, barns, and churches, and ajopear occasionally in inhabited
rooms. There is a black spider of this kind, with a body said
to be an inch long, and legs double that length, found in the Palace
of Hampton Court, in England, which, it 'will be remembered,
belonged to Cardinal Wolsey, and these great creatures are called
" Cardinals" there, being considered by some people as peculiar to
that building. A huge spider, by-the-bye, "with her intricate web
and snares, Avould form no bad emblem of a courtier and diplo-
matist, of the stamp of Cardinal Wolsey. He certainly took "hold
with his hands, in kings' palaces," and did his share of mischief
there.
Few people like spiders. No doubt these insects must have their
merits and their uses, since none of God's creatures are made in
vain ; all living things are endowed with instincts more or less
admirable ; but the spider's plotting, creeping ways, and a sort of
wicked expression about him, lead one to dislike him as a near
neighbour. In a battle between a spider and a fly, one always
sides with the fly, and yet of the two, the last is certainly the most
troublesome insect to man. But the fly is frank and free in all his
doings ; he seeks his food openly, and he pursues his pastimes
openly ; suspicions of others or covert designs against them are
quite unknown to him, and there is something almost confiding in
the way in which he sails around you, when a single stroke of your
hand might destroy him. The spider, on the contrary, lives by
snares and plots ; he is at the same time very designing and very
suspicious, both cowardly and fierce ; he always moves stealthily,
as though among enemies, retreating before the least appearance
of danger, solitary and morose, holding no communion with his
fellows. His whole appearance corresponds with this character,
and it is not surprising, therefore, that while the fly is more mis-
chievous to us than the spider, we yet look upon the first with more
favour than the last ; for it is a natural impulse of the human
lieart to prefer that which is open and confiding to that which is
SUSAN FENIMORE COOPER. 41.1
wily and suspicious, even in the brute creation. The cunning and
designing man himself will, at times, find a feeling of respect and
regard for the guileless and generous stealing over him, his heart,
as it were, giving the lie to his life.
Some two or three centuries since, when people came to this
continent from the Old World in search of gold, oddly enough, it
was considered a good sign of success when they met with spiders !
It would be difficult to say why they cherished this fancy ; but
according to that old worthy, Hakluyt, when Martin Frobisher
and his party landed on Cumberland Island, in quest of gold, their
expectations were much increased by finding there numbers of
spiders, "which, as many affirm, are signs of great store of
gold."
HUMMING-BIRDS.
Humming-birds are particularly partial to the evening hours.
One is sure to find them now toward sunset, fluttering about their
favourite plants ; often there are several together among the flow-
ers of the same bush, betraying themselves, though unseen, by the
trembling of the leaves and blossoms. They are extremely fond
of the Missouri currant — of all the early flowei'S, it is the greatest
favourite with them ; they are fond of the lilacs also, but do not
care much for the syringa ; to the columbine they are partial, to
the bee larkspur also, with the wild bergamot or Oswego tea, the
speckled jewels, scarlet trumpet-flower, red clover, honeysuckle,
and the lychnis tribe. There is something in the form of these
tube-shape blossoms, whether small or great, which suits their long,
slender bills, and possibly, for the same reason, the bees cannot
find such easy access to the honey, and leave more in these than
in the open flowers. To the lily the humming-bird pays only a
passing compliment, and seems to prefer the great tiger-lily to the
other varieties ; the rose he seldom visits ; he will leave these
stately blossoms any day for a head of the common red clover, in
416 SUSAN FENIMORE COOPER.
■\vliicli ho especially delights. Often of a summer's evening have
we -watched the humming-birds flitting about the meadoAVS, passing
from one tuft of clover to another, then resting a moment on a
tall spear of timothy grass, then off again to fresh clover, scarcely
touching the other flowers, and continuing frequently in the same
field until the very latest twilight.
Mr. Tupper, in his paper on "Beauty," pays a pretty compli-
ment to the humming-bird. Personifying Beauty, he says, she
"Flutteretb into the tulip with the humming-bird."
But, although these little creatures are with us during the tulip
season, it may be doubted if they feed on these gaudy blossoms.
On first reading the 2:)assage, this association struck us as one with
which we were not familiar ; had it been the trumpet-flower, nothing
would have been more natural, for these dainty birds are for ever
fluttering about the noble scarlet blossoms of that plant, as we all
know, but the tulip did not seem quite in place in this connexion.
Anxious to know whether we had deceived ourselves, we have now
watched the humming-birds for several seasons, and, as yet, have
never seen one in a tulip, while we have often observed them pass
these for other flowers. Possibly this may have been accidental,
or other varieties of the humming-bird may have a different taste
from our own, and one cannot positively assert that this little
creature never feeds on the tulip, without more general examina-
tion. But there is something in the upright position of that flower
which, added to its size, leads one to believe that it must be an
inconvenient blossom for the humming-bird, who generally seems
to prefer nodding or drooping flowers, if they are at all large,
always feeding on the wing as he does, and never alighting, like
butterflies and bees, on the petals. Altogether, we ai*e inclined to
believe that if the distinguished author of Provei'bial Philosophy
had been intimate with our little neighbour, he would have placed
him in some other native plant, and not in the Asiatic tulip, to
which he seems rather indifferent. The point is a very trifling one,
no doubt, and it is extremely bold, to find fault with our betters ;
but in the first place, w^e are busying ourselves wholly with trifles
SUSAN FENI MORE COOPER. 417
just now. and then the great work in question has been a source
of so much pleasure and advantage to half the world, that no one
heeds the misplaced tulip, unless it be some rustic bird-fancier. By
supposing the flower of the tulip-tree to be meant, the question
■would be entirely settled to the satisfaction of author, reader, and
humming-bird also, who is very partial to those handsome blossoms
of his native woods.
It is often supposed that our little friend seeks only the most fra-
grant flowers ; the blossoms on the Western Prairies, those of Wis-
consin at least, and probably others also, are said to have but little
perfume, and it is observed that the humming-bird is a stranger
there, albeit those wilds are a perfect sea of flowers during the
spring and summer months. But the amount of honey in a plant has
nothing to do with its perfume, for we daily see the humming-birds
neglecting the rose and the white lily, while many of their most
favourite flowers, such as the scarlet honeysuckle, the columbine,
the lychnis tribe, the trumpet flower, and speckled jewels, have no
perfume at all. Other pet blossoms of theirs, however, are very
fragrant, as the highly-scented Missouri currant, for instance, and
the red clover, but their object seems to be quite independent of
this particular quality in a plant.
The fancy these little creatures have for perching on a dead twig
is very marked ; you seldom see them alight elsewhere, and the
fact that a leafless branch projects from a bush, seems enough to
invite them to rest ; it was but yesterday we saw two males sitting
upon the same dead branch of a honeysuckle beneath the window.
And last summer, there chanced to be a little dead twig, at the
highest point of a locust-tree, in sight from the house, which was a
favourite perching spot of theirs for some weeks ; possibly it was
the same bird, or the same pair, who frequented it, but scarcely a
day passed without a tiny little creature of the tribe being fre-
quently seen there. Perhaps there may have been a nest close at
hand, but they build so cunningly, making their nests look so much
like a common bunch of moss or lichen, that they are seldom dis-
covered, although they often build about gardens, and usually at
no great height ; we have knoAvn a nest found in a lilac-bush, and
53
418 SUSAN FENI MO RE COO PEE.
sometimes they are even satisfied "with a tall coarse weed ; in the
woods, they are said to prefer a white oak sapling, seldom building,
however, more than ten feet from the ground.
Though so diminutive, they are bold and fearless, making very
good battle when necessary, and going about generally in a very
careless, confident way. They fly into houses more frequently
than any other bird, sometimes attracted by plants or flowers
within, often apparently by accident, or for the purpose of explor-
ing. The country people have a saying that when a humming-bird
flies in at a window he brings a love message for some one in the
house ; a pretty fancy, certainly, for Cupid himself could not have
desired a daintier avant courier. Unfortunately, this trick of fly-
ing in at the windows is often a very serious and fatal one to the
poor little creatures themselves, whatever felicity it may bring to
the Romeo and Juliet of the neighbourhood ; for they usually
quiver about against the ceiling until quite stunned and exhausted,
and unless they are caught and set at liberty, soon destroy them-
selves in this way. We have repeatedly known them found dead
in rooms little used, that had been opened to air, and which they
had entered unperceived. -. . • , •
WEEDS.
The word weed varies much with circumstances ; at times, we
even apply it to the beautiful flower or the useful herb. A plant
may be a weed, because it is noxious, or fetid, or unsightly, or
troublesome, but it is rare indeed that all these faults are united in.
one individual of the vegetable race. Often the unsightly, or fetid,
or even the poisonous plant, is useful, or it may be interesting from
some peculiarity ; and on the other hand, many others, troublesome
from their numbers, bear pleasing flowers, taken singly. Upon
the whole, it is not so much a natural defect which marks the weed,
as a certain impertinent, intrusive character in these plants ; a
want of modesty, a habit of showing themselves forward upon
SUSANFENIMORECOOPER. 419
ground where they are not needed, rooting themselves in soil in-
tended for better things, for plants more useful, more fragrant, or
more beautiful. Thus the corn-cockle bears a fine flower, not
unlike the mullein-pink of the garden, but then it springs up among
the precious wheat, taking the place of the grain, and it is a weed ;
the flower of the thistle is handsome in itself, but it is useless, and
it pushes forward in throngs by the wayside until we are weary
of seeing it, and everybody makes war upon it ; the common St.
John's wort, again, has a pretty yellow blossom, and it has its uses
also as a simple, but it is injurious to the cattle, and yet it is so
obstinately tenacious of a place among the grasses, that it is found
in every meadow, and we quarrel with it as a weed.
These noxious plants have come unbidden to us, with the grains
and grasses of the Old World, the evil with the good, as usual in
this world of probation — the wheat and tares together. The useful
plants produce a tenfold blessing upon the labour of man, but the
weed is also there, ever accompanying his steps, to teach him a
lesson of humility. Certain plants of this nature — the dock,
thistle, nettle, &c., &c. — are known to attach themselves especially
to the path of man ; in widely diff'erent soils and climates, they are
still found at his door. Patient care and toil can alone keep the
evil within bounds, and it seems doubtful whether it lies within the
reach of human means entirely to remove from the face of the
earth one single plant of this peculiar nature, much less all their
varieties. Has any one, even of the most noxious sorts, ever been
utterly destroyed? Agriculture, with all the pride and power of
science now at her command, has apparently accomplished but
little in this way. Egypt and China are said to be countries in
which weeds are comparatively rare ; both regions have long been
in a high state of cultivation, filled to overflowing with a hungry
population, which neglects scarce a rood of the soil, and yet even
in those lands, even upon the banks of the Nile, where the crops
succeed each other without any interval throughout the whole year,
leaving no time for weeds to extend themselves ; even there, these
noxious plants are not unknown, and the moment the soil is aban-
doned, only for a season, they return with renewed vigour.
420 SUSAN FENIMORE COOPER.
In this new country, with a fresh soil, and a thinner population,
we have not only weeds innumerable, but we observe, also, that
briers and brambles seem to acquire double strength in the neigh-
bourhood of man ; we meet them in the primitive forest, here and
there, but they line our roads and fences, and the woods are no
sooner felled to make ready for cultivation, than they spring up
in profusion, the first natural produce of the soil. But in this
world of mercy, the just curse is ever graciously tempered with a
blessing ; many a grateful fruit, and some of our most delightful
flowers, grow among the thorns and briars, their fragrance and
excellence reminding man of the sweets as well as the toils of his
task. The sweetbriar, more especially, with its simple flower
and delightful fragrance, unknown in the wilderness, but moving
onward by the side of the ploughman, would seem, of all others,
the husbandman's blossom.
ELIZABETH WETHERELL.
(sUSAN TTARNER.)
In the year 1850, a novel in two volumes, under the title of "The
Wide Wide World," was sent forth to seek its fortunes. The title-page
bore upon its face a name unknown to literature, and no special pains
were taken to herald the work into notoriety. But readers very soon
began to multiply ; every one who read the book, talked about it, and
urged its reading upon his neighbours, until, within a year from the time
of its publication, it had reached a circulation then considered almost un-
precedented, and everybody was beginning to inquire who is " Elizabeth
Wetherell V It was one of the most signal instances in recent times of a
popularity reaching almost to fame, springing up spontaneously, and entirely
in advance of all the usual organs of public opinion. The tide of favour
was still further swelled by the appearance in 1852 of a successor, another
novel in two volumes, under the title of " Queechy." The second work
had nearly all the peculiarities of the first, and reached a still higher mark
of success. They were both reprinted and very widely circulated in Eng-
land, and they appear to have been more generally read and to have made
a deeper impression, both at home and abroad, than any recent American
works of fiction, except Uncle Tom's Cabin.
These volumes are without doubt open to criticism. The "North
British Review" objects vehemently to carelessness in the diction and to
" the vulgarity" of some of the characters, and the " Westminster" dis-
likes of course the pervading religious tone of the books. Not assenting
to aU the criticisms of the "North British," we subscribe most fully to
the opinion with which the article closes. " The heartiness and sincerity
with which she dwells upon and describes, in its minutest details, the farm-
life in America are very delightful, and quite new in their way, which is
wholly unsentimental and truly national. But the highest qualities of
(421)
42'2 ELIZABETH WETHERELL.
this lady's mind, as shown in her works, are, first, the heartiness of her
religion, notwithstanding the mistakes we have noticed; and, secondli/,
the clear understanding, which, having once apprehended Christianity, not
as a mere logical conclusion, but as a fact of experience and a living pre-
sence, is not for an instant to be puzzled by any seeming contradiction.
This clear-sightedness and the power of expressing it so as to impress
others, is a very remarkable and unspeakably valuable quality of the
American mind in matters of religion. Of all religious writers, the Ame-
ricans are those who have the firmest footing upon this unassailable ground
of personal experience and the actual facts of nature ; and what our great
Christian philosopher Butler felt so powerfully, and expressed with so
much difficulty and obscurity in his immortal ' Analogy,' seems to be an
ordinary inheritance of the religious mind in America."
The religious character of the writings of " Elizabeth Wetherell" is cer-
tainly that which is stamped upon them most deeply. We know no work of
fiction in which real religion, as it is understood by Evangelical Christians,
is exhibited with so much truth and force. The story of '' Little Ellen
Montgomery" may in all seriousness be commended as a book to make the
heart wiser and better. Next to the religious tone of the books, we would
name their tenderness and pathos. No living writer, not even Mrs. Stowe,
knows better how to open the fountain of tears, or goes more directly to
the heart of the reader. Her descriptions and narrations have the par-
ticularity and the life-like verisimilitude of Defoe, while her delineations
of character are so eminently individual as to have created the general im-
pression that they are taken from real life. Her descriptions of country
life and character, too, are eminently national.
The North American Review, in a very genial article on the subject, is
disposed to place this merit above all others, in estimating the value of the
Wide-Wide-AVoi-ld books. *' As a matter of pure judgment, we must place
their pictures of American country life and character above all their other
merits, since we know not where, in any language, we shall find their
graphic truth excelled. When after times would seek a specimen of our
Doric of this date, Aunt Fortune will stand them in stead ; and no Theo-
critus of our time will draw a bucolical swain more true to the life than
Mr. Van Brunt. Even the shadow of Didenhover is a portrait; we see
him, though he never appears in the flesh, and we feel him, too, though we
have never let out a farm ' on shares.' Captain Montgomery is another
of those invisible persons with whom we are perfectly well acquainted,
although not a line is given to describing him ; and the ' hateful' clerk
who wreaks his petty spite upon Ellen's horse, is a character whose truth
to nature little girls bear witness to, by the hearty indignation with which
they read the scene. Nancy Vawse is a white Topsy ; Barby a perfect
type of the American serving-girl, at once selfish and tender, coarse and
delicate ; and we might swell our list of life-like characters a good
ELIZABETH WETHERELL. 423
deal further, if their very number did not warn us against being too
particular."
After the publication of " Queechy," the author engaged with " Amy
Lothrop," who is generally understood to be a younger sister, in preparing
a series of children's books, under the general title of " Ellen Montgomery's
Book Shelf."
The reader of Elizabeth Wetherell's novels cannot fail to be struck with
the extraordinary aptness and pertinency of her Scripture quotations. Her
intimate acquaintance with the sacred volume, as here indicated, and her
evident partiality for the study, fitted her in an especial manner for the
work in which she next engaged, which was evidently a "labour of love."
This was " The Law and the Testimony," a huge octavo volume of 840
pages, in which the proof-texts on the great doctrines of Christianity are
brought together under their separate heads. In hunting up these pas-
sages, as we learn from the preface, the author had the assistance of her
"3roung sister," as in sketching the outline of subjects she had that of
her father. It is a work of stupendous labour, and of utility commen-
surate with the pains bestowed upon it. One sincerely desirous of learn-
ing what the Scriptures teach on any particular topic, can hardly fail to
be benefited by consulting this work, no matter how familiar with the
Scriptures he may be already, or how many other helps he may have at
hand.
The real name of " Elizabeth Wetherell" is Susan Warner. But as
she continues to use her novi de plume in all her publications, it has seemed
but meet to do the same in writing of her.
424 ELIZABETH WETHERELL,
LITTLE ELLEN AND THE SH0P3IAN.
" Mamma !" exclaimed Ellen, suddenly starting up, " a bright
tliought has just come into my head ! I'll do it for you, mamma I"
"Do what?"
" I'll get the merino and things for you, mamma. You needn't
smile, — I will, indeed, if you will let me."
"My dear Ellen," said her mother, "I don't doubt you would,
if good will only were wanting ; but a great deal of skill and expe-
rience is necessary for a shopper, and what would you do without
either ?"
"But see, mamma," pursued Ellen eagerly, "I'll tell you how
I'll manage, and I know I can manage very well. You tell me
exactly what coloured merino you w^ant, and give me a little piece
to show me how fine it should be, and tell me what price you wish
to give, and then I'll go to the store and ask them to show me dif-
ferent pieces, you know, and if I see any I think you would like,
I'll ask them to give me a little bit of it to show you ; and then I'll
bring it home, and if you like it, you can give me the money, and
tell me how many yards you want, and I can go back to the store
and get it. Why can't I, mamma?"
" Perhaps you could ; but, my dear child, I am afraid you wouldn't
like the business."
" Yes, I should ; indeed, mamma, I should like it dearly if I could
help you so. Will you let me try, mamma ?"
" I don't like, my child, to venture you alone on such an errand,
among crowds of people ; I should be uneasy about you."
"Dear mamma, what would the crowds of people do to me? I
am not a bit afraid. You know, mamma, I have often taken walks
alone, — that's nothing new ; and what harm should come to me
while I am in the store ? You needn't be the least uneasy about me ;
— may I go ?" ■
Mrs. INIontgomery smiled, but w^as silent.
"May I go, mamma?" repeated Ellen. "Let me go at least
and try what I can do. What do you say, mamma ?"
ELIZABETH WE THE RELL. 425
" I don't kno"w -w'hat to say, my daughter, but I am in difficulty
on either hand. I will let you go and see what you can do. It
would be a great relief to me to get this merino by any means."
" Then shall I go right away, mamma?"
"As well now as ever. You are not afraid of the wind ?"
"I should think not," said Ellen; and away she scampered up
stairs to get ready. With eager haste she dressed herself; then
with great care and particularity took her mother's instructions as
to the article w^anted ; and finally set out, sensible that a great
trust was reposed in her, and feeling busy and important accord-
ingly. But at the very bottom of Ellen's heart there was a little
secret doubtfulness respecting her undertaking. She hardly knew
it was there, but then she couldn't tell what it was that made her
fingers so inclined to be tremulous while she was dressing, and that
made her heart beat quicker than it ought, or than was pleasant,
and one of her cheeks so much hotter than the other. However,
she set forth upon her errand with a very brisk step, which she
kept up till on turning a corner she came in sight of the place she
was going to. Without thinking much about it, Ellen had directed
her steps to St. Clair & Eleury's. It was one of the largest and
best stores in the city, and the one where she knew her mother
generally made her purchases ; and it did not occur to her that it
might not be the best for her purpose on this occasion. But her
steps slackened as soon as she came in sight of it, and continued
to slacken as she drew nearer, and she went up the broad flight of
marble steps in front of the store very sloAvly indeed, though they
were exceedingly low and easy. Pleasui'e was not certainly the
uppermost feeling in her mind now ; yet she never thought of turn-
ing back. She knew that if she could succeed in the object of her
mission her mother would be relieved from some anxiety ; that was
enough ; she was bent on accomplishing it.
Timidly she entered the large hall of entrance. It was full of
people, and the buzz of business was heard on all sides. Ellen had
for some time past seldom gone a shopping with her mother, and
had never been in this store but once or twice before. She had
not the remotest idea where, or in what apartment of the building,
54
426 ELIZABETPI WET HERE LL.
the merino counter was situated, and she could see no one to speak
to. She stood irresolute in the middle of the floor. Everybody
seemed to be busily engaged with somebody else ; and whenever an
opening on one side or another appeared to promise her an oppor-
tunity, it was sure to be filled up before she could reach it, and,
disappointed and abashed, she Avould return to her old station in
the middle of the floor. Clerks frequently passed her, crossing the
store in all directions, but they were always bustling along in a
great hurry of business ; but they did not seem to notice her at all,
and were gone before poor Ellen could get her mouth open to speak
to them. She knew well enough now, poor child, what it was that
made her cheeks burn as they did, and her heart beat as if it would
burst its bounds. She felt confused, and almost confounded, by
the incessant hum of voices, and moving crowd of strange people
all around her, while her little figure stood alone and unnoticed in
the midst of them ; and there seemed no prospect that she would
be able to gain the ear or the eye of a single person. Once she
determined to accost a man she saw advancing toward her from a
distance, and actually made up to him for the purpose, but with a
hurried bow, and "I beg your pardon. Miss!" he brushed past.
Ellen almost burst into tears. She longed to turn and run out of
the store, but a faint hope remaining, and an unwillingness to give
up her undertaking, kept her fast. At length one of the clerks iu
the desk observed her, and remarked to Mr. St. Clair, who stood
by, " There is a little girl, sir, who seems to be looking for some-
thing, or waiting for somebody ; she has been standing there a
good while." Mr. St. Clair, upon this, advanced to poor Ellen's
relief.
" What do you wish. Miss ?" he said.
But Ellen had been so long preparing sentences, trying to utter
them and failing in the attempt, that now, when an opportunity to
speak and be heard was given her, the power of speech seemed to
be gone.
"Do you wish anything. Miss?" inquired Mr. St. Clair again.
"Mother sent me," stammered Ellen, — "I wish, if you please,
sir, — mamma wished me to look at merinoes, sir, if you please."
ELIZABETH WETHERELL. 427
"Is your mamma in the store ?"
"No, sir," said Ellen, "she is ill and cannot come out, and she
sent me to look at merinoes for her, if you please, sir."
"Here, Saunders," said Mr. St. Clair, "show this young lady
the merinoes."
Mr. Saunders made his appearance from among a little group
of clerks, Tvith "whom he had been indulging in a few jokes by way
of relief from the tedium of business. " Come this way," he said
to Ellen ; and sauntering before her with a rather dissatisfied air,
led the way out of the entrance hall into another and much larger
apartment. There were plenty of people here, too, and just as
busy as those they had quitted. Mr. Saunders having brought
Ellen to the merino counter, placed himself behind it ; and leaning
over it and fixing his eyes carelessly upon her, asked what she
wanted to look at. His tone and manner struck Ellen most un-
pleasantly, and made her again wish herself out of the store. He
was a tall, lank young man, with a quantity of fair hair combed
down on each side of his face, a slovenly exterior, and the most
disagreeable pair of eyes, Ellen thought, she had ever beheld.
She could not bear to meet them, and cast down her own. Their
look was bold, ill-bred, and ill-humoured ; and Ellen felt, though
she couldn't have told why, that she need not expect either kindness
or politeness from him.
" What do you want to see, little one ?" inquired this gentleman,
as if he had a business in hand he would like to be rid of. Ellen
heartily wished he was rid of it, and she, too. " Merinoes, if you
please," she answered without looking up.
" Well, what kind of merinoes ? Here are all sorts and descrip-
tions of merinoes, and I can't pull them all down, you know, for
you to look at. What kind do you want ?"
"I don't know without looking," said Ellen, "won't you please
to show me some?"
He tossed down several pieces upon the counter, and tumbled
them about before her.
" There," said he, " is that anything like what you want ? There's
428 ELIZABETH WETHERELL.
a pink one, — and there's a blue one, — and there's a green one. Is
that the kind?"
"This is the kind," said Ellen; "but this isn't the colour I
want."
" What colour do you want ?"
" Something dark, if you please."
" Well, there, that green's dark ; won't that do ? See, that
would make up very pretty for you."
"No," said Ellen, "mamma don't like green."
" Why don't she come and choose her stuffs herself, then? What
colour does she like ?"
"Dark blue, or dark brown, or a nice gray, would do," said
Ellen, "if it's fine enough."
"'Dark blue,' or 'dark brown,' or 'a nice gray,' eh! Well,
she's pretty easy to suit. A dark blue I've showed you already, —
what's the matter with that ?"
"It isn't dark enough," said Ellen.
"Well," said he, discontentedly, pulling down another piece,
" how'll that do? That's dark enough."
It Tv'as a fine and beautiful piece, very different from those he
had showed her at first. Even Ellen could see that, and fumbling
for her little pattern of merino, she compared it with the piece.
They agreed perfectly as to fineness.
" What is the pi'ice of this ?" she asked, with trembling hope that
she was going to be rewarded by success for all the trouble of her
enterprise.
" Two dollars a yard."
Her hopes and her countenance fell together. " That's too high,"
she said with a sigh.
" Then take this other blue ; come, — it's a great deal prettier
than that dark one, and not so dear ; and I know your mother will
like it better."
Ellen's cheeks were tingling and her heart throbbing, but she
couldn't bear to give up.
"Would you be so good as to show me some gray ?" »
He slowly and ill-humouredly complied, and took down an excel-
ELIZABETH AVET II ERELL. 429
lent piece of dark gray, wliich Ellen fell in love with at once ; but
she was again disappointed ; it was fourteen shillings.
"Well, if you won't take that, take something else," said the
man; "you can't have everything at once; if you will have cheap
goods, of course you can't have the same quality that you like ; but
now, here's this other blue, only twelve shillings, and I'll let you
have it for ten if you'll take it."
"No, it is too light and too coarse," said Ellen, "mamma wouldn't
like it."
"Let me see," said he, seizing her pattern and pretending to
compare it ; "it's quite as fine as this, if that's all you want."
" Could you," said Ellen timidly, "give me a little bit of this
gray to show to mamma?"
" 0 no !" said he impatiently, tossing over the cloths and throw-
ing Ellen's pattern on the floor ; " we can't cut up our goods ; if
people don't choose to buy of us they may go somewhere else, and
if you cannot decide upon anything I must go and attend to those
that can. I can't wait here all day."
" What's the matter, Saunders?" said one of his brother clerks,
passing him.
" Why I've been here this half hour showing cloths to a child
that doesn't know merino from a sheep's back," said he, laughing.
And some other customers coming up at the moment, he was as
good as his word, and left Ellen, to attend to them.
Ellen stood a moment stock still, just where he had left her,
struggling with her feelings of mortification ; she could not endure
to let them be seen. Her face was on fire ; her head was dizzy.
She could not stir at first, and in spite of her utmost efforts she
could not command back one or two rebel tears that forced their
way ; she lifted her hand to her face to remove them as quietly as
possible.
" What is all this about, my little girl ?" said a strange voice at
her side.
Ellen started, and turned her face, with the tears but half wiped
away, toward the speaker. It was an old gentleman, an odd old
gentleman, too, she thought ; one she certainly would have been
4;^0 ELIZABETH WE THE RE LL.
rather shy of, if she had seen him under other circumstances. But
though his face was odd, it looked kindly upon her, and it was a
kind tone of voice in which his question had been put ; so be
seemed to her like a friend. " What is all this?" repeated the old
gentleman. Ellen began to tell what it was, but the pride which
had forbidden her to weep before strangers gave way at one touch
of sympathy, and she poured out tears much faster than words as
she related her story, so that it was some little time before the old
gentleman could get a clear notion of her case. He waited very
patiently till she had finished ; but then he set himself in good
earnest about righting the wrong. " Hallo ! you, sir !" he shouted,
in a voice that made everybody look round ; " you merino man !
come and show your goods : why aren't you at yom- post, sir?" —
as Mr. Saunders came up with an altered countenance — " here's a
young lady you've left standing unattended to I don't know how
long ; are these your manners ?"
" The young lady did not wish anything, I believe, sir," returned
Mr. Saunders, softly.
" You know better, you scoundrel," retorted the old gentleman,
who was in a great passion ; " I saw the whole matter with my
own eyes. You are a disgrace to the store, sir, and deserve to be
sent out of it, which you are like enough to be."
"I really thought, sir," said Mr. Saunders, smoothly, — for he
knew the old gentleman, and knew very well he was a person that
must not be offended, — " I really thought — I was not aware, sir,
that the young lady had any occasion for my services."
" Well, show your wares, sir, and hold your tongue. Now, my
dear, what did you want ?"
" I wanted a little bit of this gray merino, sir, to show to mam-
ma ; — I couldn't buy it, you know, sir, until I found out whether
she would like it."
" Cut a piece, sir, without any words," said the old gentleman.
Mr. Saunders obeyed.
" Did you like this best ?" pursued the old gentleman.
" I liked this dark blue very much, sir, and I thought mamma
would; but it's too high."
ELIZABETH WETHERELL. 431
" IIow much is it ?" inquired he.
"Fourteen shillings," replied Mr. Saunders.
"He said it was two dollars," exclaimed Ellen.
"I beg pardon," said the crest-fallen Mr. Saunders, "the young
lady mistook me ; I was speaking of another piece when I said two
dollars."
"He said this was two dollars, and the gray fourteen shillings,"
said Ellen.
"Is the gray fourteen shillings?" inquired the old gentleman.
"I think not, sir," answered Mr. Saunders — "I believe not, sir,
— I think it's only twelve, — I'll inquire, if you please, sir."
"No, no," said the old gentleman, "I know it was only twelve
— I know your tricks, sir. Cut a piece off the blue. Now, my dear,
are there any more pieces of which you would like to take patterns,
to show your mother ?"
"No, sir," said the overjoyed Ellen; "I am sure she will like
one of these."
" Now, shall we go, then ?" ■ '
"If you please, sir," said Ellen, "I should like to have my bit
of merino that I brought from home ; mamma wanted me to bring
it back again."
"Where is it?"
" That gentleman threw it on the floor."
"Do you hear, sir?" said the old gentleman; "find it directly."
Mr. Saunders found and delivered it, after stooping in search of
it till he was very red in the face ; and he was left, wishing heartily
that he had some safe means of revenge, and obliged to come to the
conclusion that none was within his reach, and that he must stomach
his indignity in the best manner he could. But Ellen and her pro-
tector went forth most joyously together from the store.
AMY LOTHROP.
" Amy Lotiirop," according to uncontradicted tradition, is a younger
sister of " Elizabeth Wetherell." She is the author of a novel in two
volumes, called by the very unromantic name of "Dollars and Cents,"
and of a sprightly and entertaining series of child's books, under the
general title of "Ellen Montgomery's Book Shelf." In the preparation
of this series, some little assistance is understood to have been received
from the older sister, but the main part of the authorship has devolved
upou " Amy."
" Dollars and Cents" appeared in 1852. It was immediately and uni-
versally recognised as having some relationship to the " Wide-Wide-
World" books, though the precise connexion was not known for some time.
The work was by many attributed to " Elizabeth Wetherell" herself, thus
showing striking points of similarity. At the same time, the differences
JQ style were too great to admit of such a supposition being long enter-
tained.
If Amy Lothrop's novel has not the absorbing interest of those with
which it is associated, it yet has high merit and many beauties of its own.
The author has a peculiarly graceful and delicate play of the fancy, not
unlike, and certainly not unequal to that of the lamented Fanny Forrester.
She is moreover a nice observer of character, an intense admirer of the
beauties of external nature, and altogether highly poetical in her tempera-
ment, notwithstanding the prosaic title which she has chosen for her
first pesformance.
Our first quotation is from " Carl Krinken," one of the books from
" Ellen Montgomery's Book Shelf." The other is from " Dollars and
Cents."
(432)
AMY LOTHROP. 4a3
THE STORY OF THE PINE CONE.
" Whew !" said the North wind. — " Whew — r — r — r — r — !"
The fir trees heard him coming, and bowed their tall heads very
gracefully, as if to tell the wind he could not do much with them.
Only some of the little cones who had never blown about a great
deal, felt frightened, and said the wind made their teeth chattel'.
" Do you think we can stay on ?" asked one little cone ; and the
others would have said they did'nt know, but the wind gave the tree
such another shake that their words were lost.
"Whew — r — r — r — r !" said the wind.
And again the fir trees bowed to let him pass, and swayed from
side to side, and the great branches creaked and moaned and
flung themselves about in a desperate kind of way ; but the leaves
played sweet music. It was their fashion whenever the wind blew.
"I think we shall have snow," said the tallest of the fir trees,
looking over the heads of his companions.
" The sky is very clear," remarked a very small and inexperienced
fir, who was so short he could not see much of anything.
"Yes," said the tall one, "so you think; but there is a great
deal of sky besides that which is over our heads ; and I can see
the wind gathering handfuls of snow-clouds which he will fling about
us presently."
"Yes," repeated the tall fii*, with another graceful bend, "I
see them — they are coming."
The evergreens were all sorry to hear this, for nothing depressed
them so much as snow ; the rain they could generally shake off, — at
least if it didn't freeze too hard.
As for the beeches, they said, if that was the case, they must put
off their summer clothes directly. And one little beech, with a
great effort, did succeed in shaking off half a dozen green leaves the
next time the wind came that way.
" You need not hurry yourselves," said the tall fir, — " this is only
55
434 AMY LOTHROP.
an early storm — the winter will not come yet. I can still see the
sun for a few minutes every day."
And that was true. For a few minutes the sun showed himself
above the horizon, and then after making a very small arch in the sky
down he went aa:ain. Then came the lono; afternoon of clear twi-
light ; and the longer night, when the stars threw soft shadows like
a young moon, and looked down to see their bright eyes in the deep
fiord that lay at the foot of the fir trees. * * * *
"How cold you must be up there!" said a little pine who was
nearly as high as the tall fir's lower branches. But the fir did not
hear him, or perhaps did not take notice, for he was looking ofi" at
the fine prospect.
" Yes, it is cold up here," answered one of the fir cones, — " and
windy — and there's a great deal of sameness about it. It's just
snow and rain, and wind and sunshine, and then snow again."
"That's what it is, everywhere," said the wind as he swept by.
" I can't help it," said the cone, "I'm tired of it. I want to
travel, and see the world, and be of some use to society. What can
one do in the top of a fir tree ?"
"Why what can a pine cone do anywhere?" said some of the
beech mast.
" The end of a pine cone's existence is not to be eaten up, how-
ever," retorted the cone sharply. "Neither am I a pine cone —
though people will call me so. We firs hold our heads pretty high,
I can tell you. But I will throw myself into the fiord some day,
and go to sea. I have no doubt I could sail as well as a boat. It
would be a fine thing to discover new islands, and take possession."
"It would be very lonely," said a squirrel Avho was gathering
beech mast.
" Royally so," said the pine cone. " There one would be king
of all the trees."
" The trees never had but one king, and that was a bramble,"
said a reed at the water's edge, who was well versed in history.
"What nonsense you are all talking!" said the tall fir tree, at
length. " My top leaf is at this moment loaded with a snow flake ;
there is something sensible for you to think of."
AMY LOT II RO p. 435
SPRING WEATHER.
What is tliere in some exquisitely fine weather to make one feel
sad ? It was one of those days of which March has a few, that seem
to embody the very quintescence of spring ; the sky of the fairest
and calmest, the grass in the yellow-green transition, the trees
softened with the swelling buds as with the lightest veil of clothing,
and showing green or red as flowers or leaves were to come first. In
sheltered fence-corners or bank-protected hollows, there were tufts
of grass that might have come from the emerald isle itself ; now and
then a tuft of tiny w^hite flowers — quiet, insignificant little things —
that the eye sought and rested upon because it was March and not
June. And even one or two bright-faced dandelions, that had been
waked up by some extraordinary sunbeam, looked at us smilingly
from the wayside. The birds were in a twitter of delight and con-
sultation ; robins and song-sparrows excited each other, and the
phoebe's gentle note of reproof, and the crow's loud " caw" of disdain
as he sat on a cedar and bowed his head mockingly, neither calmed
the spirits nor roused the ire of the warblers — their dignity Avas safe
bound up in enthusiasm. On one bush sat a committee of fifty robins ;
in another, where two sparrows made mysterious darts through the
evergreen foliage, there might be the nucleus of a nest. The scarce
stirring air was as soft and delicious as if it had been laid up all
winter in sachets of satin and sweetness — but bouquet nor patchouli
can approach the unspeakable aroma of early flowers and leaves —
that indefinable perfume which spring compounds for itself. And
yet as we breathed it in — and breaths seemed all too short in such
an atmosphere — the exceeding beauty of everything brought no
exhilaration, but rather sadness. It might be the association with
other spring days when our hearts were lighter — a mind somewhat
out of tone with the season — it might be that the beauty was too
perfect. Perfection of any kind is too near the contrast.
CAROLINE ORNE.
Mrs. Orne has published chiefly through the magazines, in which,
duriog the last twenty years, more than a hundred of her tales have
appeared. These would make, if collected, several large volumes. Her
writings are generally of a practical cast, on subjects of every-day life,
and have been deservedly popular.
Her early childhood was passed in the most retired part of, at that time,
a retired country town, Georgetown, Mass.
Early impressions are seldom effaced, and the first six years of her life
spent amid rural scenes gave a permanent tone and colouring to her mind.
She was educated to love birds and flowers, and the children of the family
were always called to look at a rainbow as an object worthy of peculiar
admiration. One of her dearest pleasures was to watch, with her sister,
the early garden-plants, when they first broke through the dark, rich soil.
But the wild flowers which grew in profusion near the paternal dwelling,
yielded, if possible, a delight still more vivid. Among these, the violets
which gemmed the green and sunny slopes, held pre-eminence. Birds
were still more fondly cherished than flowers, the love bestowed on them,
like themselves, having more vitality. A number of orioles, or, as they
were generally called in that vicinity, golden robins, glancing in and out
of the cloud of snowy or rose-tinted blooms, which covered some old apple-
tree, was a treat that must have been enjoyed with a similar zest, to be
truly appreciated.
Nor were the winter evenings without their pleasures, though books
were scarce, and newspapers almost unknown. Her maternal grand-
mother, who was a member of the family, was an accomplished story-
teller, and she used to listen, spell-bound, to the wild legends, tales of
Indian warfare, or the trials and hardships of the pioneer's domestic life,
which were related in a clear, emphatic manner, that gave to them a charm
and a raciness, which could never have been imparted to a written story.
(436)
CAROLINE ORNE. 437
At a very early age sbe commenced attempting to write her thoughts.
She recollects a manuscript "Picture Book" which was the joint produc-
tion of her sister, her brother, and herself. It was her part of the task
to compose the stories; her sister's, who, for one so young, could very
neatly execute imitation print, to transfer them to the book ; and her bro-
ther's, who, only a short time previous, had attained to the dignity of
jacket and trowsers, to illustrate them wuth appropriate pen-and-ink
devices.
These stories were simple and unpretending, though she was often
ambitious to press into her service, long, sonorous words. The way she
managed this was unique. When in a writing mood, she used to select a
number of words which she considered uncommonly splendid, and each
of these she made a kind of nucleus round which to weave her thoughts,
such as they were. Being always written on a slate, they were speedily
effaced to make room for more.
The reading of Pope's poetical works formed a new and never-to-be-
forgotten era of her life. "While reading the " Rape of the Lock," the
aerial sylphs, and the lovely, mischievous sprites, which form its light and
graceful machinery, seemed constantly hovering round her, while passages
of other poems, such as the three opening lines of "Eloisa to Abelard,"
" In these deep solitudes and awful cells,
Where heavenly, pensive contemplation dwells,
And ever-musing melancholy reigns,"
haunted her with their plaintive melody, as if chanted by spirit-voices
close to her ear.
At the early age of fifteen, necessity compelled her to enter upon the
practical duties of life. In connexion with her sister, she opened a pri-
vate school in Salem, Mass., in the mean time devoting what intervals of
leisure she could obtain in pursuing such studies as would better qualify
her for her task. Among their pupils was the late Mrs. Judson, whom,
for a while, they subsequently employed as an assistant.
The second tale BIrs. Orne ever attempted to write, appeared anony-
mously in the " Ladies' Magazine," published in Boston, and edited by
Mrs. Hale. Subsequently other stories from her pen were published in
different periodicals, all of them anonymously. A very encouraging letter
received from Isaac C. Pray, in consequence of a story which she sent to
the "Pearl and Gralaxy," a paper of which he was one of the editors, sti-
mulated her to devote what leisure she could command to writing, and
from that time her stories were published in her name.
Mrs. Orne's maiden name was Chaplin. She has no middle name,
though it is often printed with the initial " F." This mistake arises from
there being a Miss Caroline F. Orne, a resident of Cambridgeport, who
has many years written for publication, though most of her articles have
been in verse.
She was mostly educated by her mother, and when, for one terra, as a
4.38 CAROLINE ORNE.
kind of finishing, she, with fear and trembling, on account of her supposed
deficiencies, entered a justly celebrated school, she, to her surprise, found
no difiiculty in ranking with the first.
The late Jeremiah Chaplin, D. D. (a cousin to both of her parents),
who was, for several years. President of Waterville College, corrected the
first compositions which she ever wrote, which she thought worthy of
being seen, and the manner in which he pointed out their beauties, as well
as defects, had a lasting and salutary influence.
When about six years old, her father removed from Rowley to Salem,
Mass., where she resided, with a few temporary exceptions, till she was
married. Since her marriage, except the first four years at Meredith-
Bridge, she has resided at Wolf boro', New Hampshire.
DOCTOR PLUMLEY.
The boy who had been sent for Dr. Plumley now returned, and
with a giggle, which his most strenuous efforts could not suppress,
told us that the Doctor was close at hand. He then retreated to
a part of the room where his mistress could not have an eye on
him, and evidently made a violent effort to compose the muscles of
his face. When the Doctor's footsteps were heard in the entry,
he braced his whole person and tightly compressed his lips.
Dr. Plumley, it seems, had recently invented an oil for the hair,
which he imagined would prove exceedingly eflScacious in strength-
ening the roots, and prevent it from falling off. As time had begun
to thin his o\\n locks, he was desirous of personally testing its won-
derful qualities. Having previously settled in his mind the impro-
bability of being called to exert his medical skill, he made so
copious an application of the unguent as completely to saturate his
hair, and then drew on a flannel cap of a pyramidal form to prevent
the too speedy escape of the volatile aromatics, which he imagined
would strengthen, while the oleaginous part mollified. In his haste,
all this escaped his memory, and when, on entering the room, he
removed his hat in his usual quick and smart manner, thereby
revealing his singular headgear, and made a brisk bow to each of
us, the point of his cap nodding in unison, his appearance was so
exquisitely ludicrous that my risibility got the better of my gravity,
and I was obliged hastily to retreat behind Agnes. In the mean
time I stole a glance at the poor boy, who stood convulsed with
suppressed laughter, the tears streaming down his cheeks.
CAROLINE ORNE. 439
" Oh, dear doctor, how glad I am that you've come !" said my
aunt; "though I am sorry you've got the headache," glancing at
his flannel cap.
"I understand," said he, without noticing her remark, "that
you have elongated the ligaments of your ankle joint — that is,
sjirained your ankle."
" Yes, and it pains me so, that I am afraid that the information
will get into it afore morning."
" As it never got into your head, ma'am, there is no great dan-
ger of its getting into your ankle," he replied, winking at Agnes
and me. "Be pleased," continued he, seeing my aunt about to
speak, while he at the same time waved his hand in what he consi-
dered a very graceful and dignified manner, " be pleased, ma'am,
to listen to a few observations which I propose to make. I shall
proceed as systematically with your ankle, ma'am, as if I were
treating a fever. I shall, however, omit the emetic."
"Well, I am master glad o' that, for I took some tatramatic
once, and"
" If you please, ma'am, permit me to proceed without interrup-
tion with my observations, — I was speaking of a fever. Now, in
my estimation, to speak metaphorically, a fever is the very pink
of diseases, and I had rather treat it than any other. However, a
sprained ankle will do to brighten a man's science in lieu of a bet-
ter case. In the first place, ma'am, in accordance with the inva-
riable rules of my practice in all similar cases, I shall apply to the
part injured, a plaster, the several ingredients of which are all
eminently calorific, and which in more simple language may be
called a heater."
" La, doctor, my ankle is as hot as fire coals now, and that is
what makes me afraid of the information."
"But, ma'am, though it were ten times hotter than fire coals, I
assure you, there is a great deal of latent cold, which will be
brought to the surface by means of this calorific plaster, which will
evaporate in the form of perspiration."
" Well, doctor, I suppose what you say is all right, but you do
talk so figurey, that I don't understand more than half you say.
440 CAROLINE ORNE.
Now, as you don't pretend to doctor according to the rules of the
reg'lar faculty, as they call 'em, I don't see the need of your being
so high flown."
" I tell you, ma'am, there is a certain dignity in the profession,
which ought to be supported by a suitable selection of long, sono-
rous words. But your interruption, ma'am, has broken the conca-
tenation of my ideas. Pray, Miss Agnes, do you recollect what I
was speaking of?"
" Perspiration, I believe, sir."
"Ay, ay — that word has restored the concatenation. When
a copious perspiration has ensued, a reaction will be necessary.
To effect this reaction, I shall apply what I call a refrigeratory
plaster — in other words, a cooler. I shall, in the next place, in
order to impart a proper pliancy to the cords, envelop the dis-
eased part of the limb in a cloth completely saturated in a limpid
salve, which I call a grand mollification salve, but which you may,
if you please, term a laxer — the invention of which caused me to
grow pale by the midnight lamp. The laxer must be succeeded by
a double compound astrictory, which you will better understand by
the appellation of bracer, the application of which will complete the
cure, and make your ankle as much stronger than it was before the
accident as it was then stronger than a baby's."
CAROLINE MAY.
Miss Mat, one of the sweetest of our female poets, has written also
some excellent prose, entitled to consideration, besides a goodly amount
of editorial labour. Her largest publication, "The American Female
Poets," in 18-48, contains, in the biographical and critical notices prefixed
to the several extracts, an amount of original matter, suiScient to fill a
considerable volume. These notices are written with much ability, and,
together with the selections, they show a sound judgment, a highly cul-
tivated literary taste, and great freedom and command of language. Miss
May has also edited one or two annuals, and a volume of elegant extracts,
called " Treasured Thoughts," which has been quite a favourite. An essay
on " Handel," which we have had the pleasure of reading in manuscript,
deserves to rank among the very best specimens of biographical criticism.
A single introductory paragraph is quoted. The other extract is from the
<' Female Poets."
Miss May is the daughter of the Kev. Edward Harrison May, who was
for many years pastor of one of the Dutch Eeformed Churches of Xew York,
and who is at present Secretary of the American Seamen's Friend Society.
Her brother, a young artist of fine promise, was one of the chief designers
and painters of the panorama of Pilgrim's Progress, which has been so
deservedly popular. Miss May is a resident of New York.
HANDEL.
Carlyle truly observes, that "great men, taken up in any way,
are profitable company. We cannot look, however imperfectly,
upon a great man, without gaining something from him. He is the
56 (ill)
442 CAROLINE MAY.
living light-fountain which it is so good and pleasant to he near."
Carlyle was thinking of his heroes, — Odin, Mahommed, Dante,
Shakspeare, Cromwell, — when he said this. Whether he would
place Handel among his worshipped great men, matters not ; but
that he would, we have little doubt, for has he not in his own
strange eloquence said, " Who is there, that in logical words can
express the effect music has on us ? A kind of inarticulate un-
fathomable speech, which leads us to the edge of the Infinite, and
lets us for a moment gaze into that?" Surely, they who can
silently understand, if they cannot audibly interpret, this unfathom-
able speech, — who have been led with wonder and admiration to
gaze into Infinity, will look on Handel as on a hero, and rank his
genius side by side with that of Shakspeare and Milton. But
whatever the opinion of others may be, we have always found his
company profitable. Whether listening to his expressive airs, or
reading over his rich full choruses (lamenting, as we read, that a
choir of voices could not spring at once from our grateful and
delighted heart), we have always felt that, to approach Handel
was to approach a living fountain of heaven-born harmony. And
to be near such, is both good and pleasant.
LUCRETIA AND MARGARET DAVIDSON.
It would be wrong, merely for the sake of chronological order,
to separate these sweet sisters, who, though not twins by birth, were
twins in thought, feeling, loveliness, and purity. We will sketch
them together, therefore, while their devoted mother and excellent
father shall stand at their head.
Mrs, Davidson was a daughter of Dr. Burnet Miller, a respect-
able physician in the city of New York, where she was born on the
27th of June, 1787. Her mother was early left a widow, and
removed to Dutchess county, where, at the age of sixteen, this
daughter was married to Dr. Davidson. The greater part of her
married life was spent at Plattsburg (on Lake Champlain), where
CAROLINE MAY. 443
all her children were boi-n, ten in number — eight of whom passed
before her into heaven. She resided in Plattsburg at the time of
the battle, August, 1814. The fearful events of that season, and
her own escapes and adventures, have been narrated by both Mrs.
Davidson and Margaret, in a fictitious garb. She never could
speak of them Avithout great excitement ; and invariably wept at
the sound of martial music. An intimate friend writing of her,
says — "Mrs. Davidson's appearance and manner when talking
enthusiastically, as she always did on a favourite subject, could
never be forgotten. The traces of early beauty Avere still evident
in her large dark eyes and her exquisite complexion ; but the great
charm of her countenance was in its mingled expression of intelli-
gence and sensibility, varying not unfrequently from deep sadness
to a playful vivacity of which you would not at first suppose her
capable." She possessed great elasticity of spirit and vigour of
mind, which were not at all impaired by the constant pain and
suffering she endured. During the last few years of her life, she
resided alternately at New York, Ballston, and Saratoga Springs.
iVt the latter place she died, on the 27th of June, 1844. She had
long been thought a victim to consumption, but the fearful and
agonizing disease which terminated her life was a cancer in the
face. A year before her death, a volume, entitled " Selections from
the Writings of Mrs. Margaret M. Davidson," was published, with
a short preface from her distinguished friend. Miss Sedgwick. Her
poems, however, although they display that tenderness of feeling
and romantic disposition which characterized her so strongly, are
too inferior to her daughter's to be quoted with any advantage.
Dr. Davidson was a man of extensive reading, and possessed a
taste for natural science. His moi'al character, however, more than
his intellectual, renders him worthy of notice. " He was one of
the most guileless and pure-minded men I ever knew," writes the
friend we have before quoted. " He was entirely unpretending in
his manners, and always exhibited a degree of affectionate devoted
ness to his wife, unusual and touching. His piety was simple, con
fiding, and unobtrusive ; and his conduct in every situation unre-
proachable." He died about a year ago.
"444 CAROLINE MAY.
Such were the pai'ents of the inspired poet-children, Lucretia and
Margaret Davidson.
Lucretia Maria was born on the 27th of September, 1808, and
was distinguished almost from her birth by an extraordinary deve-
lopment of the imaginative and sensitive faculties. When she was
four years old she went to the Plattsburg Academy, and was taught
to read, and form letters in sand, after the Lancasterian method.
She began to turn her infant thoughts into measured strains before
she had learned to write ; and devoting herself with tireless atten-
tion to her studies both at home and at school, she soon attained
a wonderful amount of knowledge. It was only in her intel-
lectual character that she was thus premature. In her inno-
cence, simplicity, playfulness, and modesty, she was a perfect child.
Her conscientiousness and dutifulness were remarkably prominent ;
as they were also with Margaret. Her health, always very
feeble, began to decline in 1823, when she was taken from school,
and accompanied her mother on a visit to some relatives in Canada.
While there she finished "Amir Khan," her longest poem, and
began a prose tale, called " The Recluse of the Saranac." It
was about this time that the Hon. IMoss Kent, an early friend
of her mother, became acquainted with Lucretia, and so deeply
interested in her genius, that he resolved, if he could persuade
her parents to resign her to his care, to afford her every advan-
tage for improvement that the country could afford. At his
suggestion, in November, 1824, she was placed under the care of
Mrs. Willard ; in whose seminary at Troy she remained during the
winter. The following spring, she was transferred to a boarding
school at Albany ; but while there her health gave way, and she
was obliged to return home to Plattsburg. The strength of affec-
tion, and the skill of physicians, failed, however, to restore her.
The hand of death alone gave her ease ; and she gently fell asleep
one morning in August, 1825 ; exactly one month before her seven-
teenth birthday. President Morse, of the American Society of
Arts, first published her biography; and soon after, a delightful
memoir from the able pen of Miss Sedgwick spread the name of
Lucretia Davidson far and wide.
CAROLINE MAY. 445
Margaret Miller was born on the 26th of March, 1823. She
was therefore but two years and a half old when Lucretia died ; an
event which made a deep impression on her. Although so young,
she seemed not only to feel her loss, but to understand and appre-
ciate her sister's character and talents ; and from the first dawn-
ing of intellect gave evidence that she possessed the same. "By
the time she was six years old," says her mother, "her language
assumed an elevated tone; and her mind seemed filled with poetic
imagery, blended with veins of religious thought." The sacred writ-
ings were her daily study. Devotional feelings seemed interwoven
with her very existence. A longing after heaven, that her spirit
might be free from the thraldom of earth, was as natural to her, as a
longing for a holiday to be let loose from school is to other child-
ren. Yet she enjoyed most fully the quiet pleasures that sur-
rounded her, and her heart was always swelling with love and gra-
titude. Sometimes, too, the consciousness of genius, — the inward
assurance that she was a poet, — would make her think on what
miglit be, were she to live ; but the restless thoughts of fame were
soon lost again, in happier, calmer hopes of an abiding heaven.
Dear child ! she little knew that so soon both were to be hers—
"an honoured name" on earth, and "a glorious crown" in heaven.
Like all true poets, she had a keen relish for the beauties of nature,
and fed upon them from her infancy. Her earliest home was upon
the banks of the Saranac, commanding a fine view of Lake Cham-
plain, and surrounded by the most romantic and picturesque
scenery ; but wherever she resided, she found something to admire
and love, upon the earth or in the sky.
Margaret was always instructed by her mother, whose poetical
tastes and affectionate disposition made her capable of appreciat-
ing and sympathizing with the warm impulses and aspiring thoughts
of her sweet pupil. The love between this mother and daughter
is a poem of itself. ISTo one can read the memoir of Margaret, by
Washington Irving, without feeling the heart, if not the eyes,
overflow. But the links that bound them to each other on earth
were soon severed ; — for when she was but fifteen years and eight
months old, this gentle girl died at Ballston, Saratoga county, in
446 CAROLINE MAY.
November, 1838. We could not "wish that she should have stayed
longer on earth, an exile from her native heaven ; yet, as we listen
to the soaring strains of her young genius, and are borne upward
by their energy, Ave cannot help wondering what would have been
its thrilling tones and lofty flights, had life unfolded its mysteries
year after year to her poet's eye. But we thank God she was
spared the sight of them ; for though we have lost the songs, she
has missed the sorrow '
JULIA C. R. DORR.
Mrs. Julia Caroline Ripley Dorr was born at Charleston, South
Carolina, February 13th, 1825. Before she was two years old, her mother
died, and her father shortly after removed to New York city, where he
was engaged in mercantile business until 1830, about which time he
relinquished his business there, and removed to the state of Vermont.
She was married, February 22d, 1847, to Seneca M. Dorr, Esq., of
Chatham Four Corners, Columbia county, New York, at which place she
has continued to reside ever since.
She is the only child of William Y. Ripley, and Zulma Caroline Tho-
mas. Mr. Ripley is a native of Middlebury, Vermont, and has been
extensively engaged as commission merchant, both in Charleston and New
York. Miss Thomas was the daughter of Jean Jacques Thomas and Su-
sanna De Lacy. They were natives of France, and resided, after their
marriage, in the island of St. Domingo, from which place they fled to
Charleston, South Carolina, at the time of the insurrection of the slaves
in that island.
Mrs. Dorr commenced writing at an early age, and has written much,
both in poetry and prose. Her publications, however, did not commence
until 1848. Since that time, a large number of her poems has appeared
in the different magazines and annuals. Her first attempt at prose, the
story of " Isabel Leslie," had the singular success of gaining one of the
hundred dollar prizes proposed by Sartain.
This success, brilliant certainly for a first attempt, has given a new
direction, as well as a new impetus to her talents, and she already takes
a higher position as a prose writer, than that previously won as a poet.
The extract which follows is from ''Hillside Cottage," a beautiful story
published in one of the annuals for the present year.
448 JULIA C. R. DORR.
HILLSIDE COTTAGE.
There was no spot in all Elmwood that we children so dearly
loved to visit as Hillside Cottage. No matter where our wander-
ings began — whether we started for the meadow, in pursuit of the
rich strawberry — for the thick woods, where the wild flowers
bloomed so luxuriantly, and the bright scarlet clusters of the par-
tridge-berry, contrasting beautifully with its dark green leaves,
sprang up at our feet — for the brook, to gather the shining pebbles,
or to watch the speckled trout, as they darted swiftly through the
water — no matter where our wanderings began, it was a strange
thing if they did not terminate somewhere about the sweet wild
place where Aunt Mary lived.
Now, prythee, gentle reader, do not picture to your "mind's
eye" a stately mansion with an unpretending name, when you read
of Hillside Cottage. Neither was it a cottage ornee, with piazzas,
and columns, and Venetian blinds. It was a low-roofed dwelling,
and its walls had never been visited by a single touch of the paint-
er's brush : but the wild vines had sprung up around it, until their
interlacing tendrils formed a beautiful network nearly all over the
little building ; and the moss upon the roof had been gathering
there for many years, growing thicker and greener after the snows
of each succeeding winter had rested upon it. It stood, as the name
given it by the villagers indicated, upon the hillside, just in the
edge of the woods that nearly covered the rounded summit of the
hill ; a little rivulet danced along, almost beneath the very win-
dows, and at a short distance below fell over a ledge of rocks,
forming a small but beautiful cascade, then, tired of its gambols, it
flowed onwards as demurely as if it had never leaped gayly in the
sunlight, or frolicked, like a child at play, with every flower that
bent to kiss its bright waters. We thought there was no place
where the birds sang half so sweetly, or where the air was so laden
with fragrance ; and sure am I there was no place where we were
more cordially welcomed than in Aunt Mary's cottage.
JULIA C. R. DORR. 449
I well remember Aunt Mary's first arrival in Elmwood. For
two or three weeks it had been rumoured that the cottage on the
hill was to receive a new tenant. Some slight repairs were going
on, and some one had seen a wagon, loaded with furniture, unladen
at the door. This was enough to excite village curiosity ; and
when we assembled in the church, the next Sabbath, I fear that
more than one eye wandered from the pulpit to the door, to catch
the first glimpse of our ncAV neighbour. Just as our old pastor was
commencing the morning service, a lady, entirely unattended, came
slowly up the aisle, and entered the pew designated by the sexton.
Her tall and graceful figure was robed in deepest black, and it
was evident that grief, rather than years, had dimmed the bright-
ness of her eye, and driven the rich colouring of youth and health
from her cheek. But there was something in the quiet, subdued
glance of those large, thoughtful eyes, in the intellect that seemed
throned upon her lofty forehead, and in the sweet and tender
expression that played around her small and delicately formed
mouth, that more than compensated for the absence of youthful
bloom and freshness. I did not think of these things then ; but,
child that I was, after one glance I shrank back in my seat, awe-
struck and abashed by the dignity of her bearing. Yet when she
rose from her knees, and I caught another glimpse of her pale
face, my little heart seemed drawn towards her by some powerful
spell ; and after service was concluded, as we passed down the aisle
side by side, I timidly placed in her hand a wild rose I had gathered
on my way to church. She took it Avith a smile, and in a sweet
low voice thanked me for the simple gift. Our homes lay in the
same direction, and ere we reached my father's gate I imagined
myself well acquainted with Miss Atherton.
From that hour my visits to Hillside Cottage were neither " few"
nor "far between." My parents laughed at my enthusiastic praises
of my new friend ; but they soon became assured that they were
well grounded : and it was not long before the answer, " Oh, she
has only gone to see Aunt Mary," was the most satisfactory one
that could be given to the oft-repeated query, " Where in the world
Aas Jessie gone now ?"
5t
450 JULIA C. 11. DORR.
She lived almost the life of a recluse ; seldom mingling with the
villagers, save in the services of the sanctuary, or when, like a
ministering angel, she hovered around the couch of the dying.
J^ormed to be an ornament to any circle, and to attract admiration
and attention wherever she moved, she yet shrank from j^ublic
notice, and was rarely seen, except by those who sought her society
in her own little cottage. To those few it was evident that her
love of seclusion was rather the effect of some deep grief, that had
in early life cast its shadow over her pathway, than the constitu-
tional tendency of her mind. Hers was a character singularly
lovely and symmetrical. \Vith a mind strong, clear, and discrimi-
nating, she yet possessed all those finer shades of fancy and feeling,
all that confiding tenderness, all those womanly sympathies, and
all that delicacy and refinement of thought and manner which, in
the opinion of many, can rarely be found in woman, combined with
a high degree of talent. Love of the beautiful and sublime was
with her almost a passion, and conversing with her, when animated
by her favourite theme, was like reading a page of rare poetry, or
gazing upon a series of paintings, the Avork of a well-skilled hand.
Years passed on. The little village of Elmwood had increased
in size, if not in comeliness : the old church had given place to one
of statelier mien and prouder vestments, and the winding lane, with
its primroses and violets, had become a busy street, with tall rows
of brick bordering it on either side. But still the cottage on the
hill remained quiet and peaceful as ever, undisturbed by the changes
that Avere at work beneath it. A silver thread might now and then
be traced amid the abundant raven tresses that were parted on
Aunt Mary's forehead ; and my childish curls had grown darker,
and were arranged with more precision than of yore. Yet still the
friendship of earlier years remained unbroken, and a week seldom
passed without finding me at Hillside Cottage. My visits had of
late been more frequent than ever, for the time was drawing near
when our intimacy must be interrupted. I was soon to leave my
father's roof, for a new home in a f;ir-off clime, and to exchange the
love and tenderness that had ever been lavished upon me there for
a nearer and more encrossino; attachment.
JULIAC. K. DORR. 451
It was the evening before my bridal. I had stolen away unper-
ceived, for I could not resist the temjitation of one more quiet chat
with Aunt Mary.
"I scarcely expected you to-night, my dear Jessie," said she, as
I entered, " but you are none the less welcome. Do you know I am
very selfish to-night ? When I ought to be rejoicing in your happi-
ness, my heart is heavy, because I feel that I can no longer be to
you what I have been, chief friend and confidant. Oh ! I shall
indeed miss my little Jessie."
" You will always be to me just what you have been, Aunt Mary,"
I replied, and tears filled my eyes, as I threw myself upon a low
seat at her feet. " You must not think that because I am a wife,
I shall love my old friends any the less : and you of all others, you
who have been to me as a dear, dear elder sister, — you who have
instructed and counselled me, and have shared all my thoughts and
feelings since I was a little child ; oh ! do you think any one can
come between our hearts ? We may not meet as frequently as we
have done, but you w"ill ever find me just the same, and I shall tell
you all my thoughts, and all my cares and sorrows, and all my
joys too, just as I always have done."
"No, no, Jessie, say not so. That may not be. You may love
me just as well, but you will love another more. Your heart cannot
be open to me as it has been, for it will belong to another. Its
hopes, its fears, its joys, its sorrows, its cares, its love, will all be so
intimately blended with those of another, that they cannot be
separated. No wife, provided the relations existing between her
husband and herself are what they should be, can be to any other
friend exactly what she was before her marriage."
" Why, Aunt Mary ! — you surely do not mean to say that a wife
should never have any confidential friends ?"
" The history of woman, dear Jessie, is generally simply a record
of the workings of her own heart ; in ordinary cases, she has little
else to consider. '.The world of aStsctions is her world,' and there
finds she her appropriate sphere of action. What I mean to say
is, — not that a wife should have no friend save her husband, — but
that, if the hearts of the twain are as closely linked together as they
452 JULIA C. R. DORR.
should be, if tliey always beat in perfect unison, and if their thoughts
and feelings harmonize as they ought to do, it will be difficult for
her to draw aside the veil from her own heart, and lay it open to
the gaze of any other being, without, in some degree, betraying the
confidence reposed in her by him who should be nearer and dearer
than all the world beside. The heart is like a temple, Jessie. It
has its outer and its inner court, and it has also its holy of holies.
The outer court is full. Common acquaintances, — those that we call
friends, merely because they are not enemies, — are gathered there.
The inner court but few may enter, — the few who we feel love us,
and to whom we are united by the strong bonds of sympathy ; but
the sanctum sanctorum, the holy of holies, that must never be pro-
faned by alien footsteps, or by the tread of any, save him to whom
the wife hath said, 'Whither thou goest I will go, thy people shall
be my people, and thy God my God.' "
MARY ELIZABETH MOUAGNE.
Mary Elizabeth Moragne was bora in the year 1815, at Oakwood,
in Abbeville District, South Carolina. At this retired spot she spent the
earlier years of a quiet and uniform life, the deep seclusion of which
served to foster and increase a naturally contemplative and romantic turn
of mind.
Her childhood and youth were characterized by an ardent devotion to
books; and, though she received the benefit of some competent instruction,
she may be said in this way to have become self-educated — having acquired
a knowledge of some of the sciences and of the French language mainly
by her own efforts. Had her reading been less varied, or had she come
more in contact with the world, perhaps very different would have been
her future career; but the balance of her mind was preserved by an
inquisitive search after truth, and her habits and modes of thinking were
kept free from the conventional rules of the so-called fashionable life.
In 1839, soon after the publication of her first eS"ort in novel-writing,
she attached herself to the Presbyterian church at Willington, in which
she had been brought up, under the care of the Rev. Dr. Waddel. She
experienced at the same time a change of views in regard to the propriety
of that branch of literature which she had adopted ; and finally, after a
few more efforts, some of which were never suffered to come before the
world, she yielded to her particular scruples of conscience, and has ever
since resolutely denied herself this favourite pursuit.
In 1842, Dr. Waddel having been removed by infirmity, she was mar-
ried to his successor, the Rev. W. H. Davis, and removed with him the
following year to Mount Carmel, a situation in the vicinity of the same
church, where she has since resided.
Miss Moragne is descended, on the paternal side, from the French
Huguenots who sought religious freedom in this country in 1764. That
(453)
454 j\I A R Y E L I Z A B E T II M 0 R A G N E .
portion of the colony wbich did not remain in Charleston found refuge on
the banks of Little River, in that district, where they formed a township
after the manner of the country which they had left. Her connexion
with, and proximity to this settlement, gave much colouring to the feel-
ings and pursuits of Miss Moragne, and in the introduction to an unfinished
tale once contemplated on this subject, she gives a brief but beautiful
history of this settlement, from the unpublished manuscript of which an
extract is made, at the end of the present notice.
Among these settlers was Pierre Moragne, the grandfather of the sub-
ject of the present notice, who, having lost his wife on the passage round
by Plymouth, returned to Charleston from New Bordeaux, and married
Cecillc Bayle, a beautiful "compagnon-du-voyage." As his letters and
journals testify, he was from his youth addicted to literary pursuits, and
though the wants of a primitive settlement could not have been very
favourable to such inclinations, he is remembered and spoken of as a
character of great eccentricity, on account of having devoted the latter
years of his life to the entire companionship of his pen. His writings
were not appreciated by his immediate descendants ; and of the
many manuscripts which he left, prepared for publication, only a few
remain. These evince considerable elegance of diction, great orthodoxy
of sentiment, and much fervent piety. The youngest of his four sons,
who inherited much of his philosophic and eccentric temperament, was
the father of Miss Moragne. On the other side, the parentage is respect-
able, her maternal grandmother claiming descent from the Randolphs of
Roanoke.
" The British Partisan," her first publication, appeared, as a prize tale,
in the ''Augusta Mirror," in 1838. It was well received, adding greatly
to the extension of the periodical, besides being reprinted in book form.
In 1841, appeared the " Rencontre," a short tale, embracing revolu-
tionary incidents. Of this story, Mr. Thompson, the editor of the
''Augusta Mirror," remarked as follows: — "The 'Rencontre' is of that
class of literary productions which we prize above all other orders of
fiction. Illustrative as it is of our own history, descriptive of our own
peculiar scenery, and abounding in sound reflections and truly elevated
sentiment, we hold it worth volumes of the mawkish romance and sickly
sentimentality which has of late become a merchantable commodity with
a great portion of the literary world."
About this time appeared also some smaller pieces, both in prose and
verse. One of the latter was called " Joseph, a Scripture sketch, in three
parts," comprising more than a thousand lines of blank verse.
Near the close of the year 1841, the editor of the " Augusta Mirror"
says : — " We have received the first part of a tale, entitled " The Wal-
singham Family, or, A Mother's Ambition," by a favourite lady corres-
MARY ELIZABETH MORAGNE. 455
pondent. "We are much pleased with it, and judging from past efforts of
the same pen, do not hesitate to promise our readers a rich treat."
This was a domestic tale of some length, apparently designed to illus-
trate the folly and vanity of a worldly and ambitious mother; but although
the first six chapters were in the hands of the publisher, and the remainder
nearly ready for publication, it was, for the reasons before-mentioned,
entirely withdrawn, notwithstanding the earnest solicitation of the editors
into whose hands it had passed.
THE HUGUENOT TOWN.
Constructed for purposes of personal convenience, by a simple
community, thrown without protection among strangers, in a country
yet almost savage, without money, and with few facilities for build-
ing, this town was not distinguished from the other primitive settle-
ments except by the love of association which it evinced, and the
strong marks of national character which it assumed. The com-
mon interest of safety, not less than old prejudices in favour of
this mode of life, seemed to warrant the propriety of combining
that strength, which, when divided, might not be sufBcient to pro-
tect their lives from the Indian's scalping knife, or their customs
and property from the invasions of the roving, unsettled, and shift-
ing tide of Avhite population. It would hardly be supposed that a
people who had forsaken their own country for the sake of these
hallowed customs, could easily merge them into the rude and reck-
less mass of provincial habits, — every feeling of national love, every
principle of their sacred religion forbade it ; and the formidable
barrier of a foreign tongue, whilst it shut them in from the new
world, guarded the treasure they had so much desired to keep invio-
late. An ignorance of the common methods of agriculture practised
here, as w^ell as strong prejudices in favour of their former habits
of living, prevented them from seizing with avidity on large bodies
of land by individual possession ; but the site of a toAvn being
selected, a lot of four acres was apportioned to every citizen. In
a short time a hundred houses had risen, in a regularly compact
body, in the square of which stood a building supei'ior in size and
construction to the rest, which served the threefold purpose of
456 MARY ELIZABETH MORAGNE.
hotel, cafti house, and "bureau des affaires" for the little self-
incorporated body.
The situation was not chosen with much regard to beauty or
health ; it was in a rich level valley, a few rods from the river,
which they vainly supposed would furnish an easy access by navi-
gation to remote places, particularly to Charleston, where many
of their number remained. The simplicity of this idea is much in
character with the many impracticable views which a new country
suggests, and is not more strange than the belief that a small toAvn-
ship, holding its own regulations and manners, could flourish in the
midst of a wild country, independent of commercial relations ; yet
time alone proved the futility of both. The town was soon busy
with the industry of its tradesmen ; silk and flax were manufac-
tured, whilst the cultivators of the soil were taxed with the supply
of corn and wine. The hum of cheerful voices arose during the
week, mingled with the interdicted songs of praise ; and on the
sabbath the quiet worshippers, assembled in their rustic church,
listened with fervent response to that faithful pastor, who had
been their spiritual leader through perils by sea and land, and
Avho now directed their free, unrestrained devotion to the Lord of
the forest.
Did I say there was no beauty there ? — none but the clear glancing
of the i-ippling stream, and the high arching of the solemn woods
above, wreathing their limbs in fantastic forms against the deep
blue sky, and forming a natural temple, in which each tree stood
up tall and distinct as a polished shaft in the midst. The solemn
Elm, and deep green river Oak were there, sustaining the slender
Larch, and twining their branches through the light-green foliage
of the Maple, which beautifully contrasted the glittering notched
leaves of the fragrant Gum. The woods still wave on in melan-
choly grandeur, with the added glory of near a hundred years ;
but they who once lived and worshipped beneath them — where are
they ? Shades of my ancestors — where ? No crumbling wreck,
no mossy ruin, points the antiquarian research to the place of
their sojourn, or to their last resting-places ! The traces of a
narrow trench, surrounding a square plat of ground, now covered
MARY ELIZABETH MORAGNE. 457
with tlie interlacing arms of hawthorn and wild honeysuckle, arrest
the attention as we are proceeding along a strongly beaten track
in the deep woods, and we are assured that this is the site of the
" old French town," which has given its name to the portion of
country around. After some years, but not till the country was
established in peace, it was gradually abandoned, on account of
the unhealthiness of the situation, and because the narrowness of
its limits obliged the citizens, as they grew rich enough, to move
out upon the hills, to which their familiarity with the usages of the
country had now rendered them less opposed ; and it must be con-
fessed, also, that in the course of the Indian wars, and the scenes
of the revolution which followed, attrition with the more enter-
prising and crafty had worn off so much of their native simplicity
as to admit the passion of avarice, which, by calling them to a
more enlarged sphere, greatly tended to the oblivion of their town,
though more than half a century had passed away before they had
forfeited any of their national characteristics, or admitted any
corruption of their native tongue.
58
MARY ELIZABETH LEE.
Mary Elizabeth Lee was born on the 23d of March, 1813, at
Charleston, which her own writings have contributed something to render
classic ground. Her parents were William and Elizabeth Lee. Her
father practised the profession of the law in early life, and sat for a period
as member of the State Legislature. Her uncle, Judge Thomas Lee,
was, for many years and in several respects, one of the most distinguished
citizens of South Carolina. Several others of her connexions were ar-
dent'y devoted to intellectual cultivation, and thus Mary's lot fell in a
family where every literary tendency was sure to be kindly encouraged
and happily developed.
The extreme susceptibility of her feelings prevented her parents from
placing her at school until after her tenth year. She was then consigned
to the tuition of A. Bolles, Esq., a distinguished teacher of young
ladies in Charleston. Here she availed herself with much diligence
of her advantages, and laid the foundation of a solid and accurate
education.
Genius is seldom destitute of some channel through which to commu-
nicate its inspirations to the world. It so happened, that when about
twenty years had matured the mind of Mary Lee, and had stored it with
a wide range of suggestive acquisitions, a little periodical for youth, edited
by Mrs. Caroline Gilman, had been recently started in Charleston, under
the title of " The Rose Bud," which soon after changed its name to " The
Southern Rose," and aspired to some rank of literary pretension. To the
pages of this publication Miss Lee contributed her earliest productions,
prompted alike by the dictates of generous friendship and of tremulous
ambition.
For a considerable time, the signature attached to her pieces was the
modest and general one, "A Friend." As they increased in merit, inqui-
ries as to the authorship began to be multiplied, and at last her personal
MARY ELIZABETH LEE. 459
relationsliip to thera became so well and favourably known, that she dis-
carded the timid disguise, and adopted ever after as a signature in the
Rose, the initials " M. E. L." In all other publications, T believe, it was
expanded into her full name.
Several brilliant and beautiful effusions now continued to increase her
reputation. Among others, " The Lone Star" was admired by every one,
so that for a long time the authoress herself, when she was mentioned in
her native city, received generally the name of " The Lone Star." " The
Blind Negro Communicant" gave her something of a national fame, and
was copied into religious and other newspapers in every part of the
country.
Miss Lee's incessant aspirations after perfection in every accomplish-
ment, were in nothing more signal than in her studied eiforts to acquire
a correct style of writing. For many years she published no poem before
exhibiting it to the literary friend of her early youth. His criticisms
were always unsparing; each questionable phrase, or halting line, or am-
biguous rhyme, was faithfully pointed out, and surprising often were the
patience, talent, and ingenuity, with which, in availing herself of his
suggestions, she surmounted every difficulty and remedied every defect.
To prose composition she devoted as much attention as to poetical.
Many prefer her writings in the former department, and an edition of
them would no doubt prove alike acceptable to the public and honourable
to her name. Her style is characterized by graceful ease and well chosen
expressions.
About this time she prepared a volume for the Massachusetts School
Library, entitled " Social Evenings, or Historical Tales for Youth." The
publishers have declared it to be one of the most popular and useful on
their list. The style is at once chaste and vivacious, the topics are
selected from a wide range of national histories, indicating a great amount
of reading, the poetical illustrations, chiefly by the writer herself, are
numerous and beautiful, the pathos is genuine, the characters are marked,
and the whole structure of the work exhibits talents of a high order.
Eight evenings are supposed to be occupied by a little youthful circle in
listening to an experienced friend, who reads to them the successive tales.
Each " Evening" is preceded by some animated, descriptive scene, involv-
ing throughout the book a separate narrative thread of affecting interest,
thus serving to vary the attention, to make the necessary transitions from
subject to subject, and to combine the different parts into one harmonious
whole.
In the mean time, her literary labours and successes were advancing in
every direction. As she was desirous of maintaining for herself an honour-
able independence, she supplied continual contributions to several widely
circulated magazines. The journals and annuals for which she wrote
were Graham's Magazine, Godey's Lady's Book, New Orleans Miscellany,
4G0 MARY ELIZABETH LEE.
Philadclpliia Courier, Token, Gem, Gift, Mr. "Whitaker's Journal, South-
ern Literary Messenger, and Orion Magazine.
This gifted young lady died at Charleston, September 23, 1849. la
1851 a volume of her poems was published, with an interesting biogra-
phical memoir by the Rev. Dr. Gilman, from which this brief notice has
been compiled. Her prose writings have never been collected.
EXTRACT FROM A LETTER.
You ask how I have been occupied, and why I have written so
little for the pages of the " Rose." Well, I must tell you. I have
forsworn poetry, and excepting a "Farewell" to it, which I wanted
to make very pathetic, have not written a verse for a long while.
As I tell you, this "Farewell to Poesy" was a thing I designed
should be the last and best, and accordingly one dark wintry after-
noon, I wrapped myself closely in cloak and boa, and slipping away
from the children, who are always in readiness for a walk, I pro-
ceeded to a very lonely and romantic spot at some distance from
Homestead, hoping that in this deep solitude I might strike the
'harp of solemn sound,' so that it should give out music worthy of
so high a theme. But in vain the wind moaned in most doleful
cadence, in vain the waterfall sang its tireless song, in vain the owl
in an adjacent wood croaked ever and anon ; Z could not attune my
spirit aright. My rhymes jingled readily enough, but I could not
win " the spark of heaven to tremble down the wire," and after
being seated for a full hour over a wet log, which produced, as you
may suppose, a most uncommon rheumatism, I was startled by
*****, who came to inquire of my poetical success. "With great
animation I read my several verses, each ending with these em-
phatic lines,
I vow that I no more will be
A captive to sweet poesy ;
which lines, to my surprise, produced at each repetition a most
unrestrained burst of laughter, and were at last set to a most ridi-
culous tune, which was sung during our long walk homeward, with
the most provoking perseverance, till I too was compelled to laugh
at my own hard-earned composition. Now you see I have let you
MARY ELIZABETH LEE. 461
into one of the trials of the scribbling class, and perhaps it may
take away any disposition which you may sometimes feel towards
courting the gentle Muse. I wanted so much to produce that
Farewell, before I " furled my sail, to try no more the unsteady
breath of favour;" and now I am resolved not to give up the ship,
but to hold on, so long as the storm of public opinion does not
beat too hard. Don't you think I had better continue, confining
myself to such innocent, simple subjects, as " Lines to the Owner
of an Album," " Stanzas to E. C," " Sonnet to the Evening Star,"
and so on ? Such lines can do no mischief, you know, to the cause
of poetry.
But I promised to tell what I was doing, and you will be alarmed
to hear, that I am drinking, with great gout, at the fount of philo-
sophy. To be sure, as yet my progress has been but slow, and the
draught not very deep, for I have taken in but parts of Doctor
Adams's Moral Philosophy, and fear to think when I shall be pos-
sessed of the whole. Have you read the work ? Cousin S. thinks
very well of it. If you want a treat in natural philosophy, I can
recommend to your perusal "Euler's Letters," which form two
volumes of that excellent publication, "The Family Library."
The subjects are handled with a clearness and conciseness Avhich
pleased me greatly ; and perhaps like me, and I suspect women in
general, you do not like those huge tomes, that always seem to
smell of poppies, whenever I venture so far as to open them. I
like roast pig when stuffed with raisins and currants, for so I
remember eating it some years ago at a friend's house ; and though
a homely simile, I would compare philosophy with this heavy, sub-
stantial dish, and can truly say I never enjoy it unless well stocked
with some apropos anecdote ; some short flight of fancy ; some
occasionally wild conjecture.
With the word conjecture, Dick's Works are brought to my mind,
and I w^ant you to read them also. I am now busy with his
"Philosophy of Religion," a work Avhich, on account of its being
a little startling, interests me exceedingly. What do you think
of him when I tell you that he says, " it is a pleasing fancy to
suppose that a city lit with gas lights, would present the same
462 MARY ELIZABETH LEE.
appearance to the inhabitants of the moon, "which that satellite's
luminous spots display to us." Don't you think this is but a pleas-
ing fancy, with no reality ? Cousin S. has a first-rate microscope ;
also an excellent telescope, through which "we have been for several
evenings holding pleasant intercourse with Venus and Jupiter.
The queen of beauty smiled on us with a most beaming smile, but
Jupiter, vexed at being spied at, would only show three moons,
and although we put on one power after another, would not show
the fourth, much as we desired it. However, we will take another
peep to-night, and hope to find him better disposed. Don't you
love to look at the stars ? I do. What an idea of happiness a
star conveys ! With such a boundless space to move in ; such an
unmeasured distance before it, and such a long existence to live
through ! A star, with proper study, will furnish abundant food
to the mind, and the heart also. Do you make the evening star
your heart-study as you promised, and does it bring me any nearer
to you every evening ? I hope so, or you have proved a forgetful
friend.
MARY J. WINDLE.
Although distinguished for lier statesmen and warriors, the " diamond
State" of Delaware has produced but few sons or daughters who have
attained to eminence or achieved fame in the literary arena. This is an
anomaly by no means easy of explanation, since there are few portions of
our Union better educated, and no one which appreciates more highly
literary distinction than the upper portion of Delaware.
The young lady, however, whose name stands at the head of this slight
memoir, bids fair to introduce her native State to worthy companionship
in the world of letters with some of her hitherto more highly favoured
sisters.
Mary Jane Windle was born at Wilmington, February 16th, 1825, of
respectable parents, but had the misfortune to lose her father when in
early infancy. Being thus deprived of an affectionate husband, the mother
of Miss Windle, with an interesting and helpless family, was thrown upon
the world, dependent entirely upon her individual exertions for support.
The subject of our sketch early evinced a fondness for letters, and in spite
of ill health and the difficulties of her position, made herself well acquainted
with modern polite literature. Of a romantic, confiding disposition, great
sweetness of temper, and refinement of manner. Miss Windle has attached
to herself " troops of friends," who have watched with interest her pro-
gress in public favour.
Miss Windle's literary career was commenced, as is usually the case in
this country, by contributions to the public press. Her communications,
both prose and poetical, attracted attention at once, and indicated the
author to be one of no common or ordinary mind. As her powers
expanded and became more developed, her writings likewise increased in
variety and beauty of incident, until at length she drew to herself the
favourable notice of a generous publisher, who transferred her talents to
the pages of one of those splendid monthly periodicals which so peculiarly
distinguish the present literature of the country.
(463)
464 MARY J. WINDLE.
Here, among the very elite of our writers, Miss Windle took a promi-
nent stand, and proved herself capable of competing with the best of them.
So marked was the public approbation — so great the desire to possess the
interesting stories which monthly flowed from her graceful pen, that she
was prevailed upon to reprint in book form a selection of her longer
sketches.
The volume appeared during the year 1850, and an edition of several
thousand copies was so soon disposed of, that another and larger edition is
now in press.
Miss Windle's merits as a writer are great and varied. Purity of taste,
much command of language, and fascinating descriptive powers, charac-
terize her productions.
Feminine grace and modesty are likewise leading features; and no one
can lay down even the slightest of her sketches without the full con-
viction that it could only proceed from the pen of a refined and accom-
plished lady.
Though naturally of feeble constitution, and almost a martyr to ill
health. Miss Windle, in attending to literary pursuits, by no means
neglects her duties to that society of which she is at once a member and
an ornament.
Possessed, in addition to her other accomplishments, of fine conversa-
tional ability, she renders her associations not only agreeable, but most
useful ; and it is to be strongly desired, that she may be spared to her
friends long enough to fulfil the promise of a career so brilliantly
commenced.
ALICE HEATH'S INTERVIEW WITH CROMWELL.
At a late hour of the night, two persons were winding their way to
the palace of Whitehall. One was an individual of the male sex,
in whom might have been seen, even through the gloom, a polished
and dignified bearing, which, together with his dress — though of
the Puritanic order — declared him a gentleman of more than ordi-
nary rank. His companion was a delicate woman, evidently like
himself of the most genteel class, but attired in the simplest and
plainest walking costume of the times. She leaned on his arm
with much appearance of womanly trust, although there was an
air of self-confidence in her step, suggesting the idea of one capable
of acting alone on occasion of emergency, and a striking jet per-
fectly feminine dignity presiding over her whole aspect.
"I have counselled your visiting him at this late hour," said
the gentleman, " because, as the only hope lies in striking terror
MARY J. WINDLE. 465
Into his conscience, tlie purpose may be best answered in the soli-
tude and silence of a season like this. Conscience is a coward in
the daylight, but darkness and night generally give her courage
to assert her power."
" True, William," replied Alice Heath (for she it was, and her
companion, as the reader is aware by this time, was her husband),
" true — but alas ! I fear for the success of my visit ; the individual
of whom we are speaking deceives himself no less than others, and
therefore to him she is a coward at all times. Hast thou not read
what my poor dead grandfather's old acquaintance has written about
a man's ' making such a sinner of his conscience as to believe his
own lies ?' "
"I have not forgotten the passage, my Alice, and, ever correct
in your judgment, you have penetrated rightly into the singular
character we are alluding to. I wot it were hard for himself to
say how far he has been actuated by pure, and how far by ambitious
motives, in the hand he has had in the sentence of the king. Never-
theless, you would believe his conscience to be not altogether dead,
had you seen him tremble and grow pale yesterday in the Court,
during the reading of the warrant (which, by the way, he had
worded and written with his own hands), when Charles Stuart raised
his eyes and looked upon him as if to imply that he knew him for
the instigator, and no unselfish one, either, of his doom. The
emotion he then testified, it was, which led me to hope he may yet
be operated upon to prevent the fatal judgment from taking effect.
It is true, Charles is a traitor, and I cannot regret that, in being
arraigned and tried, an example has been made of him. But
having from the first anticipated this result, except for your father,
Alice, I would have had no part in the matter, being entirely
opposed to the shedding of his blood. All ends which his death
can accomplish have already been answered ; and I devoutly pray
that the effort your gentle heart is now about to make for the
saving of his life, may be blessed in procuring that merciful
result."
At this moment they paused before the magnificent structure,
known as the Palace of Whitehall, and applied for admission.
59
4G6 MARY J. WINDLE.
Vacated some time since by the king, it was now occupied by his
rival in power, the aspiring Cromwell ; and although the hour was
so late, the vast pile was still illuminated. Having gained speedy
access to the main building, the visiters were admitted by a servant
in the gorgeous livery of the fallen monarch. Heath requested to
be shown to an ante-room, while Alice solicited to be conducted
without previous announcement to the presence of his master.
After a moment's hesitation on the part of the servant, which,
however, was quickly overcome by her persuasive manner, he con-
ducted her through various spacious halls, and up numerous flights
of stairs, till, pausing suddenly before the door of a chamber, he
knocked gently. As they waited for an answer, the accents of
prayer were distinctly audible. They were desired to enter ; the
servant threw open the door, simply announcing a lady. Alice
entered, and found herself alone with Cromwell.
The apartment was an ante-room attached to the spacious bed-
chamber formerly belonging to the king. It was luxuriously fur-
nished with all the appliances of ease and elegance suitable to a
royal withdrawing room. Tables and chairs of rose-wood, richly
inlaid with ivory and mother-of-pearl, were arranged in order
around the room ; magnificent vases of porcelain decorated the
mantel-piece ; statues from the chisel of Michael Angclo stood in
the niches ; and pictures in gorgeous fi'ames hung upon the walls.
There, near a table, on which burned a single-shaded lamp,
standing upright, in the attitude of prayer, from which he had
just been interrupted, stood the occupant. For an instant, as she
lingered near the door, and looked upon his figure, which bore so
strongly the impress of power, and felt that on his word hung the
fate of him for whom she had come to plead, she already feared
for the success of her mission, and would fain almost have retracted
her visit. But remembering the accents of prayer she had heard
while waiting without, she considered that her purposed appeal
was to the conscience of one whom she had just surprised, as it
were, in the presence of his Maker, and took courage to advance.
'' May I pray thee to approach and be seated, madam, and
unfold the object of this visit?" said Cromwell, in a thick, rapid
MARY J. WINDLE. 457
utterance, the result of his surprise, as he waved his visiter to a
chair, " At that distance, and by this light, I can hardly dis-
tinguish the features of the lady who so inopportunely and uncere-
moniously honours me with her presence."
Immediately advancing, she threw back her hood, and offering
him her hand, said, "It is Alice Heath, the daughter of your
friend. General Lisle."
Cromwell's rugged countenance expressed the utmost surprise,
as he awkwardly strove to assume a courtesy foreign to his man-
ner, and exchange his first ungracious greeting for something of a
more cordial welcome.
With exceeding tact, Alice hastened to relieve his embarrass-
ment, by falling back into the chair he had offered, and at once
declaring the purpose of her visit.
"General Cromwell," she began, in a voice sweetly distinct,
"you stand high in the eyes of man, not only as a patriot, but a
strict and conscientious servant of the Most High. As such, you
have been the main instrument in procuring the doom now hanging
in awful expectation over the head of him who once tenanted, in
the same splendour that now surrounds yourself, the building in
which I find you. Methinks his vacation of these princely pre-
mises, and your succession thereunto, renders you scarcely capable
of being a disinterested advocate for his death — since, by it, you
become successor to all the pomp and power formerly his. Have
you asked yourself the question whether no motives of self-ag-
grandizement have tainted this deed of patriotism, or sullied this
act of religion ?"
"Your language is unwarrantable and unbecoming, madam,"
said Cromwell, deadly pale and trembling violently; "it is
written — "
"Excuse me," said Alice, interrupting him ; "you think it un-
courteous and even impertinent that I should intrude upon you with
a question such as I but now addressed to you. But, General
Cromwell, a human life is at stake, and that the life of no ordinary
being, but the descendant of a race of kings. Nay, hear me out,
fair, I beg of you. Charles Stuart is about to die an awful and a
468 MARY J. WINDLE.
violent death ; your voice has condemned him — your voice can yet
save him. If it be your country's weal that you desire, that object
has been already sufficiently answered by the example of his trial ;
or, if it is to further the cause of the Lord of Hosts that you place
yourself at the head of Britain in his place, be assured that he who
would assert his power by surrounding himself with a pomp like
this, is no delegate of One who commissioned Moses to lead his
people through the wilderness, a sharer in the common lot, and a
houseless wanderer like themselves. Bethink you, therefore, what
must be the doom of him, who — for the sake of ambition and pride
— in order that he might for the brief space of his life enjoy luxury
and power — under the borrowed name, too, of that God who views
the act with horror and detestation — stains his hands with parri-
cidal blood. Yes, General Cromwell, for thy own soul's, if not for
mercy's sake, I entreat thee, in whom alone lies the power, to cause
Charles Stuart's sentence to be remitted."
After a few moments' hesitation, during which Alice looked in
his face with the deepest anxiety, and awaited his answer, he said,
" Go to, young woman, who presumest to interfere between a judge
raised up for the redemption of England, and a traitor king, Avhom
the Lord hath permitted to be condemned to the axe. As my soul
liveth, and as He liveth, who will one day make me a ruler in Israel,
thou hast more than the vanity of thy sex, in hoping by thy foolish
speech to move me to lift up my hand against the decree of the
Almighty. Truly — "
"Nay, General Cromwell," said Alice, interrupting him, as soon
as she perceived he was about to enter into one of his lengthy and
pointless harangues, " nay, you evade the matter both with me and
with the conscience whose workings I have for the last few moments
beheld in the disorder of your frame. Have its pleadings^for to
them I look and not to any eloquence of mine own — been of no
avail ? Will it please you to do aught for the king ?"
'•Young lady," replied Cromwell, bursting into tears, which he-
was occasionally wont to do, "a man like mo, who is called to per-
form great acts in Israel, had need to be immovable to feelings of
human charities Think you not it is painful to our mortal sym-
MARY J. WINDLE. 469
pathies to bo called upon to execute the righteous judgments of
Heaven, while ^\e are yet in the body ! And think you ■vvhen
we must remove some prime tyrant that the instruments of his
removal can at all times view their part in his punishment with
unshaken nerves ? Must they not even at times doubt the inspira-
tion imder which they have felt and acted ? Must they not occa-
sionally question the origin of that strong impulse which appears
the inward answer to prayer for direction under heavenly difEcuI-
ties, and, in their disturbed apprehensions, confuse even the re-
sponses of truth with the strong delusions of Satan ? "Would that
the Lord would harden my heart even as he hardened that of — "
" Stop, sir," said Alice, again interrupting him ere his softened
mood should have passed away, "utter not such a sacrilegious
wish. Why are the kindly sympathies which you describe implanted
in your bosom, unless it be to prevent your ambition from stifling
your humanity ? The rather encourage them, and save Charles
Stuart. Let your mind dwell upon the many traits of nobleness
in his character which might be mentioned with enthusiasm, ay,
and with sorrow, too, that they should be thus sacrificed."
" The Most nigh, young woman, will have no fainters in spirit
in his service — none who turn back from Mount Gilead for fear of
the Amalekites. To be brief — it waxes late ; to discuss this topic
longer is but to distress us both. Charles Stuart must die — the
mouth of the Lord hath spoken it."
As he spoke, he bowed with a determined but respectful reve-
rence, and when he lifted up his head, the expression of his fea-
tures told Alice that the doom of the king was irrevocably fixed.
"I see there is no hope," said she, with a deep sigh, as Crom-
well spoke these words in a tone of decision which left her no fur-
ther encouragement, and with a brevity so unusual to him. Nor
-^•as his hint to close the interview lost upon her. "iSlohopel"
she repeated, drawing back. " I leave you, then, inexorable man
of iron, and may you not thus plead in vain for mercy at the bar
of God !"
So saying, she turned and rejoined her husband, who remained
in waiting for her : they returned together to Lisle's house.
FANNY FERN.
We would bo glad to give the true name of this authoress. But she
prefers still to maintain her incognita, and a proper deference to the obli-
gations of courtesy (which are as binding in literary as in social life)
forbids our doing what would otherwise be an equal gratification to our
readers and ourselves. With regard to the personal history of Fanny
Fern, we feel a similar restraint. We shall, therefore, only touch, and
that lightly, upon such points as, under the circumstances, may be referred
to without the slightest violation of propriety.
Not many years since, Fanny Fern was living — no matter where — in
affluence. No home need be more lovely, no family more happy, than was
hers. Ample wealth, devoted love, cultivated intellect, refined taste, and
a fervid religious spirit, combined to make that home whatever could be
desired on earth, and excited the respect and admiration of all admitted to
the happy circle. But suddenly a bolt fell. Death came. The husband
and father was smitten down. The widowed mother and the half-orphan
children were left to fight the battle of life alone. Adversity succeeded
adversity. Poverty followed in the dismal train, and illness and want had
the afflicted family at their mercy. The mother struggled on as best she
could ; but we all know how hard it is for a lady to find employmeui;
which will enable her to obtain a livelihood even for herself, much less for
a family of children. The female teacher generally receives only a meagre
salary ; the copyist pursues an uncertain calling; the seamstress can at best
earn but a miserable pittance. And so, at last, after bitter years, the
widowed mother, from sheer desperation, took to her pen ; and another
and a bright star was added to our literary galaxy.
Fanny Fern's first article was written and published in July, 1851.
It was immediately copied far and wide. Each succeeding piece met with
similar favour; until most of the newspapers of this country, and many
British periodicals, were regulai'ly enriched with her articles. But while
(470)
FANNY FERN. 471
she was tlius furnishing amusement and instruction to the public, she was
not receiving an adequate reward. Whenever a woman is obliged to go
out into the world and earn her own living, she has to undergo trials and
difficulties of which a man can perhaps form no just idea. A delicate,
sensitive lady cannot, for instance, call at newspaper offices to solicit
employment, or to offer an article for sale, without being exposed to annoy-
ances which to her are painful, but which a man might not observe. A
refined lady can ill brook the inquiring gaze and impertinent stare of
hangers-on; nor can she bargain for a proper remuneration, nor "call
again," and again, and again, if need be, in foul as well as fair weather.
And then, it is often assumed that a woman should be paid less for her
labour than a man for his, though hers be equally valuable ; and it is only
after she has acquired a commanding reputation that she can ordinarily
obtain a just equivalent for her productions. And thus, for many months,
the compensation which Fanny Fern received for her writings was not
at all commensurate with their value. For articles which were worth
fifty dollars, and which would have commanded that sum, had she known
better how to sell them, she often received but a tenth of that amount;
and during this time, her income was far from being sufficient to maintain
herself and children comfortably. But with unyielding perseverance, and
with her trust in God unshaken, she worked on, until she triumphed over
all obstacles, earned a name of which she may well be proud, secured
an ample fortune, and won the increased respect and love of those who
know her best. It is, perhaps, needless to remark, that she now com-
mands the highest prices paid to writers in this country.
In examining Fanny Fern's writings, even the earliest of them, one
is struck with the evidence they exhibit that the writer understands her
own powers perfectly ; or rather, that she knows positively that she can
do certain things better than thfy have ever been done before. Though
this is unquestionably the case, still, she doubtless often achieves more
brilliant triumphs than she anticipated ; in other words, she is probably
often surprised at the excellence of her own articles. She never makes a
mistake, because she never attempts what she cannot successfully achieve.
This fact has been manifested throughout her literary career. At first,
her articles were mere paragraphs, and contained generally only one
clearly-pronounced and admirably-developed idea. No words were wasted.
The idea, or fact, or principle, sought to be presented, was distinctly stated,
and clearly worked up in every attractive and telling phrase possible (as
Beethoven worked up the theme of a symphony) ; and then the article
was brought to an immediate but artistic conclusion. With practice, her
confidence seemed to increase, and she struck out into bolder paths.
Having tried and proved the strength of her pinions, she took loftier
flights and continued longer on the wing. Relieved of pecuniary embar-
rassments, and surrounded once more with the comforts of life, she wrote
472 FANNY FERN.
with greater freedom, and certainly gave to her articles a polish which
some of her earlier pieces did not possess. Her latest productions are
models of style and composition.
Fanny Fern's first volume, ^^ Fern Leaves," First Series, was pub-
lished June 4th, 1853; the second, '^Little Ferns for Fanny's Little
Friends," was issued Docemher 5th, 1853, and the third, the " Second
Series of Fern Leaves," May 25th, 1854. The sales of these works, up
to June 1st, 1854, were, in this country, as follows :
First Series Fern Leaves, . . . 70,000
Little Ferns for Fanmjs Little Friends, 32,000
Second Series Fern Leaves, . . . 30,000
Total sale in this country, . . . 132,000
Sales in Great Britain :
First Series Fern Leaves, . . . 29,000
Little Ferns for Fanny' s Little Friends, 19,000
Total sale in Great Britain, . . 48,000
Total sale in Great Britain and America, 180,000
This, we think, is one of the most extraordinary instances of literary
success on record ; and, we believe, it is thus generally considered. Various
attempts have been made to account for such unprecedented popularity.
In a recent review of the Second Series of Fern Leaves, the Boston Post,
in referring to this subject, says : " Fanny Fern's success has not been
owing to any extraneous or adventitious helps. No influence in high
places has been exerted in her favour. Nor has her success been owing
to any unusual amount of advertising or newspaper commendation. Her
books would have sold largely had there never been a line written in their
praise ; and her writings will continue to be read and admired, should all
the critics open their batteries against them."
The same writer, in an article written with great ability and discrimina-
tion, gives the following as his idea of the reasons of her success. He
says : " Fanny Fern is not a legitimate author. She is a literary acci-
dent— a most happy one, certainly; but still an accident. She never
intended to make authorship the business of her life ; she underwent no
preparatory training for the profession. She was simply an accomplished
lady, of indisputable genius, possessing a mind of that subtle, acute,
active, observing character, which penetrates and apprehends all things,
and an imagination and graphic power that < give to airy nothing a local
habitation and a name.' Superadded to these qualities of mind, she had
a warm, sympathetic, loving heart, a brilliant wit, a deeply religious nature,
au irrepressible love of fan, and a most thoroughly independent, demo-
FANNY FERN. 47.3
cratic, and '76-y spirit. Such a being, licr mind enriched with varied
life-experience, and her spirit deepened and chastened by affliction,
suddenly finds it necessary to do something to earn bread for herself and
her children. She takes to her pen. Her mind and heart are full —
overflowing. She has no lack of strong emotions, of brilliant, glowing
thoughts, of exquisite fancies j and she lets them flow and sparkle as they
will. She writes from the very depths of her being, not caring how she
writes. And this she can safely do. It is not necessary for her to plan.
Her constructiveness is so large and active that her articles, as they grow,
take form naturally, like a flower. Then she is always true to nature.
She is real. There is nothing artificial about her. Her writings are based
on fact — experience; it is a true woman's life, finding expression in litera-
ture. They abound in pungent, healthful satire, sparkling wit, and irre-
sistible humour; but they also display varied knowledge of common
every-day life and homely afi"airs, strong common sense, and an unwavering
adhesion to the right and true. Her sympathies are broad and generous.
She always takes the weak side — by instinct she takes it. She is severe
on bullies and stands up for the oppressed. She wakes people up ; she
sets them in a rage ; she electrifies them with her wit ; she subdues them
with her pathos. She exhibits the courage, independence, and manliness
of a man, and, at the same time, she is so gentle and feminine, she
exhibits such perfect refinement and delicacy, such maternal benignity,
such an appreciation of the sorrows and ' little ways' of children, whom
she evidently loves with an intimate and winning tenderness, that she
draws all hearts after her. Her English is often splendid, and she some-
times exhibits a felicity of adjectives truly Homeric. Her observation is
so keen, her memory so tenacious, and her imagination so vivid, that she
seems to have her eye on the things she describes, and makes them flash
on the reader's mind like a vision; and her illustrative and illuminating
powers are so great, her sentences are rendered as clear as sunlight. Her
diction flows murmuringly on, like a crystal stream ; her ideas shining
out, like pearls, from its transparent depths. These are some of the
reasons of Fanny Fern's success."
The literary critic of the New Yorh Tribune — also very high authority
— comments as follows upon this extraordinary success : " The secret of
Fanny Fern's literary triumph, we take to be her fidelity to nature, and
her sympathy with the most universal tastes. She has none of the airs
of professional authorship — does not become starched and prim at the sight
of pen and ink — and has hit on one great art of good writing, to make it
as much like the free talk of the writer, as the nature of the subject
allows. Her style is free from all bookishness — all hard traces of weary
study — and flows on as easily and blithely as the song of vernal birds.
At the same time, it shows an alert and observing spirit, a flexile fancy,
and a love of fun, which she could not curb if she would, and would not
60
474 FANNY FERX.
if she could. Her taste for satire is indeed tempered by warm womanly
sympathies — otherwise it might be mischievous — but now, though she cuts
and thrusts with nimble alacrity, she leaves no venom in the wound, which
she has made less in malice than in sport. With her perennial mirth, she
blends a genuine sense of the pathetic, and often relieves her brilliant
flashes of humour with a sudden burst of sympathy. Her tendencies are
progressive, and truly democratic. Her heart is with the people, and warms
to homely joys and sorrows. A generous scorn of baseness and injustice
often gives point to her sarcasm ; while her love of truth and beauty leads
her to detect all the elements of goodness in common, every-day life. She
always takes the side of the weak and oppressed, as by an unerring instinct.
Her fancy, it is true, often runs riot, — she overlays her pictures with blood-
red tints — and seldom resists the temptation to an audacious extravagance j
but she never forgets the heavenly ' quality of mercy,' nor lays aside her
tenderness toward the weak, or her sympathy with every form of suffering.
Such traits give Fanny Fern her popularity with the great mass of
readers. They seek for what is natural, and warm, and impulsive, and
humane, and of this they never fail in her writings."
Harper's Magazine — that leviathan of literature — also has the follow-
ing on the same subject: "The temple of fame is not to be taken by
storm, but must be approached by steep and winding ways. A desperate
rush is apt to defeat itself. But Fanny Fern doubtless forms an excep-
tion to this rule. The favour with which her writings have been received
— almost unprecedented both in this country and in England — has a legi-
timate cause. She dips her pen in her heart, and writes out her own
feelings and fancies. She is no imitator, no dealer in second-hand wares.
Her inspiration comes from nature, not from books. She dares to be ori-
ginal. She has no fear of critics or of the public before her eyes. She
conquers a peace with them by sheer force of audacity. Often verging on
the bounds of wholesome conventionalities, she still shows a true and
kindly nature — she has always the sympathy with suffering which marks
the genuine woman — and her most petulent and frolicsome moods are
softened by a perennial vein of tender humaneness. Fanny Fern is a
poetess, though she avoids the use of rhyme. With all her sense of the
ludicrous, she knows how to seize the poetical aspects of life, and these
are rendered in picturesque and melodious phrase, which lacks nothing
but rhythm to be true poetry. Her rapid transitions from fun to pathos
are very effective. Her pictures of domestic life, in its multiform rela-
tions, are so faithful to nature, as to excite alternate smiles and tears.
We regard her extraordinary success as a good omen. She has won her
way unmistakably to the hearts of the people ; and this wo interpret as a
triumph of natural feeling. It shows that the day for stilted rhetoric,
scholastic refinements, and big dictionary words, the parade, pomp, and
pageantry of literature, is declining; and that the writer who is cave
FANNY FERN. 475
enough to build on universal human sympathies, is sure of the most grate-
ful reward in unaffected popular appreciation."
Fanny Fern's past success, and her constant, natural, and healthy im-
provement up to the present time, warrant us in predicting for her a still
more brilliant future. We think she possesses all the necessary elements
of a great novelist. Her narrative and descriptive powers are of the
highest order; her wit and humor are of the most brilliant and irresistible
quality; her religious faith, her sympathy with the poor and weak, her
intuitive insight into human character, and her subtle perceptions of the
inmost workings of the soul, are certainly greater than those of most of
the successful novelists of the age; while her constructiveness, as the
Boston Post says, "is so large and active that her articles, as they grow,
take form naturally, like a flower." Now, should these qualities be brought
to bear upon the writing of a continuous story, we think the result would
be the production of a book, which in artistic merit would far surpass any-
thing this author has yet written, and exceed in popularity all her other
works. What direction Fanny Fern's genius will hereafter take, is
probably only known to herself; but the public await the developments
of her future literary career with deep interest and hopeful anticipations.
476 FANNY FERN.
THE AGED MINISTER VOTED A DISMISSION.
Your minister is " sui^erannuated," is lie? Well, call a parish
meeting, and vote liirn a dismission ; liint that his usefulness is gone ;
that he is given to repetition ; that he puts his hearers to sleep.
Turn him adrift, like a blind horse, or a lame house-dog. Never
mind that he has grown gray in your thankless service — that he
has smiled upon your infants at the baptismal font, given them
lovingly away in marriage to their heart's chosen, and wept with
you Avhen Death's shadow darkened your door. Never mind that
he has laid aside his pen, and listened many a time, and oft, with
courteous grace to your tedious, prosy conversations, when his
moments were like gold dust ; never mind that he has patiently and
uncomplainingly accepted at your hands, the smallest pittance that
would sustain life, because "the Master" whispered in his ear, " Tarry
here till I come." Never mind that the wife of his youth, whom he
won from a home of luxury, is broken down with privation and
fatigue, and your thousand unnecessary demands upon her strength,
patience, and time. Never mind that his children, at an early oge,
were exiled from the parsonage roof, because there was not " bread
enough and to spare," in their father's house. Never mind that
his library consists only of a Bible, a Concordance, and a Diction-
ary ; and that to the luxury of a religious nevrspaper, he has been
long years a stranger. Never mind that his wardrobe would be
spurned by many a mechanic in our cities ; never mind that he has
" risen eaidy and sat up late," and tilled the ground with weary
limbs, for earthly "manna," while his glorious intellect lay in
fetters — -for you. Never mind all that ; call a parish meeting, and
vote him "superannuated." Don't spare him the starting tear of
sensibility, or the flush of wounded pride, by delicately ofiering to
settle a colleague, that your aged pastor may rest on his staff in
grateful, gray-haired independence. No ! turn the old patriarch
out ; give him time to go to the moss-grown churchyard, and say
farewell to his unconscious dead, and then give " the right hand of
FANNY FERN. 4T7
fello^YsIlip" to some beardless, pedantic, noisy college boy, who will
save your sexton the trouble of pounding the pulpit cushions ; and
who will tell you and the Almighty, in his prayers, all the political
news of the week.
THE FASHIONABLE PREACHER.
Do you call tliis a church ? Well, I heard a prima-donna here a
few nights ago : and bright eyes sparkled, and waving ringlets kept
time to moving fans ; and opera glasses and ogling, and fashion and
folly reigned for the nonce triumphant. / can't forget it ; I can't
get up any devotion here, under these latticed balconies, with their
fashionable freight. If it were a good old country church, with a
cracked bell and unhewn rafters, a pine pulpit, with the honest sun
staring in through the windows, a pitch-pipe in the gallery, and a
few hob-nailed rustics scattered round in the micushioned seats, I
should feel all right ; but my soul is in fetters here ; it won't soar —
its wings are earth-clipped. Things are all too fine ! Nobody can
come in at that door, whose hat and coat and bonnet are not
fashionably cut. The poor man (minus a Sunday suit) might lean
on his staff, in the porch, a long while, before he'd dare venture in,
to pick up Ms crumb of the Bread of Life. But, thank God, the un-
spoken prayer of penitence may wing its way to the Eternal Throne,
though our mocking church spires point only with aristocratic fngers
to the rich mans heaven.
— That hymn was beautifully read ; there's poetry in the preacher's
soul. Now he takes his seat by the reading-desk ; now he crosses
the platform, and offers his hymn-book to a female who has just
entered. What right has he to know there is a woman in the
house ? 'Tis n't clerical ! Let the bonnets find their own hymns.
Well, I take a listening attitude, and try to believe I am in
church. I hear a great many original, a great many startling
things said. I see the gauntlet thrown at the dear old orthodox
sentiments which I nm-sed in with my mother's milk, and which
413 FANNY FERN.
(please God) I'll cling to till I die. I see the polished blade of
satire glittering in the air, followed by curious, eager, youthful
eyes, which gladly seethe searching " Sword of the Spirit" parried.
Meaning glances, smothered smiles and approving nods folloAV the
witty clerical sally. The orator pauses to mark the effect, and his
face says, That stroke tells ! and so it did, for " the Athenians" are
not all dead, who "love to see and hear some new thing." But he
has another arrow in his quiver. Now his features soften — his
voice is low and thrilling, his imagery beautiful and touching. He
speaks of human love ; he touches skilfully a chord to which evei'y
heart vibrates ; and stern manhood is struggling with his tears, ere
his smiles are chased away.
Oh, there's intellect there — there's poetry there — there's genius
there ; but I remember Gethsemane — I forget not Calvary ! I
know the "rocks were rent," and the "heavens darkened," and
"the stone rolled away;" and a cold chill strikes to my heart when
I hear "Jesus of Nazareth" lightly mentioned.
Oh, what are intellect, and poetry, and genius, when with Jewish
voice they cry, '•'■ Aivay ivitli Him !"
With "Mary," let me "bathe his feet with my tears, and wipe
them with the hairs of my head."
And so, I " went away sorrowful," that this human pi'eacher, with
such great intellectual possessions, should yet " lack the one thing
needful.'''
FATHER TAYLOR, THE SAILOR'S PREACHER.
You have never heard Father Taylor, the Boston Seaman's
preacher ? Well — you should go down to his church some Sunday.
It is not at the court end of the town. The urchins in the neigh-
bourhood are guiltless of shoes or bonnets. You will see quite a
sprinkling of " Police" at the corners. Green Erin, too, is well
represented : with a dash of Africa — checked off with " dough faces."
Let us go into the church : there are no stained-glass windows —
FANNY FERN. 479
no richly draperied pulpit — no luxurious seats to suggest a nap to
your sleepy conscience. No odour of patchouli, or nonpareil, or
bouquet de violet will be wafted aci'oss your patrician nose. Your
satin and broadcloth will fail to procure you the highest seat in
the synagogue, — they being properly reserved for the "old salts."
Here they come ! one after another, with horny palms and
bronzed faces. It stirs my blood, like the sound of a trumpet, to
see them. The seas they have crossed ! the surging billows they
have breasted ! the lonely, dismal, Aveary nights they have kept
watch ! — the harpies in port who have assailed their generous
sympathies ! the sullen plash of the sheeted dead, in its vast ocean
sepulchre ! — what stirring thoughts and emotions do their weather-
beaten faces call into play ! God bless the sailor ! — Here they come ;
sure of a welcome — conscious that they are no intruders on aristo-
cratic landsmen's soil — sure that each added face will send a thrill
of pleasure to the heart of the good old man, w^ho folds them all, as
one family, to his patriarchal bosom.
There he is ! How reverently he drops on his knee, and utters
that silent prayer. Now he is on his feet. With a quick motion
he adjusts his spectacles, and says to the tardy tar doubtful of a
berth, "Room here, brother !" pointing to a seat iyi the pulpit.
Jack don't know about that ! He can climb the rigging when
Boreas whistles his fiercest blast ; he can swing into the long boat
with a stout heart, when creaking timbers are parting beneath him :
but to mount the p)ulpit ! — Jack doubts his qualifications, and
blushes through his mask of bronze. "Room enough, brother !"
again reassures him ; and, Avith a little extra fumbling at his tar-
paulin, and hitching at his waistband, he is soon as much at home
as though he were on his vessel's deck.
The hymn is read with a heart-tone. There is no mistaking either
the poet's meaning or the reader's devotion. And now, if you
have a "scientific musical ear," (which, thank heaven, I have not,)
you may criticise the singing, while I am not ashamed of the tears
that steal down my face, as I mark the effect of good Old Hundred
480 FANNY FERN.
(minus trills and flourishes) on Neptune's honest, hearty, whole-
souled sons.
The text is announced. There follows no arrangement of dickeys,
or bracelets, or eye-glasses. You forget your ledger and the
fashions, the last prima donna, and that your neighbour is not one
of the " upper ten," as you fix your eye on that good old man, and
are swept away from worldly moorings by the flowing tide of his
simple, earnest eloquence. You marvel that these uttered truths
of his, never struck your thoughtless mind before. My pen fails to
convey to you the play of expression on that earnest face — those
emphatic gestures — the starting tear or the thrilling voice ; but they
all tell on "Jack."
And now an infant is presented for baptism. The pastor takes
it on one arm. 0, surely he is himself a father, else it would not
be poised so gently. Now he holds it up, that all may view its
dimpled beautj^, and says: "Is thei^e one here who doubts, should
this child die to-day, its right among the blessed ?"■ One murmured,
spontaneous No ! bursts from Jack's lips, as the baj^tismal drops
lave its sinless temples. Lovingly the little lamb is folded, with a
kiss and a blessing, to the heart of the earthly shepherd, ere the
maternal arms receive it.
Jack looks on and weeps ! And how can he help weeping ?
He was once as pure as that blessed innocent ! His mother — the
sod now covers her — often invoked heaven's blessing on 7ie7' son ;
and well he remembers the touch of her gentle hand and the sound
of her loving voice, as she murmured the imploring prayer for him :
and how has her sailor boy redeemed his youthful promise ? He
dashes away his scalding tears with his horny palm; but, please
God, that Sabbath, that scene, shall be a talisman upon which
memory shall inefiaceably inscribe,
"Go, and sin no more."
FANNY FEKN. 4S1
THE BABY'S COMPLAINT.
Now, I suppose you think, because you never see mc do any-
thing but feed and sleep, that I have a very nice time of it. Let
me tell you that you are mistaken, and that I am tormented half to
death, although I never say anything about it. How should you
like every morning to have your nose washed up, instead of doivn ?
How should you like to have a pin put through your dress into your
skin, and have to bear it all day till your clothes were taken off at
night ? How should you like to be held so near the fire that your
eyes were half scorched out of your head, while your nurse was
reading a novel? How should you like to have a great fly light on
your nose, and not know how to take aim at him, with your little, fat,
useless fingers ? How should you like to be left alone in the room
to take a nap, and have a great pussy jump into your cradle, and
sit stai'ing at you with her great green eyes, till you were all of a
tremble ? How should you like to reach out your hand for the pretty
bright candle, and find out that it was away across the room, instead
of close by ? How should you like to tire yourself out crawling way
across the carpet, to pick up a pretty button or pin, and have it
snatched away as soon as you begin to enjoy it ? I tell you it is
enough to ruin any baby's temper. How should you like to have
your mamma stay at a party till you were as hungry as a little cub,
and be left to the mercy of a nurse, who trotted you up and down
till every bone in your body ached ? How should you like, when
your mamma dressed you up all pretty to take the nice, fresh air,
to spend the afternoon with your nurse in some smoky kitchen,
while she gossipped with one of her cronies? How should you like
to submit to have your toes tickled by all the little children who
insisted upon "seeing the baby's feet?" How should you like to
have a dreadful pain under your apron, and have everybody call
you " a little cross thing," when you couldn't speak to tell what
was the matter with you ? How should you like to crawl to the
61
4S2 FANNY FERN.
top stair (just to look about a little), and pitch lieels over head from
the top to the bottom ?
Oh, I can tell you it is no joke to be a baby ! Such a thinking
as we keep up ; and if we try to find out anything, we are sure to
get our brains knocked out in the attempt. It is very trying to a
sensible baby, who is in a hurry to know everything, and can't wait
to grow up.
''MILK FOR BABES.
Once in a while I have a way of thinking ! — and to-day it struck
me that children should have a minister of their own. Yes, a child's
minister! For amid the "strong meat" for older disciples, the
"milk for babes" spoken of by the infant, loving Saviour, seems to
be, strangely enough, forgotten.
Yes, I remember the "Sabbath Schools;" and God bless and
prosper them — as far as they go. But — there's your little Charles
— he says to you on Saturday night, " Mother, what day is it to-
morrow?" "Sunday, my pet." "Oh, I'm so sorry, I'm so tired
Sundays."
Poor Charley ! he goes to church because he is bid — and often
when he gets there, has the most uncomfortable seat in the pew —
used as a sort of human drudge, to fill up some triangular corner.
From one year's end to another, he hears nothing from that pulpit
he can understand. It is all Greek and Latin to him, those big
words, and rhetorical flourishes, and theological nuts, thrown out
for " wisdom-teeth" to crack. So he counts the buttons on his
jacket, and the bows on his mother's bonnet, and he wonders how
the feathers in that lady's hat before him can be higher than the
pulpit or the minister (for he can't see either.) And then he
wonders, if the chandelier should fall, if he couldn't have one of
those spai'kling glass drops — and then he Avonders if Betty will give,
the baby his humming top to play with before he gets home — and
whether his mother will have apple dumplings for dinner ? And
FANNY FERN. 483
then he explores his Sunday pocket for the absent string and marble,
and then his little toes get so fidgety that he can't stand it, and he
says out loud, "hi — ho — hum!" and then he gets a very red ear
from his father, for disturbing his comfortable nap in particular, and
the rest of the congregation generally.
Yes, I'd have a church for children, if I could only find a minister
"who kneiv enough to preach to them ! You needn't smile ! It needs
a very long head to talk to a child. It is much easier to talk to
older people whose brains are so cobivebbed with " isms" and " ele-
gies," that you can make them lose themselves when they get
troublesome ; but that straight-forward, childish, far-reaching ques-
tion ! and the next — and the next ! That clear, penetrating, search-
ing, yet innocent and trusting eye ! How will you meet them ?
You'll be astonished to find how often you'll be cornered by that
little child — how many difiiculties he will raise, that will require all
your keenest wits to clear away. Oh, you must get off your cleri-
cal stilts, and drop your metaphors and musty folios, and call every-
thing by its right name when you talk to children.
Yes, I repeat it. Children should have a minister. Not a
gentleman in a stiff neck-cloth and black coat, who says solemnly,
in a sepulchral voice (once a year on his parochial visit,) —
" S-a-m-u-e-1 — my — boy — how — do — you — do?" but a genial, warm-
hearted, loving, spiritual father, who is neither wiser, nor greater,
nor better than he who took little children in his arms and said,
" Of such is the kingidom of heaven."
UNCLE JOLLY.
" Well, I declare ! here it is New Year's morning again, and
cold as Greenland, too," said Uncle Jolly, as he poked his cotton
night-cap out of bed ; " frost an inch thick on the windows, water
all frozen in the pitcher, and I an old bachelor. Heigho ! nobody
484 FANNY FERN.
to give any presents to — no little feet to come patting up to my bed
to wish me ' A happy New Year.' Miserable piece of business !
Wonder what ever became of that sister of mine who ran off with
that poor artist ? Wish she'd turn up somewhere with two or three
children for me to love and pet. Heigh-ho ! It's a miserable piece
of business to be an old bachelor."
And Uncle Jolly broke the ice in the basin Avith his frost-nipped
fingers, and buttoned his dressing-gown tightly to his chin ; then he
went down stairs, swallowed a cup of coffee, an egg, and a slice of
toast. Then he buttoned his surtout snugly up over them, and went
out the front door into the street. :
Such a crowd as there was buying New Year's presents. The
toy-shops were filled with grandpas and grandmas, and aunts and
uncles, and cousins. As to the shopkeepers, what with telling
prices, answering forty questions in a minute, and doing up parcels,
they were as crazy as a bachelor tending a crying baby.
Uncle Jolly slipped along over the icy pavements, and finally
halted in front of Tim Nonesuch's toy shop. You should have seen
his show windows ! Beautiful English dolls at five dollars a-piece,
dressed like Queen Vic's babies, with such plump little shoulders
and arms that one longed to pinch 'em ; and tea sets, and dinner
sets, cunning enough for a fairy to keep house with. Then, there
were dancing Jacks, and jumping Jenny's, and "Topsys," and
" Uncle Toms" as black as the chimney back, with wool made of a
ravelled black stocking. Then, there were little work-boxes with
gold thimbles and bodkins, and scissors in crimson velvet cases, and
snakes that squirmed so naturally as to make you hop up on the
table to get out of the way, and little innocent-looking boxes con-
taining a little spry mouse, that jumped into 3'our face as soon as
you raised the lid, and music boxes to place under your pillows Avhen
you had drank too strong a cup of green tea, and vinaigrettes that
you could hold to your nose to keep you from fainting when you
saw a dandy. Oh ! I can tell you that Mr. Nonesuch understood
keeping a toy shop ; there were plenty of carriages always in front
FANNY FERN. 485
of it, plenty of taper fingers pnlling over his wares, and plenty of
husbands and fathers who returned thanks that New Year's didn't
come every day !
"Don't stay here, dear Susy, if it makes you cry," said the
elder of two little girls ; "I thought you said it would make you
happy to come out and look at the New Year's presents, though we
couln't have any."
" I did think so," said Susy ; "but it makes me think of last
New Year's, when you and I lay cuddled together in our little bed,
and papa came creeping up in his slippers, thinking Ave were asleep,
and laid our presents on the table, and then kissed us both, and
said, ' God bless the little darlings !' Oh ! Katy — all the little
girls in that shop have their papa's with them. I want MY papa,"
and little Susy laid her head on Katy's shoulder, and sobbed as if
her heart was breaking.
"Don't, dear Susy," said Katy, wiping away her own tears with
her little pinafore ; " don't cry — mamma will see how red your eyes
are, — poor, sick, tired mamma, — don't cry, Susy."
" Oh, Katy, I can't help it. See that tall man with the black
whiskers (don't he look like papa ?) kissing that little girl. Oh !
Katy," and Susy's tears flowed afresh.
Uncle Jolly couldn't stand it any longer ; — he rushed into the
toy shop, bought an armful of playthings helter-skelter, and ran
after the two little girls.
" Here, Susy ! here, Katy !" said he, " here are some New Y'ear's
presents from Uncle Jolly."
"Who is Uncle Jolly?"
" Well, he's uncle to all the poor little children who have no kind
papa.
"Now, where do you live, little pigeons? — got far to go? — toes
all out your shoes here in January ? Don't like it, — my toes ain't
out my shoes ; — come in here, and let's see if we can find anything
to cover them. There, now (fitting them both to a pair), that's
something like ; it will puzzle Jack Frost to find your toes now.
Cotton clothes on ? / don't wear cotton clothes ; — come in here
486 FANNY FERN.
and get some woollen shawls. Which do you like best, red, green,
or blue ? — plaids or stripes, hey ?
" ' Mother won't like it ?' Don't talk to me ; — mothers don't
generally scratch people's eyes out for being kind to their little
ones. I'll take care of that, little puss. Uncle Jolly's going home
with you. ' How do I know whether you have got any dinner or
not?' Tve got a dinner — you shall have a dinner, too. Pity if I
can't have my own way — New Year's day, too.
" That your home ? p-h-e-w ! I don't know about trusting my
old bones up those rickety stairs, — old bones are hard to mend ; did
you know that ?"
Little Susy opened the door, and Uncle Jolly walked in, — their
mamma turned her head, then with one wild cry of joy threw her
arms about his neck, while Susy and Katy stood in the doorway,
uncertain whether to laugh or cry.
"Come here, come here," said Uncle Jolly ; "I didn't know I
was so near the truth this morning Avhen I called myself your Uncle
Jolly ; I didn't know what made my heart leap so when I saw you
there in the street. Come here, I say ; don't you ever shed another
tear; — you see I don't," — and Jolly tried to smile, as he drew his
coat sleeve across his eyes.
Was'nt that a merry New Year's night in Uncle Jolly's little
parlour ? Wasn't the fire warm and bright ? Were not the tea
cakes nice ? Didn't Uncle Jolly make them eat till he had tight-
ened their apron strings ? Were their toes ever out of their shoes
again ? Did they wear cotton shawls in January ? Did cruel land-
lords ever again make their mamma tremble and cry ?
In the midst of all this plenty, did they forget " papa ?" No, no !
Whenever little Susy met in the street a tall, princely man with
large black whiskers, she'd look at Katy and nod her little curly
head sorrowfully, as much as to say — " Oh, Katy, I never — never
can forget w?/ own dear papa."
FANNY FERN. 487
THANKSGIVING STORY.
" Mary !" said the younger of two little girls, as they nestled
under a coarse coverlid, one cold night in December, " tell me about
Thanksgiving-day before papa went to heaven, I'm cold and hungry,
and I can't go to sleep ; — I want something nice to think about."
"Hush !" said the elder child, "don't let dear mamma hear you ;
come nearer to me;" — and they laid their cheeks together.
" I fancy papa was rich. We lived in a very nice house. I
know there were pretty pictures on the wall ; and there were nice
velvet chairs, and the carpet was thick and soft, like the green moss-
patches in the wood ; — and we had pretty gold-fish on the side-table,
and Tony, my black nurse, used to feed them. And papa ! — you
can't remember papa, Letty, — he was tall and grand, like a prince,
and when he smiled he made me think of angels. He brought me
toys and sweetmeats, and carried me out to the stable, and set me
on Eomeo's live back, and laughed because I was afraid ! And I
used to Avatch to see him come up the street, and then run to the
door to jump in his arms; — he was a dear kind papa," said the
child, in a faltering voice.
" Don't cry," said the little one ; " please tell me some more."
"Well, Thanksgiving-day we were so happy; we sat around such
a large table, with so many people, — aunts and uncles and cousins,
— I can't think why they never come to see us now, Letty, — and
Betty made such sweet pies, and we had a big — big turkey ; and
papa would have me sit next to him, and gave me the wish-bone,
and all the plums out of his pudding ; and after dinner he would
take me in his lap, and tell me 'Red Riding Hood,' and call me
'pet,' and 'bird,' and 'fairy.' 0, Letty, I can't tell any more; I
believe I'm going to cry."
"I'm very cold," said Letty. "Does papa know, up in heaven,
that we are poor and hungry now ?"
" Yes — no — I can't tell," answered Mary, wiping away her tears j
488 FANNY FERN.
unable to reconcile lier ideas of heaven with such a thought. " Hush !
— mamma will hear !"
Mamma had " heard." The coarse garment, upon which she had
toiled since sunrise, dropped from her hands, and tears were forcing
themselves, thick and fast, through her closed eyelids. The simple
recital found but too sad an echo in that widowed heart.
ALICE CAREY.
Miss Alice Carey is a native of Mt. Healthy, Hamilton county, Ohio,
and is descended from a New England family, her father having emigrated
from Vermont at the period of the first settlement of the country near
Cincinnati. Her first appearance in print was as the writer of occasional
poems in the neighbouring journals; and one of her earliest effusions was
the song commencing
"Among the beautiful pictures
Which hang in Memory's hall,"
which Edgar A. Poe pronounced the finest from the genius of any American
woman. Miss Carey subsequently wrote a series of prose sketches and
essays in the National Era, under the signature of " Patty Lee," and
having previously (in 1848), in connexion with her sister, Miss Phoebe
Carey, published in Philadelphia a volume of " Poems," she brought out
her first prose work in New York, in 1851, under the title of " Clovernook,
or Eecollections of our Neighbourhood in the West." The success of this
was immediate and very great, both in this country, and in England, where
several editions appeared in rapid succession, and in Germany and France,
■where it was published in translations. J. G. Whittier, in a review of the
book said, "These sketches bear the true stamp of genius — simple, natural,
truthful — and evince a keen sense of the humour and pathos of the comedy
and tragedy of life in the country. No one who has ever read it can for-
get the sad and beautiful story of Mary Wildermings ; its weird fancy,
tenderness, and beauty; its touching description of the emotions of a sick
and sufi"ering human spirit, and its exquisite rural pictures. The moral
tone of Alice Carey's writings is unobjectionable always." Similar
opinions were expressed by Fitz Greene Halleck, and many other dis-
62 (489)
490 ALICE CAREY.
tinguished critics; and the Westminster Review declared the author su-
perior to any other female writer in America.
Miss Carey's next work, published a few months afterward, was "Ilagar,
a Story of To-Day." It was written to counteract what the author supposed
to be the sceptical tendencies of several recent novels, for the most part
by women, and its ethical purpose prevented the freedom in the dramatic
management of the story which might have made it more popular and
effective as a work of art ; yet it unquestionably possessed great merits in
the delineation of character, the exhibition of manners, and moral analysis.
In 1852 she published "Lyra, and other Poems;" in 1853 a second series
of " Clovernook," which has been even more popular than the first ; and in
1854, at Boston, a new collection of "Poems," including one of several
thousand lines, entitled " The Tlascalan Maiden, a Romance of the Golden
Age of Tezcuco." She has also published a new novel in the National
Era, under the title of "Hollywood."
In " Clovernook," her principal and best known work, Miss Carey
attempted to describe the frequent American phenomenon of a village
suddenly growing up in the wilderness, and the advance of its humble
society until the scene becomes to some degree one of intelligence, refine-
ment, and fashion. Her characters are remarkable, considering their
variety, for fidelity to nature, and her sentiments are marked by womanly
delicacy, humanity, and reverence for religion, while over all is the charm
of a powerful imagination, with frequent manifestations of the most quiet
and delicious humoui*.
ALICE CAREY. 491
MRS. HILL AND MRS. TROOST.
It was just two o'clock of one of the warmest of the July after-
noons. Mrs, Hill had her dinner all over, had put on her clean
cap and apron, and was sitting on the north porch, making an
unbleached cotton shirt for ]\Ir. Peter Hill, who always wore un-
bleached shirts at harvest time. Mrs. Hill was a thrifty housewife.
She had been pursuing this economical avocation for some little
time, interrupting herself only at times to ^^ shu !" away the flocks
of half-grown chickens that came noisily about the door for the
crumbs from the table-cloth, when the sudden shutting down of
a great blue cotton umbrella caused her to drop her work, and
exclaim —
" Well, now, Mrs. Troost ! who would have thought you ever
would come to see me !"
"Why, I have thought a gi'eat many times I would come," said
the visiter, stamping her little feet — for she was a little woman —
briskly on the blue flag stones, and then dusting them nicely with
lier white cambric handkerchief, before venturing on the snowy
floor of Mrs. Hill. And, shaking hands, she added, " It Jias been
a good while, for I remember when I was here last I had my Jane
with me — quite a baby then, if you mind — and she is three years
old now."
"Is it possible ?" said Mrs. Hill, untying the bonnet strings of
her neighbour, who sighed, as she continued, " Yes, she was three
along in February ;" and she sighed again, more heavily than
before, though there was no earthly reason that I know of why she
should sigh, unless perhaps the flight of time, thus brought to mind,
suggested the transitory nature of human things.
Mrs. Hill laid the bonnet of Mrs. Troost on her " spare bed,"
and covered it with a little, pale-blue crape shawl, kept especially
for like occasions ; and, taking from the drawer of the bureau a
large fan of turkey feathers, she presented it to her guest, saying,
" A very warm day, isn't it ?"
492 ALICE CAREY.
"Oh, dreadful, dreadful; it seems as hot as a bake oven; and
I suiFer with the heat all summer, more or less. But it's a world
of suffering;" and Mrs. Troost half closed her eyes, as if to shut
out the terrible reality.
" Ilay-making requires sunshiny weather, you know ; so we must
put up with it," said Mrs. Hill; "besides, I can mostly find some
cool place about the house ; I keep my sewing here on the porch,
and, as I bake my bread or cook my dinner, manage to catch it up
sometimes, and so keep from getting overheated ; and then, too, I
get a good many stitches taken in the course of the day."
" This is a nice, cool place — completely curtained with vines,"
said Mrs. Troost ; and she sighed again ; " they must have cost
you a great deal of pains."
" Oh, no — no trouble at all ; morning-glories grow themselves ;
they only require to be planted. I Avill save seed for you this fall,
and next summer you can have your porch as shady as mine."
"And if I do, it would not signify," said Mrs. Troost; "I
never get time to sit down from one week's end to another ;
besides, I never had any luck with vines ; some folks haven't, you
know."
Mrs. Hill was a woman of a short, plethoric habit ; one that
might be supposed to move about with little agility, and to find
excessive warmth rather inconvenient ; but she was of a happy,
cheerful temperament ; and when it rained she tucked up her
skirts, put on thick shoes, and waddled about the same as ever,
saying to herself, "This will make the grass grow," or "it will
bring on the radishes," or something else equally consolatory.
Mrs. Troost, on the contrary, was a little thin woman, who
looked as though she might move about nimbly at any season :
but, as she herself often said, she was a poor unfortunate creature,
and pitied herself a great deal, as she was in justice bound to do,
for nobody else cared, she said, how much she had to bear.
They were near neighbours — these good Avomen — but their social
interchanges of tea-drinking were not of very frequent occurrence,
for sometimes Mrs. Troost had nothing to wear like other folks ;
ALICE CAREY. 4^
sometimes it was too hot, and sometimes it was too cold ; and then
again, nobody Avanted to see her, and she was sure she didn't want
to go where she w^asn't w^anted. Moreover, she had such a great
barn of a house as no other woman ever had to take care of. Eut
in all the neighbourhood it was called the big house, so Mrs. Troost
was in some measure compensated for the pains it cost her. It
was, however, as she said, a barn of a place, with half the rooms
unfurnished, partly because they had no use for them, and partly
because they were unable to get furniture. So it stood right in
the sun, with no shutters, and no trees about it, and Mrs. Troost
said she didn't suppose it ever would have. She was always
opposed to building it, but she never had her way about anything.
Nevertheless, some people said Mr. Troost had taken the dimen-
sions of his house with his wife's apron strings — but that may have
been slander.
While INIrs. Troost sat sighing over things in general, Mrs. Hill
sewed on the last button, and shaking the loose threads from the
completed garment, held it up a moment to take a satisfactory
view, as it Avere, and folded it away.
"Well, did you ever!" said Mrs. Troost; "you have made half
a shirt, and I have got nothing at all done. My hands sweat so I
can't use the needle, and it's no use to try."
" Lay down your work for a little while, and we will Avalk in the
garden."
So Mrs. Hill threw a towel over her head, and taking a little tin
basin in her hand, the two went to the garden — Mrs. Troost under
the shelter of the blue umbrella, which she said was so heavy that
it was worse than nothing. Beans, radishes, raspberries, and cur-
rants, besides many other things, were there in profusion, and Mrs.
Troost said everything flourished for Mrs. Hill, while her garden
was all choked up with weeds. " And you have bees, too — don't
they sting the children, and give you a great deal of trouble ?
Along in May, I guess it was, Troost (Mrs. Troost always called
her husband so) bought a hive, or rather he traded a calf for one —
494 ALICE CAREY.
a nice, likelj calf, too, it -was — and they never did us one bit of
good" — and the unhappy woman sighed. .
"They do say," said Mrs. Hill, sympathizingly, "that bees
won't work for some folks ; in case their king dies they are very
likely to quarrel, and not do well ; but we have never had any ill
luck with ours ; and we last year sold forty dollars worth of honey,
besides having all we wanted for our own use. Did yours die off,
or what, Mrs. Troost?"
"Why," said the ill-natured visiter, "my oldest boy got stung
one day, and, being angry, upset the hive, and I never found it out
for two or three days ; and, sending Troost to put it wp in its place,
there was not a bee to be found high or low."
" You don't tell ! the obstinate little creatures ! but they must
be treated kindly, and I have heard of their going off for less
things."
The basin was by this time filled with currants, and they returned
to the house. Mrs. Hill, seating herself on the sill of the kitchen
door, began to prepare her fruit for tea, while ]Mrs. Troost drew her
chair near, saying, " Did you ever hear about "VYilliam M'Micken's
bees?"
Mrs. Hill had never heard, and expressing an anxiety to do so,
was told the following story :
" His wife, you know, was she that was Sally May, and it's an
old saying — .,^
' To change the name and not the letter,
You marry for worse, and not for better.'
" Sally was a dressy, extravagant girl ; she had her bonnet
' done up' twice a year always, and there was no end to her frocks
and ribbons and fine things. Her mother indulged her in every-
thing ; she used to say Sally deserved all she got ; that she was
worth her weight in gold. She used to go everywhere, Sally did.
There was no big meeting that she was not at, and no quilting that
she didn't help to get up. All the girls went to her for the
ALICE CAREY. 495
fashions, for slie was a good deal in town at lier Aunt Ilanncr's,
and always brought out the new patterns. She used to have her
sleeves a little bigger than anybody else, you renaember, and then
she wore great stiffners in them — la, me ! there was no end to her
extravagance.
" She had a changeable silk, yellow and blue, made with a sur-
plus front ; and when she wore that, the ground wasn't good enough
for her to walk on, so some folks used to say ; but I never thought
Sally was a bit proud or lifted up ; and if anybody was sick, there
was no better-hearted creature than she ; and then, she was always
good-natured as the day was long, and would sing all the time at
her work. I remember, along before she was married, she used to
sing one song a great deal, beginning
' I've got a sweetheart with bright black eyes ;'
and they said she meant William M'Micken by that, and that she
might not get him after all — for a good many thought they would
never make a match, their dispositions were so contrary. "William
was of a dreadful quiet turn, and a great home body ; and as for
being rich, he had nothing to brag of, though he was high larnt,
and followed the river as dark sometimes."
Mrs. Hill had by this time prepared her currants, and Mrs.
Troost paused from her story while she filled the kettle, and
attached the towel to the end of the well-sweep, where it waved as
a signal for Peter to come to supper.
" Now, just move your chair a leetle nearer the kitchen door, if
you please," said Mrs. Hill, "and I can make up my biscuit, and
hear you, too."
Meantime, coming to the door with some bread-crumbs in her
hand, she began scattering them on the ground, and calling,
"Biddy, biddy, biddy — chicky, chicky, chicky" — hearing which,
a whole flock of poultry was about her in a minute ; and stooping
down, she secured one of the fattest, which, an hour afterwards,
was broiled for supper.
" Dear me, how easily you do get along !" said Mrs. Troost.
496 ALICE CAREY.
And it was some time before she could compose herself suffi-
ciently to take up the thread of her story. At length, however,
she began with — ■
"Well, as I was saying, nobody thought William M'Micken
would marry Sally May. Poor man, they say he is not like him-
self any more. He may get a dozen wives, but he'll never get
another Sally. A good wife she made him, for all she was such a
wild girl.
" The old man May w^as opposed to the marriage, and threatened
to turn Sally, his own daughter, out of house and home ; but she
was headstrong, and would marry whom she pleased ; and so she did,
though she never got a stitch of new clothes, nor one thing to keep
house with. No ; not one single thing did her father give her,
when she went away, but a hive of bees. He was right down ugly,
and called her Mrs. M'Micken whenever he spoke to her after she
was married ; but Sally didn't seem to mind it, and took just as
good care of the bees as though they were worth a thousand dollars.
Every day in winter she used to feed them — maple-sugar, if she
had it; and if not, a little Muscovade in a saucer or some old
broken dish.
" But it happened one day that a bee stung her on the hand —
the right one, I think it w^as, — and Sally said right away that it
was a bad sign ; and that very night she dreamed that she went
out to feed her bees, and a piece of black crape was tied on the
hive. She felt that it was a token of death, and told her husband
so, and she told me and Mrs. Hanks. No, I won't be sure she told
Mrs. Hanks, but Mrs. Hanks got to hear it some way."
"Well," said Mrs. Hill, wiping the tears away with her apron,
"I really didn't know, till now, that poor Mrs. M'Micken was
dead."
" Oh, she is not dead," answered Mrs. Troost, "but as well as
she ever was, only she feels that she is not long for this world."
The painful interest of her story, however, had kept her from
work, so the afternoon passed without her having accomplished
much — she never could work when she went visiting.
ALICE CAREY. 497
Meantime Mrs. Hill had prepared a delightful supper, without
seeming to give herself the least trouble. Peter came precisely at
the right moment, and, as he drew a pail of water, removed the
towel from the well-sweep, easily and naturally, thus saving his
wife the trouble,
" Troost would never have thought of it," said his wife; and
she finished with an " Ah, well !" as though her tribulations would
be over before long.
As she partook of the delicious honey, she was reminded of her
own upset hive, and the crisp-red radishes brought thoughts of the
weedy garden at home ; so that, on the whole, her visit, she said,
made her perfectly wretched, and she should have no heart for a
week ; nor did the little basket of extra nice fruit, which Mrs. Hill
presented her as she was about to take leave, heighten her spirits
in the least. Her great heavy umbrella, she said, was burden
enough for her.
"But Peter will take you in the carriage," insisted Mrs. Hill.
"No," said Mrs. Troost, as though charity were offered her;
"it will be more trouble to get in and out than to walk" — and so
she trudged home, saying, " Some folks are born to be lucky."
63
FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY.
(the "widow bedott.'")
Frances Miriam Berry was born Nov. 1, 1812, at Wbitesboro, a vil-
lage of central New York lying near tbe banks of the Mohawk, and there
spent the greater portion of her life. In her veins flowed the mingled
blood of the English and Scotch races. Perhaps from the first, which was
on the maternal side, she inherited the wonderful humorous talent — from
the other, the rectitude of purpose and strong veneration — that marked her
character.
One of the first indications of her remarkable intellect was a strong
memory, which was displayed, to the delighted admiration of her family
circle, in remembering poetry. When only two years old — yet ignorant
of A B C — she is said to have repeated accurately Wordsworth's exquisite
ballad of " We are Seven ;" and, when a little older, that equally touching
poem of Montgomei-y's, " The Vigil of St. Mark."
A few years later, she began making rhymes herself; seizing upon some
trifling domestic scenes, whethi^i serious or amusing, as subjects; dictating,
before learning to use a pen, to some older member of the family. Some
of these childish productions are still preserved. She also showed a decided
taste for drawing, was intensely interested in fine pictures, and seemed to
have an intuitive perception of what was correct in the art. Her sense of
the ridiculous was so strong as to prompt her to indulge in caricature, a
propensity that afterwards exposed her to the censures of unappreciating
and dull-minded people. Her first attempt to draw, when she was about
five years old, was inspired by the strikingly ugly visage of a neighbour, a
man of excessively polished exterior, a gentleman of the old school, whose
efi'orts to win the confidence of the interesting child only served to terrify
and repel her.
Seeing him one day absorbed in a newspaper, she mounted a chair, at a
high writing-desk, and " drew his likeness." In the midst of her artistic
labours, he laid aside bis paper, and, observing her occupation, walked to
C498)
FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY. 499
the desk, inquiring, with a profound bow, '' What are you doing, my little
dear ? Writing a letter to your sweetheart ?" Such a question completed
her disgust and alarm ; she caught up her unfinished production, and ran
to another apartment.
In a letter written towards the close of her life, she thus alludes to this
feature of her childhood.
" You possess the happy faculty of drawing all hearts at once to you ;
but I, unfortunately, do not. And I will tell you what I believe to be the
secret of it : I received, at my birth, the undesirable gift of a remarkably
strong sense of the ridiculous. I can scarcely remember the time when the
neighbours were not afraid that I would 'make fun of them.' For indulg-
ing in this propensity, I was scolded at home, and wept over and prayed
with, by certain well-meaning old maids in the neighbourhood ; but all to
no purpose. The only reward of their labours was frequently their like-
nesses drawn in charcoal and pinned to the corners of their shawls, with,
perhaps, a descriptive verse below. Of course I had not many friends, even
among my own playmates. And yet, at the bottom of all this deviltry,
there was a warm, affectionate heart. If any were really kind to me, how I
loved them !"
Her school education was more varied than beneficial. Her first teacher
was a sour-faced woman, who knocked the alphabet with her thimble into the
heads of a little group of unruly children, at so much " a quarter," with
small love, and no just appreciation of the dawning minds under her care.
Her experience under the sway of this woman was thoroughly delightful
compared with the ordeal which she next underwent. Being transferred,
after a few months, to the village academy, placed under a man's tuition
and the care of older playmates, it was thought that she would learn faster
and be more safe than among children of her own age.
Woe worth the day to the little creature ! The pedagogue was a stern,
cruel, vindictive man, who literally whipped knowledge into his pupils'
noddles, and in his hands the rod and ferule were never idle. In this
school, before she had completed her sixth year, Miriam passed some mise-
rable months. The little ones, indeed, were whipped with less severity than
fell to the lot of young misses and half-grown boys, who felt the full mea-
sure of his ungovernable rage. But light as may have been her punish-
ments, they were doubtless too heavy for her misdeeds, which were nothiug
worse than indulging a childish desire for fun or play, while made to sit
three hours together on a backless bench.
It was a happy day for Miriam when the term closed, and the cruel
A was discharged. He has gone to his account. May he recefve
more mercy from Heaven than he meted out to Christ's little ones here !
A second time little Miriam was introduced within the walls of the
Academy, but under a new and quite different dynasty. The principal was
the kindest-hearted and most indulgent of pedagogues, well skilled in
500 FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY.
mathematics and learned in all classic lore ; greatly successful, moreover,
in " fitting young men for college," as the phrase goes. But the younger
fry were left to take care of themselves, or, at most, received a kind of
desultory instruction from some older pupil, while their misbehaviour was
kindly overlooked by the classical master.
Her slate did not always present the sums in addition duly set, which it
ought to have done. The stiff, tallowed locks and long-nosed visages of the
serious, matter-of-fact young men, intently poring over their Virgils and
Latin grammars, on the opposite side of the room, were oftener transferred
by her pencil to its surface. She could no more keep from drawing a striking
or peculiar set of features than she could stop her heart's beating; but she
had no thought of giving pain, and was unwilling to have her pictures seen.
Her copybook presented an appearance very unlike those of her school-
mates. She followed no formally set copy, but wrote little poems which
had struck her fancy in reading, interspersed with an occasional verse of
her own, the margins being adorned with heads and various devices, some-
thing after the ancient fashion, modernly revived, of embellishing books.
Two or three years' attendance at school under the nominal instruction
of this indulgent master and his successors, with an occasional winter
passed in studying at home, where she was taught by an older relative,
brought Miriam to her teens.
An association, partly social and partly literary in its design, was formed
in Miriam's native village, the members of which met semi-monthly for
reading, music, and conversation. Their gatherings took place at the resi-
dences of the members, were agreeable, informal, and not without benefit
particularly in the way of encouraging literary tastes and promoting refine-
ment of manners. The reading matter, in accordance with the rules of
the society, being mostly furnished by the pens of the members them-
selves, this unambitious association was the means of eliciting much latent
ability.
Being induced to join them, Miriam wrote occasionally a little poem or
a light essay, the latter always in a mirthful or slightly satirical strain, and
well received by the listeners. Afterwards, for the entertainment of
several successive gatherings, she produced a humorous tale in chapters.
Taking for her text the absurdities of the " Children of t'he Abbey," and
kindred works, she led her heroine, a vain, ignorant girl, with a head full
of the notions which such fictions would create in a weak mind, through
many ludicrous scenes and adventures, and having chosen her own vicinity
as the theatre and country life as the illustrating link of the tale, it was
made vastly amusing and popular in the opinion of her friends. A chap-
ter of "Widow Spriggins' Recollections" was ever sure of a welcome, and
an evening without a production from Miriam's easy and versatile pen was
pronounced dull.
In the summer of 1846, a warm personal friend of Miriam's, himself a
FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY. 501
contributor to i' Neal's Gazette," prevailed upon her to forward a few of
her little poems to Mr. Neal. The poems were speedily published with
laudatory notices, and such a reply given as to determine Miriam on
beginning a series of prose articles for the Gazette, under the title of
" Widow Bedott's Table-Talk." She chose the style in which those pieces
were written as being one in which she had already, in a small sphere,
been successful in pleasing. It is needless to dwell upon the applause with
which the first chapters were received by the public. They were univer-
sally regarded as the best Yankee papers then written, and indeed they
have not yet been excelled.
Yet nothing was sufficient to prevent her constitutional timidity and self-
distrust from suggesting the thought of failure, and a wish to lay aside the
pen. So she wrote to Mr. Neal, expressing her doubts as to proceeding.
Mr. Neal's well-timed approbation, joined to other considerations, induced
her to proceed with the *' Table-Talk," of which in the following spring she
began a new series.
On the 6th of January, 1847, she was married to the Rev. B. W.
Whitcher, of the Episcopal Church, and removed to the western part of
the State. Yet amid the cares of housekeeping and the difficult duties of
her station as a clergyman's wife, she found time, while never neglecting
any occupation that devolved upon her, to write for the press.
Miriam's rare and mirth-moving articles having attracted the notice of
Mr. Godey, she complied with his request to enrich the pages of the
" Lady's Book" with productions of a like nature, and under the name of
" Aunt Maguire," began a series for that Magazine.
Besides those pieces under the caption of "Aunt Maguire," she furnished
a few in a different style for the " Lady's Book," entitled '' Letters from
Timberville," which were exceedingly popular.
'^ Mrs. Mudlaw's Recipe for Potato Pudding," which appeared in the
" Philadelphia Saturday Gazette," about the close of the year 1850, was
the last of her productions published in her lifetime. It is a most amusing
sketch, showing striking marks of the vigour of her pen in the delineation
of character in various spheres.
In the autumn of 1850, the symptoms of the fatal malady, which finally
carried her off, began to develop themselves. She sank gradually and
serenely to her close, which took place on the 4th of January, 1852.
Her writings have never been published in a collected form. They lie
scattered chiefly through the pages of Godey, and of Neal's Gazette. A
judicious selection from them, and from her unpublished manuscripts, of
which it is understood her friends have quite a large number, would be a
valuable addition to our literature, and would be likely to hold a permanent
place there.
502 FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY.
MRS. MUDLAW'S RECIPE FOR POT2VTO PUDDING.
Mrs. Mudlaw Avas a short, fat "woman, witli a broad, red face —
sucli a person as a stranger would call the very personification of good
nature ; though I have never found fat people to be any more amiable
than lean ones. Certainly, Mrs. MudlaAV was not a very sweet-tem-
pered woman. On this occasion, she felt rather more cross than
usual, forced, as she was, to give one of her receipts to a nobody.
She, however, knew the necessity of assuming a pleasant demeanour
at that time, and accordingly entered the nursery with an encourag-
ing grin on her blazing countenance. Mrs. Philpot, fearing lest her
cook's familiarity might belittle her mistress in the eyes of Mrs.
Darling, and asking to be excused for a short time, went into the
library, a nondescript apartment, dignified by that name, which com-
municated with the nursery. The moment she left her seat, a large
rocking-chair, Mudlaw dumped herself down in it, exclaiming —
" Miss Philpot says you want to get my receipt for potater pud-
din' ?"
"Yes," replied Mrs. Darling. "I would be obliged to you for
the directions." And she took out of her pocket a pencil and paper
to write it down.
"Well, 'tis an excellent puddin'," said Mudlaw, complacently;
"for my part, I like it about as well as any puddin' I make, and
that's sayin' a good deal, I can tell you, for I understand makin' a
great variety. "Tain't so awful rich as some, to be sure. Now,
there's the Cardinelle puddin', and the Washington puddin', and the
Lay Fayette puddin', and the — "
"Yes. Mr. Darling liked it very much — howdo you make it?"'
" Wal, I peel my potaters and bile 'em in fair water. I always
let the water bile before I put 'em in. Some folks let their potaters
lie and sog in the water ever so long, before it biles ; but I think it
spiles 'em. I always make it a pint to have the water bile — "
" How many potatoes ?"
" Wal, I always take about as many potaters as I think I shall
FRANCES MIRIAM BEERY. 503
^ant. I'm generally governed by the size of the puddin' I want to
make. If it's a large puddin', why I take quite a number, but if
it's a small one, why, then I don't take as many. As quick as
they're done, I take 'em up and mash 'em as fine as I can get 'em.
I'm always very partic'lar about tliat — some folks ain't ; they'll let
their potaters be full o' lumps, /never do ; if there's anything I hate,
it's lumps in potaters. I wont have 'em. Whether I'm mashin'
potaters for puddin's or for vegetable use, I mash it till there ain't
the size of a lump in it. If I can't git it fine without sifting, why,
I sift it. Once in a while, when I'm otherways engaged, I set the
girl to mashin' on't. Wal, she'll give it three or four jams, and come
along, ' Miss Mudlaw, is the potater fine enough V Jubiter Ram-
min ! that's the time I come as near gittin' mad as I ever allow
myself to come, for I make it a pint never to have lumps — "
" Yes, I know it is very important. What next ?"
" Wal, then I put in my butter ; in winter time I melt it a little,
not enough to make it ily, but jest so's to soften it."
" How much butter does it require ?"
" Wal, I always take butter accordin' to the size of the puddin' ;
a large puddin' needs a good sized lump o' butter, but not too much.
And I'm always partic'lar to have my butter fresh and sweet.
Some folks think it's no matter what sort o' butter they use for
cookin', but I don't. Of all things, I do despise strong, frowy,
rancid butter. For pity's sake, have your butter fresh."
" How much butter did you say ?"
" Wal, that depends, as I said before, on what sized puddin' you
want to make. And another thing that regulates the quantity
of butter I use is the 'mount o' cream I take. I always put in
more or less cream ; when I have abundance o' cream, I put in
considerable, and when it's scarce, Avhy, I use more butter than I
otherways should. But you must be partic'lar not to get in too
much cream. There's a great deal in liavin' jest the right quantity ;
and so 'tis with all the ingrejiences. There ain't a better puddin'
in the world than a potater puddin', when it's made rigid, but 'tain't
everybody that makes 'em right. I remember when I lived in
504 FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY.
Tuckertown, I was a visitin' to Squire Humprey's one time — I went
in the first company in Tuckertown — dear me ! this is a changeable
world. Wal, they had what they called a potater puddin' for
dinner. Good laud ! Of all the puddin's ! I've often occurred to
that puddin' since, and wondered what the Squire's wife was a
thinkin' of when she made it. I wa'n't obleeged to do no such
things in them days, and didn't know how to do anything as well
as I do now. Necessity's the mother of invention. Experience is
the best teacher after all — "
" Do you sweeten it ?"
" Oh, yes, to be sure it needs sugar, the best o' sugar, too ; not
this wet, soggy, brown sugar. Some folks never think o' usin' good
sugar to cook with, but for my part I won't have no other."
" How much sugar do you take ?"
" Wal, that depends altogether on whether you calculate to have
sass for it — some like sass, you know, and then some agin don't.
So, when I calculate for sass, I don't take so much sugar; and
when I don't calculate for sass, I make it sweet enough to eat with-
out sass. Poor INIr. Mudlaw was a great hand for puddin'-sass. I
always made it for him — good, rich sass, too. I could afford to have
things rich before he was unfortinate in bisness." (Mudlaw went
to State's prison for horse-stealing.) " I like sass myself, too ; and
the curnel and the children are all great sass hands; and so I
generally calculate for sass, though Miss Philpot prefers the puddin'
without sass, and perhaps you'd prefer it without. If so, you must
put in sugar accordingly. I always make it a pint to have 'em
sweet enough when they're to be eat without sass."
" And don't you use eggs ?"
" Certainly, eggs is one o' the principal ingrejiences."
" How many does it require ?"
"Wal, when eggs is plenty, I always use plenty; and when
they're scarce, why I can do with less, though I'd ruther have
enough; and be sure to beat 'em well. It does distress me, the
way some folks beat eggs. I always want to have 'em thoroughly
beat for everything I use 'em in. It tries my patience most awfully
FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY. 505
to have anybody round me that won't beat eggs enough. A spell
ago we had a darkey to help in the kitchen. One day I was a makin'
sponge cake, and bavin' occasion to go up stairs after something, I
sot her to beatin' the eggs. Wal, what do you think the critter
done? Why, she whisked 'em round a few times, and turned 'em
right onto the other ingrejiences that I'd got weighed out. When
I come back and saw what she'd done, my gracious ! I came as nigh
to losin' my temper as I ever allow myself to come. 'Twas awful
provokin' ! I always want the kitchen help to do things as I want
to have 'em done. But I never saw a darkey yet that ever done
anything right. They're a lazy, slaughterin' set. To think o' her
spilin' that cake so, when I'd told her over and over agin that I
always made it a pint to have my eggs thoroughly beat !"
" Yes, it was too bad. Do you use fruit in the pudding ?"
" Wal, that's jest as you please. You'd better be governed by
your own judgment as to that. Some like currants and some like
raisins, and then agin some don't like nai-y one. If you use rai-
sins, for pity's sake pick out the stuns. It's awful to have a body's
teeth come grindin' onto a raisin stun. I'd rather have my ears
boxt any time."
" How many raisins must I take ?"
" Wal, not too many — it's apt to make the puddin' heavy, you
know; and when it's heavy, it ain't so light and good. I'm a great
hand—"
" Yes. What do you use for flavouring ?"
" There &gin you'll have to exercise your own judgment. Some
likes one thing, and some another, you know. If you go the hull
figger on temperance, why some other kind o' flavourin' '11 do as
well as wine or brandy, I s'pose. But whatever you make up your
mind to use, be partic'lar to git in a sufficiency, or else your puddin'
'11 be flat. I always make it a pint — "
" How long must it bake ?"
" There's the great thing after all. The bakin' 's the main pint.
A potater puddin', of all puddin's, has got to be baked jest right.
For if it bakes a leetle too much, it 's apt to dry it up ; and then
64
506 FRANCES MIRIAM BERRY.
agin if it don't bake quite enough, it's sure to taste potatory — and
that spiles it, you know."
" How long should you think ?"
" Wal, that depends a good deal on the heat o' your oven. If
you have a very hot oven, 'twon't do to leave it in too long ; and if
your oven ain't so very hot, why, you'll be necessiated to leave it in
longer."
"Well, how can I tell anything about it ?"
"Why, I always let'em bake till I think they're done — that's
the safest way. I make it a pint to have 'em baked exactly right.
It's very important in all kinds o' bakin' — cake, pies, bread, pud-
din's, and everything — to have 'em baked ^'^scisely long enough,
and jest right. Some folks don't seem to have no system at all
about their bakin'. One time they'll burn their bread to a crisp,
and then agin it'll be so slack 'tain't fit to eat. Nothing hurts my
feelin's so much as to see things overdone or slack-baked. Here
only t'other day, Lorry, the girl that Miss Philpot dismissed yester-
day, come within an ace o' letting my bread burn up. My back
was turned a minnit, and what should she do but go to stuffin' wood
into the stove at the awfullest rate. If I hadn't a found it out jest
when I did, my bread would a ben spilt as sure as I'm a live woman.
Jubiter Rammin ! I was about as much decomposed as I ever allow
myself to git ! I told Miss Philpot I wouldn't stan' it no longer —
one of us must quit — either Lorry or me must walk."
" So you've no rule about baking this pudding?"
"No rule !" said Mudlaw, with a look of intense surprise.
"Yes," said Mrs. Darling, "you seem to have no rule for any-
thing about it."
"No rule !" screamed the indignant cook, starting up, while her
red face grew ten times redder, and her little black eyes snapped
with rage. " No rules ! do you tell iiie I've no rule ! Me ! that's
cooked in the first families for fifteen years, and always gin satis-
faction, to be told by such as yoiL that I hain't no rules !'
ESTELLE ANNA LEWIS.
Tins well-known and elegant writer is a native of the city of Baltimore
Her father, a gentleman of much cultivation, and of liberal fortune, wag
from the island of Cuba, and was of mixed English and Spanish parentage.
At an early age she was sent to the admirable seminary of Mrs. Willard,
at Troy, where for several years she was an ambitious and most successful
student in all the higher branches of learning ; so that she has frequently
been pronounced the most thoroughly educated of all the female writers
of this country. The late Edgar A. Poe, struck with the classical finish
displayed in some of her works which had fallen under bis observation,
sought her acquaintance, and has left, in his " Literati," an estimate of
her acquired abilities equally decided and just.
" She is not only cultivated, as respects the usual acquirements of her
sex," he says, " but excels as a modern linguist, and very especially as a
classical scholar ; while her scientific acquisitions are of no common order.
Her occasional translations, from the more difficult portions of Virgil,
have been pronounced by our first professors, the best of the kind yet
accomplished — a commendation which only a thorough classicist can
appreciate in its full extent."
She is mistress of several modern as well as ancient languages, and
speaks and writes fluently in French, Spanish, and Italian.
It is as a poetess that IMrs. Lewis is best known ; since it is only in
poetry that she has published largely under her proper signature. The
volumes entitled " Kecords of the Heart," " The Child of the Sea,"
"Myths of the Minstrel," attest her fine taste, vigorous imagination, and
singular control of all the harmonies of our language.
But in prose she has also written with force, precision, and elegance.
Beginning while a school-girl, as a contributor to the " Family Magazine,"
edited by Solomon Southwick, of Albany, and continuing (after her mar-
riage to S. D. Lewis, Esq., a lawyer of Brooklyn) in the Democratic Review,
(507)
508 ESTELLE ANNA LEWIS.
and other leading journals, she has produced a number and variety of essays,
memoirs, and novelettes, altogether surprising. Among her latest produc-
tions in this form is a series of sketches of the leading artists of the
United States, published in Graham's Magazine, and ividely copied. They
are models of narration and critical exposition in its most difficult depart-
ment.
Mrs. Lewis is not less highly esteemed for her personal graces than for
her literary eminence; and her hospitable home in Brooklyn is the
frequent resort of men and women of genius and accomplishments in
letters and the arts, as well as of an enviable circle of friends known only
in private society.
ESTELLE ANNA LEWIS. 509
IMAGINATION.
Imagination is a complex power. It includes conception or
simple apprehension, abstraction, judgment or taste, and fancy.
"When Milton created his garden of Eden, association suggested to
him a vast variety of natural objects ; conception placed each of
them before him in its rude state ; abstraction separated them,
while taste made a selection, out of which, by a skilful combina-
tion, imagination created a more perfect and beautiful landscape
than was ever realized in nature.
Taste and imagination are inseparable. An union of these two
powers in the same mind is necessary for the production of every
work of genius. Without taste imagination could produce only a
random analysis and combination of our conceptions, and without
imagination taste would be destitute of the faculty of invention.
The one supports the other.
Of all our faculties imagination is the most subservient to mortal
happiness. It is the great source of human activity and of human
progress. It dwells not on the past. It fills the future with
eternal beacons of hope, love, beauty, compensation ; and lends to
the pilgrim courage to overcome all intervening obstacles to reach
the illusive goal of unattainable bliss. Persuasion and illusion are
its cardinal virtues — its matchless powers. It closes the eyes of
reason, and leads all the other faculties captive. It is the lightning
that illumes the sunless paths in the great desert of life, — the
master artist of the mind, who hangs the picture galleries of the
soul with worlds of its own creation, and dreams that were never
realized save in heaven.
Imagination is unlimited. It can create and annihilate, and
dispose at pleasure. It seizes upon all materials. It knows no
obstacles. It acknowledges no bounds. It plunges into the fiery
heart of man — drinks the liquae vitae of its arteries, sips at its
crystal springs, gathers diamonds from its deserts ; fruits, flowers,
and sweet music from its oasis, and celestial fires from the bosom
•510 ESTELLE ANNA LEWIS.
of its simoom. It looks not into the eyes — it lists not the voice —
it takes no cognisance of the outward features ; yet it talks with the
soul, with hope, love, sorrow, bliss — lays its finger on the pulse
of life, and counts its finest vibrations. It peoples the dark bosoms
of mountains with ghouls, goblins, and witches ; the trackless
forests with tribes of nymphs, sylphs, and fairies ; the ocean with
sea-gods, green-haired water-nymphs, mermaids, naiads, and levia-
thans : and amid the thunders of Jove sits on the stars, gathering
the fires of heaven. In fine, it peoples every atom of earth, sea,
air, with the beings of its own boundless brain, and then fuses them
down into its own white fire.
ART.
What is the chief end of high poetry, of high painting, and of
high sculpture ? Those who argue that information and entertain-
ment constitute their highest aim, deprive them of their divinity.
Entertainment and information are not all that the mind requires
at the hands of the artist. "VVe wish to be elevated by the contem-
plation of what is noble; to be warmed by the presence of the
heroic, and charmed and made happy by the sight of purity and
loveliness. We desire to share in the lofty movements of great
minds — to have communion with all their images of what is godlike —
and to take a part in the raptures of their love, and in the ecstasies
of their innermost beings.
The real value and immortality of the productions of all art,
lies in their truth, as embodying the spirit of a particular age,
and a faith that lived in men's souls, and worked in their acts — a
faith, whose expression and impress time cannot obliterate, but
leaves standing, the eternal Mecca of thought, love, imagination —
grand, awful, soul-lifting, heart-speaking as the pyramids of
Egypt.
We do not propose to consider, in this essay, art with reference
ESTELLE ANNA LEWIS. 511
to any creed, religious or classic, nor witli reference to taste,
whether it leans to piety or poetry, to the real or ideal ; but simply
as art — art the interpreter between nature and man — art evolving
to us nature's forms with the utmost truth of imitation, and, at the
same time, clothing them with a high significance derived from the
human purpose and the human intellect. Art is only perfect when
it fills us with the idea of perfection ; when it presents to our minds
a perfect structure of life, form, action, beauty, heart, soul ; when
it calls not upon our judgments to supply deficiencies, or to set
limits to the bounds of fancy and imagination. This lifting up of
the heart and soul, this fulnes^ of satisfaction, this brimming of
the bowl of delight, we have never found, save in a few of the
old masters.
CAROLINE CHESEBRO'.
JMiss Chesebro' has been before the public as an author for four or
five years, at first by means of short stories in the Magazines and other
periodicals, and afterwards by larger publications. Her first volume was a
collection of these Magazine stories, under the title of "Dreamland by
Daylight," which appeared in 1851. In March, 1852, " Isa, a Pilgrim-
age," was published. It was a novel of a highly original character, and
one which gave rise to the greatest contrariety of opinions, both respecting
its merits as a composition, and the revelations it was supposed to make
of the social and religious views of its author. The most considerate and
impartial judgment of the merits of " Isa" with which we have met, was
given by the accomplished critic of Harper's Magazine. We quote the
greater part of it, as also the same critic's opinion of her former work.
"In 'Dreamland,'" says this writer, "we find the unmistakeable evi-
dences of originality of mind, an almost superfluous depth of reflection for
the department of composition to which it is devoted, a rare facility in
seizing the multiform aspects of nature, and a still rarer power of giving
them the form and hue of imagination, without destroying their identity.
The writer has not yet attained the mastery of expression, corresponding
to the liveliness of her fancy and the intensity of her thought. Her style
suffers from the want of proportion, of harmony, of artistic modulation,
and though frequently showing an almost masculine energy, is destitute
of the sweet and graceful fluency which would finely attemper her bold
and stj-iking conceptions. We do not allude to this in any spirit of carping
censure ; but to account for the want of popular effect which, we appre-
hend, will not be so decided in this volume as in future productions of the
author. She has not yet exhausted the golden placers of her genius ; but
the products will obtain a more active currency when they come refined
and brilliant from the mint, with a familiar legible stamp, which can be
read by all without an effort."
(512)
CAROLINE CUE SEBRO'. 513
"Isa/' the same reviewer says, ''is a more ambitious effort than the
former productions of the authoress, displaying a deeper power of reflec-
tion, a greater intensity of passion, and a more complete mastery of terse
and pointed expression. On the whole, we regard it as a successful speci-
men of a quite difficult species of composition. Without the aid of a
variety of incident or character, with scarcely a sufficient number of events
to give a fluent movement to the plot, and with very inconsiderable refer-
ence to external nature, the story turns on the development of an abnormal
spiritual experience, showing the perils of entire freedom of thought in a
powerful, original mind, during the state of intellectual transition between
attachment to tradition and the supremacy of individual conviction. The
scene is laid in the interior world — the world of consciousness, of reflection,
of passion. In this twilight region, so often peopled with monstrous
shapes, and spectral phantasms, the author treads with great firmness
of step. With rare subtlety of discrimination, she brings hidden springs
of action to light, untwisting the tangled webs of experience, and revealing
with painful minuteness, some of the darkest and most fearful depths of
the human heart. The characters of Isa and Stuart, the leading person-
ages of the story, certainly display uncommon insight and originality.
They stand out from the canvass in gloomy, portentous distinctness, with
barely light enough thrown upon them to enable us to recognise their
weird, mysterious features. For our own part, we should prefer to meet
this writer, whose rare gifts we cordially acknowledge, in a more sunny
atmosphere ; but we are bound to do justice to the depth and vigour of the
present too sombre creation."
Miss Chesebro's other publications have been " The Children of Light,"
in 1852; a book for children in 1853, called "The Little Cross-Bearers;"
besides almost continual contributions to the first-class Magazines. She is
a native of Canandaigua, New York, at which place she has always resided.
The extract which follows is from the introductory chapter of " Isa."
65
Mi CAROLINE CHESEBRO'.
THE PAUPER CHILD AND THE DEAD WOMAN.
A WOMAN had died in the poor-house ; and her funeral was to
take place that day. Before her last illness, or rather before its
increase unto death, and during all its continuance, till the very
night of her death, I had slept in her room, in a state of hushed
and terrified, but then to me, unexplainable awe ; I lived with her,
and helped to attend her during her last days. She had long
existed a mere miserable Avreck of humanity, hideous to look upon.
But she had always been kind to me, and I entertained such a sort
of regard, and respect, and feeling for her, as made it very dread-
ful for me to witness her increased sufferings.
What deatli really meant I could not clearly understand.
They came out from her room that last night, and said, " She is
gone !" they said it in such a way as made me shudder. Dead !
I kept thinking the word over and over. GoxE — where ? She
was lying there on the bed. I saw that through a crack in the
door to which I crept, when none were by. She certainly was
there; — what had gone? She was "dead." Could anything
awaken her — could she hear — could she speak still ? It was a
mystery. I heard some of the other old women talking together —
they seemed glad, for some reason, that she was dead ; that she
would never want for anything again, that her sufferings were
over, they said. The silence about the house oppressed me ;
I could hardly breathe in it ; it frightened me ; and I went
off, to get rid of my thoughts, with the other children, to a
playhouse in a corner of the yard. But, before noon, I got
tired of them ; I could think of nothing but the dead old
woman. It seemed wrong in me to think of anything else. She
used to call me child, and dear, sometimes, and I loved her for
that, if for no other reason. They were at dinner ; I did not
want to eat, so I went and hung around the door of the chamber
where she still was sleeping. Wondering yet, and continually,
what Death meant, and if she were happy, and if / should ever
CAROLINE CUE SEBRO' 515
be happy, and, if so, would I be happy before I died, and if people
could die whenever they Avished to do so. Suddenly an uncontrollable
desire seized me. I would find it all out at once. I would ask
mammy ! she could tell me what I wanted to know ; she was dead —
she must know all about it !
I went softly into the room, and shut the door after nie. Then
I paused a moment, in doubt, for she was not lying on that bed
in the corner of the room, where she had lain ever since I could
recollect ; but near the bed there was a high table, and a board upon
it, and that was covered with a cloth. Something told me she must
be there ; I had often seen her sleeping with the bed-clothes drawn
over her head. I went up to the table carrying a chair with me,
for I was bent on knowing all about it now. I placed the chair
close beside the table, and then stood upon it, and uncovered her
face. The sight that met my eyes took away my breath for a
moment ; I had never seen anything like it before, and her appear-
ance startled me beyond measure. It was a horrid spectacle. The
recollection makes me tremble to this day. If I had never seen
another corpse, that remembrance would tempt me to say, how
horrible, as well as how wonderful, is death ! Her face was always
pale, but not of that hue — and it was always wrinkled, and had an
ugly look, yet she was "not ugly ; there was now a fixedness, a
rigidity, in the wrinkles and the colourless face, that made it awful
beyond imagination. It struck such a chill, such a horror through
me, that for many minutes, in my astonishment and terror, I forgot
to ask what I intended. Then again I recollected the object with
which I went there, and said : —
" Mammy, are you happy ? Do you sleep good ?"
No answer. I would have one. I had broken the awful
silence, and was not to be quieted again. That silence, at least,
could not chill me to quiet ; it the rather hurried me on in my
questioning. They would be coming back, and I must hear from
her lips what I longed to know.
"Mammy," I said, "do you have hateful dreams? Do you
know what's going on here ? Can you tell me what they're going to
516 CAROLINE CHESEBKO'.
do with you ? Mammy ! wont you look at me ? Are you sorry
they moved you from the other bed? Oh, do say something !"
I stooped over her ; I had at first spoken in a whisper, but the
last query was made in a loud voice. I bent further down — my
face touched hers ! God ! what an embrace was that ! The chair
on which I stood, slipped, in my impetuous movement ; I fell, and
— fainted ! ■;
When my consciousness retui'ned, the corpse had been removed,
but the broken board, and overturned chair, and table, told me what
a sight must have been presented to the people when they came
into that room.
ELIZA FAREAR.
Tnis estimable writer is the wife of Professor John Farrar, of Harvard
University. Her writings have been prompted evidently by the aim to be
useful, rather than by love of notoriety or fame. They have been directed
chiefly to the improvement of her own sex and of the young. The titles of
some of these useful volumes are, " The Children's Robinson Crusoe," " The
Life of Lafayette," "The Life of Howard," "Youth's Letter Writer."
But the work, beyond all others, by which she is most extensively and
most favourably known, is "The Young Lady's Friend." It was first
published in 1837, and it has gone through a very large number of edi-
tions, both here and in England. It is a manual of practical advice to
young ladies on their entering upon the active duties of life, after leaving
school. It contains no flights of fancy, or attempts at fine writing, but for
sound, practical sense, expressed in good English, and in a style perfectly
adapted to the subject, it is a work worthy of Hannah More or Maria
Edgeworth.
(on
518 ELIZA FARRAR.
BROTHERS AND SISTERS.
If your brothers are younger than you are, encourage them to
be perfectly confidential with you ; win their friendship by your
sympathy in all their concerns, and let them see that their interests
and their pleasures are liberally provided for in the family arrange-
ments. Never disclose their little secrets, however unimportant
they seem to you ; never pain them by an ill-timed joke ; never
repress their feelings by ridicule ; but be their tenderest friend,
and then you may become their ablest adviser. If separated from
them by the course of school or college education, make a point of
keeping up your intimacy by full, free, and affectionate correspond-
ence ; and when they return home, at that aAvkward age between
youth and manhood, when reserve creeps over the mind like an
impenetrable veil, suffer it not to interpose between you and your
brothers. Cultivate their friendship and intimacy with all the
^address and tenderness you possess ; for it is of unspeakable im-
portance to them that their sisters should be their confidential
friends. Consider the loss of a ball or party, for the sake of
making the evening pass pleasantly to your brothers at home, as a
small sacrifice,^— as one you should unhesitatingly make. If they
go into company with you, see that they are introduced to the most
desirable acquaintances, and show them that you are interested in
their enjoying themselves.
If you are so happy as to have elder brothers, you should be
equally assiduous in cultivating their friendship, though the
advances must of course be difierently made. As they have long
been accustomed to treat you as a child, you may meet with some
repulses when you aspire to become a companion and friend ; but
do not be discouraged by this. The earlier maturity of girls will
soon render you their equal in sentiment, if not in knowledge, and
your ready sympathy will soon convince them of it. They will be
agreeably surprised when they find their former plaything and
messenger become their quick-sighted and intelligent companion,
ELIZA FARRAR. 519
understanding at a glance what is passing in tlieir heart ; and love
and confidence on your part will soon be repaid in kind. Young
men often feel the want of a confidential friend of the softer sex, to
sympathize with them in their little affairs of sentiment, and happy
are those who find one in a sister.
Once possessed of an elder brother's confidence, spare no pains
to preserve it ; convince him, by the little sacrifices of personal
convenience and pleasure which you are willing to make for him,
that when you do oppose his wishes, it is on principle, and for con-
science' sake ; then you will be a blessing to him, and even when
differing from you, he will love and respect you the more for your
adherence to a high standard.
So many temptations beset young men, of which young women
know nothing, that it is of the utmost importance that your brothers'
evenings should be happily passed at home, that their friends should
be your friends, that their engagements should be the same as
yours, and that various innocent amusements should be provided
for them in the family circle. Music is an accomplishment chiefly
valuable as a home enjoyment, as rallying round the piano the
vai'ious members of a family, and harmonizing their hearts as well
as voices, particularly in devotional strains. I know no more
agreeable and interesting spectacle, than that of brothers and
sisters playing and singing together those elevated compositions in
music and poetry, which gratify the taste and purify the heart,
while their fond parents sit delighted by.
Sisters should be always willing to walk, ride, visit with their
brothers, and esteem it a privilege to be their companions. It is
worth while to learn innocent games for the sake of furnishing
brothers with amusement, and making home the most agreeable
place to them.
If your brothers take an interest in your personal appearance
and dress, you should encourage the feeling by consulting their
taste, and sacrificing any little fancy of your own to a decided dis-
like of theirs. Brothers will generally be found strongly opposed
to the slightest indecorum in sisters; even those who look with
520 ELIZA FAR RAR.
indifference upon freedom of manners in other girls, have very
strict notions with regard to their own sisters. Their intercourse
with all sorts of men enables them to judge of the constructions
put upon certain actions, and modes of dress and speech, much
better than women can ; and you will do well to take their advice
on all such points.
Sisters should as scrupulously regard each other's rights of pro-
perty as they would those of a guest staying in the house ; they
should never help themselves without leave to the working mate-
rials, writing implements, drawing apparatus, books, or clothing of
each other. It is a mistake to suppose that the nearness of the
relationship makes it allowable ; the more intimate our connexion
with any one, the more necessary it is to guard ourselves against
taking unwarrantable liberties. For the very reason that you are
obliged to be so much together, you should take care to do nothing
disagreeable to each other.
Love is a plant of delicate growth, and though it sometimes
springs up spontaneously, it will never flourish long and well with-
out careful culture. When I see how it is treated in some families,
my wonder is, not that it does not spread so as to overshadow the
whole circle, but that any sprig of it should survive the rude treat-
ment it meets .with.
Genuine politeness is a gi^eat fosterer of family love ; it allays
accidental irritation, by preventing harsh retorts and rude contra-
dictions ; it softens the boisterous, stimulates the indolent, sup-
presses selfishness, and, by forming a habit of consideration for
others, harmonizes the whole. Politeness begets politeness, and
brothers may easily be won by it to leave off the rude ways they
bring home from school or college. Never receive any little atten-
tion without thanking them for it, never ask a favour of them but
in cautious terms, never reply to their questions in monosyllables,
and they will soon be ashamed to do such things themselves. You
should labour, by precept and example, to convince them that no
one can have really good manners abroad, who is not habitually
polite at home.
HANNAH F. LEE.
The work of Mrs. Lee which has been the most extensively and per-
manently popular, is the " Three Experiments of Living." It was pub-
lished in 1838, and it has gone through about thirty editions in this
country, besides numerous editions in England. Besides this, she has
published a novel, called " Grace Seymour," and a large number of juvenile
books, to none of which, however, she has put her name.
Mrs. Lee's writings are pervaded throughout with a tone of good sense,
and a desire to be useful. She is a keen observer of the follies of social
life, and in pruning its excrescences she does not hesitate to apply the
knife freely. She is animated, however, by a spirit of true Christian
benevolence; and her writings have been as useful as they have been
popular.
Mrs. Lee is a native of Newburyport, Massachusetts, and she resides at
present in Boston.
The extracts are from the " Three Experiments of Living."
66 (521)
522 HANNAH F. LEE,
BEGINNING LIFE.
Most young physicians begin life with some degree of patronage,
but Frank Fulton had none ; he came to the city a stranger, from the
wilds of Vermont, fell in love with Jane Churchwood, — uncle Joshua's
niece, — a man whom nobody knew, and whose independence
consisted in limiting his wants to his means. What little he could
do for Jane, he cheerfully did. But after all necessary expenses
were paid, the young people had but just enough between them to
secure their first quarter's board, and place a sign on the corner
of the house, by special permission, with Doctor Fulton handsomely
inscribed upon it. The sign seemed to excite but little attention, —
as nobody called to see the owner of it, — though he was at home
every hour in the day.
After a week of patient expectation, which could not be said to
pass heavily, — for they worked, read, and talked together, — Frank
thought it best to add to the sign, Practises for the poor gratis.
At the end of a few days another clause was added, Furnishes
medicines to those who cannot afford to pay for them. In a very
short time, the passers by stopped to spell out the words, and Frank
soon began to reap the benefit of this addition. Various applica-
tions were made, and though they did not as yet promise any in-
crease of revenue, he was willing to pay for the first stepping-stone.
What had begun, however, from true New England calculation, was
continued from benevolence. He was introduced to scenes of
misery, that made him forget all but the desire of relieving the
wretchedness he witnessed ; and when he related to his young and
tender-hearted wife, the situation in which he found a mother con-
fined to her bed, with two or three helpless children crying around
her for bread, Jane would put on her straw bonnet, and follow him
with a light step to the dreary abode. The first quarter's board
came round ; it was paid, and left them nearly penniless. There is
something in benevolent purpose, as well as in industry, that cheers
and supports the mind. Never was Jane's step lighter, nor her
HANNAH F. LEE. 523
smile gayer, than at present. But this could not last ; the next
quarter's board must be provided, — and how ? Still the ^york of
mercy went on, and did not grow slack.
LIVING BEYOND THE MEANS.
Jane was not behind Mrs. Bradish, in costume or figure. Every
morning, at the hour for calls, she was elegantly attired for visiters.
Many came from curiosity. Mrs. Hart congratulated her dear
friend, on seeing her moving in a sphere for which it was evident
nature intended her. Mrs. Reed cautioned her against any mauvaise
lionte, that might remind one of former times. Others admired her
furniture and arrangements, without any sly allusions. On one of
these gala mornings, uncle Joshua was ushered into the room. Jane
was fortunately alone, and she went forward and offered two fingers
with a cordial air, but whispered to the servant, " if any one else
called while he was there, to say she was engaged." She had
scrupulously observed her promise, of never sending word she was
not at home. There was a mock kind of deference in his air and
manner that embarrassed Jane.
" So," said he, looking round him, "we have a palace here !"
" The house we were in was quite too small, now that our children
are growing so large," replied Jane.
" They must be greatly beyond the common size," said uncle
Joshua, " if that house could not hold them."
" It was a very inconvenient one ; and we thought, as it was a
monstrous rent, it would do better to take another. Then, after we
had bought this, it certainly was best to furnish it comfortably, as
it was for life."
"Is it paid for ?" asked uncle Joshua, dryly.
Jane hesitated.
"Paid for ? 0 certainly ; that is, — yes, sir."
524 HANNAH F. LEE.
" I am glad to hear it ; otherwise, I much doubt if it is taken
for life."
Jane was silent.
" Very comfortable," said uncle Joshua; "that is a comfortable
glass for your husband to shave by ; and those are comfortable cur-
tains, to keep out the sun and cold." Both of these articles were
strikingly elegant. " That is a comfortable lamp that hangs in the
middle of the room ; it almost puts out my eyes with its glass
danglers. Times are strangly altered, Jane, since you and I
thought such comforts necessary.
" Frank has been very successful in his speculations, uncle ; he
does not now depend on liis profession for a living; indeed, he thinks
it his duty to live as other people do, and place his wife and children
upon an equality with others."
"And what do you call an equality, — living as luxuriously, and
wasting as much time, as they do ? Dwelling in as costly apart-
ments, and forgetting there is any other world than this ? When
you were left to my care, and your dear mother was gone from us,
how often I lamented that I could not supply her place, — that I
could not better talk to you of another world, to which she had
gone ; but then, Jane, I comforted myself that I knew something
of the duties that belonged to this, and that if I faithfully instructed
you in these, I should be preparing you for another. When I saw
you growing up, dutiful and humble, charitable, self-denying, sincere,
and a conscientious disciple of truth, then I felt satisfied that all
was well. But I begin now to fear that it was a shortsighted kind
of instruction, — that it had not power enough to enable us to hold
fast to what is right. I begin now to see that we must have motives
that do not depend on the praise or censure of this world, — motives
that must have nothing; to do with it."
CAROLINE THOMAS.
Miss Thomas (if indeed that be a real name — wbich has been publicly
doubted) is known to the world only as the author of " Farmingdale," a
novel, in two volumes, published in 1854. The work has not as yet
created what is called a sensation. It is quiet in its tone, and it has not
been ushered upon the public with any of that " pomp and circumstance"
now so common. But the impression, so far as we have heard, of every
one who has read the work, is, that it must, sooner or later, win its way
into general notice, and that the author, whoever she be, is one who will
certainly make her mark.
" Farmingdale" is thoroughly indigenous, every page and paragraph
being redolent of its native soil. It is a tale of New England domestic
life, in its incidents and manners so true to nature and so free from exag-
geration, and in its impulses and motives throughout so throbbing with
the real American heart, that we seem ourselves to have seen, twenty times
over, just such woods and skies, and to have known by scores just such men
and women, and children, too, as those described by the author of " Farm-
ingdale."
The story is very simple in plot, and rather bare of incident. The
author evidently relies for her effects more upon the direct force of truth
and nature, than upon that artificial interest which grows out of complexity
of plan, and multiplicity of actors. This is subjecting her work to a
severe test. But it can bear the ordeal. The story abounds in scenes of
absorbing interest. The narrative is everywhere delightfully clear and
straight-forward, flowing forth towards its conclusion, like a gentle and
limpid sti'eam, between graceful hillsides and verdant meadows. In the
conception and delineation of character, Miss Thomas is bold and clear,
always individualizing perfectly. In the delicate appreciation of what is
beautiful, whether in human character or in circumstances and events, in
the skilful grouping of incidents, and in all those numberless graces of
style and diction which give finish and tone to a work of fiction, the
author of '' Farmingdale" has shown herself a true artist.
To understand the extract which follows, it is necessary to say, that
Mary and Tommy Lester were two orphan children, living at a farm-
house, with their only surviving relation, a hard-hearted old aunt. It is a
fair specimen of the author's style of description and narration.
(525)
520 CAROLINE THOMAS.
TRIALS.
The garret of a country farm-house has been so often and so ably
described — its time-stained, ■\yeather-beaten walls, its dark rafters,
dim recesses, and shadowy corners, have figured upon so many a
page of story and romance, that it is not necessary to paint them
here. Suffice it to say, that this was a large, low room, lighted at
either end by a semicircular window, and containing its full share
of old clothes and empty barrels. Strings of seed-corn, dried
apples, and red peppers hung upon the walls, together with huge
bunches of dried herbs, and paper bags filled with sage and summer-
savory. A large rope was securely fastened across one corner, and
upon it were arranged the feather-beds, for which the family found
no use "during the summer. There was a broken reel, a pair of
swifts that looked as if they had seen hard service, and a spinning-
wheel.
But what more immediately concerned Tommy, was a large blue
and white blanket filled with wool, and fastened together by long,
sharp thorns, in lieu of pins. It lay on the floor in one corner, but
Mrs. Graham hauled it into the middle of the room, directly in the
range of the two windows, pulled out the thorns, and straightened
the blanket. Then she spread a clean sheet at a little distance, and
looked about her, seemingly in search of something else. Presently
she spied a small box, turned up against the wall, and bringing that,
she placed it bottom side up between the two.
" There, Tommy, you set down on that box, and go to picking
this wool. Put what you pick in this sheet."
"I don't know how to pick it," said Tommy, looking dubiously
at the immense (so it appeared to his eyes) pile before him.
*' You don't ? Well, it won't take me long to show you. You
must take a handful — so — and pull each lock apart in this way ; and
when you find any burs, or any ticks, or anything, you mus-t be sure
to get them all out."
"What are ticks T' asked Tommy.
CAROLINE THOMAS. 527
" There's one; that little brown thing."
"Is it alive?"
" 'Twon't bite, if 'tis. Come, don't take hold so carefully, as if
you "vvas afraid of dirtying your fingers. Be spry."
She stood watching Tommy for a while, as he pursued his task,
rather awkwardly at first, but more adroitly as he became fami-
liar with the modus operandi, and then left him to go on with it
alone.
Tommy did not like his new business remarkably. It was dull
and lonesome up there in the old garret, with nothing but the rats,
that occasionally made him start as they scampered about in the
walls, to keep him company. Still, for tAvo or three days he bore
it very well. It was a change, and all children like that. Once in
a while Mary would steal away from her own Avork, and pay him a
flying visit, just long enough to speak a few cheering words, or to
give him a kiss, and sometimes more substantial aliment in the shape
of an apple or a doughnut. But this Avas not often.
One morning she noticed that he did not eat much breakfast, and
that his eyes looked dull and heaA'y. He hung about Avhile the table
v/as being cleared, as if reluctant to go to his task, but said nothing.
Pretty soon Mrs. Graham came in from the garden, with vegetables
for dinner.
" Mercy, Tommy ! ain't you to work yet ? Go right straight along
up stairs — quick !"
Tommy hesitated for a minute, "I've got a headache, aunt Betsy
— a hard one."
" Nonsense ! You always have a headache when a body wants to
get any Avork out of you. Go along ; you'll be just as well off up
there as down here, if it does ache."
The child obeyed in silence ; but Mary caught a glimpse of his
face as he turned to go up stairs, and its expression made her heart
ache all the forenoon. She tried to find a spare moment in which
she might run up and see how he was. It Avas an unusually busy
day with her, however, and she did not succeed.
When the horn was blown for dinner, he came down, looking pale
528 CAROLINE THOMAS.
and sad ; but as he made no complaint, Mary said notliing to him
about his head. She had long ago learned that it is seldom worth
while to remind a child that it does not feel well. He came to the
table with the rest, ate a few mouthfuls, and then pushed his plate
back with an air of disgust.
"What's the matter with « your victuals, Tom?" asked Mrs.
Graham.
" Nothing ; only I don't like pork and beans, nor beets either.
They make me sick. I wish I could have some bread and milk."
" Well, you ain't a-going to : if you can't eat what's on the table,
you can go without your dinner. You needn't be so mighty par-
ticular."
Tommy swallowed a fcAV mouthfuls of dry bread, and left the
table. He walked about in the yard until the men were done
eating, and then Mrs. Graham called him, and sent him up stairs
again.
"And you must hurry with that wool, Tommy," she said; "I
want it out of the way just as quick as ever it can be."
The garret was intensely hot. The fervid August sun beat
directly down upon the roof; one window was partly open, but it
seemed to give admission to scarce a breath of air. Tommy
climbed up on an inverted barrel, and tried to unfasten the window
opposite. It resisted all his efforts, and he returned wearily to his
little seat agam, and his fingers resumed their monotonous employ-
ment. He glanced at the open window. He could see the tops of
the cherry-trees waving in the light breeze that might not reach his
burning brow. On the loftiest branch a little bird swayed to and
fro, chirruping merrily. Occasionally, as the breeze freshened,
he could hear the rustling of the leaves ; and when it died away,
the faint murmur of the creek would reach his ear, filling his little
heart with a feverish longing to bathe in its cool waters. But
that was only when he listened intentl3^ For the most part of
the time he heard nothing but the creaking 'of an old window-
shutter, that swung lazily on its rusty hinges. The sound became
inexpressibly annoying to him. He was exceedingly afraid of
CAROLINE THOMAS. 529
thunder : yet the wildest war of the elements would have been a
relief to him.
His seat was hard, and there was nothing to support his
back. He wondered if he couldn't fix it somehow, and that
diverted his thoughts for a few moments. There was an old
cushion peeping out from beneath some rubbish in one corner.
With a good deal of effort he succeeded in pulling it out and carry-
ing it to his seat ; he laid it on the box, and sat down to try the
effect.
"There, that's nice," he said: "now if I only had something to
lean against, I should be fixed. Oh, there's a bigger box : that will
do, if I can only get it here."
He dragged the box from its place, and set it up in the required
position. But when he attempted to lean against it, it was not
sufficiently heavy, and his weight pushed it back. "What should he
do now ? Not give it up ; he was in no mood for that. Looking
about him, he spied some billets of wood that had been carried
there, doubtless for some wise purpose ; and, one by one, he brought
them and put them in the box.
"This goes better, a great deal," said Tommy. "Now I can
lean my head against it, and I guess it won't ache so hard."
It did not; but his comparatively easy position, and the dull
drowsy nature of his work, were too much for him. Slowly his head
drooped upon one side, his fingers grew still, and then, with a
sudden start, he straightened himself up, and put them in motion
again.
Of course, all this was not accomplished without some noise^
The shoving of the large box across the floor was distinctly heard
in the kitchen.
"Hark!" exclaimed Mrs. Graham, "what is all that racket? I
am sure it comes from the garret. I'll bet a shilling that boy plays
half his time."
She wanted very much to go immediately and learn the cause of
the disturbance. But she was working butter, and could not
conveniently leave it. As soon, however, as she had packed
67
530 CAROLINE THOMAS.
it down, and put away her various utensils, she washed her
hands and went up the first pair of stairs. Softly opening the
door at the foot of those that led to the garret, she listened for
a minute. If Tommy was in any mischief, he was very still
about it ; but she thought she would go on and see what he had
been doing.
She mounted the stairs, and it was a moment or two before her
eyes became accustomed to the dim light of the garret — dim, at least,
when compared with that of the lower parts of the house — so as to
admit of her seeing anything. Gradually one object after another
became visible, and she saw Tommy lying, half upon his seat, half
on the pile of wool, fast asleep !
Angrily she strode across the floor, grasped the little fellow by
one arm, and raising him from his impromptu couch, shook him
violently.
Frightened and bewildered, the child did not speak nor cry, but
stared about as if his senses were forsaking him.
" What are you doing there, you lazy little imp ? — going to sleep
on the wool, instead of picking it — eh? I've caught you finely this
time. There, take that, and that, and that," and she brought her
broad hand heavily against one side of his head and then the other,
several times in succession. " How did you dare go to sleep when
I sent you up here to work — eh?"
Tommy was fairly stunned by the heavy blows. His sudden
awakening, too, had caused his old headache to return, with redoubled
strength, and every nerve in his body thrilled with pain. He did
not utter a word.
"Answer me, when I speak to you, Tom Lester, if you know
what's good for yourself. What made you go to sleep?"
Tommy did not answer. It seemed to him that he could not.
"Answer me !" and Mrs. Graham's hand was again raised.
He shrank from the threatened blow\
" Don't strike me again, aunt Betsy. I couldn't help it !"
His aunt's eye was roving about the room.
"No wonder you couldn't. What's this cushion doing here?"
CAROLINE THOMAS. 531
"I got it to sit on," said Tommy. "The Lox was so liard."
" So hard ! And what's this for ?"
" For me to lean against. My head ached, and my back. I feel
sick, aunt Betsy; and it's so hot !"
" I think it's very likely," said Mrs. Graham, mockingly ; " being
woke up don't agree with you. But I guess you'll get over
it. Now, put these things back where they belong, and then see
if you can sit up straight, and attend to your work. And don't
you let me catch you asleep again. If you do, it will be the worse
for you."
She remained in the garret while the cushion, billets of wood, and
box were being restored to their respective places, and until Tommy
was again seated on Ids box. Then, with an admonitive warning,
she descended the stairs.
Half an hour afterwards, Mary went up to her own room after a
clean apron, and while taking it from the closet shelf, she thought
she heard a low, suppressed sobbing from the gaiTet. Up she flew,
to see what was the matter.
Tommy was at work, picking his wool with busy fingers ; but tears
were chasing each other down his cheeks, and he did ^not stop to
wipe them away. As he raised his eyes and saw Mary, he dropped
the wool, and sprang eagerly into her arms.
"Oh, Mary, Mary!" he sobbed, "you haven't been to see me
once in all this long day !"
" I know it, Tommy darling ; but I have been just as busy as I
could be, every single minute. "What makes you cry so, dear ?"
and she tenderly smoothed back his brown curls, and kissed his
little tear-stained face.
But he only cried the more.
" Oh, my head aches so badly, Mary, and I am so tired ! I did not
mean to go to sleep, but aunt Betsy boxed my ears very hard."
Mary did not know what he meant, but by a little skilful ques-
tioning she drew the whole story from him. An indignant flush
mounted to her brow, and she clasped him closer to her breast.
ELLEN LOUISE CHANDLER.
It is something of an acbievenient for a young woman, at the age of
only nineteen, to have written a book of nearly five hundred pages, of
which a second edition was called for and printed, in less than three months
from the date of the first. Such has been Miss Chandler's first experience
of literary adventure.
She was born at Pomfret, Connecticut, in the year 1835, at which place
she has always continued to reside. The influences that have been at
work in moulding her mind and character, can best be judged from a sketch
of her early years communicated by herself to the Editor, from which he
is permitted to make the following extract.
" I commenced my school education," says Miss Chandler, " at the age
of two years, and, during the period that followed, I was in no wise distin-
guished from other fun-loving, school-disturbing little girls. My amuse-
ments, it is true, were of a different character, but this fact arose from the
circumstance of my being an only child. Casting my eyes outward from
my window, I can see where the morning sunshine kisses the grave of my
baby brother. Long before his feet had learned to tread the steep paths
of earth, God gave him wings, wherewith to climb the stairs of Heaven.
After that, I was alone. Had I been of a less imaginative temperament,
this early loneliness might have soured my temper, and embittered my
life. As it was, I found plenty of ideal companions. Before I could guide
a pen, I used to weave romances. I remember, when I was four years old,
to have carried in my head for weeks an embryo epic, entitled " The
Spanish Knight," to which I was daily making additions. I used to gather
pale, blue-eyed flowers, and tend them carefully, fancying they were young
girls, fading with consumption. A feather, or even a sprig from the
northern pine-tree, would sufi&ce for a hero, and I was never lonely when
Burrounded by the creations of my fancy.
" I formed friendships with the patient stars, or the black storm-clouds,
(532)
ELLEN LOUISE CHANDLER. 533
sweeping the sky like contending armies ; but of all the voices of my child-
hood, none spoke to mo so lovingly as the winds. I believed, in those days,
that they blew right out of Heaven, from under the very foot-stool of Alla's
throne ; and listening to them, with my ear at the key-hole of an outside
door opening to the north, I believed that I was hearing the secrets of the
stars, that
" It was the Spirit of the Flood that spoke,
And he called on the Spirit of the Fell."
"It was (or rather, it is, for I reside here still) a beautiful home, where
I lived with my parents. I cannot conceive a more delightful dwelling-
place for a child, whose worship for the beautiful amounted to a passion,
whose very soul thrilled a response to all the voices of nature. I raise my
eyes — a landscape lies spread before me, so fair, description could not
realize half its charms. A low murmur steals to my ear, from subterra-
nean fountains, and, to the eastward, lies the valley of the Quinebaug, dis-
tinguished for an appearance I have never seen elsewhere. It is a kind of
phantom-sea. A mist rises from the valley, so heavy that strangers always
mistake it for a large pond ; but to me it is a mighty sea, whereon spectral
ships are sailing, and the skeleton at the helm talks to the skeleton at the
prow.
" I have grown up among the sights and sounds of nature, and my soul
leans lovingly toward them. There is something in the very atmosphere
of a city which seems to stifle me. My heart needs the blue sky, the green
fields, and the free breath of the country breezes. My life has been passed
for the most part in my quiet home, though I have had no small share
of boarding-school experience. But the teacher to whom, most of all, my
gratitude is due, is the Rev. Dr. Park, now President of Racine College, and
formerly, for some years. Professor in the University of Pennsylvania. For
five years I was his pupil, and his kind hands opened for me the gates of
classic antiquity.
"From him, I learned to love all that was grand and beautiful in the folios
of the past, and the ancient and modern languages which I acquired under
his tuition are daily opening to my eager gaze new mines of richness. I
have in a great degree, however, been my own instructor. That is, I have
been allowed for the most part, in my whole course of education, to follow
the bent of my erratic and poetical fancy. If I learned geography, it was
always with a map and a pencil, tracing out the mountain sources of mys-
terious rivers, or building huts for South-sea Islanders, in imaginary groves
of banyans. I studied mathematics, with an undefined sense of companion-
ship with grim old Egyptian sages, and faces like the model for a Sphinx.
I worshipped the stars, over my astronomy, with the devotion of a Chal-
534 ELLEN LOUISE CHANDLER.
dean, and rendered the Latin hexameters of my Virgil into English
heroics.
" I commenced writing for publication nearly four years since, at the age
of fifteen, and my efforts were confined to the poetical corner of my
favourite papers. A year later, I commenced to furnish prose contributions
to the periodicals, over the signature of " Ellen Louise." I have not writ-
ten for fame or fortune, but because I love to write, and cannot help it,
any more than the free thrush in the cherry-tree at my window can help
Lis singing."
Miss Chandler's first volume was issued in May, 1854, and had such
immediate success that a new edition was called for in August. It is a
collection of stories, essays, reveries, and poems, under the odd but appro-
priate title of " This, That, and the Other." These pieces give evidence of an
extraordinary compass of thought and of reading, for one so young, a com-
mand of expression ordinarily attained only after long years of apprentice-
ship at the trade of authorship, a wild and frolicsome play of fancy that
soberer years will probably tame, and occasional touches of pathos and
tragedy that the stern realities of life all too soon will deepen. Miss
Chandler is yet in the heyday of life, and the offering she brings is redo-
lent of spring and flowers. The mellowed fruits of autumn will come in
their season.
ELLEN LOUISE CHANDLER. 535
"I CANNOT MAKE HIM DEAD."
Hush ! tread very liglitly ! The long shadows stretch across the
floor, the canary is silent in the "window, the air seems heavy with
the perfume of the violets you hold in your hand.
There he lies, — your little Charlie ! Yes, yours, for Charlie's
mother has gone to sleep. They put her down in the cold, dark
earth, in the gray of a winter's morning ; daisies grow over her
grave now, and wild birds, southern birds, with gay, brilliant wings,
sing over her. Charley is yours.
Watch him as he sleeps. The eye is like yours when it opens,
but the blue-veined lid that closes over it is his mother's. Those
lips are hers ! Do you remember how they trembled when you first
told her your love, and how in long years they only parted to
breathe for you words of gentle kindness ? Sometimes you were
impatient, petulant. 0, how you repented it when it was too late !
But nothing had power to dim the love-light in those clear blue
eyes — nothing ! not even death itself, for her last words were a
blessing, when she died, and — gave you Charlie. 0, how you have
loved that boy ! You have watched the breath of heaven, lest it
fall too roughly on his cheek. You have buttoned your coat around
you, as you turned homeward, after a profitable speculation, saying
to yourself, " Y^es, he shall be rich, my Charlie."
But there came days when there was no little foot to meet you
on the stair, no childish voice to whisper welcome.
The room, your room and Charlie's, was hushed and still; the
nurse stepped softly ; the whip you bought him hung upon the wall,
and Charlie could only whisper faint words of thanks for the flowers
or fruit you brought him as you hurried homeward. Now you have
come once more to look upon him, as he slumbers. It is fearful, all
this stillness. " Charlie," you say, " Charlie !" Slowly the blue-
veined lids uprise ; the dark eyes — your eyes — look up to your other
eyes.
Strange how bright they are ! Y''ou put the violets in that tiny
536 ELLEN LOUISE CHANDLER.
hand. He clasps them closely, but he whispers, " Papa, mamma
has been singing me to sleep, and now she's calling me. Kiss me,
papa !" and with that last, fond kiss your little boy's eyes close, and
the white dimpled hands tighten over the fresh flowers.
No need to step softly, lest you waken him. His mother guards
her boy! No, no — you need not sob, or groan. Bear a brave
heart, man !
Do you hear that carriage in the street ? Do you hear the town-
clock strike, and the church-bells peal ? The world is going onward,
brisk, lively, smiling as ever, with the joy-pulse beating at its great
heart ; and you, what are you, that you should make your moan,
sitting there in the silence, holding your dead boy to your breast ?
"You cannot make him dead," you say, and small need! The
earth was a cold soil for your fair flower to grow in.
The great Gardener has transplanted it to the ever-blooming
gardens of Paradise. He is yours still ! You have but nursed an
angel for heaven ! You have held him on your lap, cradled him in
your arms, and when you have hushed him to rest laid him down on
the bosom of Jesus. No, to you, Charlie " is not dead, but
sleepeth!"
THE END.
E. B. HEARS, STEREOTVPBR. C. SHERMAN, PRISTEB.
ia Sect._^^
CONTENTS
No.i4X^ Sect.__^^ Shelf_J_
^ENTS
0
Lincoln National Life Foundation
Collateral Lincoln Library
l(.^oo'^,o2'i, owo^s'
:^.- ; <^/^-...M''-M--'^:.:^^
m^'ti^m